This is a modern-English version of Jack and Jill, originally written by Alcott, Louisa May.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
JACK AND JILL
By Louisa May Alcott
To the schoolmates of ELLSWORTH DEVENS, Whose lovely character will not soon be forgotten, This Village Story is affectionately inscribed by their friend, L.M.A. 1880
To the classmates of ELLSWORTH DEVENS, Whose wonderful character will not be forgotten anytime soon, This Village Story is lovingly dedicated by their friend, L.M.A. 1880
CONTENTS
JACK AND JILL
Chapter I. The Catastrophe
Chapter II. Two Penitents
Chapter III. Ward No. 1
Chapter IV. Ward No. 2.
Chapter V. Secrets
Chapter VI. Surprises
Chapter VII. Jill's Mission
Chapter VIII. Merry and Molly
Chapter IX. The Debating Club
Chapter X. The Dramatic Club
Chapter XI. "Down Brakes”
Chapter XII. The Twenty-Second of February
Chapter XIII. Jack Has a Mystery
Chapter XIV. And Jill Finds It Out
Chapter XV. Saint Lucy
Chapter XVI. Up at Merry's
Chapter XVII. Down at Molly's
Chapter XVIII. May Baskets
Chapter XIX. Good Templars
Chapter XX. A Sweet Memory
Chapter XXI. Pebbly Beach
Chapter XXII. A Happy Day
Chapter XXIII. Cattle Show
Chapter XXIV. Down the River
TABLE OF CONTENTS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ The Disaster
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__ Two Repentants
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__ Ward One
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__ Ward Two.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__ Secrets
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__ Surprises
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__ Jill's Task
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__ Merry and Molly
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__ The Debate Club
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__ The Drama Club
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__ "Down Brakes”
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__ The Twenty-Second of February
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__ Jack Has a Mystery
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__ And Jill Solves It
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__ Saint Lucy
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__ Up at Merry's
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__ Down at Molly's
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__ May Baskets
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__ Good Templars
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_20__ A Fond Memory
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_21__ Pebble Beach
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_22__ A Joyful Day
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_23__ Cattle Show
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_24__ Down the River
JACK AND JILL
Jack and Jill went up the hill To coast with fun and laughter; Jack fell down and broke his crown, And Jill came tumbling after.
Jack and Jill went up the hill To slide down with fun and laughter; Jack fell down and hurt his head, And Jill came tumbling after.
Chapter I. The Catastrophe
“Clear the lulla!” was the general cry on a bright December afternoon, when all the boys and girls of Harmony Village were out enjoying the first good snow of the season. Up and down three long coasts they went as fast as legs and sleds could carry them. One smooth path led into the meadow, and here the little folk congregated; one swept across the pond, where skaters were darting about like water-bugs; and the third, from the very top of the steep hill, ended abruptly at a rail fence on the high bank above the road. There was a group of lads and lasses sitting or leaning on this fence to rest after an exciting race, and, as they reposed, they amused themselves with criticising their mates, still absorbed in this most delightful of out-door sports.
“Clear the way!” was the shout heard on a bright December afternoon when all the boys and girls of Harmony Village were out enjoying the first good snowfall of the season. They raced up and down three long hills as fast as their legs and sleds could take them. One smooth path led into the meadow, where the kids gathered; another swept across the pond, where skaters zipped around like water bugs; and the third, from the very top of the steep hill, ended abruptly at a rail fence on the high bank above the road. A group of boys and girls sat or leaned against this fence, resting after an exciting race, and as they relaxed, they entertained themselves by critiquing their friends who were still caught up in this most enjoyable outdoor sport.
“Here comes Frank Minot, looking as solemn as a judge,” cried one, as a tall fellow of sixteen spun by, with a set look about the mouth and a keen sparkle of the eyes, fixed on the distant goal with a do-or-die expression.
“Here comes Frank Minot, looking as serious as a judge,” shouted one, as a tall guy of sixteen whizzed past, wearing a determined expression and a sharp glint in his eyes, focused on the distant goal with an attitude that said he was ready to do anything to succeed.
“Here's Molly Loo And little Boo!”
“Here’s Molly Loo And little Boo!”
sang out another; and down came a girl with flying hair, carrying a small boy behind her, so fat that his short legs stuck out from the sides, and his round face looked over her shoulder like a full moon.
sang out another; and down came a girl with long, flowing hair, carrying a small boy behind her, so chubby that his short legs stuck out from the sides, and his round face peeked over her shoulder like a full moon.
“There's Gus Burton; doesn't he go it?” and such a very long boy whizzed by, that it looked almost as if his heels were at the top of the hill when his head was at the bottom!
“There's Gus Burton; is he fast or what?” and this really tall guy zipped by, making it seem like his feet were at the top of the hill while his head was at the bottom!
“Hurrah for Ed Devlin!” and a general shout greeted a sweet-faced lad, with a laugh on his lips, a fine color on his brown cheek, and a gay word for every girl he passed.
“Cheers for Ed Devlin!” a crowd of voices welcomed a cheerful young boy, with a smile on his face, a healthy glow on his brown cheek, and a friendly chat for every girl he walked by.
“Laura and Lotty keep to the safe coast into the meadow, and Molly Loo is the only girl that dares to try this long one to the pond. I wouldn't for the world; the ice can't be strong yet, though it is cold enough to freeze one's nose off,” said a timid damsel, who sat hugging a post and screaming whenever a mischievous lad shook the fence.
“Laura and Lotty stick to the safe path along the meadow, and Molly Loo is the only girl brave enough to venture out on this long stretch to the pond. I wouldn’t do it for anything; the ice can’t be strong yet, even though it’s cold enough to freeze your nose off,” said a shy girl, who was hugging a post and screaming every time a naughty boy shook the fence.
“No, she isn't; here's Jack and Jill going like fury.”
“No, she isn't; here come Jack and Jill moving quickly.”
“Clear the track For jolly Jack!”
“Clear the way for cheerful Jack!”
sang the boys, who had rhymes and nicknames for nearly every one.
sang the boys, who had rhymes and nicknames for almost everyone.
Down came a gay red sled, bearing a boy who seemed all smile and sunshine, so white were his teeth, so golden was his hair, so bright and happy his whole air. Behind him clung a little gypsy of a girl, with black eyes and hair, cheeks as red as her hood, and a face full of fun and sparkle, as she waved Jack's blue tippet like a banner with one hand, and held on with the other.
Down came a bright red sled, carrying a boy who looked all smiles and sunshine, so white were his teeth, so golden was his hair, and so bright and happy was his whole vibe. Behind him was a little girl with dark eyes and hair, cheeks as red as her hood, and a face full of fun and sparkle, as she waved Jack's blue scarf like a banner with one hand and held on with the other.
“Jill goes wherever Jack does, and he lets her. He's such a good-natured chap, he can't say 'No.'”
“Jill goes wherever Jack goes, and he lets her. He's such a nice guy, he can't say 'No.'”
“To a girl,” slyly added one of the boys, who had wished to borrow the red sled, and had been politely refused because Jill wanted it.
“To a girl,” one of the boys added with a smirk, hoping to borrow the red sled, but he had been politely turned down because Jill wanted it.
“He's the nicest boy in the world, for he never gets mad,” said the timid young lady, recalling the many times Jack had shielded her from the terrors which beset her path to school, in the shape of cows, dogs, and boys who made faces and called her “'Fraid-cat.”
“He's the sweetest guy ever because he never gets angry,” said the shy young woman, remembering all the times Jack had protected her from the fears that popped up on her way to school, like cows, dogs, and boys who made fun of her and called her “'Fraid-cat.”
“He doesn't dare to get mad with Jill, for she'd take his head off in two minutes if he did,” growled Joe Flint, still smarting from the rebuke Jill had given him for robbing the little ones of their safe coast because he fancied it.
“He doesn’t dare to get angry with Jill, because she’d tear him apart in two minutes if he did,” growled Joe Flint, still stinging from the reprimand Jill had given him for taking away the little ones’ safe space because he wanted it.
“She wouldn't! she's a dear! You needn't sniff at her because she is poor. She's ever so much brighter than you are, or she wouldn't always be at the head of your class, old Joe,” cried the girls, standing by their friend with a unanimity which proved what a favorite she was.
“She wouldn’t! She’s a sweetheart! You shouldn’t look down on her just because she’s poor. She’s way smarter than you, or she wouldn’t always be at the top of your class, old Joe,” cried the girls, standing by their friend in a show of solidarity that proved how much they liked her.
Joe subsided with as scornful a curl to his nose as its chilly state permitted, and Merry Grant introduced a subject of general interest by asking abruptly,—
Joe settled down with as much scorn as his cold nose would allow, and Merry Grant brought up a topic that everyone found interesting by asking suddenly,—
“Who is going to the candy-scrape to-night?”
“Who is going to the candy-scrape tonight?”
“All of us. Frank invited the whole set, and we shall have a tip-top time. We always do at the Minots',” cried Sue, the timid trembler.
“All of us. Frank invited everyone, and we're going to have a fantastic time. We always do at the Minots'," cried Sue, the shy one.
“Jack said there was a barrel of molasses in the house, so there would be enough for all to eat and some to carry away. They know how to do things handsomely;” and the speaker licked his lips, as if already tasting the feast in store for him.
“Jack said there was a barrel of molasses in the house, so there would be enough for everyone to eat and some to take home. They know how to do things nicely;” and the speaker licked his lips, as if he could already taste the feast waiting for him.
“Mrs. Minot is a mother worth having,” said Molly Loo, coming up with Boo on the sled; and she knew what it was to need a mother, for she had none, and tried to care for the little brother with maternal love and patience.
“Mrs. Minot is a great mom,” said Molly Loo, arriving with Boo on the sled; and she understood what it meant to need a mother because she had none, and tried to care for her little brother with love and patience like a mother would.
“She is just as sweet as she can be!” declared Merry, enthusiastically.
“She is as sweet as can be!” exclaimed Merry, excitedly.
“Especially when she has a candy-scrape,” said Joe, trying to be amiable, lest he should be left out of the party.
“Especially when she has a candy scrape,” Joe said, trying to be friendly, so he wouldn’t be excluded from the group.
Whereat they all laughed, and went gayly away for a farewell frolic, as the sun was setting and the keen wind nipped fingers and toes as well as noses.
They all laughed and cheerfully left for a farewell celebration as the sun was setting and the chilly wind nipped at their fingers, toes, and noses.
Down they went, one after another, on the various coasts,—solemn Frank, long Gus, gallant Ed, fly-away Molly Loo, pretty Laura and Lotty, grumpy Joe, sweet-faced Merry with Sue shrieking wildly behind her, gay Jack and gypsy Jill, always together,—one and all bubbling over with the innocent jollity born of healthful exercise. People passing in the road below looked up and smiled involuntarily at the red-cheeked lads and lasses, filling the frosty air with peals of laughter and cries of triumph as they flew by in every conceivable attitude; for the fun was at its height now, and the oldest and gravest observers felt a glow of pleasure as they looked, remembering their own young days.
Down they went, one after another, on the different coasts—serious Frank, tall Gus, brave Ed, carefree Molly Loo, pretty Laura and Lotty, grumpy Joe, sweet-faced Merry with Sue screaming excitedly behind her, cheerful Jack and gypsy Jill, always together—everyone overflowing with the innocent joy that comes from healthy exercise. People passing on the road below looked up and smiled without thinking at the rosy-cheeked boys and girls, filling the chilly air with bursts of laughter and shouts of triumph as they zoomed by in every possible way; the fun was at its peak now, and even the oldest and most serious observers felt a warm sense of happiness as they watched, recalling their own youthful days.
“Jack, take me down that coast. Joe said I wouldn't dare to do it, so I must,” commanded Jill, as they paused for breath after the long trudge up hill. Jill, of course, was not her real name, but had been given because of her friendship with Jack, who so admired Janey Pecq's spirit and fun.
“Jack, take me down that coast. Joe said I wouldn't have the guts to do it, so I have to,” ordered Jill, as they stopped to catch their breath after the long climb up the hill. Jill wasn’t her real name, but it was given to her because of her friendship with Jack, who admired Janey Pecq's energy and fun.
“I guess I wouldn't. It is very bumpy and ends in a big drift; not half so nice as this one. Hop on and we'll have a good spin across the pond;” and Jack brought “Thunderbolt” round with a skilful swing and an engaging air that would have won obedience from anybody but wilful Jill.
“I guess I wouldn’t. It’s really bumpy and ends in a huge drift; not nearly as nice as this one. Jump on and we’ll have a fun ride across the pond,” and Jack turned “Thunderbolt” around with a smooth move and a charming vibe that would have earned compliance from anyone but stubborn Jill.
“It is very nice, but I won't be told I don't 'dare' by any boy in the world. If you are afraid, I'll go alone.” And, before he could speak, she had snatched the rope from his hand, thrown herself upon the sled, and was off, helter-skelter, down the most dangerous coast on the hill-side.
“It’s really nice, but no guy in the world is going to make me feel like I don’t ‘dare.’ If you’re scared, I’ll go by myself.” And, before he could say anything, she grabbed the rope from his hand, jumped onto the sled, and took off, racing down the steepest part of the hill.
She did not get far, however; for, starting in a hurry, she did not guide her steed with care, and the red charger landed her in the snow half-way down, where she lay laughing till Jack came to pick her up.
She didn’t get very far, though; because she was in a rush, she didn’t steer her horse carefully, and the red charger threw her into the snow halfway down, where she laughed until Jack came to help her up.
“If you will go, I'll take you down all right. I'm not afraid, for I've done it a dozen times with the other fellows; but we gave it up because it is short and bad,” he said, still good-natured, though a little hurt at the charge of cowardice; for Jack was as brave as a little lion, and with the best sort of bravery,—the courage to do right.
“If you want to go, I'll take you there for sure. I'm not scared, since I’ve done it a dozen times with the other guys; but we stopped because it’s short and not great,” he said, still in good spirits, though a bit hurt by the accusation of cowardice; because Jack was as brave as a little lion, and had the best kind of bravery—the courage to do what’s right.
“So it is; but I must do it a few times, or Joe will plague me and spoil my fun to-night,” answered Jill, shaking her skirts and rubbing her blue hands, wet and cold with the snow.
“So it is; but I have to do it a few times, or Joe will bug me and ruin my fun tonight,” answered Jill, shaking her skirts and rubbing her blue hands, wet and cold from the snow.
“Here, put these on; I never use them. Keep them if they fit; I only carry them to please mother.” And Jack pulled out a pair of red mittens with the air of a boy used to giving away.
“Here, put these on; I never use them. Keep them if they fit; I just carry them to make mom happy.” And Jack pulled out a pair of red mittens with the attitude of a boy who’s used to sharing.
“They are lovely warm, and they do fit. Must be too small for your paws, so I'll knit you a new pair for Christmas, and make you wear them, too,” said Jill, putting on the mittens with a nod of thanks, and ending her speech with a stamp of her rubber boots to enforce her threat.
“They're really nice and warm, and they fit. They must be too small for your hands, so I'll knit you a new pair for Christmas and make you wear them, too,” said Jill, putting on the mittens with a nod of thanks and ending her speech with a stomp of her rubber boots to emphasize her point.
Jack laughed, and up they trudged to the spot whence the three coasts diverged.
Jack laughed, and they trudged up to the place where the three coasts split off.
“Now, which will you have?” he asked, with a warning look in the honest blue eyes which often unconsciously controlled naughty Jill against her will.
“Now, which one do you want?” he asked, giving a cautionary look from his sincere blue eyes that often unintentionally kept mischievous Jill in check against her will.
“That one!” and the red mitten pointed firmly to the perilous path just tried.
“That one!” and the red mitten pointed decisively to the dangerous path just taken.
“You will do it?”
“Are you going to do it?”
“I will!”
"Absolutely!"
“Come on, then, and hold tight.”
“Come on, then, and hold on tight.”
Jack's smile was gone now, and he waited without a word while Jill tucked herself up, then took his place in front, and off they went on the brief, breathless trip straight into the drift by the fence below.
Jack's smile had disappeared, and he waited silently while Jill got herself ready. Then she took his place in front, and they set off on the short, exhilarating trip straight into the snowbank by the fence below.
“I don't see anything very awful in that. Come up and have another. Joe is watching us, and I'd like to show him that we aren't afraid of anything,” said Jill, with a defiant glance at a distant boy, who had paused to watch the descent.
“I don’t see anything too terrible in that. Come on and have another. Joe is watching us, and I want to show him that we aren’t afraid of anything,” said Jill, with a daring look at a distant boy, who had stopped to watch them.
“It is a regular 'go-bang,' if that is what you like,” answered Jack, as they plowed their way up again.
“It’s a regular 'go-bang,' if that’s what you like,” Jack replied, as they made their way up again.
“It is. You boys think girls like little mean coasts without any fun or danger in them, as if we couldn't be brave and strong as well as you. Give me three go-bangs and then we'll stop. My tumble doesn't count, so give me two more and then I'll be good.”
“It is. You guys think girls like boring little coasters that have no fun or excitement, like we couldn't be brave and strong just like you. Give me three more rides and then we'll stop. My fall doesn't count, so give me two more and then I'll be fine.”
Jill took her seat as she spoke, and looked up with such a rosy, pleading face that Jack gave in at once, and down they went again, raising a cloud of glittering snow-dust as they reined up in fine style with their feet on the fence.
Jill sat down as she talked and looked up with such a sweet, hopeful expression that Jack immediately gave in. They dove back down, creating a cloud of sparkling snow as they gracefully came to a stop with their feet on the fence.
“It's just splendid! Now, one more!” cried Jill, excited by the cheers of a sleighing party passing below.
“It's absolutely amazing! Now, one more!” shouted Jill, thrilled by the cheers of a sledding group passing by below.
Proud of his skill, Jack marched back, resolved to make the third “go” the crowning achievement of the afternoon, while Jill pranced after him as lightly as if the big boots were the famous seven-leagued ones, and chattering about the candy-scrape and whether there would be nuts or not.
Proud of his skill, Jack marched back, determined to make the third attempt the highlight of the afternoon, while Jill skipped after him as if her big boots were the legendary seven-league ones, chatting about the candy scrape and whether there would be any nuts or not.
So full were they of this important question, that they piled on hap-hazard, and started off still talking so busily that Jill forgot to hold tight and Jack to steer carefully. Alas, for the candy-scrape that never was to be! Alas, for poor “Thunderbolt” blindly setting forth on the last trip he ever made! And oh, alas, for Jack and Jill, who wilfully chose the wrong road and ended their fun for the winter! No one knew how it happened, but instead of landing in the drift, or at the fence, there was a great crash against the bars, a dreadful plunge off the steep bank, a sudden scattering of girl, boy, sled, fence, earth, and snow, all about the road, two cries, and then silence.
So caught up were they in this important question that they piled on randomly and started off still chatting so much that Jill forgot to hold on tight and Jack forgot to steer properly. Alas, for the candy-scrape that never happened! Alas, for poor “Thunderbolt” blindly going on the last trip he ever took! And oh, alas, for Jack and Jill, who purposely chose the wrong path and ended their fun for the winter! No one knew how it happened, but instead of landing in the snowdrift or at the fence, there was a huge crash against the bars, a terrifying plunge off the steep bank, a sudden scattering of girl, boy, sled, fence, earth, and snow all over the road, two screams, and then silence.
“I knew they'd do it!” and, standing on the post where he had perched, Joe waved his arms and shouted: “Smash-up! Smash-up! Run! Run!” like a raven croaking over a battlefield when the fight was done.
“I knew they’d do it!” Joe shouted, waving his arms from the post where he had been perched. “Crash! Crash! Run! Run!” He sounded like a raven squawking over a battlefield after the fight was over.
Down rushed boys and girls ready to laugh or cry, as the case might be, for accidents will happen on the best-regulated coasting-grounds. They found Jack sitting up looking about him with a queer, dazed expression, while an ugly cut on the forehead was bleeding in a way which sobered the boys and frightened the girls half out of their wits.
Down rushed boys and girls, ready to laugh or cry, depending on what had happened, because accidents can happen anywhere. They found Jack sitting up, looking around with a strange, dazed expression, while a nasty cut on his forehead bled in a way that made the boys more serious and scared the girls half to death.
“He's killed! He's killed!” wailed Sue, hiding her face and beginning to cry.
“He's dead! He's dead!” sobbed Sue, covering her face and starting to cry.
“No, I'm not. I'll be all right when I get my breath. Where's Jill?” asked Jack, stoutly, though still too giddy to see straight.
“No, I'm not. I'll be fine once I catch my breath. Where's Jill?” Jack asked firmly, though he was still too dizzy to see clearly.
The group about him opened, and his comrade in misfortune was discovered lying quietly in the snow with all the pretty color shocked out of her face by the fall, and winking rapidly, as if half stunned. But no wounds appeared, and when asked if she was dead, she answered in a vague sort of way,—
The circle around him parted, revealing his companion in misfortune lying still in the snow, her once vibrant face pale from the fall, blinking quickly as if she was dazed. However, there were no visible injuries, and when asked if she was dead, she replied in a vague manner,—
“I guess not. Is Jack hurt?”
“I guess not. Is Jack okay?”
“Broken his head,” croaked Joe, stepping aside, that she might behold the fallen hero vainly trying to look calm and cheerful with red drops running down his cheek and a lump on his forehead.
“Broke his head,” croaked Joe, stepping aside so she could see the fallen hero trying to look calm and cheerful while red drops ran down his cheek and there was a lump on his forehead.
Jill shut her eyes and waved the girls away, saying, faintly,—
Jill closed her eyes and waved the girls off, saying softly, —
“Never mind me. Go and see to him.”
"Don't worry about me. Go take care of him."
“Don't! I'm all right,” and Jack tried to get up in order to prove that headers off a bank were mere trifles to him; but at the first movement of the left leg he uttered a sharp cry of pain, and would have fallen if Gus had not caught and gently laid him down.
“Don't! I'm fine,” Jack said as he tried to get up to show that hitting his head on a bank was nothing to worry about; but with the first movement of his left leg, he let out a sharp cry of pain and would have fallen if Gus hadn't caught him and carefully laid him back down.
“What is it, old chap?” asked Frank, kneeling beside him, really alarmed now, the hurts seeming worse than mere bumps, which were common affairs among baseball players, and not worth much notice.
“What’s wrong, buddy?” asked Frank, kneeling beside him, genuinely worried now, the injuries looking more serious than just typical bumps, which were common among baseball players and not usually significant.
“I lit on my head, but I guess I've broken my leg. Don't frighten mother,” and Jack held fast to Frank's arm as he looked into the anxious face bent over him; for, though the elder tyrannized over the younger, the brothers loved one another dearly.
“I landed on my head, but I think I've broken my leg. Don’t worry mom,” and Jack clung tightly to Frank's arm as he looked into the worried face leaning over him; for, although the older brother intimidated the younger, the brothers loved each other deeply.
“Lift his head, Frank, while I tie my handkerchief round to stop the bleeding,” said a quiet voice, as Ed Devlin laid a handful of soft snow on the wound; and Jack's face brightened as he turned to thank the one big boy who never was rough with the small ones.
“Lift his head, Frank, while I tie my handkerchief around to stop the bleeding,” said a calm voice, as Ed Devlin placed a handful of soft snow on the wound; and Jack's face lit up as he turned to thank the one big guy who was never rough with the little ones.
“Better get him right home,” advised Gus, who stood by looking on, with his little sisters Laura and Lotty clinging to him.
“Better get him home quickly,” suggested Gus, who was standing by, with his little sisters Laura and Lotty holding onto him.
“Take Jill, too, for it's my opinion she has broken her back. She can't stir one bit,” announced Molly Loo, with a droll air of triumph, as if rather pleased than otherwise to have her patient hurt the worse; for Jack's wound was very effective, and Molly had a taste for the tragic.
“Take Jill, too, because I think she’s really hurt her back. She can’t move at all,” said Molly Loo, with a playful sense of victory, as if she was more happy than upset to see her patient in such bad shape; after all, Jack’s injury was quite dramatic, and Molly had a flair for the tragic.
This cheerful statement was greeted with a wail from Susan and howls from Boo, who had earned that name from the ease with which, on all occasions, he could burst into a dismal roar without shedding a tear, and stop as suddenly as he began.
This happy announcement got a wail from Susan and howls from Boo, who had that name because of how easily he could let out a sad roar without crying and then stop just as abruptly.
“Oh, I am so sorry! It was my fault; I shouldn't have let her do it,” said Jack, distressfully.
“Oh, I'm so sorry! It was my fault; I shouldn't have let her do it,” Jack said, feeling really upset.
“It was all my fault; I made him. If I'd broken every bone I've got, it would serve me right. Don't help me, anybody; I'm a wicked thing, and I deserve to lie here and freeze and starve and die!” cried Jill, piling up punishments in her remorseful anguish of mind and body.
“It was all my fault; I caused this. If I broke every bone in my body, I would deserve it. Don’t help me, anyone; I’m a terrible person, and I deserve to lie here and freeze and starve and die!” Jill shouted, adding to her self-imposed punishments in her guilt and pain.
“But we want to help you, and we can settle about blame by and by,” whispered Merry with a kiss; for she adored dashing Jill, and never would own that she did wrong.
“But we want to help you, and we can figure out the blame later,” whispered Merry with a kiss; for she adored bold Jill, and would never admit that she was in the wrong.
“Here come the wood-sleds just in time. I'll cut away and tell one of them to hurry up.” And, freeing himself from his sisters, Gus went off at a great pace, proving that the long legs carried a sensible head as well as a kind heart.
“Here come the wood sleds just in time. I'll run over and tell one of them to hurry up.” And, breaking away from his sisters, Gus took off quickly, showing that his long legs were matched by a smart mind and a kind heart.
As the first sled approached, an air of relief pervaded the agitated party, for it was driven by Mr. Grant, a big, benevolent-looking farmer, who surveyed the scene with the sympathetic interest of a man and a father.
As the first sled came into view, a sense of relief spread through the anxious group, because it was driven by Mr. Grant, a large, kind-looking farmer who watched the situation with the caring concern of a man and a father.
“Had a little accident, have you? Well, that's a pretty likely place for a spill. Tried it once myself and broke the bridge of my nose,” he said, tapping that massive feature with a laugh which showed that fifty years of farming had not taken all the boy out of him. “Now then, let's see about this little chore, and lively, too, for it's late, and these parties ought to be housed,” he added, throwing down his whip, pushing back his cap, and nodding at the wounded with a reassuring smile.
“Had a little accident, did you? Well, that’s a pretty common spot for a spill. I tried it once and ended up breaking the bridge of my nose,” he said, tapping that big feature with a laugh that revealed fifty years of farming hadn’t completely taken the boy out of him. “Now then, let’s tackle this little task, and quickly, too, because it’s late, and these folks should be settled in,” he added, tossing down his whip, pushing back his cap, and giving the injured a comforting smile.
“Jill first, please, sir,” said Ed, the gentle squire of dames, spreading his overcoat on the sled as eagerly as ever Raleigh laid down his velvet cloak for a queen to walk upon.
“Jill first, please, sir,” said Ed, the kind squire of women, spreading his overcoat on the sled just as eagerly as Raleigh once laid down his velvet cloak for a queen to walk on.
“All right. Just lay easy, my dear, and I won't hurt you a mite if I can help it.”
“All right. Just relax, my dear, and I won't hurt you at all if I can avoid it.”
Careful as Mr. Grant was, Jill could have screamed with pain as he lifted her; but she set her lips and bore it with the courage of a little Indian; for all the lads were looking on, and Jill was proud to show that a girl could bear as much as a boy. She hid her face in the coat as soon as she was settled, to hide the tears that would come, and by the time Jack was placed beside her, she had quite a little cistern of salt water stored up in Ed's coat-pocket.
Careful as Mr. Grant was, Jill could have screamed in pain as he lifted her; but she clenched her jaw and endured it with the bravery of a little warrior; because all the boys were watching, and Jill was determined to prove that a girl could handle just as much as a boy. She buried her face in the coat as soon as she was settled, to hide the tears that were about to fall, and by the time Jack was placed next to her, she had already collected quite a bit of saltwater in Ed's coat pocket.
Then the mournful procession set forth, Mr. Grant driving the oxen, the girls clustering about the interesting invalids on the sled, while the boys came behind like a guard of honor, leaving the hill deserted by all but Joe, who had returned to hover about the fatal fence, and poor “Thunderbolt,” split asunder, lying on the bank to mark the spot where the great catastrophe occurred.
Then the sad procession began, Mr. Grant driving the oxen, the girls gathering around the interesting invalids on the sled, while the boys followed behind like a guard of honor, leaving the hill abandoned except for Joe, who had come back to linger near the deadly fence, and poor “Thunderbolt,” torn apart, lying on the bank to mark the spot where the tragic event happened.
Chapter II. Two Penitents
Jack and Jill never cared to say much about the night which followed the first coasting party of the season, for it was the saddest and the hardest their short lives had ever known. Jack suffered most in body; for the setting of the broken leg was such a painful job, that it wrung several sharp cries from him, and made Frank, who helped, quite weak and white with sympathy, when it was over. The wounded head ached dreadfully, and the poor boy felt as if bruised all over, for he had the worst of the fall. Dr. Whiting spoke cheerfully of the case, and made so light of broken legs, that Jack innocently asked if he should not be up in a week or so.
Jack and Jill never liked to talk about the night after their first sledding party of the season, because it was the saddest and hardest experience they had ever faced. Jack was in the most pain physically; setting his broken leg was such a painful process that it caused him to cry out several times, leaving Frank, who was helping, feeling quite weak and pale with sympathy when it was done. The injured head hurt a lot, and the poor boy felt like he was bruised all over since he had the worst of the fall. Dr. Whiting spoke positively about the situation and dismissed the severity of broken legs so casually that Jack, without realizing, asked if he should be back on his feet in a week or so.
“Well, no; it usually takes twenty-one days for bones to knit, and young ones make quick work of it,” answered the doctor, with a last scientific tuck to the various bandages, which made Jack feel like a hapless chicken trussed for the spit.
“Well, no; it usually takes twenty-one days for bones to heal, and young ones recover quickly,” replied the doctor, giving the bandages one final adjustment, which made Jack feel like a helpless chicken tied up for roasting.
“Twenty-one days! Three whole weeks in bed! I shouldn't call that quick work,” groaned the dismayed patient, whose experience of illness had been limited.
“Twenty-one days! Three whole weeks in bed! I wouldn't call that fast work,” groaned the frustrated patient, who had little experience with being sick.
“It is a forty days' job, young man, and you must make up your mind to bear it like a hero. We will do our best; but next time, look before you leap, and save your bones. Good-night; you'll feel better in the morning. No jigs, remember;” and off went the busy doctor for another look at Jill, who had been ordered to bed and left to rest till the other case was attended to.
“It’s a forty-day job, young man, and you need to decide to handle it like a hero. We’ll do our best; but next time, think before you jump and protect yourself. Good night; you’ll feel better in the morning. No dancing, remember;” and off went the busy doctor for another check on Jill, who had been told to go to bed and left to rest until the other case was taken care of.
Any one would have thought Jack's plight much the worse, but the doctor looked more sober over Jill's hurt back than the boy's compound fractures; and the poor little girl had a very bad quarter of an hour while he was trying to discover the extent of the injury.
Anyone would have thought Jack's situation was much worse, but the doctor seemed more serious about Jill's hurt back than the boy's broken bones; and the poor little girl had a really tough fifteen minutes while he tried to figure out how bad the injury was.
“Keep her quiet, and time will show how much damage is done,” was all he said in her hearing; but if she had known that he told Mrs. Pecq he feared serious consequences, she would not have wondered why her mother cried as she rubbed the numb limbs and placed the pillows so tenderly.
“Keep her quiet, and time will reveal how much damage is done,” was all he said within her hearing; but if she had known that he told Mrs. Pecq he feared serious consequences, she wouldn’t have been surprised by her mother’s tears as she rubbed the numb limbs and adjusted the pillows so gently.
Jill suffered most in her mind; for only a sharp stab of pain now and then reminded her of her body; but her remorseful little soul gave her no peace for thinking of Jack, whose bruises and breakages her lively fancy painted in the darkest colors.
Jill struggled the most mentally; only an occasional sharp pain reminded her of her body. However, her remorseful soul found no peace thinking about Jack, whose injuries her vivid imagination portrayed in the worst possible light.
“Oh, don't be good to me, Mammy; I made him go, and now he's hurt dreadfully, and may die; and it is all my fault, and everybody ought to hate me,” sobbed poor Jill, as a neighbor left the room after reporting in a minute manner how Jack screamed when his leg was set, and how Frank was found white as a sheet, with his head under the pump, while Gus restored the tone of his friend's nerves, by pumping as if the house was on fire.
“Oh, please don’t be nice to me, Mom; I made him leave, and now he’s really hurt and could die; it’s all my fault, and everyone should hate me,” cried poor Jill, as a neighbor stepped out of the room after describing in detail how Jack screamed when his leg was set, and how Frank was found pale as a ghost, with his head under the pump, while Gus calmed his friend’s nerves by pumping like the house was on fire.
“Whist, my lass, and go to sleep. Take a sup of the good wine Mrs. Minot sent, for you are as cold as a clod, and it breaks my heart to see my Janey so.”
“Quiet down, my girl, and go to sleep. Have a sip of the nice wine Mrs. Minot sent, because you’re as cold as a stone, and it breaks my heart to see my Janey like this.”
“I can't go to sleep; I don't see how Jack's mother could send me anything when I've half killed him. I want to be cold and ache and have horrid things done to me. Oh, if I ever get out of this bed I'll be the best girl in the world, to pay for this. See if I ain't!” and Jill gave such a decided nod that her tears flew all about the pillow like a shower.
“I can't fall asleep; I don’t understand how Jack’s mom could send me anything when I've nearly hurt him badly. I want to feel cold, ache, and go through all the terrible stuff. Oh, if I ever get out of this bed, I’ll be the best girl in the world to make up for this. Just watch!” And Jill nodded so emphatically that her tears scattered all over the pillow like a rainstorm.
“You'd better begin at once, for you won't get out of that bed for a long while, I'm afraid, my lamb,” sighed her mother, unable to conceal the anxiety that lay so heavy on her heart.
“You should start right away, because I’m afraid you won’t be able to get out of that bed for a long time, my dear,” sighed her mother, unable to hide the worry that weighed heavily on her heart.
“Am I hurt badly, Mammy?”
“Am I hurt badly, Mom?”
“I fear it, lass.”
“I’m afraid of it, girl.”
“I'm glad of it; I ought to be worse than Jack, and I hope I am. I'll bear it well, and be good right away. Sing, Mammy, and I'll try to go to sleep to please you.”
“I'm glad about that; I should be worse than Jack, and I hope I'm not. I'll handle it well and be good right away. Sing, Mammy, and I'll try to fall asleep to make you happy.”
Jill shut her eyes with sudden and unusual meekness, and before her mother had crooned half a dozen verses of an old ballad, the little black head lay still upon the pillow, and repentant Jill was fast asleep with a red mitten in her hand.
Jill closed her eyes with unexpected quietness, and before her mother had sung half a dozen verses of an old ballad, the little black head lay still on the pillow, and sorry Jill was sound asleep with a red mitten in her hand.
Mrs. Pecq was an Englishwoman who had left Montreal at the death of her husband, a French Canadian, and had come to live in the tiny cottage which stood near Mrs. Minot's big house, separated only by an arbor-vitae hedge. A sad, silent person, who had seen better days, but said nothing about them, and earned her bread by sewing, nursing, work in the factory, or anything that came in her way, being anxious to educate her little girl. Now, as she sat beside the bed in the small, poor room, that hope almost died within her, for here was the child laid up for months, probably, and the one ambition and pleasure of the solitary woman's life was to see Janey Pecq's name over all the high marks in the school-reports she proudly brought home.
Mrs. Pecq was an English woman who had left Montreal after her husband, a French Canadian, passed away. She moved into the small cottage next to Mrs. Minot's large house, separated only by a hedge of arbor-vitae. A sad, quiet person who had been through better times but never talked about them, she made her living through sewing, nursing, factory work, or anything else that came her way, eager to provide an education for her little girl. Now, as she sat beside the bed in the small, shabby room, that hope was almost gone, for her child was likely laid up for months, and the one ambition and joy in this lonely woman's life was to see Janey Pecq’s name at the top of all the school reports she proudly brought home.
“She'll win through, please Heaven, and I'll see my lass a gentlewoman yet, thanks to the good friend in yonder, who will never let her want for care,” thought the poor soul, looking out into the gloom where a long ray of light streamed from the great house warm and comfortable upon the cottage, like the spirit of kindness which made the inmates friends and neighbors.
"She'll make it, hopefully, and I'll see my girl become a lady yet, thanks to that good friend over there, who will always be there to take care of her," thought the poor soul, gazing out into the darkness where a long beam of light streamed from the big house, warm and cozy on the cottage, like the spirit of kindness that made the residents friends and neighbors.
Meantime, that other mother sat by her boy's bed as anxious but with better hope, for Mrs. Minot made trouble sweet and helpful by the way in which she bore it; and her boys were learning of her how to find silver linings to the clouds that must come into the bluest skies.
Meantime, that other mother sat by her son's bed just as anxious but with better hope, as Mrs. Minot made challenges feel sweet and manageable by the way she handled them; and her boys were learning from her how to find silver linings in the clouds that will inevitably appear even in the brightest skies.
Jack lay wide awake, with hot cheeks, and throbbing head, and all sorts of queer sensations in the broken leg. The soothing potion he had taken did not affect him yet, and he tried to beguile the weary time by wondering who came and went below. Gentle rings at the front door, and mysterious tappings at the back, had been going on all the evening; for the report of the accident had grown astonishingly in its travels, and at eight o'clock the general belief was that Jack had broken both legs, fractured his skull, and lay at the point of death, while Jill had dislocated one shoulder, and was bruised black and blue from top to toe. Such being the case, it is no wonder that anxious playmates and neighbors haunted the doorsteps of the two houses, and that offers of help poured in.
Jack lay wide awake, feeling hot in the face and his head pounding, with all sorts of strange sensations in his broken leg. The calming medicine he had taken hadn't kicked in yet, and he tried to pass the time by wondering who was coming and going below. Soft rings at the front door and mysterious knocks at the back had been happening all evening; the news of the accident had dramatically changed in its travels, and by eight o'clock, everyone believed that Jack had broken both legs, fractured his skull, and was on the verge of death, while Jill had dislocated one shoulder and was bruised all over. Given this situation, it's no surprise that worried friends and neighbors crowded the doorsteps of both houses, and offers of help came flooding in.
Frank, having tied up the bell and put a notice in the lighted side-window, saying, “Go to the back door,” sat in the parlor, supported by his chum, Gus, while Ed played softly on the piano, hoping to lull Jack to sleep. It did soothe him, for a very sweet friendship existed between the tall youth and the lad of thirteen. Ed went with the big fellows, but always had a kind word for the smaller boys; and affectionate Jack, never ashamed to show his love, was often seen with his arm round Ed's shoulder, as they sat together in the pleasant red parlors, where all the young people were welcome and Frank was king.
Frank, having tied up the bell and put a sign in the lit side window that said, “Go to the back door,” sat in the living room, supported by his friend Gus, while Ed played softly on the piano, hoping to help Jack fall asleep. It worked, as there was a really sweet friendship between the tall guy and the thirteen-year-old. Ed hung out with the older boys but always had a kind word for the younger ones; and affectionate Jack, never shy about showing his love, was often seen with his arm around Ed’s shoulder as they sat together in the cozy red parlors, where all the young people were welcome, and Frank was in charge.
“Is the pain any easier, my darling?” asked Mrs. Minot, leaning over the pillow, where the golden head lay quiet for a moment.
“Is the pain any better, my dear?” asked Mrs. Minot, leaning over the pillow, where the golden head rested quietly for a moment.
“Not much. I forget it listening to the music. Dear old Ed is playing all my favorite tunes, and it is very nice. I guess he feels pretty sorry about me.”
“Not much. I forget everything while listening to the music. Good old Ed is playing all my favorite songs, and it’s really nice. I think he feels pretty bad for me.”
“They all do. Frank could not talk of it. Gus wouldn't go home to tea, he was so anxious to do something for us. Joe brought back the bits of your poor sled, because he didn't like to leave them lying round for any one to carry off, he said, and you might like them to remember your fall by.”
“They all do. Frank couldn't talk about it. Gus wouldn't go home for tea; he was too eager to do something for us. Joe brought back the pieces of your sad sled because he didn’t want to leave them lying around for anyone to take, he said, and you might want them to remember your fall by.”
Jack tried to laugh, but it was rather a failure, though he managed to say, cheerfully,—
Jack attempted to laugh, but it didn't quite work out. Still, he managed to say, cheerfully,—
“That was good of old Joe. I wouldn't lend him 'Thunderbolt' for fear he'd hurt it. Couldn't have smashed it up better than I did, could he? Don't think I want any pieces to remind me of that fall. I just wish you'd seen us, mother! It must have been a splendid spill to look at, any way.”
"That was nice of old Joe. I wouldn't lend him 'Thunderbolt' because I'm afraid he'd damage it. He couldn't have wrecked it better than I did, right? I really don’t want any pieces to remind me of that fall. I just wish you had seen us, Mom! It must have been an amazing sight, either way."
“No, thank you; I'd rather not even try to imagine my precious boy going heels over head down that dreadful hill. No more pranks of that sort for some time, Jacky;” and Mrs. Minot looked rather pleased on the whole to have her venturesome bird safe under her maternal wing.
“No, thank you; I’d rather not even try to picture my dear boy tumbling down that scary hill. No more stunts like that for a while, Jacky;” and Mrs. Minot looked pretty happy overall to have her adventurous child safe under her protective wing.
“No coasting till some time in January. What a fool I was to do it! Go-bangs always are dangerous, and that's the fun of the thing. Oh dear!”
“No taking it easy until sometime in January. What a fool I was for doing that! Go-bangs are always risky, and that’s what makes it exciting. Oh man!”
Jack threw his arms about and frowned darkly, but never said a word of the wilful little baggage who had led him into mischief; he was too much of a gentleman to tell on a girl, though it cost him an effort to hold his tongue, because Mamma's good opinion was very precious to him, and he longed to explain. She knew all about it, however, for Jill had been carried into the house reviling herself for the mishap, and even in the midst of her own anxiety for her boy, Mrs. Minot understood the state of the case without more words. So she now set his mind at rest by saying, quietly.
Jack threw his arms around and frowned, but never said a word about the mischievous little girl who had got him into trouble; he was too much of a gentleman to rat on a girl, even though it took a lot of effort to keep quiet because Mom's good opinion meant a lot to him, and he wanted to explain. However, she already knew everything, as Jill had been brought into the house berating herself for the accident, and even while she was worried about her son, Mrs. Minot understood the situation without needing more words. So she now reassured him by saying, calmly.
“Foolish fun, as you see, dear. Another time, stand firm and help Jill to control her headstrong will. When you learn to yield less and she more, there will be no scrapes like this to try us all.”
“Foolish fun, as you can see, dear. Next time, be firm and help Jill manage her stubbornness. When you learn to give in less and she does more, there won’t be any messes like this to put us all through.”
“I'll remember, mother. I hate not to be obliging, but I guess it would have saved us lots of trouble if I'd said No in the beginning. I tried to, but she would go. Poor Jill! I'll take better care of her next time. Is she very ill, Mamma?”
“I'll remember, Mom. I hate to disappoint you, but I guess it would have saved us a lot of trouble if I had just said No from the start. I tried, but she would go. Poor Jill! I'll take better care of her next time. Is she really sick, Mom?”
“I can tell you better to-morrow. She does not suffer much, and we hope there is no great harm done.”
“I can give you a better update tomorrow. She’s not in much pain, and we’re hoping there’s no serious damage.”
“I wish she had a nice place like this to be sick in. It must be very poky in those little rooms,” said Jack, as his eye roved round the large chamber where he lay so cosey, warm, and pleasant, with the gay chintz curtains draping doors and windows, the rosy carpet, comfortable chairs, and a fire glowing in the grate.
“I wish she had a nice place like this to be sick in. It must be really cramped in those little rooms,” said Jack, as his gaze wandered around the spacious room where he felt so cozy, warm, and comfortable, with the cheerful print curtains framing the doors and windows, the rosy carpet, inviting chairs, and a fire crackling in the hearth.
“I shall see that she suffers for nothing, so don't trouble your kind heart about her to-night, but try to sleep; that's what you need,” answered his mother, wetting the bandage on his forehead, and putting a cool hand on the flushed cheeks.
"I'll make sure she doesn't suffer for anything, so don't worry about her tonight. Just try to get some sleep; that's what you need," his mother replied, wetting the bandage on his forehead and placing a cool hand on his flushed cheeks.
Jack obediently closed his eyes and listened while the boys sang “The Sweet By and By,” softening their rough young voices for his sake till the music was as soft as a lullaby. He lay so still his mother thought he was off, but presently a tear slipped out and rolled down the red cheek, wetting her hand as it passed.
Jack obediently closed his eyes and listened while the boys sang “The Sweet By and By,” softening their rough young voices for his sake until the music was as gentle as a lullaby. He lay so still that his mother thought he had fallen asleep, but soon a tear slipped out and rolled down his red cheek, wetting her hand as it passed.
“My blessed boy, what is it?” she whispered, with a touch and a tone that only mothers have.
“My dear boy, what’s wrong?” she whispered, with a touch and a tone that only mothers have.
The blue eyes opened wide, and Jack's own sunshiny smile broke through the tears that filled them as he said with a sniff,—
The blue eyes widened, and Jack's bright smile emerged through the tears that filled them as he said with a sniff,—
“Everybody is so good to me I can't help making a noodle of myself.
“Everyone is so nice to me I can't help making a fool of myself.
“You are not a noodle!” cried Mamma, resenting the epithet. “One of the sweet things about pain and sorrow is that they show us how well we are loved, how much kindness there is in the world, and how easily we can make others happy in the same way when they need help and sympathy. Don't forget that, little son.”
“You're not a noodle!” shouted Mamma, annoyed by the name. “One of the nice things about pain and sadness is that they show us how loved we are, how much kindness exists in the world, and how easily we can bring happiness to others when they need support and compassion. Don't forget that, my little son.”
“Don't see how I can, with you to show me how nice it is. Kiss me good-night, and then 'I'll be good,' as Jill says.”
“Can't see how I can, with you showing me how nice it is. Kiss me goodnight, and then 'I'll be good,' like Jill says.”
Nestling his head upon his mother's arm, Jack lay quiet till, lulled by the music of his mates, he drowsed away into the dreamless sleep which is Nurse Nature's healthiest soothing sirup for weary souls and bodies.
Resting his head on his mother's arm, Jack lay still until, comforted by the sounds of his friends, he drifted off into a deep, dreamless sleep that is Nurse Nature's best calming remedy for tired minds and bodies.
Chapter III. Ward No. 1
For some days, nothing was seen and little was heard of the “dear sufferers,” as the old ladies called them. But they were not forgotten; the first words uttered when any of the young people met were: “How is Jack?” “Seen Jill yet?” and all waited with impatience for the moment when they could be admitted to their favorite mates, more than ever objects of interest now.
For a few days, there was no news and not much was said about the “dear sufferers,” as the old ladies referred to them. But they weren't forgotten; the first thing said when any of the young people ran into each other was, “How's Jack?” “Have you seen Jill yet?” Everyone eagerly awaited the moment they could visit their favorite friends, who were now even more interesting to them.
Meantime, the captives spent the first few days in sleep, pain, and trying to accept the hard fact that school and play were done with for months perhaps. But young spirits are wonderfully elastic and soon cheer up, and healthy young bodies heal fast, or easily adapt themselves to new conditions. So our invalids began to mend on the fourth day, and to drive their nurses distracted with efforts to amuse them, before the first week was over.
In the meantime, the captives spent the first few days in sleep, pain, and trying to accept the tough reality that school and play might be over for months. But young spirits are incredibly resilient, and they soon started to feel better. Healthy young bodies heal quickly or can easily adjust to new circumstances. By the fourth day, our patients began to recover and overwhelmed their nurses with demands for entertainment before the first week was up.
The most successful attempt originated in Ward No. 1, as Mrs. Minot called Jack's apartment, and we will give our sympathizing readers some idea of this place, which became the stage whereon were enacted many varied and remarkable scenes.
The most successful attempt came from Ward No. 1, as Mrs. Minot referred to Jack's apartment, and we’ll give our sympathetic readers an idea of this place, which became the backdrop for many diverse and extraordinary scenes.
Each of the Minot boys had his own room, and there collected his own treasures and trophies, arranged to suit his convenience and taste. Frank's was full of books, maps, machinery, chemical messes, and geometrical drawings, which adorned the walls like intricate cobwebs. A big chair, where he read and studied with his heels higher than his head, a basket of apples for refreshment at all hours of the day or night, and an immense inkstand, in which several pens were always apparently bathing their feet, were the principal ornaments of his scholastic retreat.
Each of the Minot boys had his own room, where he collected his treasures and trophies, arranged to fit his convenience and style. Frank's room was filled with books, maps, machines, messy chemistry experiments, and geometric drawings that decorated the walls like intricate cobwebs. A big chair, where he read and studied with his feet up, a basket of apples for snacks at any hour, and a huge inkstand with several pens that always seemed to be soaking were the main highlights of his study space.
Jack's hobby was athletic sports, for he was bent on having a strong and active body for his happy little soul to live and enjoy itself in. So a severe simplicity reigned in his apartment; in summer, especially, for then his floor was bare, his windows were uncurtained, and the chairs uncushioned, the bed being as narrow and hard as Napoleon's. The only ornaments were dumbbells, whips, bats, rods, skates, boxing-gloves, a big bath-pan and a small library, consisting chiefly of books on games, horses, health, hunting, and travels. In winter his mother made things more comfortable by introducing rugs, curtains, and a fire. Jack, also, relented slightly in the severity of his training, occasionally indulging in the national buckwheat cake, instead of the prescribed oatmeal porridge, for breakfast, omitting his cold bath when the thermometer was below zero, and dancing at night, instead of running a given distance by day.
Jack's hobby was sports because he was focused on having a strong and active body for his happy little soul to enjoy life. So, there was a strict simplicity in his apartment, especially in the summer when his floor was bare, the windows had no curtains, and the chairs were unpadded, with a bed as narrow and hard as Napoleon's. The only decorations were dumbbells, whips, bats, rods, skates, boxing gloves, a large bath pan, and a small library mainly filled with books about games, horses, health, hunting, and travel. In winter, his mom made things cozier by adding rugs, curtains, and a fire. Jack also eased up a bit on his strict training, occasionally treating himself to the national buckwheat cake instead of the usual oatmeal porridge for breakfast, skipping his cold bath when the temperature dropped below zero, and dancing at night instead of running a specific distance during the day.
Now, however, he was a helpless captive, given over to all sorts of coddling, laziness, and luxury, and there was a droll mixture of mirth and melancholy in his face, as he lay trussed up in bed, watching the comforts which had suddenly robbed his room of its Spartan simplicity. A delicious couch was there, with Frank reposing in its depths, half hidden under several folios which he was consulting for a history of the steam-engine, the subject of his next composition.
Now, however, he was a helpless captive, subjected to all kinds of pampering, laziness, and luxury, and there was a funny mix of joy and sadness in his face as he lay tied up in bed, watching how the comforts had suddenly taken away the simple, spartan feel of his room. There was a comfy couch, with Frank lounging in its depths, half hidden under several large books he was looking through for a history of the steam engine, the topic of his next composition.
A white-covered table stood near, with all manner of dainties set forth in a way to tempt the sternest principles. Vases of flowers bloomed on the chimney-piece,—gifts from anxious young ladies, left with their love. Frivolous story-books and picture-papers strewed the bed, now shrouded in effeminate chintz curtains, beneath which Jack lay like a wounded warrior in his tent. But the saddest sight for our crippled athlete was a glimpse, through a half-opened door, at the beloved dumb-bells, bats, balls, boxing-gloves, and snow-shoes, all piled ignominiously away in the bath-pan, mournfully recalling the fact that their day was over, now, at least for some time.
A white-covered table was nearby, filled with all kinds of sweets designed to tempt even the strictest of people. Vases of flowers bloomed on the mantelpiece—gifts from caring young ladies, left with their affection. Lighthearted storybooks and magazines were scattered across the bed, now draped in delicate chintz curtains, beneath which Jack lay like an injured warrior in his tent. But the saddest sight for our injured athlete was a glimpse through a half-open door at the beloved dumbbells, bats, balls, boxing gloves, and snowshoes, all piled away in the bathtub, sadly reminding him that their time was over, at least for now.
He was about to groan dismally, when his eye fell on a sight which made him swallow the groan, and cough instead, as if it choked him a little. The sight was his mother's face, as she sat in a low chair rolling bandages, with a basket beside her in which were piles of old linen, lint, plaster, and other matters, needed for the dressing of wounds. As he looked, Jack remembered how steadily and tenderly she had stood by him all through the hard times just past, and how carefully she had bathed and dressed his wound each day in spite of the effort it cost her to give him pain or even see him suffer.
He was about to groan in despair when he caught sight of something that made him swallow the groan and cough instead, as if it had choked him a bit. The sight was his mother's face, sitting in a low chair and rolling bandages, with a basket beside her filled with piles of old linen, lint, plaster, and other supplies needed for dressing wounds. As he watched, Jack remembered how steadfastly and lovingly she had been by his side through the tough times they had just faced, and how carefully she had bathed and dressed his wound every day, despite the effort it took her to cause him pain or even to see him suffer.
“That's a better sort of strength than swinging twenty-pound dumb-bells or running races; I guess I'll try for that kind, too, and not howl or let her see me squirm when the doctor hurts,” thought the boy, as he saw that gentle face so pale and tired with much watching and anxiety, yet so patient, serene, and cheerful, that it was like sunshine.
“That's a better kind of strength than lifting twenty-pound dumbbells or racing; I guess I'll aim for that, too, and not cry out or let her see me flinch when the doctor causes pain,” thought the boy, as he looked at that gentle face, so pale and worn from worrying and watching, yet so patient, calm, and cheerful, that it felt like sunshine.
“Lie down and take a good nap, mother dear, I feel first-rate, and Frank can see to me if I want anything. Do, now,” he added, with a persuasive nod toward the couch, and a boyish relish in stirring up his lazy brother.
“Lie down and take a nice nap, Mom, I feel great, and Frank can take care of me if I need anything. Please do,” he added, with a convincing nod toward the couch, enjoying the chance to rouse his lazy brother.
After some urging, Mamma consented to go to her room for forty winks, leaving Jack in the care of Frank, begging him to be as quiet as possible if the dear boy wished to sleep, and to amuse him if he did not.
After some encouragement, Mom agreed to go to her room for a short nap, leaving Jack in Frank's care, asking him to be as quiet as possible if the little guy wanted to sleep, and to keep him entertained if he didn't.
Being worn out, Mrs. Minot lengthened her forty winks into a three hours' nap, and as the “dear boy” scorned repose, Mr. Frank had his hands full while on guard.
Feeling exhausted, Mrs. Minot turned her short nap into a three-hour sleep, and since the “dear boy” refused to rest, Mr. Frank had his hands full watching over him.
“I'll read to you. Here's Watt, Arkwright, Fulton, and a lot of capital fellows, with pictures that will do your heart good. Have a bit, will you?” asked the new nurse, flapping the leaves invitingly.—for Frank had a passion for such things, and drew steam-engines all over his slate, as Tommy Traddles drew hosts of skeletons when low in his spirits.
"I'll read to you. Here are Watt, Arkwright, Fulton, and a bunch of great guys, with pictures that will lift your spirits. Want to take a look?" asked the new nurse, eagerly flipping through the pages. — Frank loved this stuff and covered his slate with drawings of steam engines, just like Tommy Traddles filled his notebook with skeletons when he was feeling down.
“I don't want any of your old boilers and stokers and whirligigs. I'm tired of reading, and want something regularly jolly,” answered Jack, who had been chasing white buffaloes with “The Hunters of the West,” till he was a trifle tired and fractious.
“I don’t want any of your old boilers, stokers, or gadgets. I’m done with reading and want something fun,” replied Jack, who had been hunting white buffaloes with “The Hunters of the West,” until he was feeling a bit tired and irritable.
“Play cribbage, euchre, anything you like;” and Frank obligingly disinterred himself from under the folios, feeling that it was hard for a fellow to lie flat a whole week.
“Play cribbage, euchre, whatever you want;” and Frank willingly pulled himself out from under the books, thinking that it was tough for someone to lie flat for an entire week.
“No fun; just two of us. Wish school was over, so the boys would come in; doctor said I might see them now.”
“No fun; just the two of us. I wish school was over so the boys could come in; the doctor said I might see them now.”
“They'll be along by and by, and I'll hail them. Till then, what shall we do? I'm your man for anything, only put a name to it.”
"They'll be here soon, and I'll call them over. Until then, what should we do? I'm up for anything, just tell me what you need."
“Just wish I had a telegraph or a telephone, so I could talk to Jill. Wouldn't it be fun to pipe across and get an answer!”
“Just wish I had a telegraph or a phone, so I could talk to Jill. Wouldn't it be fun to send a message and get a reply!”
“I'll make either you say;” and Frank looked as if trifles of that sort were to be had for the asking.
“I'll make either you say;” and Frank looked as if little things like that were easy to get.
“Could you, really?”
"Are you serious?"
“We'll start the telegraph first, then you can send things over if you like,” said Frank, prudently proposing the surest experiment.
“We'll start the telegraph first, then you can send things over if you want,” said Frank, wisely suggesting the safest approach.
“Go ahead, then. I'd like that, and so would Jill, for I know she wants to hear from me.”
“Go ahead, then. I’d like that, and so would Jill, because I know she wants to hear from me.”
“There's one trouble, though; I shall have to leave you alone for a few minutes while I rig up the ropes;” and Frank looked sober, for he was a faithful boy, and did not want to desert his post.
“There's one problem, though; I’ll have to leave you alone for a few minutes while I set up the ropes;” and Frank looked serious, because he was a loyal kid and didn’t want to abandon his post.
“Oh, never mind; I won't want anything. If I do, I can pound for Ann.”
“Oh, never mind; I won't need anything. If I do, I can just call for Ann.”
“And wake mother. I'll fix you a better way than that;” and, full of inventive genius, our young Edison spliced the poker to part of a fishing-rod in a jiffy, making a long-handled hook which reached across the room.
“And wake Mom. I’ll find a better way than that;” and, full of inventive genius, our young Edison quickly combined the poker with part of a fishing rod, creating a long-handled hook that extended across the room.
“There's an arm for you; now hook away, and let's see how it works,” he said, handing over the instrument to Jack, who proceeded to show its unexpected capabilities by hooking the cloth off the table in attempting to get his handkerchief, catching Frank by the hair when fishing for a book, and breaking a pane of glass in trying to draw down the curtain.
“Here’s a tool for you; now give it a try, and let’s see how it works,” he said, handing the device to Jack, who demonstrated its surprising abilities by pulling the cloth off the table while reaching for his handkerchief, snagging Frank by the hair while looking for a book, and breaking a windowpane while trying to pull down the curtain.
“It's so everlasting long, I can't manage it,” laughed Jack, as it finally caught in his bed-hangings, and nearly pulled them, ring and all, down upon his head.
“It's so ridiculously long, I can't deal with it,” laughed Jack, as it finally got caught in his bed curtains, and almost pulled them, ring and all, down on his head.
“Let it alone, unless you need something very much, and don't bother about the glass. It's just what we want for the telegraph wire or rope to go through. Keep still, and I'll have the thing running in ten minutes;” and, delighted with the job, Frank hurried away, leaving Jack to compose a message to send as soon as it was possible.
“Leave it be, unless you really need something, and don’t worry about the glass. It’s exactly what we need for the telegraph wire or rope to pass through. Stay quiet, and I’ll have this up and running in ten minutes;” and, excited about the task, Frank rushed off, leaving Jack to write a message to send as soon as he could.
“What in the world is that flying across the Minots' yard,—a brown hen or a boy's kite?” exclaimed old Miss Hopkins, peering out of her window at the singular performances going on in her opposite neighbor's garden.
“What on earth is that flying across the Minots' yard—a brown hen or a boy's kite?” exclaimed old Miss Hopkins, peering out of her window at the strange activities happening in her neighbor's garden.
First, Frank appeared with a hatchet and chopped a clear space in the hedge between his own house and the cottage; next, a clothes line was passed through this aperture and fastened somewhere on the other side; lastly, a small covered basket, slung on this rope, was seen hitching along, drawn either way by a set of strings; then, as if satisfied with his job, Frank retired, whistling “Hail Columbia.”
First, Frank came out with a hatchet and cleared a space in the hedge between his house and the cottage. Next, a clothesline was threaded through this opening and secured on the other side. Finally, a small covered basket, hanging on this rope, was seen moving back and forth, pulled by a set of strings. Then, appearing satisfied with his work, Frank walked away, whistling “Hail Columbia.”
“It's those children at their pranks again. I thought broken bones wouldn't keep them out of mischief long,” said the old lady, watching with great interest the mysterious basket travelling up and down the rope from the big house to the cottage.
“It's those kids and their antics again. I thought broken bones would keep them out of trouble for a while,” said the old lady, watching with great interest as the strange basket moved up and down the rope from the big house to the cottage.
If she had seen what came and went over the wires of the “Great International Telegraph,” she would have laughed till her spectacles flew off her Roman nose. A letter from Jack, with a large orange, went first, explaining the new enterprise:—
If she had seen what was transmitted over the wires of the “Great International Telegraph,” she would have laughed until her glasses flew off her Roman nose. A letter from Jack, along with a big orange, was the first thing sent, explaining the new venture:—
“Dear Jill,—It's too bad you can't come over to see me. I am pretty well, but awful tired of keeping still. I want to see you ever so much. Frank has fixed us a telegraph, so we can write and send things. Won't it be jolly! I can't look out to see him do it; but, when you pull your string, my little bell rings, and I know a message is coming. I send you an orange. Do you like gorver jelly? People send in lots of goodies, and we will go halves. Good-by.
“Dear Jill,—It’s such a bummer you can't come over to see me. I'm doing pretty well, but I’m really tired of just sitting around. I want to see you so much. Frank has set up a telegraph for us, so we can write and send messages. Won't it be fun! I can't watch him do it, but when you pull your string, my little bell rings, and I know a message is on the way. I’m sending you an orange. Do you like gooseberry jelly? People send in lots of treats, and we’ll share. Bye for now.
“Jack”
“Jack”
Away went the basket, and in fifteen minutes it came back from the cottage with nothing in it but the orange.
Away went the basket, and in fifteen minutes it returned from the cottage with nothing in it but the orange.
“Hullo! Is she mad?” asked Jack, as Frank brought the despatch for him to examine.
“Hey! Is she crazy?” asked Jack as Frank handed him the dispatch to look over.
But, at the first touch, the hollow peel opened, and out fell a letter, two gum-drops, and an owl made of a peanut, with round eyes drawn at the end where the stem formed a funny beak. Two bits of straw were the legs, and the face looked so like Dr. Whiting that both boys laughed at the sight.
But, as soon as they touched it, the hollow peel opened up, and out dropped a letter, two gumdrops, and an owl made from a peanut, with round eyes drawn where the stem made a silly beak. Two pieces of straw served as the legs, and the face looked so much like Dr. Whiting that both boys burst out laughing at the sight.
“That's so like Jill; she'd make fun if she was half dead. Let's see what she says;” and Jack read the little note, which showed a sad neglect of the spelling-book:—
“That's so like Jill; she'd crack jokes even if she were half dead. Let's see what she says;” and Jack read the little note, which showed a sad neglect of the spelling book:—
“Dear Jacky,—I can't stir and it's horrid. The telly graf is very nice and we will have fun with it. I never ate any gorver jelly. The orange was first rate. Send me a book to read. All about bears and ships and crockydiles. The doctor was coming to see you, so I sent him the quickest way. Molly Loo says it is dreadful lonesome at school without us. Yours truly,
“Dear Jacky,—I can’t move and it’s awful. The telegraph is really nice and we’ll have fun with it. I’ve never eaten any gobber jelly. The orange was excellent. Send me a book to read. Something about bears and ships and crocodiles. The doctor was coming to see you, so I sent him the fastest route. Molly Loo says it’s terribly lonely at school without us. Yours truly,
“Jill”
"Jill"
Jack immediately despatched the book and a sample of guava jelly, which unfortunately upset on the way, to the great detriment of “The Wild Beasts of Asia and Africa.” Jill promptly responded with the loan of a tiny black kitten, who emerged spitting and scratching, to Jack's great delight; and he was cudgelling his brains as to how a fat white rabbit could be transported, when a shrill whistle from without saved Jill from that inconvenient offering.
Jack quickly sent the book and a sample of guava jelly, which unfortunately spilled during transit, causing a huge mess for “The Wild Beasts of Asia and Africa.” Jill soon replied with the loan of a tiny black kitten, who arrived hissing and scratching, much to Jack's thrill; and he was racking his brain about how to transport a fat white rabbit when a loud whistle from outside spared Jill from that awkward gift.
“It's the fellows; do you want to see them?” asked Frank, gazing down with calm superiority upon the three eager faces which looked up at him.
“It's the guys; do you want to see them?” asked Frank, looking down with calm confidence at the three eager faces that looked up at him.
“Guess I do!” and Jack promptly threw the kitten overboard, scorning to be seen by any manly eye amusing himself with such girlish toys.
“Guess I do!” Jack immediately tossed the kitten overboard, refusing to let any manly eye see him entertaining himself with such feminine toys.
Bang! went the front door; tramp, tramp, tramp, came six booted feet up the stairs; and, as Frank threw wide the door, three large beings paused on the threshold to deliver the courteous “Hullo!” which is the established greeting among boys on all social occasions.
Bang! went the front door; tramp, tramp, tramp, came six booted feet up the stairs; and, as Frank swung the door open, three big guys stopped at the threshold to say the friendly “Hey!” that’s the usual greeting among boys in any social situation.
“Come along, old fellows; I'm ever so glad to see you!” cried the invalid, with such energetic demonstrations of the arms that he looked as if about to fly or crow, like an excited young cockerel.
“Come on, guys; I'm so happy to see you!” shouted the sick man, with such enthusiastic gestures of his arms that he seemed ready to take off or crow, like an excited young rooster.
“How are you, Major?”
“What's up, Major?”
“Does the leg ache much, Jack?”
“Does your leg hurt a lot, Jack?”
“Mr. Phipps says you'll have to pay for the new rails.”
“Mr. Phipps says you'll need to pay for the new rails.”
With these characteristic greetings, the gentlemen cast away their hats and sat down, all grinning cheerfully, and all with eyes irresistibly fixed upon the dainties, which proved too much for the politeness of ever-hungry boys.
With these typical greetings, the guys tossed their hats aside and sat down, all grinning happily, their eyes irresistibly glued to the treats, which were too tempting for the manners of always-hungry boys.
“Help yourselves,” said Jack, with a hospitable wave. “All the dear old ladies in town have been sending in nice things, and I can't begin to eat them up. Lend a hand and clear away this lot, or we shall have to throw them out of the window. Bring on the doughnuts and the tarts and the shaky stuff in the entry closet, Frank, and let's have a lark.”
“Help yourselves,” said Jack, waving welcomingly. “All the lovely older ladies in town have been sending nice treats, and I can’t eat them all myself. Give me a hand and clear this lot away, or we’ll have to throw it out the window. Bring out the doughnuts and the tarts and the wobbly stuff from the entry closet, Frank, and let’s have some fun.”
No sooner said than done. Gus took the tarts, Joe the doughnuts, Ed the jelly, and Frank suggested “spoons all round” for the Italian cream. A few trifles in the way of custard, fruit, and wafer biscuits were not worth mentioning; but every dish was soon emptied, and Jack said, as he surveyed the scene of devastation with great satisfaction,—
No sooner said than done. Gus grabbed the tarts, Joe took the doughnuts, Ed got the jelly, and Frank suggested “spoons all around” for the Italian cream. A few extras like custard, fruit, and wafer biscuits weren't really worth mentioning; but soon every dish was empty, and Jack said, as he looked over the scene of destruction with great satisfaction,—
“Call again to-morrow, gentlemen, and we will have another bout. Free lunches at 5 P.M. till further notice. Now tell me all the news.”
“Call back tomorrow, guys, and we’ll have another round. Free lunches at 5 PM until further notice. Now, give me all the updates.”
For half an hour, five tongues went like mill clappers, and there is no knowing when they would have stopped if the little bell had not suddenly rung with a violence that made them jump.
For half an hour, five people talked non-stop, and it's hard to say when they would have stopped if the little bell hadn't suddenly rung so loudly that it made them jump.
“That's Jill; see what she wants, Frank;” and while his brother sent off the basket, Jack told about the new invention, and invited his mates to examine and admire.
“That's Jill; see what she wants, Frank;” and while his brother sent off the basket, Jack talked about the new invention and invited his friends to check it out and appreciate it.
They did so, and shouted with merriment when the next despatch from Jill arrived. A pasteboard jumping-jack, with one leg done up in cotton-wool to preserve the likeness, and a great lump of molasses candy in a brown paper, with accompanying note:—
They did that and erupted in laughter when the next package from Jill arrived. Inside was a cardboard jumping jack, with one leg wrapped in cotton to keep the look, and a big piece of molasses candy in brown paper, along with a note:—
“Dear Sir,—I saw the boys go in, and know you are having a nice time, so I send over the candy Molly Loo and Merry brought me. Mammy says I can't eat it, and it will all melt away if I keep it. Also a picture of Jack Minot, who will dance on one leg and waggle the other, and make you laugh. I wish I could come, too. Don't you hate grewel? I do.—In haste,
“Dear Sir,—I saw the boys go in, and I know you’re having a great time, so I’m sending over the candy Molly Loo and Merry brought me. Mom says I can’t eat it, and it’ll all melt if I keep it. Also, here’s a picture of Jack Minot, who will dance on one leg and wiggle the other to make you laugh. I wish I could come, too. Don’t you hate grewel? I do.—In a hurry,
“J.P.”
“J. P.”
“Let's all send her a letter,” proposed Jack, and out came pens, ink, paper, and the lamp, and every one fell to scribbling. A droll collection was the result, for Frank drew a picture of the fatal fall with broken rails flying in every direction, Jack with his head swollen to the size of a balloon, and Jill in two pieces, while the various boys and girls were hit off with a sly skill that gave Gus legs like a stork, Molly Loo hair several yards long, and Boo a series of visible howls coming out of an immense mouth in the shape of o's. The oxen were particularly good, for their horns branched like those of the moose, and Mr. Grant had a patriarchal beard which waved in the breeze as he bore the wounded girl to a sled very like a funeral pyre, the stakes being crowned with big mittens like torches.
“Let’s all send her a letter,” suggested Jack, and out came pens, ink, paper, and the lamp, and everyone started scribbling. The result was a hilarious collection, as Frank drew a picture of the tragic fall with broken rails flying in all directions, Jack with his head swollen to the size of a balloon, and Jill in two pieces, while the various boys and girls were illustrated with a clever twist that gave Gus legs like a stork, Molly Loo hair several yards long, and Boo a series of visible howls coming from a huge mouth shaped like o's. The oxen were particularly well done, their horns branching like those of a moose, and Mr. Grant had a long beard that swayed in the wind as he carried the wounded girl to a sled that looked a lot like a funeral pyre, the poles topped with big mittens that resembled torches.
“You ought to be an artist. I never saw such a dabster as you are. That's the very moral of Joe, all in a bunch on the fence, with a blot to show how purple his nose was,” said Gus, holding up the sketch for general criticism and admiration.
“You should be an artist. I've never seen anyone as good as you. That's exactly what Joe looks like, all bundled up on the fence, with a smudge that shows how purple his nose was,” said Gus, holding up the sketch for everyone to critique and admire.
“I'd rather have a red nose than legs like a grasshopper; so you needn't twit, Daddy,” growled Joe, quite unconscious that a blot actually did adorn his nose, as he labored over a brief despatch.
“I’d rather have a red nose than legs like a grasshopper; so you don’t need to tease me, Dad,” grumbled Joe, completely unaware that a blot was indeed on his nose as he worked on a brief message.
The boys enjoyed the joke, and one after the other read out his message to the captive lady:—
The guys found the joke funny, and one by one, they read out their messages to the trapped lady:—
“Dear Jill,—Sorry you ain't here. Great fun. Jack pretty lively. Laura and Lot would send love if they knew of the chance. Fly round and get well.
“Dear Jill,—Sorry you’re not here. We're having a great time. Jack is quite lively. Laura and Lot would send their love if they knew you had the opportunity. Hurry back and get better.”
“Gus”
“Gus”
“Dear Gilliflower,—Hope you are pretty comfortable in your 'dungeon cell.' Would you like a serenade when the moon comes? Hope you will soon be up again, for we miss you very much. Shall be very happy to help in any way I can. Love to your mother. Your true friend,
“Dear Gilliflower,—Hope you're doing okay in your 'dungeon cell.' Would you like a serenade when the moon comes out? I really hope you'll be up and about soon because we miss you a lot. I'd be more than happy to help in any way I can. Love to your mom. Your true friend,
“E.D.”
“E.D.”
“Miss Pecq.
“Ms. Pecq."
“Dear Madam,—I am happy to tell you that we are all well, and hope you are the same. I gave Jem Cox a licking because he went to your desk. You had better send for your books. You won't have to pay for the sled or the fence. Jack says he will see to it. We have been having a spread over here. First-rate things. I wouldn't mind breaking a leg, if I had such good grub and no chores to do. No more now, from yours, with esteem,
Dear Madam,—I’m glad to say that we’re all doing well, and I hope you are too. I gave Jem Cox a spanking because he went to your desk. You should send for your books. You won’t have to pay for the sled or the fence. Jack says he’ll take care of it. We’ve been having quite a feast over here. Really great stuff. I wouldn’t mind breaking a leg if I had such good food and no chores to do. That’s all for now, from yours, with respect,
“Joseph P. Flint”
“Joseph P. Flint”
Joe thought that an elegant epistle, having copied portions of it from the “Letter Writer,” and proudly read it off to the boys, who assured him that Jill would be much impressed.
Joe believed he had written a fancy letter after copying parts from the “Letter Writer,” and he proudly read it to the guys, who assured him that Jill would be very impressed.
“Now, Jack, hurry up and let us send the lot off, for we must go,” said Gus, as Frank put the letters in the basket, and the clatter of tea-things was heard below.
“Come on, Jack, hurry up and let’s send these off, because we need to leave,” said Gus, as Frank put the letters in the basket, and the sound of the tea things could be heard downstairs.
“I'm not going to show mine. It's private and you mustn't look,” answered Jack, patting down an envelope with such care that no one had a chance to peep.
“I'm not going to show mine. It’s personal and you can’t look,” replied Jack, carefully patting down an envelope so that no one had a chance to sneak a peek.
But Joe had seen the little note copied, and while the others were at the window working the telegraph he caught up the original, carelessly thrust by Jack under the pillow, and read it aloud before any one knew what he was about.
But Joe had seen the little note that was copied, and while the others were at the window working the telegraph, he grabbed the original, which Jack had carelessly shoved under the pillow, and read it aloud before anyone realized what he was doing.
“My Dear,—I wish I could send you some of my good times. As I can't, I send you much love, and I hope you will try and be patient as I am going to, for it was our fault, and we must not make a fuss now. Ain't mothers sweet? Mine is coming over to-morrow to see you and tell me how you are. This round thing is a kiss for good-night.
“My dear, I wish I could share some of my good times with you. Since I can’t, I’m sending you a lot of love and hope you can be patient like I’m trying to be, because it was our fault, and we shouldn’t make a big deal out of it now. Aren’t mothers great? Mine is coming over tomorrow to see you and let me know how you’re doing. This round thing is a kiss for goodnight.”
“Your Jack”
“Your Jack”
“Isn't that spoony? You'd better hide your face, I think. He's getting to be a regular mollycoddle, isn't he?” jeered Joe, as the boys laughed, and then grew sober, seeing Jack's head buried in the bedclothes, after sending a pillow at his tormentor.
"Isn't that ridiculous? You should probably hide your face, I think. He's becoming such a softy, isn't he?" Joe mocked, as the boys laughed, then fell quiet when they noticed Jack's head hidden in the blankets after he threw a pillow at his bully.
It nearly hit Mrs. Minot, coming in with her patient's tea on a tray, and at sight of her the guests hurriedly took leave, Joe nearly tumbling downstairs to escape from Frank, who would have followed, if his mother had not said quickly, “Stay, and tell me what is the matter.”
It almost hit Mrs. Minot as she walked in with her patient's tea on a tray, and seeing her, the guests quickly said their goodbyes. Joe nearly tripped down the stairs to get away from Frank, who would have followed if his mother hadn't quickly said, "Stay, and tell me what's going on."
“Only teasing Jack a bit. Don't be mad, old boy, Joe didn't mean any harm, and it was rather soft, now wasn't it?” asked Frank, trying to appease the wounded feelings of his brother.
“Just teasing Jack a little. Don't be upset, buddy, Joe didn’t mean any harm, and it was pretty gentle, wasn’t it?” asked Frank, trying to soothe his brother's hurt feelings.
“I charged you not to worry him. Those boys were too much for the poor dear, and I ought not to have left him,” said Mamma, as she vainly endeavored to find and caress the yellow head burrowed so far out of sight that nothing but one red ear was visible.
“I told you not to upset him. Those boys were too much for the poor thing, and I shouldn't have left him alone,” said Mom, as she unsuccessfully tried to locate and pat the yellow head hidden so far out of sight that only one red ear was visible.
“He liked it, and we got on capitally till Joe roughed him about Jill. Ah, Joe's getting it now! I thought Gus and Ed would do that little job for me,” added Frank, running to the window as the sound of stifled cries and laughter reached him.
“He liked it, and we were getting along great until Joe teased him about Jill. Ah, Joe's in trouble now! I thought Gus and Ed would take care of that for me,” Frank said, running to the window as he heard the muffled cries and laughter coming from outside.
The red ear heard also, and Jack popped up his head to ask, with interest,—
The red ear heard too, and Jack lifted his head to ask, intrigued,—
“What are they doing to him?”
“What are they doing to him?”
“Rolling him in the snow, and he's howling like fun.”
“Rolling him in the snow, and he's howling with laughter.”
“Serves him right,” muttered Jack, with a frown. Then, as a wail arose suggestive of an unpleasant mixture of snow in the mouth and thumps on the back, he burst out laughing, and said, good-naturedly, “Go and stop them, Frank; I won't mind, only tell him it was a mean trick. Hurry! Gus is so strong he doesn't know how his pounding hurts.”
“Serves him right,” Jack muttered, frowning. Then, as a wail sounded like a nasty mix of snow in the mouth and hits on the back, he couldn’t help but laugh and said, with a smile, “Go stop them, Frank; I don’t mind, just tell him it was a dirty trick. Hurry! Gus is so strong he doesn’t realize how much his hitting hurts.”
Off ran Frank, and Jack told his wrongs to his mother. She sympathized heartily, and saw no harm in the affectionate little note, which would please Jill, and help her to bear her trials patiently.
Off ran Frank, and Jack shared his problems with his mom. She truly sympathized and saw nothing wrong with the sweet little note, which would make Jill happy and help her handle her struggles patiently.
“It isn't silly to be fond of her, is it? She is so nice and funny, and tries to be good, and likes me, and I won't be ashamed of my friends, if folks do laugh,” protested Jack, with a rap of his teaspoon.
“It’s not silly to like her, is it? She’s really nice and funny, tries to be good, and likes me. I won’t be ashamed of my friends, even if people laugh,” Jack protested, tapping his teaspoon.
“No, dear, it is quite kind and proper, and I'd rather have you play with a merry little girl than with rough boys till you are big enough to hold your own,” answered Mamma, putting the cup to his lips that the reclining lad might take his broma without spilling.
“No, sweetie, it’s actually nice and appropriate, and I’d prefer you to play with a cheerful little girl rather than rough boys until you’re big enough to stand up for yourself,” replied Mom, lifting the cup to his lips so the resting boy could drink his beverage without spilling.
“Pooh! I don't mean that; I'm strong enough now to take care of myself,” cried Jack, stoutly. “I can thrash Joe any day, if I like. Just look at my arm; there's muscle for you!” and up went a sleeve, to the great danger of overturning the tray, as the boy proudly displayed his biceps and expanded his chest, both of which were very fine for a lad of his years. “If I'd been on my legs, he wouldn't have dared to insult me, and it was cowardly to hit a fellow when he was down.”
“Come on! I didn’t mean that; I'm strong enough now to handle myself,” cried Jack confidently. “I could take Joe down any day if I wanted to. Just look at my arm; there's some real muscle!” He rolled up a sleeve, nearly tipping over the tray, as the boy proudly showed off his biceps and puffed out his chest, both of which were impressive for someone his age. “If I’d been on my feet, he wouldn’t have dared to insult me, and it was pretty cowardly to hit someone when they were down.”
Mrs. Minot wanted to laugh at Jack's indignation, but the bell rang, and she had to go and pull in the basket, much amused at the new game.
Mrs. Minot wanted to laugh at Jack's outrage, but the bell rang, and she had to go and pull in the basket, finding the new game quite entertaining.
Burning to distinguish herself in the eyes of the big boys, Jill had sent over a tall, red flannel night-cap, which she had been making for some proposed Christmas plays, and added the following verse, for she was considered a gifted rhymester at the game parties:—
Burning to make a name for herself in front of the big guys, Jill sent over a tall, red flannel nightcap that she had been making for some planned Christmas plays, and included the following verse, as she was seen as a talented poet at the game parties:—
“When it comes night, We put out the light. Some blow with a puff, Some turn down and snuff; But neat folks prefer A nice extinguisher. So here I send you back One to put on Mr. Jack.”
“When night falls, We turn off the light. Some blow it out with a puff, Some use a candle snuffer; But tidy people prefer A nice extinguisher. So here I’m sending you back One to give to Mr. Jack.”
“Now, I call that regularly smart; not one of us could do it, and I just wish Joe was here to see it. I want to send once more, something good for tea; she hates gruel so;” and the last despatch which the Great International Telegraph carried that day was a baked apple and a warm muffin, with “J. M.'s best regards.”
“Now, I think that’s really clever; none of us could pull it off, and I just wish Joe was here to see it. I want to send something nice for tea again; she really hates gruel.” And the last message that the Great International Telegraph sent that day was a baked apple and a warm muffin, with “J. M.'s best regards.”
Chapter IV. Ward No. 2.
Things were not so gay in Ward No. 2, for Mrs. Pecq was very busy, and Jill had nothing to amuse her but flying visits from the girls, and such little plays as she could invent for herself in bed. Fortunately, she had a lively fancy, and so got on pretty well, till keeping still grew unbearable, and the active child ached in every limb to be up and out. That, however, was impossible, for the least attempt to sit or stand brought on the pain that took her breath away and made her glad to lie flat again. The doctor spoke cheerfully, but looked sober, and Mrs. Pecq began to fear that Janey was to be a cripple for life. She said nothing, but Jill's quick eyes saw an added trouble in the always anxious face, and it depressed her spirits, though she never guessed half the mischief the fall had done.
Things weren't so cheerful in Ward No. 2, since Mrs. Pecq was very busy, and Jill had nothing to entertain her except quick visits from the girls and the little games she could come up with for herself in bed. Luckily, she had a vivid imagination, which helped her manage for a while, until staying still became unbearable, and the active child felt an ache in every limb to get up and out. However, that was impossible, because the slightest attempt to sit or stand caused pain that took her breath away, making her grateful to lie flat again. The doctor spoke cheerfully but looked serious, and Mrs. Pecq started to worry that Janey would be a cripple for life. She kept quiet, but Jill's sharp eyes noticed an added worry in her constantly anxious face, which brought her spirits down, even though she had no idea of the extent of the damage the fall had caused.
The telegraph was a great comfort, and the two invalids kept up a lively correspondence, not to say traffic in light articles, for the Great International was the only aerial express in existence. But even this amusement flagged after a time; neither had much to tell, and when the daily health bulletins had been exchanged, messages gave out, and the basket's travels grew more and more infrequent. Neither could read all the time, games were soon used up, their mates were at school most of the day, and after a week or two the poor children began to get pale and fractious with the confinement, always so irksome to young people.
The telegraph was a great source of comfort, and the two sick kids maintained an upbeat correspondence, not to mention sending little items back and forth, since the Great International was the only air express service available. But even this fun faded after a while; neither had much news to share, and once they exchanged their daily health updates, their messages dwindled, causing the basket's journeys to become less frequent. They couldn’t read all the time, games were soon exhausted, their friends were at school for most of the day, and after a week or two, the poor kids started to look pale and irritable from being cooped up, which was always tough for young people.
“I do believe the child will fret herself into a fever, mem, and I'm clean distraught to know what to do for her. She never used to mind trifles, but now she frets about the oddest things, and I can't change them. This wall-paper is well enough, but she has taken a fancy that the spots on it look like spiders, and it makes her nervous. I've no other warm place to put her, and no money for a new paper. Poor lass! There are hard times before her, I'm fearing.”
“I really think the child is going to worry herself into a fever, ma'am, and I'm completely at a loss about what to do for her. She never used to care about small things, but now she gets anxious over the strangest stuff, and I can't change any of it. This wallpaper is fine, but she convinced herself that the patterns look like spiders, and it makes her uneasy. I have no other warm place to put her, and I can't afford new wallpaper. Poor girl! I’m afraid tough times are ahead for her.”
Mrs. Pecq said this in a low voice to Mrs. Minot, who came in as often as she could, to see what her neighbor needed; for both mothers were anxious, and sympathy drew them to one another. While one woman talked, the other looked about the little room, not wondering in the least that Jill found it hard to be contented there. It was very neat, but so plain that there was not even a picture on the walls, nor an ornament upon the mantel, except the necessary clock, lamp, and match-box. The paper was ugly, being a deep buff with a brown figure that did look very like spiders sprawling over it, and might well make one nervous to look at day after day.
Mrs. Pecq said this quietly to Mrs. Minot, who came over as often as she could to check on what her neighbor needed; both mothers were worried, and their shared feelings brought them together. While one woman spoke, the other glanced around the small room, hardly surprised that Jill found it difficult to feel happy there. It was very tidy, but so plain that there wasn't even a picture on the walls or a decoration on the mantel, except for the essential clock, lamp, and matchbox. The wallpaper was unattractive, a deep beige with a brown pattern that looked remarkably like spiders crawling over it, and could easily make someone feel uneasy to look at day after day.
Jill was asleep in the folding chair Dr. Whiting had sent, with a mattress to make it soft. The back could be raised or lowered at will; but only a few inches had been gained as yet, and the thin hair pillow was all she could bear. She looked very pretty as she lay, with dark lashes against the feverish cheeks, lips apart, and a cloud of curly black locks all about the face pillowed on one arm. She seemed like a brilliant little flower in that dull place,—for the French blood in her veins gave her a color, warmth, and grace which were very charming. Her natural love of beauty showed itself in many ways: a red ribbon had tied up her hair, a gay but faded shawl was thrown over the bed, and the gifts sent her were arranged with care upon the table by her side among her own few toys and treasures. There was something pathetic in this childish attempt to beautify the poor place, and Mrs. Minot's eyes were full as she looked at the tired woman, whose one joy and comfort lay there in such sad plight.
Jill was asleep in the folding chair that Dr. Whiting had sent, with a mattress to make it more comfortable. The back could be adjusted, but only a few inches had been gained so far, and the thin hair pillow was all she could tolerate. She looked very pretty as she lay there, with dark lashes against her flushed cheeks, lips slightly parted, and a cloud of curly black hair framing her face, resting on one arm. She seemed like a vibrant little flower in that dreary place—her French heritage giving her a color, warmth, and charm that were quite lovely. Her natural appreciation for beauty was evident in many ways: a red ribbon tied back her hair, a colorful but faded shawl was draped over the bed, and the gifts sent to her were carefully arranged on the table beside her, along with her few toys and treasures. There was something touching about this innocent endeavor to beautify the bleak surroundings, and Mrs. Minot's eyes were filled with emotion as she looked at the weary woman, whose sole joy and comfort lay in such a dismal situation.
“My dear soul, cheer up, and we will help one another through the hard times,” she said, with a soft hand on the rough one, and a look that promised much.
“My dear soul, hang in there, and we’ll help each other through the tough times,” she said, gently placing her soft hand on the rough one, with a look that promised a lot.
“Please God, we will, mem! With such good friends, I never should complain. I try not to do it, but it breaks my heart to see my little lass spoiled for life, most like;” and Mrs. Pecq pressed the kind hand with a despondent sigh.
“Please God, we will, ma'am! With such great friends, I should never complain. I try not to, but it breaks my heart to see my little girl spoiled for life, most likely;” and Mrs. Pecq squeezed the kind hand with a hopeless sigh.
“We won't say, or even think, that, yet. Everything is possible to youth and health like Janey's. We must keep her happy, and time will do the rest, I'm sure. Let us begin at once, and have a surprise for her when she wakes.”
“We won't say, or even think, that yet. Everything is possible for young people with health like Janey's. We need to keep her happy, and I'm sure time will take care of the rest. Let's get started right away and have a surprise for her when she wakes up.”
As she spoke, Mrs. Minot moved quietly about the room, pinning the pages of several illustrated papers against the wall at the foot of the bed, and placing to the best advantage the other comforts she had brought.
As she talked, Mrs. Minot quietly moved around the room, pinning the pages of various illustrated magazines to the wall at the foot of the bed and arranging the other comforts she had brought to look their best.
“Keep up your heart, neighbor. I have an idea in my head which I think will help us all, if I can carry it out,” she said, cheerily, as she went, leaving Mrs. Pecq to sew on Jack's new night-gowns, with swift fingers, and the grateful wish that she might work for these good friends forever.
“Stay strong, neighbor. I have an idea that I think will help us all, if I can pull it off,” she said, cheerfully, as she left, leaving Mrs. Pecq to quickly sew Jack's new nightgowns, her fingers moving fast, and feeling grateful that she could work for these good friends forever.
As if the whispering and rustling had disturbed her, Jill soon began to stir, and slowly opened the eyes which had closed so wearily on the dull December afternoon. The bare wall with its brown spiders no longer confronted her, but the colored print of a little girl dancing to the tune her father was playing on a guitar, while a stately lady, with satin dress, ruff, and powder, stood looking on, well pleased. The quaint figure, in its belaced frock, quilted petticoat, and red-heeled shoes, seemed to come tripping toward her in such a life-like way, that she almost saw the curls blow back, heard the rustle of the rich brocade, and caught the sparkle of the little maid's bright eyes.
As if the whispering and rustling had woken her up, Jill soon started to stir and slowly opened her eyes, which had closed so tiredly on that dull December afternoon. The bare wall with its brown spiders was no longer in front of her, but instead, she saw a colorful print of a little girl dancing to the tune her father was playing on a guitar, while a dignified lady, dressed in satin with a ruff and powdered face, stood watching with a satisfied expression. The unique figure, with its lace-trimmed dress, quilted petticoat, and red-heeled shoes, appeared to come dancing toward her in such a lifelike way that she almost saw the curls flying back, heard the rustle of the fancy fabric, and caught a glimpse of the little girl’s bright eyes sparkling.
“Oh, how pretty! Who sent them?” asked Jill, eagerly, as her eye glanced along the wall, seeing other new and interesting things beyond: an elephant-hunt, a ship in full sail, a horse-race, and a ball-room.
“Oh, how beautiful! Who sent these?” asked Jill, eagerly, as her gaze traveled along the wall, noticing other new and interesting things beyond: an elephant hunt, a ship in full sail, a horse race, and a ballroom.
“The good fairy who never comes empty-handed. Look round a bit and you will see more pretties all for you, my dearie;” and her mother pointed to a bunch of purple grapes in a green leaf plate, a knot of bright flowers pinned on the white curtain, and a gay little double gown across the foot of the bed.
“The kind fairy who always brings something special. Look around a little and you'll see even more lovely things just for you, sweetheart;” and her mother pointed to a bunch of purple grapes on a green leaf plate, a bunch of bright flowers pinned on the white curtain, and a cheerful little double gown at the foot of the bed.
Jill clapped her hands, and was enjoying her new pleasures, when in came Merry and Molly Loo, with Boo, of course, trotting after her like a fat and amiable puppy. Then the good times began; the gown was put on, the fruit tasted, and the pictures were studied like famous works of art.
Jill clapped her hands, enjoying her new experiences, when Merry and Molly Loo walked in, with Boo, of course, following her like a chubby and friendly puppy. Then the fun began; the dress was put on, the fruit was tasted, and the pictures were admired like famous artworks.
“It's a splendid plan to cover up that hateful wall. I'd stick pictures all round and have a gallery. That reminds me! Up in the garret at our house is a box full of old fashion-books my aunt left. I often look at them on rainy days, and they are very funny. I'll go this minute and get every one. We can pin them up, or make paper dolls;” and away rushed Molly Loo, with the small brother waddling behind, for, when he lost sight of her, he was desolate indeed.
“It’s a great idea to cover up that awful wall. I’d put pictures all around and create a gallery. That reminds me! Up in the attic at our house is a box full of old fashion magazines my aunt left. I often look at them on rainy days, and they’re really funny. I’ll go get them right now. We can pin them up or make paper dolls;” and away rushed Molly Loo, with her little brother waddling behind, because when he lost sight of her, he was truly sad.
The girls had fits of laughter over the queer costumes of years gone by, and put up a splendid procession of ladies in full skirts, towering hats, pointed slippers, powdered hair, simpering faces, and impossible waists.
The girls burst into laughter over the strange costumes from years past, and put together a fantastic parade of women in full skirts, tall hats, pointed shoes, powdered hair, exaggeratedly sweet expressions, and tiny waists.
“I do think this bride is perfectly splendid, the long train and veil are so sweet,” said Jill, revelling in fine clothes as she turned from one plate to another.
“I really think this bride is absolutely stunning, the long train and veil are so cute,” said Jill, enjoying the beautiful clothes as she moved from one plate to another.
“I like the elephants best, and I'd give anything to go on a hunt like that!” cried Molly Loo, who rode cows, drove any horse she could get, had nine cats, and was not afraid of the biggest dog that ever barked.
“I like the elephants the most, and I’d do anything to go on a hunt like that!” shouted Molly Loo, who rode cows, drove any horse she could find, had nine cats, and wasn’t afraid of the biggest dog that ever barked.
“I fancy 'The Dancing Lesson;' it is so sort of splendid, with the great windows, gold chairs, and fine folks. Oh, I would like to live in a castle with a father and mother like that,” said Merry, who was romantic, and found the old farmhouse on the hill a sad trial to her high-flown ideas of elegance.
“I really like 'The Dancing Lesson;' it’s just so amazing, with the huge windows, gold chairs, and fancy people. Oh, I would love to live in a castle with parents like that,” said Merry, who was quite the romantic and thought the old farmhouse on the hill was a tough challenge to her lofty ideas of elegance.
“Now, that ship, setting out for some far-away place, is more to my mind. I weary for home now and then, and mean to see it again some day;” and Mrs. Pecq looked longingly at the English ship, though it was evidently outward bound. Then, as if reproaching herself for discontent, she added: “It looks like those I used to see going off to India with a load of missionaries. I came near going myself once, with a lady bound for Siam; but I went to Canada with her sister, and here I am.”
“Now, that ship leaving for some distant destination is more appealing to me. I sometimes feel homesick and hope to see it again someday;” and Mrs. Pecq gazed longingly at the English ship, even though it was clearly headed away. Then, as if scolding herself for being discontent, she added: “It resembles the ships I used to see heading off to India with a load of missionaries. I almost went myself once, with a woman bound for Siam; but instead, I went to Canada with her sister, and here I am.”
“I'd like to be a missionary and go where folks throw their babies to the crocodiles. I'd watch and fish them out, and have a school, and bring them up, and convert all the people till they knew better,” said warm-hearted Molly Loo, who befriended every abused animal and forlorn child she met.
“I want to be a missionary and go to places where people throw their babies to the crocodiles. I’d watch and save them, start a school, raise them up, and teach everyone until they knew better,” said kind-hearted Molly Loo, who made friends with every mistreated animal and sad child she encountered.
“We needn't go to Africa to be missionaries; they have 'em nearer home and need 'em, too. In all the big cities there are a many, and they have their hands full with the poor, the wicked, and the helpless. One can find that sort of work anywhere, if one has a mind,” said Mrs. Pecq.
“We don’t need to go to Africa to be missionaries; there are people closer to home who need them, too. In all the big cities, there are plenty, and they’re busy helping the poor, the wicked, and the helpless. You can find that kind of work anywhere if you want to,” said Mrs. Pecq.
“I wish we had some to do here. I'd so like to go round with baskets of tea and rice, and give out tracts and talk to people. Wouldn't you, girls?” asked Molly, much taken with the new idea.
“I wish we had something to do here. I'd really like to walk around with baskets of tea and rice, handing out tracts and talking to people. Wouldn’t you, girls?” asked Molly, excited by the new idea.
“It would be rather nice to have a society all to ourselves, and have meetings and resolutions and things,” answered Merry, who was fond of little ceremonies, and always went to the sewing circle with her mother.
“It would be really nice to have a society just for us, with meetings and decisions and all that,” replied Merry, who enjoyed little ceremonies and always went to the sewing circle with her mom.
“We wouldn't let the boys come in. We'd have it a secret society, as they do their temperance lodge, and we'd have badges and pass-words and grips. It would be fun if we can only get some heathen to work at!” cried Jill, ready for fresh enterprises of every sort.
“We wouldn't let the boys come in. It would be our secret society, just like their temperance lodge, and we’d have badges, passwords, and secret handshakes. It would be so much fun if we could just get someone interesting to join us!” cried Jill, eager for new adventures of every kind.
“I can tell you someone to begin on right away,” said her mother, nodding at her. “As wild a little savage as I'd wish to see. Take her in hand, and make a pretty-mannered lady of her. Begin at home, my lass, and you'll find missionary work enough for a while.”
“I can give you someone to start with right away,” her mother said, nodding at her. “As wild a little savage as I’d ever want to see. Take her under your wing and turn her into a well-mannered lady. Start at home, my girl, and you’ll find plenty of missionary work to keep you busy for a while.”
“Now, Mammy, you mean me! Well, I will begin; and I'll be so good, folks won't know me. Being sick makes naughty children behave in story-books, I'll see if live ones can't;” and Jill put on such a sanctified face that the girls laughed and asked for their missions also, thinking they would be the same.
“Now, Grandma, you mean me! Well, I’ll start; and I’ll be so good, people won’t recognize me. Being sick makes naughty kids act nice in storybooks, let’s see if real ones can too;” and Jill put on such a holy expression that the girls laughed and asked for their tasks too, thinking they would be the same.
“You, Merry, might do a deal at home helping mother, and setting the big brothers a good example. One little girl in a house can do pretty much as she will, especially if she has a mind to make plain things nice and comfortable, and not long for castles before she knows how to do her own tasks well,” was the first unexpected reply.
“You, Merry, could really help out at home with Mom and be a good role model for the big brothers. A little girl can do quite a lot around the house, especially if she wants to make things nice and cozy, and not wish for castles before she learns how to handle her own chores well,” was the first surprising response.
Merry colored, but took the reproof sweetly, resolving to do what she could, and surprised to find how many ways seemed open to her after a few minutes' thought.
Merry was cheerful, but accepted the criticism graciously, deciding to do what she could, and was surprised to discover how many options seemed available to her after just a few minutes of thinking.
“Where shall I begin? I'm not afraid of a dozen crocodiles after Miss Bat;” and Molly Loo looked about her with a fierce air, having had practice in battles with the old lady who kept her father's house.
“Where should I start? I'm not scared of a dozen crocodiles after Miss Bat;” and Molly Loo glanced around with a fierce expression, having had plenty of practice in fights with the old lady who took care of her father's house.
“Well, dear, you haven't far to look for as nice a little heathen as you'd wish;” and Mrs. Pecq glanced at Boo, who sat on the floor staring hard at them, attracted by the dread word “crocodile.” He had a cold and no handkerchief, his little hands were red with chilblains, his clothes shabby, he had untidy darns in the knees of his stockings, and a head of tight curls that evidently had not been combed for some time.
“Well, dear, you don’t have to look far for a sweet little kid like you’d want;” and Mrs. Pecq glanced at Boo, who was sitting on the floor staring intently at them, drawn in by the scary word “crocodile.” He had a cold and no tissue, his tiny hands were red from chilblains, his clothes were worn out, there were messy repairs in the knees of his stockings, and his tight curls looked like they hadn’t been brushed in a while.
“Yes, I know he is, and I try to keep him decent, but I forget, and he hates to be fixed, and Miss Bat doesn't care, and father laughs when I talk about it.”
“Yes, I know he is, and I try to keep him in line, but I forget, and he hates being corrected, and Miss Bat doesn’t mind, and Dad laughs when I bring it up.”
Poor Molly Loo looked much ashamed as she made excuses, trying at the same time to mend matters by seizing Boo and dusting him all over with her handkerchief, giving a pull at his hair as if ringing bells, and then dumping him down again with the despairing exclamation: “Yes, we're a pair of heathens, and there's no one to save us if I don't.”
Poor Molly Loo looked really embarrassed as she made excuses, trying at the same time to fix things by grabbing Boo and dusting him off with her handkerchief, tugging at his hair like she was ringing bells, and then throwing him down again with the frustrated exclamation: “Yes, we're a couple of wild kids, and there's no one to save us if I don't.”
That was true enough; for Molly's father was a busy man, careless of everything but his mills, Miss Bat was old and lazy, and felt as if she might take life easy after serving the motherless children for many years as well as she knew how. Molly was beginning to see how much amiss things were at home, and old enough to feel mortified, though, as yet, she had done nothing to mend the matter except be kind to the little boy.
That was definitely true; Molly's dad was always busy, focused only on his factories, Miss Bat was old and lazy, and she felt she could take it easy after taking care of the motherless kids for so many years as best as she could. Molly was starting to realize how messed up things were at home, and she was old enough to feel embarrassed, even though she hadn't done anything to fix the situation except be nice to the little boy.
“You will, my dear,” answered Mrs. Pecq, encouragingly, for she knew all about it. “Now you've each got a mission, let us see how well you will get on. Keep it secret, if you like, and report once a week. I'll be a member, and we'll do great things yet.”
“You will, my dear,” Mrs. Pecq replied supportively, since she was fully aware of the situation. “Now that you each have a mission, let’s see how well you do. Keep it a secret if you want, and update me once a week. I’ll be a member too, and we’ll accomplish amazing things.”
“We won't begin till after Christmas; there is so much to do, we never shall have time for any more. Don't tell, and we'll start fair at New Year's, if not before,” said Jill, taking the lead as usual. Then they went on with the gay ladies, who certainly were heathen enough in dress to be in sad need of conversion,—to common-sense at least.
“We won't start until after Christmas; there’s so much to do, we’ll never have time for anything else. Don’t let anyone know, and we’ll kick things off on New Year’s, if not earlier,” said Jill, taking charge as usual. Then they continued with the lively ladies, who definitely wore outfits that were so outrageous they needed a bit of common sense at the very least.
“I feel as if I was at a party,” said Jill, after a pause occupied in surveying her gallery with great satisfaction, for dress was her delight, and here she had every conceivable style and color.
“I feel like I’m at a party,” said Jill, after pausing to admire her collection with great satisfaction, because fashion was her passion, and here she had every imaginable style and color.
“Talking of parties, isn't it too bad that we must give up our Christmas fun? Can't get on without you and Jack, so we are not going to do a thing, but just have our presents,” said Merry, sadly, as they began to fit different heads and bodies together, to try droll effects.
“Speaking of parties, isn’t it a shame that we have to give up our Christmas fun? We can’t go on without you and Jack, so we’re not planning to do anything, just exchange our presents,” said Merry, sadly, as they started putting different heads and bodies together to create funny effects.
“I shall be all well in a fortnight, I know; but Jack won't, for it will take more than a month to mend his poor leg. May be they will have a dance in the boys' big room, and he can look on,” suggested Jill, with a glance at the dancing damsel on the wall, for she dearly loved it, and never guessed how long it would be before her light feet would keep time to music again.
“I’ll be fine in a couple of weeks, I know; but Jack won’t be, because it’ll take more than a month for his leg to heal. Maybe they’ll have a dance in the boys' big room, and he can watch,” suggested Jill, glancing at the dancing girl on the wall, because she loved it so much and had no idea how long it would be before her light feet would dance to the music again.
“You'd better give Jack a hint about the party. Send over some smart ladies, and say they have come to his Christmas ball,” proposed audacious Molly Loo, always ready for fun.
“You should give Jack a heads-up about the party. Send over some classy ladies and say they’re here for his Christmas ball,” suggested bold Molly Loo, always up for a good time.
So they put a preposterous green bonnet, top-heavy with plumes, on a little lady in yellow, who sat in a carriage; the lady beside her, in winter costume of velvet pelisse and ermine boa, was fitted to a bride's head with its orange flowers and veil, and these works of art were sent over to Jack, labelled “Miss Laura and Lotty Burton going to the Minots' Christmas ball,”—a piece of naughtiness on Jill's part, for she knew Jack liked the pretty sisters, whose gentle manners made her own wild ways seem all the more blamable.
So they put a ridiculous green hat, overloaded with feathers, on a little lady in yellow, who was sitting in a carriage; the lady next to her, dressed in a winter outfit of velvet coat and ermine scarf, looked like a bride with her orange flowers and veil. These creations were sent over to Jack, labeled “Miss Laura and Lotty Burton going to the Minots' Christmas ball”—a bit of mischief on Jill's part, since she knew Jack liked the pretty sisters, whose gentle manners made her own wild behavior seem even worse.
No answer came for a long time, and the girls had almost forgotten their joke in a game of Letters, when “Tingle, tangle!” went the bell, and the basket came in heavily laden. A roll of colored papers was tied outside, and within was a box that rattled, a green and silver horn, a roll of narrow ribbons, a spool of strong thread, some large needles, and a note from Mrs. Minot:—
No answer came for a long time, and the girls had almost forgotten their joke in a game of Letters, when “Tingle, tangle!” went the bell, and the basket came in heavily loaded. A roll of colored papers was tied outside, and inside was a box that rattled, a green and silver horn, a roll of narrow ribbons, a spool of strong thread, some large needles, and a note from Mrs. Minot:—
“Dear Jill,—I think of having a Christmas tree so that our invalids can enjoy it, and all your elegant friends are cordially invited. Knowing that you would like to help, I send some paper for sugar-plum horns and some beads for necklaces. They will brighten the tree and please the girls for themselves or their dolls. Jack sends you a horn for a pattern, and will you make a ladder-necklace to show him how? Let me know if you need anything.
“Dear Jill,—I’m thinking of getting a Christmas tree so that our sick friends can enjoy it, and all your classy friends are warmly invited. Since you’d like to help, I’m sending some paper for sugar-plum horns and some beads for necklaces. They’ll brighten up the tree and make the girls happy for themselves or their dolls. Jack is sending you a horn as a pattern, so could you make a ladder necklace to show him how? Let me know if you need anything.”
“Yours in haste,
"Yours quickly,"
“Anna Minot”
"Anna Minot"
“She knew what the child would like, bless her kind heart,” said Mrs. Pecq to herself, and something brighter than the most silvery bead shone on Jack's shirt-sleeve, as she saw the rapture of Jill over the new work and the promised pleasure.
“She knew what the child would like, bless her kind heart,” said Mrs. Pecq to herself, and something brighter than the shiniest bead shimmered on Jack's shirt sleeve as she saw Jill's joy over the new project and the excitement ahead.
Joyful cries greeted the opening of the box, for bunches of splendid large bugles appeared in all colors, and a lively discussion went on as to the best contrasts. Jill could not refuse to let her friends share the pretty work, and soon three necklaces glittered on three necks, as each admired her own choice.
Joyful shouts welcomed the opening of the box, as clusters of beautiful large bugles in every color emerged, sparking a lively debate about the best combinations. Jill couldn't say no to letting her friends enjoy the lovely craft, and soon three necklaces sparkled around three necks, each person admiring her own selection.
“I'd be willing to hurt my back dreadfully, if I could lie and do such lovely things all day,” said Merry, as she reluctantly put down her needle at last, for home duties waited to be done, and looked more than ever distasteful after this new pleasure.
“I'd be willing to hurt my back so badly if I could just lie around and do such lovely things all day,” said Merry, reluctantly putting down her needle at last, since home duties needed to be done, which seemed even more unappealing after this new pleasure.
“So would I! Oh, do you think Mrs. Minot will let you fill the horns when they are done? I'd love to help you then. Be sure you send for me!” cried Molly Loo, arching her neck like a proud pigeon to watch the glitter of her purple and gold necklace on her brown gown.
“So would I! Oh, do you think Mrs. Minot will let you fill the horns when they’re done? I’d love to help you then. Make sure to send for me!” cried Molly Loo, arching her neck like a proud pigeon to see the shine of her purple and gold necklace on her brown dress.
“I'm afraid you couldn't be trusted, you love sweeties so, and I'm sure Boo couldn't. But I'll see about it,” replied Jill, with a responsible air.
“I'm afraid I can't trust you; you love treats too much, and I'm sure Boo can't either. But I'll look into it,” Jill replied, sounding responsible.
The mention of the boy recalled him to their minds, and looking round they found him peacefully absorbed in polishing up the floor with Molly's pocket-handkerchief and oil from the little machine-can. Being torn from this congenial labor, he was carried off shining with grease and roaring lustily.
The mention of the boy brought him back to their minds, and as they looked around, they found him happily focused on cleaning the floor with Molly's handkerchief and oil from the little can. When he was pulled away from this enjoyable task, he was covered in grease and laughing loudly.
But Jill did not mind her loneliness now, and sang like a happy canary while she threaded her sparkling beads, or hung the gay horns to dry, ready for their cargoes of sweets. So Mrs. Minot's recipe for sunshine proved successful, and mother-wit made the wintry day a bright and happy one for both the little prisoners.
But Jill didn't mind her loneliness anymore, and she sang like a happy canary while she threaded her sparkling beads or hung the colorful horns to dry, getting ready for their loads of sweets. So Mrs. Minot's recipe for sunshine worked well, and cleverness made the winter day bright and cheerful for both the little captives.
Chapter V. Secrets
There were a great many clubs in Harmony Village, but as we intend to interest ourselves with the affairs of the young folks only, we need not dwell upon the intellectual amusements of the elders. In summer, the boys devoted themselves to baseball, the girls to boating, and all got rosy, stout, and strong, in these healthful exercises. In winter, the lads had their debating club, the lasses a dramatic ditto. At the former, astonishing bursts of oratory were heard; at the latter, everything was boldly attempted, from Romeo and Juliet to Mother Goose's immortal melodies. The two clubs frequently met and mingled their attractions in a really entertaining manner, for the speakers made good actors, and the young actresses were most appreciative listeners to the eloquence of each budding Demosthenes.
There were a lot of clubs in Harmony Village, but since we’re focusing on the young people, we won’t talk about the intellectual activities of the older folks. In the summer, the boys played baseball, the girls went boating, and everyone got rosy, fit, and strong from these healthy activities. In the winter, the guys had their debating club, while the girls had a drama club. At the debating club, there were some impressive speeches; at the drama club, they boldly tackled everything from Romeo and Juliet to the classic songs of Mother Goose. The two clubs often got together and combined their activities in a really fun way, as the speakers were good actors, and the young actresses were very appreciative listeners to the eloquence of each budding Demosthenes.
Great plans had been afoot for Christmas or New Year, but when the grand catastrophe put an end to the career of one of the best “spouters,” and caused the retirement of the favorite “singing chambermaid,” the affair was postponed till February, when Washington's birthday was always celebrated by the patriotic town, where the father of his country once put on his nightcap, or took off his boots, as that ubiquitous hero appears to have done in every part of the United States.
Big plans had been in the works for Christmas or New Year, but when the big disaster ended the career of one of the best performers and caused the favorite “singing chambermaid” to step back, the event was pushed to February, when Washington's birthday was always celebrated by the patriotic town, where the father of his country once put on his nightcap or took off his boots, as that ever-present hero seems to have done everywhere in the United States.
Meantime the boys were studying Revolutionary characters, and the girls rehearsing such dramatic scenes as they thought most appropriate and effective for the 22d. In both of these attempts they were much helped by the sense and spirit of Ralph Evans, a youth of nineteen, who was a great favorite with the young folks, not only because he was a good, industrious fellow, who supported his grandmother, but also full of talent, fun, and ingenuity. It was no wonder every one who really knew him liked him, for he could turn his hand to anything, and loved to do it. If the girls were in despair about a fire-place when acting “The Cricket on the Hearth,” he painted one, and put a gas-log in it that made the kettle really boil, to their great delight. If the boys found the interest of their club flagging, Ralph would convulse them by imitations of the “Member from Cranberry Centre,” or fire them with speeches of famous statesmen. Charity fairs could not get on without him, and in the store where he worked he did many an ingenious job, which made him valued for his mechanical skill, as well as for his energy and integrity.
Meanwhile, the boys were studying Revolutionary figures, and the girls were rehearsing dramatic scenes that they thought would be most fitting and impactful for the 22nd. In both of these efforts, they were greatly assisted by the sense and spirit of Ralph Evans, a nineteen-year-old who was a favorite among the young people, not only because he was a hardworking guy who took care of his grandmother, but also because he was full of talent, fun, and creativity. It was no surprise that everyone who truly knew him liked him; he could tackle anything and loved doing it. If the girls were struggling with a fireplace while performing “The Cricket on the Hearth,” he would paint one and add a gas log that made the kettle actually boil, delighting them immensely. If the boys found their club's enthusiasm waning, Ralph would cheer them up with impressions of the “Member from Cranberry Centre” or inspire them with speeches from famous politicians. Charity fairs couldn't function without him, and at the store where he worked, he did many clever jobs that made him valued for his mechanical skills, as well as his energy and integrity.
Mrs. Minot liked to have him with her sons, because they also were to paddle their own canoes by and by, and she believed that, rich or poor, boys make better men for learning to use the talents they possess, not merely as ornaments, but tools with which to carve their own fortunes; and the best help toward this end is an example of faithful work, high aims, and honest living. So Ralph came often, and in times of trouble was a real rainy-day friend. Jack grew very fond of him during his imprisonment, for the good youth ran in every evening to get commissions, amuse the boy with droll accounts of the day's adventures, or invent lifts, bed-tables, and foot-rests for the impatient invalid. Frank found him a sure guide through the mechanical mysteries which he loved, and spent many a useful half-hour discussing cylinders, pistons, valves, and balance-wheels. Jill also came in for her share of care and comfort; the poor little back lay all the easier for the air-cushion Ralph got her, and the weary headaches found relief from the spray atomizer, which softly distilled its scented dew on the hot forehead till she fell asleep.
Mrs. Minot liked having him with her sons because they also needed to learn to be independent eventually. She believed that, whether rich or poor, boys become better men when they learn to use their talents not just as decorations, but as tools to create their own futures. The best way to support this is by setting an example of consistent hard work, high aspirations, and honest living. So Ralph visited often and was a true friend in times of trouble. Jack became very fond of him during his recovery, as the kind young man would come by every evening to run errands, entertain the boy with funny stories about his day, or create lifts, bed tables, and footrests for the restless invalid. Frank found him to be a reliable guide through the mechanical challenges he loved, spending many productive half-hours discussing cylinders, pistons, valves, and balance wheels. Jill also received her share of care and comfort; the poor little back felt much better thanks to the air cushion Ralph got her, and her tired headaches found relief from the spray atomizer, which gently misted its scented dew on her hot forehead until she fell asleep.
Round the beds of Jack and Jill met and mingled the schoolmates of whom our story treats. Never, probably, did invalids have gayer times than our two, after a week of solitary confinement; for school gossip crept in, games could not be prevented, and Christmas secrets were concocted in those rooms till they were regular conspirators' dens, when they were not little Bedlams.
Around the beds of Jack and Jill gathered the classmates that our story is about. Never, perhaps, did patients have more fun than these two, after a week of being stuck alone; school gossip filtered in, games couldn't be stopped, and Christmas secrets were cooked up in those rooms until they turned into regular hideouts for conspirators, when they weren't just chaotic little places.
After the horn and bead labors were over, the stringing of pop-corn on red, and cranberries on white, threads, came next, and Jack and Jill often looked like a new kind of spider in the pretty webs hung about them, till reeled off to bide their time in the Christmas closet. Paper flowers followed, and gay garlands and bouquets blossomed, regardless of the snow and frost without. Then there was a great scribbling of names, verses, and notes to accompany the steadily increasing store of odd parcels which were collected at the Minots', for gifts from every one were to ornament the tree, and contributions poured in as the day drew near.
After the horn and bead projects were done, the next step was stringing popcorn on red thread and cranberries on white thread. Jack and Jill often looked like a new kind of spider in the beautiful webs they created around them, while they waited in the Christmas closet. Next came the paper flowers, and colorful garlands and bouquets appeared, regardless of the snow and frost outside. Then there was a flurry of writing names, verses, and notes to go with the growing collection of odd parcels gathered at the Minots', as gifts from everyone would decorate the tree, and contributions flooded in as the day approached.
But the secret which most excited the young people was the deep mystery of certain proceedings at the Minot house. No one but Frank, Ralph, and Mamma knew what it was, and the two boys nearly drove the others distracted by the tantalizing way in which they hinted at joys to come, talked strangely about birds, went measuring round with foot-rules, and shut themselves up in the Boys' Den, as a certain large room was called. This seemed to be the centre of operations, but beyond the fact of the promised tree no ray of light was permitted to pass the jealously guarded doors. Strange men with paste-pots and ladders went in, furniture was dragged about, and all sorts of boyish lumber was sent up garret and down cellar. Mrs. Minot was seen pondering over heaps of green stuff, hammering was heard, singular bundles were smuggled upstairs, flowering plants betrayed their presence by whiffs of fragrance when the door was opened, and Mrs. Pecq was caught smiling all by herself in a back bedroom, which usually was shut up in winter.
But the secret that excited the young people the most was the deep mystery of what was happening at the Minot house. Only Frank, Ralph, and Mom knew what it was, and the two boys nearly drove everyone else crazy with their teasing hints about exciting things to come, their strange talk about birds, their measuring with rulers, and their time spent locked away in the Boys' Den, as they called a certain large room. This seemed to be the hub of activity, but apart from the promise of a tree, no hint of what was going on was allowed to slip past the jealously guarded doors. Strange men with paint and ladders were seen going in, furniture was moved around, and all sorts of boyish junk was sent up to the attic and down to the basement. Mrs. Minot was spotted thinking over piles of greenery, hammering noises were heard, unusual bundles were sneakily taken upstairs, and flowering plants announced their presence with whiffs of fragrance when the door was opened. Mrs. Pecq was even caught smiling to herself in a back bedroom that was usually kept closed in winter.
“They are going to have a play, after all, and that green stuff was the curtain,” said Molly Loo, as the girls talked it over one day, when they sat with their backs turned to one another, putting last stitches in certain bits of work which had to be concealed from all eyes, though it was found convenient to ask one another's taste as to the color, materials, and sizes of these mysterious articles.
“They’re going to have a play, after all, and that green stuff was the curtain,” said Molly Loo, as the girls discussed it one day, sitting with their backs turned to each other, putting in the final stitches on certain pieces of work that needed to be kept hidden from everyone. Still, it was easy to ask each other’s opinions about the color, materials, and sizes of these mysterious items.
“I think it is going to be a dance. I heard the boys doing their steps when I went in last evening to find out whether Jack liked blue or yellow best, so I could put the bow on his pen-wiper,” declared Merry, knitting briskly away at the last of the pair of pretty white bed-socks she was making for Jill right under her inquisitive little nose.
“I think it’s going to be a dance. I heard the boys practicing their steps when I went in last night to see if Jack liked blue or yellow best, so I could put the bow on his pen-wiper,” said Merry, knitting quickly on the last of the cute white bed-socks she was making for Jill right under her curious little nose.
“They wouldn't have a party of that kind without Jack and me. It is only an extra nice tree, you see if it isn't,” answered Jill from behind the pillows which made a temporary screen to hide the toilet mats she was preparing for all her friends.
“They wouldn't throw a party like that without Jack and me. It's just a really nice tree, see if it isn’t,” Jill replied from behind the pillows that formed a makeshift barrier to conceal the toilet mats she was getting ready for all her friends.
“Every one of you is wrong, and you'd better rest easy, for you won't find out the best part of it, try as you may.” And Mrs. Pecq actually chuckled as she, too, worked away at some bits of muslin, with her back turned to the very unsocial-looking group.
“Each of you is wrong, and you should relax, because you won’t discover the best part, no matter how hard you try.” And Mrs. Pecq genuinely laughed as she continued to work on some pieces of muslin, her back turned to the rather unfriendly-looking group.
“Well, I don't care, we've got a secret all our own, and won't ever tell, will we?” cried Jill, falling back on the Home Missionary Society, though it was not yet begun.
“Honestly, I don’t care. We have our own secret, and we’re never going to tell, right?” Jill exclaimed, referencing the Home Missionary Society, even though it hadn’t started yet.
“Never!” answered the girls, and all took great comfort in the idea that one mystery would not be cleared up, even at Christmas.
“Never!” answered the girls, and all found great comfort in the idea that one mystery wouldn’t be solved, even at Christmas.
Jack gave up guessing, in despair, after he had suggested a new dining-room where he could eat with the family, a private school in which his lessons might go on with a tutor, or a theatre for the production of the farces in which he delighted.
Jack stopped trying to guess, feeling hopeless, after he had suggested a new dining room where he could eat with the family, a private school where he could continue his lessons with a tutor, or a theater for putting on the comedies he loved.
“It is going to be used to keep something in that you are very fond of,” said Mamma, taking pity on him at last.
“It’s going to be used to keep something in that you really care about,” said Mom, finally feeling sorry for him.
“Ducks?” asked Jack, with a half pleased, half puzzled air, not quite seeing where the water was to come from.
“Ducks?” Jack asked, looking both pleased and confused, not quite understanding where the water was supposed to come from.
Frank exploded at the idea, and added to the mystification by saying,—
Frank exploded at the idea and added to the confusion by saying,—
“There will be one little duck and one great donkey in it.” Then, fearing he had told the secret, he ran off, quacking and braying derisively.
“There will be one little duck and one big donkey in it.” Then, worried that he had revealed the secret, he ran off, quacking and braying mockingly.
“It is to be used for creatures that I, too, am fond of, and you know neither donkeys nor ducks are favorites of mine,” said Mamma, with a demure expression, as she sat turning over old clothes for the bundles that always went to poor neighbors, with a little store of goodies, at this time of the year.
“It’s meant for animals that I like as well, and you know that neither donkeys nor ducks are my favorites,” said Mom, with a modest look, as she sorted through old clothes for the bundles that always went to our neighbors in need, along with some treats, at this time of year.
“I know! I know! It is to be a new ward for more sick folks, isn't it, now?” cried Jack, with what he thought a great proof of shrewdness.
“I know! I know! It’s going to be a new ward for more sick people, right?” shouted Jack, thinking he had shown impressive cleverness.
“I don't see how I could attend to many more patients till this one is off my hands,” answered Mamma, with a queer smile, adding quickly, as if she too was afraid of letting the cat out of the bag: “That reminds me of a Christmas I once spent among the hospitals and poor-houses of a great city with a good lady who, for thirty years, had made it her mission to see that these poor little souls had one merry day. We gave away two hundred dolls, several great boxes of candy and toys, besides gay pictures, and new clothes to orphan children, sick babies, and half-grown innocents. Ah, my boy, that was a day to remember all my life, to make me doubly grateful for my blessings, and very glad to serve the helpless and afflicted, as that dear woman did.”
“I can't see how I could take on many more patients until this one is taken care of,” replied Mom with a strange smile, quickly adding, as if she was also worried about revealing too much: “That reminds me of a Christmas I once spent in the hospitals and shelters of a big city with a kind lady who, for thirty years, made it her mission to ensure that these poor souls had at least one joyful day. We gave away two hundred dolls, several big boxes of candy and toys, and also cheerful pictures and new clothes to orphaned kids, sick babies, and young ones. Ah, my son, that was a day I will remember for the rest of my life, which made me even more thankful for my blessings and very happy to help the needy and suffering, just like that wonderful woman did.”
The look and tone with which the last words were uttered effectually turned Jack's thoughts from the great secret, and started another small one, for he fell to planning what he would buy with his pocket-money to surprise the little Pats and Biddies who were to have no Christmas tree.
The way the last words were spoken effectively shifted Jack's focus away from the big secret and sparked a new thought, as he began to plan what he would get with his pocket money to surprise little Pats and Biddies, who weren't going to have a Christmas tree.
Chapter VI. Surprises
“Is it pleasant?” was the question Jill asked before she was fairly awake on Christmas morning.
“Is it nice?” was the question Jill asked before she was fully awake on Christmas morning.
“Yes, dear; as bright as heart could wish. Now eat a bit, and then I'll make you nice for the day's pleasure. I only hope it won't be too much for you,” answered Mrs. Pecq, bustling about, happy, yet anxious, for Jill was to be carried over to Mrs. Minot's, and it was her first attempt at going out since the accident.
“Yes, dear; as bright as your heart could wish. Now eat a little, and then I'll make you look nice for the day's enjoyment. I just hope it won't be too much for you,” replied Mrs. Pecq, bustling around, feeling happy yet anxious, as Jill was going to be carried over to Mrs. Minot's, and it was her first time going out since the accident.
It seemed as if nine o'clock would never come, and Jill, with wraps all ready, lay waiting in a fever of impatience for the doctor's visit, as he wished to superintend the moving. At last he came, found all promising, and having bundled up his small patient, carried her, with Frank's help, in her chair-bed to the ox-sled, which was drawn to the next door, and Miss Jill landed in the Boys' Den before she had time to get either cold or tired. Mrs. Minot took her things off with a cordial welcome, but Jill never said a word, for, after one exclamation, she lay staring about her, dumb with surprise and delight at what she saw.
It felt like nine o'clock would never arrive, and Jill, all bundled up and ready, lay there anxiously waiting for the doctor's visit, since he wanted to oversee the move. Finally, he showed up, found everything looking good, and after wrapping up his young patient, carried her to the ox-sled with Frank's help. They moved her chair-bed to the next door, and before she knew it, Miss Jill was in the Boys' Den without having time to get cold or tired. Mrs. Minot helped her take her things off with a warm welcome, but Jill didn’t say anything; after one gasp, she lay there wide-eyed, speechless with surprise and joy at what she was seeing.
The great room was entirely changed; for now it looked like a garden, or one of the fairy scenes children love, where in-doors and out-of-doors are pleasantly combined. The ceiling was pale blue, like the sky; the walls were covered with a paper like a rustic trellis, up which climbed morning-glories so naturally that the many-colored bells seemed dancing in the wind. Birds and butterflies flew among them, and here and there, through arches in the trellis, one seemed to look into a sunny summer world, contrasting curiously with the wintry landscape lying beyond the real windows, festooned with evergreen garlands, and curtained only by stands of living flowers. A green drugget covered the floor like grass, rustic chairs from the garden stood about, and in the middle of the room a handsome hemlock waited for its pretty burden. A Yule-log blazed on the wide hearth, and over the chimney-piece, framed in holly, shone the words that set all hearts to dancing, “Merry Christmas!”
The great room was completely transformed; it now resembled a garden or one of those fairy-tale scenes that kids love, where indoor and outdoor elements are pleasantly blended. The ceiling was a light blue, like the sky; the walls were covered with wallpaper that resembled a rustic trellis, with morning glories climbing it so naturally that the colorful blooms seemed to dance in the wind. Birds and butterflies flitted among them, and here and there, through arches in the trellis, one could glimpse a sunny summer world, which was a striking contrast to the wintry landscape outside the actual windows, adorned with evergreen garlands and only curtained by stands of living flowers. A green carpet covered the floor like grass, rustic garden chairs were scattered around, and in the center of the room, a beautiful hemlock tree awaited its decorative adornments. A Yule log crackled on the wide hearth, and above the mantel, framed in holly, the words that made all hearts leap, “Merry Christmas!” shone brightly.
“Do you like it, dear? This is our surprise for you and Jack, and here we mean to have good times together,” said Mrs. Minot, who had stood quietly enjoying the effect of her work.
“Do you like it, dear? This is our surprise for you and Jack, and we plan to have a great time together,” said Mrs. Minot, who had stood quietly enjoying the impact of her work.
“Oh, it is so lovely I don't know what to say!” and Jill put up both arms, as words failed her, and grateful kisses were all she had to offer.
“Oh, it’s so beautiful I don’t know what to say!” Jill raised both her arms, feeling speechless, and grateful kisses were all she could give.
“Can you suggest anything more to add to the pleasantness?” asked the gentle lady, holding the small hands in her own, and feeling well repaid by the child's delight.
“Can you suggest anything else to make it more enjoyable?” asked the gentle lady, holding the small hands in her own, feeling well rewarded by the child's happiness.
“Only Jack;” and Jill's laugh was good to hear, as she glanced up with merry, yet wistful eyes.
“Only Jack,” Jill said, her laugh pleasant to hear as she looked up with joyful yet thoughtful eyes.
“You are right. We'll have him in at once, or he will come hopping on one leg;” and away hurried his mother, laughing, too, for whistles, shouts, thumps, and violent demonstrations of all kinds had been heard from the room where Jack was raging with impatience, while he waited for his share of the surprise.
“You're right. We'll get him in right away, or he'll come hopping in on one leg;” and off ran his mother, also laughing, because whistles, shouts, thumps, and all sorts of loud antics had been coming from the room where Jack was fuming with impatience, waiting for his part of the surprise.
Jill could hardly lie still when she heard the roll of another chair-bed coming down the hall, its passage enlivened with cries of “Starboard! Port! Easy now! Pull away!” from Ralph and Frank, as they steered the recumbent Columbus on his first voyage of discovery.
Jill could hardly lie still when she heard another chair-bed rolling down the hall, its movement accompanied by shouts of “Starboard! Port! Easy now! Pull away!” from Ralph and Frank, as they guided the reclining Columbus on his first voyage of discovery.
“Well, I call that handsome!” was Jack's exclamation, when the full beauty of the scene burst upon his view. Then he forgot all about it and gave a whoop of pleasure, for there beside the fire was an eager face, two hands beckoning, and Jill's voice crying, joyfully,—
“Well, I think that's stunning!” was Jack's exclamation when the full beauty of the scene unfolded before him. Then he forgot all about it and let out a whoop of pleasure, for there beside the fire was a eager face, two hands beckoning, and Jill's voice calling out joyfully,—
“I'm here! I'm here! Oh, do come, quick!” Down the long room rattled the chair, Jack cheering all the way, and brought up beside the other one, as the long-parted friends exclaimed, with one accord,—
“I'm here! I'm here! Oh, come on, hurry!” Down the long room, the chair rattled, with Jack cheering all the way, and it ended up next to the other one as the long-separated friends exclaimed in unison,—
“Isn't this jolly!”
“Isn't this great!”
It certainly did look so, for Ralph and Frank danced a wild sort of fandango round the tree, Dr. Whiting stood and laughed, while the two mothers beamed from the door-way, and the children, not knowing whether to laugh or to cry, compromised the matter by clapping their hands and shouting, “Merry Christmas to everybody!” like a pair of little maniacs.
It definitely looked that way, as Ralph and Frank did a crazy kind of dance around the tree, Dr. Whiting stood by laughing, while the two mothers smiled from the doorway. The children, unsure whether to laugh or cry, settled on clapping their hands and shouting, “Merry Christmas to everyone!” like a couple of little wild ones.
Then they all sobered down, and the busy ones went off to the various duties of the day, leaving the young invalids to repose and enjoy themselves together.
Then they all calmed down, and the busy ones headed off to their various daily responsibilities, leaving the young patients to relax and enjoy each other's company.
“How nice you look,” said Jill, when they had duly admired the pretty room.
“How nice you look,” said Jill, after they had properly admired the lovely room.
“So do you,” gallantly returned Jack, as he surveyed her with unusual interest.
“So do you,” Jack replied confidently, as he looked at her with unexpected interest.
They did look very nice, though happiness was the principal beautifier. Jill wore a red wrapper, with the most brilliant of all the necklaces sparkling at her throat, over a nicely crimped frill her mother had made in honor of the day. All the curly black hair was gathered into a red net, and a pair of smart little moccasins covered the feet that had not stepped for many a weary day. Jack was not so gay, but had made himself as fine as circumstances would permit. A gray dressing-gown, with blue cuffs and collar, was very becoming to the blonde youth; an immaculate shirt, best studs, sleeve-buttons, blue tie, and handkerchief wet with cologne sticking out of the breast-pocket, gave an air of elegance in spite of the afghan spread over the lower portions of his manly form. The yellow hair was brushed till it shone, and being parted in the middle, to hide the black patch, made two engaging little “quirls” on his forehead. The summer tan had faded from his cheeks, but his eyes were as blue as the wintry sky, and nearly every white tooth was visible as he smiled on his partner in misfortune, saying cheerily,—
They did look really nice, though happiness was the main thing that made them beautiful. Jill wore a red robe, with the brightest necklace sparkling around her neck, over a nicely crimped frill her mother had made for the occasion. All her curly black hair was gathered into a red net, and a pair of stylish little moccasins covered the feet that hadn’t walked in many a long day. Jack wasn’t as cheerful, but he had made himself as presentable as the situation allowed. A gray bathrobe, with blue cuffs and a collar, looked great on the blonde youth; a spotless shirt, his best studs, cufflinks, a blue tie, and a handkerchief soaked in cologne peeking out of his breast pocket gave him an air of elegance despite the afghan draped over his lower half. His yellow hair was brushed until it shone, and being parted in the middle to hide a dark patch made two charming little “quirls” on his forehead. The summer tan had faded from his cheeks, but his eyes were as blue as the winter sky, and nearly all his white teeth were visible as he smiled at his partner in misfortune, saying cheerfully,—
“I'm ever so glad to see you again; guess we are over the worst of it now, and can have good times. Won't it be fun to stay here all the while, and amuse one another?”
"I'm so glad to see you again; I guess we've gotten through the worst of it now, and we can have some good times. Won't it be fun to stay here together and entertain each other?"
“Yes, indeed; but one day is so short! It will be stupider than ever when I go home to-night,” answered Jill, looking about her with longing eyes.
“Yes, definitely; but one day is so short! It’s going to feel even more pointless when I go home tonight,” replied Jill, glancing around with wistful eyes.
“But you are not going home to-night; you are to stay ever so long. Didn't Mamma tell you?”
“But you’re not going home tonight; you’re staying for a long time. Didn’t Mom tell you?”
“No. Oh, how splendid! Am I really? Where will I sleep? What will Mammy do without me?” and Jill almost sat up, she was so delighted with the new surprise.
“No. Oh, how wonderful! Am I really? Where will I sleep? What will Mom do without me?” and Jill almost sat up, she was so thrilled with the new surprise.
“That room in there is all fixed for you. I made Frank tell me so much. Mamma said I might tell you, but I didn't think she would be able to hold in if she saw you first. Your mother is coming, too, and we are all going to have larks together till we are well.”
“That room in there is all set up for you. I got Frank to tell me a lot. Mom said I could tell you, but I didn't think she'd be able to keep it in if she saw you first. Your mom is coming, too, and we’re all going to have fun together until we feel better.”
The splendor of this arrangement took Jill's breath away, and before she got it again, in came Frank and Ralph with two clothes-baskets of treasures to be hung upon the tree. While they wired on the candles the children asked questions, and found out all they wanted to know about the new plans and pleasures.
The beauty of this setup left Jill speechless, and before she could catch her breath, Frank and Ralph walked in with two baskets full of decorations for the tree. As they attached the candles, the kids asked questions and learned everything they wanted to know about the new plans and festivities.
“Who fixed all this?”
"Who fixed all of this?"
“Mamma thought of it, and Ralph and I did it. He's the man for this sort of thing, you know. He proposed cutting out the arches and sticking on birds and butterflies just where they looked best. I put those canaries over there, they looked so well against the blue;” and Frank proudly pointed out some queer orange-colored fowls, looking as if they were having fits in the air, but very effective, nevertheless.
“Mom thought of it, and Ralph and I did it. He's the right guy for this kind of thing, you know. He suggested cutting out the arches and putting on birds and butterflies just where they would look best. I put those canaries over there; they looked great against the blue.” Frank proudly pointed out some strange orange-colored birds that looked like they were having fits in the air, but were very eye-catching nonetheless.
“Your mother said you might call this the Bird Room. We caught a scarlet-tanager for you to begin with, didn't we, Jack?” and Ralph threw a bon-bon at Jill, who looked very like a bright little bird in a warm nest.
“Your mom said you might call this the Bird Room. We caught a scarlet tanager for you to start with, right, Jack?” and Ralph tossed a bon-bon at Jill, who looked a lot like a cheerful little bird in a cozy nest.
“Good for you! Yes, and we are going to keep her in this pretty cage till we can both fly off together. I say, Jill, where shall we be in our classes when we do get back?” and Jack's merry face fell at the thought.
“Good for you! Yes, and we’re going to keep her in this lovely cage until we can both fly off together. I say, Jill, where will we be in our classes when we get back?” Jack's cheerful expression dimmed at the thought.
“At the foot, if we don't study and keep up. Doctor said I might study sometimes, if I'd lie still as long as he thought best, and Molly brought home my books, and Merry says she will come in every day and tell me where the lessons are. I don't mean to fall behind, if my backbone is cracked,” said Jill, with a decided nod that made several black rings fly out of the net to dance on her forehead.
“At the base, if we don’t study and stay on track. The doctor said I could study sometimes, if I lie still for as long as he thinks is best, and Molly brought home my books, and Merry says she will come by every day and go over the lessons with me. I don’t plan to fall behind, even if my spine is cracked,” said Jill, with a determined nod that sent several black rings flying out of the net to dance on her forehead.
“Frank said he'd pull me along in my Latin, but I've been lazy and haven't done a thing. Let's go at it and start fair for New Year,” proposed Jack, who did not love study as the bright girl did, but was ashamed to fall behind her in anything.
“Frank said he’d help me out with my Latin, but I’ve been lazy and haven’t done anything. Let’s get to it and start fresh for the New Year,” suggested Jack, who didn’t enjoy studying like the talented girl did, but felt embarrassed to fall behind her in anything.
“All right. They've been reviewing, so we can keep up when they begin, if we work next week, while the rest have a holiday. Oh, dear, I do miss school dreadfully;” and Jill sighed for the old desk, every blot and notch of which was dear to her.
“All right. They’ve been reviewing, so we can stay caught up when they start, if we work next week while everyone else is on holiday. Oh, I really miss school so much;” and Jill sighed for the old desk, every mark and scratch of which was precious to her.
“There come our things, and pretty nice they look, too,” said Jack; and his mother began to dress the tree, hanging up the gay horns, the gilded nuts, red and yellow apples and oranges, and festooning long strings of pop-corn and scarlet cranberries from bough to bough, with the glittering necklaces hung where the light would show their colors best.
“Here come our things, and they look really nice too,” said Jack; and his mother started to decorate the tree, putting up bright horns, shiny nuts, red and yellow apples and oranges, and draping long strings of popcorn and red cranberries from branch to branch, with the sparkling necklaces placed where the light would highlight their colors best.
“I never saw such a splendid tree before. I'm glad we could help, though we were ill. Is it all done now?” asked Jill, when the last parcel was tied on and everybody stood back to admire the pretty sight.
“I've never seen such an amazing tree before. I'm glad we could help, even though we were sick. Is everything finished now?” asked Jill, as the last package was tied on and everyone stepped back to admire the beautiful sight.
“One thing more. Hand me that box, Frank, and be very careful that you fasten this up firmly, Ralph,” answered Mrs. Minot, as she took from its wrappings the waxen figure of a little child. The rosy limbs were very life-like, so was the smiling face under the locks of shining hair. Both plump arms were outspread as if to scatter blessings over all, and downy wings seemed to flutter from the dimpled shoulders, making an angel of the baby.
"One more thing. Hand me that box, Frank, and make sure you close it up tightly, Ralph," said Mrs. Minot, as she unwrapped the wax figure of a little child. The rosy limbs looked incredibly lifelike, and the smiling face with the shiny hair was just as real. Both chubby arms were stretched out as if to share blessings with everyone, and soft wings appeared to flutter from the dimpled shoulders, turning the baby into an angel.
“Is it St. Nicholas?” asked Jill, who had never seen that famous personage, and knew but little of Christmas festivities.
“Is that St. Nicholas?” asked Jill, who had never seen that famous figure and knew very little about Christmas celebrations.
“It is the Christ-child, whose birthday we are celebrating. I got the best I could find, for I like the idea better than old Santa Claus; though we may have him, too,” said Mamma, holding the little image so that both could see it well.
“It’s the Christ-child, whose birthday we’re celebrating. I got the best one I could find because I like this idea more than old Santa Claus; though we might have him, too,” said Mamma, holding the little figure so that both could see it clearly.
“It looks like a real baby;” and Jack touched the rosy foot with the tip of his finger, as if expecting a crow from the half-open lips.
“It looks like a real baby,” Jack said, touching the rosy foot with the tip of his finger, as if he was expecting a crow from the half-open lips.
“It reminds me of the saints in the chapel of the Sacred Heart in Montreal. One little St. John looked like this, only he had a lamb instead of wings,” said Jill, stroking the flaxen hair, and wishing she dared ask for it to play with.
“It reminds me of the saints in the chapel of the Sacred Heart in Montreal. One little St. John looked like this, only he had a lamb instead of wings,” said Jill, stroking the light-colored hair, and wishing she had the courage to ask to play with it.
“He is the children's saint to pray to, love, and imitate, for he never forgot them, but blessed and healed and taught them all his life. This is only a poor image of the holiest baby ever born, but I hope it will keep his memory in your minds all day, because this is the day for good resolutions, happy thoughts, and humble prayers, as well as play and gifts and feasting.”
“He is the saint that children pray to, love, and look up to, because he never forgot them; he blessed, healed, and taught them throughout his life. This is just a simple image of the holiest baby ever born, but I hope it will keep his memory in your minds all day, because today is a day for good intentions, happy thoughts, and humble prayers, along with play, gifts, and feasting.”
While she spoke, Mrs. Minot, touching the little figure as tenderly as if it were alive, had tied a broad white ribbon round it, and, handing it to Ralph, bade him fasten it to the hook above the tree-top, where it seemed to float as if the downy wings supported it.
While she talked, Mrs. Minot, handling the little figure as gently as if it were alive, had tied a wide white ribbon around it. She then handed it to Ralph, asking him to attach it to the hook above the treetop, where it appeared to float as if supported by soft wings.
Jack and Jill lay silently watching, with a sweet sort of soberness in their young faces, and for a moment the room was very still as all eyes looked up at the Blessed Child. The sunshine seemed to grow more golden as it flickered on the little head, the flames glanced about the glittering tree as if trying to climb and kiss the baby feet, and, without, a chime of bells rang sweetly, calling people to hear again the lovely story of the life begun on Christmas Day.
Jack and Jill lay quietly watching, with a gentle seriousness on their young faces, and for a moment, the room was very still as everyone looked up at the Blessed Child. The sunshine seemed to shine even more golden as it danced on the little head, the flames flickered around the sparkling tree as if trying to reach and kiss the baby’s feet, and outside, a sweet chime of bells rang, inviting people to hear once more the beautiful story of the life that began on Christmas Day.
Only a minute, but it did them good, and presently, when the pleasant work was over, and the workers gone, the boys to church, and Mamma to see about lunch for the invalids, Jack said, gravely, to Jill,—
Only a minute, but it was good for them, and soon, when the nice work was done, and the workers had left, the boys went to church, and Mom went to prepare lunch for the sick, Jack said seriously to Jill,—
“I think we ought to be extra good, every one is so kind to us, and we are getting well, and going to have such capital times. Don't see how we can do anything else to show we are grateful.”
“I think we should be extra good; everyone is so nice to us, and we’re getting better and going to have such great times. I don’t see how we can do anything else to show our gratitude.”
“It isn't easy to be good when one is sick,” said Jill, thoughtfully. “I fret dreadfully, I get so tired of being still. I want to scream sometimes, but I don't, because it would scare Mammy, so I cry. Do you cry, Jack?”
“It’s not easy to be good when you’re sick,” Jill said, thinking it over. “I worry so much, and I get really tired of just sitting around. Sometimes I want to scream, but I don’t because it would scare Mammy, so I just cry. Do you cry, Jack?”
“Men never do. I want to tramp round when things bother me; but I can't, so I kick and say, 'Hang it!' and when I get very bad I pitch into Frank, and he lets me. I tell you, Jill, he's a good brother!” and Jack privately resolved then and there to invite Frank to take it out of him in any form he pleased as soon as health would permit.
“Guys never do. I want to walk around when things get to me; but I can't, so I complain and say, 'Forget it!' and when I get really frustrated, I take it out on Frank, and he takes it. I swear, Jill, he's a great brother!” and Jack silently decided right then to invite Frank to have a go at him in whatever way he wanted as soon as he was feeling better.
“I rather think we shall grow good in this pretty place, for I don't see how we can be bad if we want to, it is all so nice and sort of pious here,” said Jill, with her eyes on the angel over the tree.
“I really think we will become good in this lovely place, because I can’t see how we could be bad if we wanted to; everything here is so nice and kind of holy,” said Jill, gazing at the angel above the tree.
“A fellow can be awfully hungry, I know that. I didn't half eat breakfast, I was in such a hurry to see you, and know all about the secrets. Frank kept saying I couldn't guess, that you had come, and I never would be ready, till finally I got mad and fired an egg at him, and made no end of a mess.”
"A guy can get really hungry, I get that. I barely ate breakfast because I was so eager to see you and find out all the secrets. Frank kept saying I couldn’t figure it out, that you had arrived, and I’d never be prepared, until I finally got frustrated and threw an egg at him, making a huge mess."
Jack and Jill went off into a gale of laughter at the idea of dignified Frank dodging the egg that smashed on the wall, leaving an indelible mark of Jack's besetting sin, impatience.
Jack and Jill burst into laughter at the thought of serious Frank dodging the egg that splattered against the wall, leaving a lasting reminder of Jack's constant flaw: impatience.
Just then Mrs. Minot came in, well pleased to hear such pleasant sounds, and to see two merry faces, where usually one listless one met her anxious eyes.
Just then, Mrs. Minot walked in, happy to hear such cheerful sounds and to see two joyful faces, instead of the usual one tired face that met her worried gaze.
“The new medicine works well, neighbor,” she said to Mrs. Pecq, who followed with the lunch tray.
“The new medicine is effective, neighbor,” she said to Mrs. Pecq, who was carrying the lunch tray.
“Indeed it does, mem. I feel as if I'd taken a sup myself, I'm that easy in my mind.”
"Yeah, it really does, ma'am. I feel like I’ve had a drink myself; I'm that relaxed."
And she looked so, too, for she seemed to have left all her cares in the little house when she locked the door behind her, and now stood smiling with a clean apron on, so fresh and cheerful, that Jill hardly knew her own mother.
And she looked that way, too, since it seemed like she had left all her worries in the little house when she locked the door behind her. Now, she was standing there smiling, wearing a clean apron, looking so fresh and cheerful that Jill could barely recognize her own mother.
“Things taste better when you have someone to eat with you,” observed Jack, as they devoured sandwiches, and drank milk out of little mugs with rosebuds on them.
“Food tastes better when you have someone to share it with,” Jack noted, as they enjoyed their sandwiches and drank milk from small mugs with rosebud designs.
“Don't eat too much, or you won't be ready for the next surprise,” said his mother, when the plates were empty, and the last drop gone down throats dry with much chatter.
“Don’t eat too much, or you won’t be ready for the next surprise,” said his mother, when the plates were empty, and the last drop had gone down throats dry from all the conversation.
“More surprises! Oh, what fun!” cried Jill. And all the rest of the morning, in the intervals of talk and play, they tried to guess what it could be.
“More surprises! Oh, how exciting!” shouted Jill. And throughout the rest of the morning, in between conversations and fun, they tried to figure out what it could be.
At two o'clock they found out, for dinner was served in the Bird Room, and the children revelled in the simple feast prepared for them. The two mothers kept the little bed-tables well supplied, and fed their nurslings like maternal birds, while Frank presided over the feast with great dignity, and ate a dinner which would have astonished Mamma, if she had not been too busy to observe how fast the mince pie vanished.
At two o'clock, they discovered that dinner was served in the Bird Room, and the children enjoyed the simple meal prepared for them. The two mothers kept the little bedside tables well stocked and fed their kids like caring birds, while Frank managed the feast with great dignity and had a dinner that would have amazed Mom if she hadn't been too busy to notice how quickly the mince pie disappeared.
“The girls said Christmas was spoiled because of us; but I don't think so, and they won't either, when they see this splendid place and know all about our nice plans,” said Jill, luxuriously eating the nut-meats Jack picked out for her, as they lay in Eastern style at the festive board.
"The girls said Christmas was ruined because of us, but I don't think so, and they won't either when they see this amazing place and know all about our great plans," said Jill, comfortably eating the nut meats Jack picked out for her as they lounged in Eastern style at the festive table.
“I call this broken bones made easy. I never had a better Christmas. Have a raisin? Here's a good fat one.” And Jack made a long arm to Jill's mouth, which began to sing “Little Jack Horner” as an appropriate return.
“I call this broken bones made easy. I never had a better Christmas. Want a raisin? Here’s a nice big one.” And Jack reached over to Jill’s mouth, which started singing “Little Jack Horner” as a fitting response.
“It would have been a lonesome one to all of us, I'm thinking, but for your mother, boys. My duty and hearty thanks to you, mem,” put in grateful Mrs. Pecq, bowing over her coffee-cup as she had seen ladies bow over their wine-glasses at dinner parties in Old England.
“It would have been a lonely time for all of us, I think, if it weren't for your mother, boys. Thank you so much, ma'am,” said Mrs. Pecq gratefully, bowing over her coffee cup like she'd seen women do over their wine glasses at dinner parties in Old England.
“I rise to propose a health, Our Mothers.” And Frank stood up with a goblet of water, for not even at Christmas time was wine seen on that table.
“I rise to propose a toast to our Mothers.” And Frank stood up with a goblet of water, because even at Christmas, wine was not seen on that table.
“Hip, hip, hurrah!” called Jack, baptizing himself with a good sprinkle, as he waved his glass and drank the toast with a look that made his mother's eyes fill with happy tears.
“Hip, hip, hooray!” shouted Jack, splashing himself with a good pour as he raised his glass and drank the toast with a look that brought happy tears to his mother’s eyes.
Jill threw her mother a kiss, feeling very grown up and elegant to be dining out in such style. Then they drank every one's health with much merriment, till Frank declared that Jack would float off on the deluge of water he splashed about in his enthusiasm, and Mamma proposed a rest after the merry-making.
Jill blew her mom a kiss, feeling all grown up and fancy dining out like this. Then they toasted to everyone’s health with lots of laughter, until Frank joked that Jack would float away on the wave of water he was splashing around in his excitement, and Mom suggested they take a break after all the fun.
“Now the best fun is coming, and we have not long to wait,” said the boy, when naps and rides about the room had whiled away the brief interval between dinner and dusk, for the evening entertainment was to be an early one, to suit the invalids' bedtime.
“Now the best part is coming, and we don’t have to wait long,” said the boy, when naps and rides around the room had passed the short time between dinner and evening, because the night’s entertainment was going to be early to accommodate the invalids’ bedtime.
“I hope the girls will like their things. I helped to choose them, and each has a nice present. I don't know mine, though, and I'm in a twitter to see it,” said Jill, as they lay waiting for the fun to begin.
“I hope the girls will like their gifts. I helped pick them out, and each one has a nice present. I don’t know what mine is, though, and I’m excited to see it,” said Jill, as they lay waiting for the fun to start.
“I do; I chose it, so I know you will like one of them, any way.”
“I do; I picked it, so I know you'll like one of them, anyway.”
“Have I got more than one?”
“Do I have more than one?”
“I guess you'll think so when they are handed down. The bell was going all day yesterday, and the girls kept bringing in bundles for you; I see seven now,” and Jack rolled his eyes from one mysterious parcel to another hanging on the laden boughs.
“I guess you’ll think so when they arrive. The bell was ringing all day yesterday, and the girls kept bringing in packages for you; I see seven right now,” and Jack rolled his eyes from one mysterious bundle to another hanging on the heavy branches.
“I know something, too. That square bundle is what you want ever so much. I told Frank, and he got it for his present. It is all red and gold outside, and every sort of color inside; you'll hurrah when you see it. That roundish one is yours too; I made them,” cried Jill, pointing to a flat package tied to the stem of the tree, and a neat little roll in which were the blue mittens that she had knit for him.
“I know something, too. That square package is what you really want. I told Frank, and he got it for his gift. It's all red and gold on the outside, and every color you can think of on the inside; you'll be so excited when you see it. That round one is yours too; I made them,” Jill exclaimed, pointing to a flat package tied to the tree trunk and a tidy little roll containing the blue mittens she had knitted for him.
“I can wait;” but the boy's eyes shone with eagerness, and he could not resist firing two or three pop-corns at it to see whether it was hard or soft.
“I can wait;” but the boy's eyes sparkled with excitement, and he couldn't help tossing a couple of popcorns at it to see if it was hard or soft.
“That barking dog is for Boo, and the little yellow sled, so Molly can drag him to school, he always tumbles down so when it is slippery,” continued Jill, proud of her superior knowledge, as she showed a small spotted animal hanging by its tail, with a red tongue displayed as if about to taste the sweeties in the horn below.
“That barking dog is for Boo, and the little yellow sled, so Molly can drag him to school. He always tumbles down when it’s slippery,” continued Jill, proud of her superior knowledge, as she showed a small spotted animal hanging by its tail, with a red tongue sticking out as if about to taste the treats in the horn below.
“Don't talk about sleds, for mercy's sake! I never want to see another, and you wouldn't, either, if you had to lie with a flat-iron tied to your ankle, as I do,” said Jack, with a kick of the well leg and an ireful glance at the weight attached to the other that it might not contract while healing.
“Please, don’t mention sleds! I never want to see another one, and you wouldn’t either if you had to lie down with a flat iron tied to your ankle, like I do,” said Jack, kicking his good leg and throwing an angry look at the weight on his other leg so it wouldn’t contract while it was healing.
“Well, I think plasters, and liniment, and rubbing, as bad as flat-irons any day. I don't believe you have ached half so much as I have, though it sounds worse to break legs than to sprain your back,” protested Jill, eager to prove herself the greater sufferer, as invalids are apt to be.
“Well, I think band-aids, and ointment, and massaging are just as bad as flat-irons any day. I don't believe you've hurt as much as I have, even though it sounds worse to break your legs than to sprain your back,” protested Jill, eager to show she was the greater sufferer, as sick people often are.
“I guess you wouldn't think so if you'd been pulled round as I was when they set my leg. Caesar, how it did hurt!” and Jack squirmed at the recollection of it.
“I guess you wouldn't think so if you'd been pulled around like I was when they set my leg. Man, it really hurt!” and Jack squirmed at the memory of it.
“You didn't faint away as I did when the doctor was finding out if my vertebrums were hurt, so now!” cried Jill, bound to carry her point, though not at all clear what vertebrae were.
"You didn't pass out like I did when the doctor was checking if my vertebrae were injured, so now!" Jill exclaimed, determined to make her point, even though she had no idea what vertebrae were.
“Pooh! Girls always faint. Men are braver, and I didn't faint a bit in spite of all that horrid agony.”
“Ugh! Girls always pass out. Guys are tougher, and I didn't faint at all, even with all that terrible pain.”
“You howled; Frank told me so. Doctor said I was a brave girl, so you needn't brag, for you'll have to go on a crutch for a while. I know that.”
“You howled; Frank told me so. The doctor said I was a brave girl, so you don't need to brag, because you'll have to use a crutch for a bit. I know that.”
“You may have to use two of them for years, may be. I heard the doctor tell my mother so. I shall be up and about long before you will. Now then!”
“You might have to use two of them for years, maybe. I heard the doctor tell my mom that. I’ll be up and moving around long before you will. Alright then!”
Both children were getting excited, for the various pleasures of the day had been rather too much for them, and there is no knowing but they would have added the sad surprise of a quarrel to the pleasant ones of the day, if a cheerful whistle had not been heard, as Ralph came in to light the candles and give the last artistic touches to the room.
Both kids were getting really excited because all the fun they'd had that day was almost too much for them, and who knows, they might have even turned the happy moments into an argument if they hadn't heard a cheerful whistle as Ralph walked in to light the candles and add the final artistic touches to the room.
“Well, young folks, how goes it? Had a merry time so far?” he asked, as he fixed the steps and ran up with a lighted match in his hand.
"Well, you all, how's it going? Have you had a good time so far?" he asked, as he adjusted the steps and ran up with a lit match in his hand.
“Very nice, thank you,” answered a prim little voice from the dusk below, for only the glow of the fire filled the room just then.
“Very nice, thank you,” responded a polite little voice from the darkness below, for only the light of the fire filled the room at that moment.
Jack said nothing, and two red sulky faces were hidden in the dark, watching candle after candle sputter, brighten, and twinkle, till the trembling shadows began to flit away like imps afraid of the light.
Jack stayed silent, and two red, sulky faces were hidden in the dark, watching candle after candle flicker, glow, and sparkle, until the trembling shadows started to dart away like little demons scared of the light.
“Now he will see my face, and I know it is cross,” thought Jill, as Ralph went round the last circle, leaving another line of sparks among the hemlock boughs.
“Now he will see my face, and I know I look upset,” thought Jill, as Ralph went around the last circle, leaving another trail of sparks among the hemlock branches.
Jack thought the same, and had just got the frown smoothed out of his forehead, when Frank brought a fresh log, and a glorious blaze sprung up, filling every corner of the room, and dancing over the figures in the long chairs till they had to brighten whether they liked it or not. Presently the bell began to ring and gay voices to sound below: then Jill smiled in spite of herself as Molly Loo's usual cry of “Oh, dear, where is that child?” reached her, and Jack could not help keeping time to the march Ed played, while Frank and Gus marshalled the procession.
Jack thought the same thing and had just managed to smooth out the frown on his forehead when Frank brought in a fresh log, and a beautiful fire burst to life, filling every corner of the room and dancing over the figures in the long chairs until they had to brighten up whether they wanted to or not. Soon, the bell started ringing and cheerful voices could be heard below; then Jill smiled despite herself as Molly Loo's usual cry of “Oh, dear, where is that child?” echoed up to her, and Jack couldn’t help but keep time to the march Ed played while Frank and Gus led the procession.
“Ready!” cried Mrs. Minot, at last, and up came the troop of eager lads and lasses, brave in holiday suits, with faces to match. A unanimous “O, o, o!” burst from twenty tongues, as the full splendor of the tree, the room, and its inmates, dawned upon them; for not only did the pretty Christ-child hover above, but Santa Claus himself stood below, fur-clad, white-bearded, and powdered with snow from the dredging-box.
“Ready!” shouted Mrs. Minot at last, and up came the group of excited boys and girls, dressed in their festive outfits, with expressions to match. A collective “O, o, o!” erupted from twenty voices as the full beauty of the tree, the room, and its occupants revealed itself to them; for not only did the lovely Christ-child hover above, but Santa Claus himself stood below, dressed in fur, with a white beard, dusted with snow from the dredging box.
Ralph was a good actor, and, when the first raptures were over he distributed the presents with such droll speeches, jokes, and gambols, that the room rang with merriment, and passers-by paused to listen, sure that here, at least, Christmas was merry. It would be impossible to tell about all the gifts or the joy of the receivers, but every one was satisfied, and the king and queen of the revels so overwhelmed with little tokens of good-will, that their beds looked like booths at a fair. Jack beamed over the handsome postage-stamp book which had long been the desire of his heart, and Jill felt like a millionaire, with a silver fruit-knife, a pretty work-basket, and oh!—coals of fire on her head!—a ring from Jack.
Ralph was a great entertainer, and once the initial excitement faded, he handed out the gifts with such funny speeches, jokes, and playful antics that the room was filled with laughter, and people outside stopped to listen, knowing that here, at least, Christmas was truly joyful. It would be impossible to describe all the gifts or the happiness of the recipients, but everyone was pleased, and the king and queen of the festivities were so overwhelmed with small tokens of goodwill that their beds looked like stalls at a fair. Jack gleamed with happiness over the beautiful postage-stamp book that he had wanted for so long, and Jill felt like a millionaire, with a silver fruit-knife, a lovely sewing basket, and oh!—coals of fire on her head!—a ring from Jack.
A simple little thing enough, with one tiny turquoise forget-me-not, but something like a dew-drop fell on it when no one was looking, and she longed to say, “I'm sorry I was cross; forgive me, Jack.” But it could not be done then, so she turned to admire Merry's bed-shoes, the pots of pansies, hyacinths, and geranium which Gus and his sisters sent for her window garden, Molly's queer Christmas pie, and the zither Ed promised to teach her how to play upon.
A simple little thing, just a tiny turquoise forget-me-not, but something like a dew drop fell on it when no one was around, and she wished she could say, “I’m sorry I was mad; forgive me, Jack.” But that couldn’t happen then, so she turned to admire Merry's bed shoes, the pots of pansies, hyacinths, and geraniums that Gus and his sisters sent for her window garden, Molly's strange Christmas pie, and the zither Ed promised to teach her to play.
The tree was soon stripped, and pop-corns strewed the floor as the children stood about picking them off the red threads when candy gave out, with an occasional cranberry by way of relish. Boo insisted on trying the new sled at once, and enlivened the trip by the squeaking of the spotted dog, the toot of a tin trumpet, and shouts of joy at the splendor of the turn-out.
The tree was quickly bare, and popcorn was scattered on the floor as the kids picked it off the red strings when the candy ran out, with an occasional cranberry for a bit of flavor. Boo insisted on trying out the new sled right away, making the trip lively with the squeaking of the spotted dog, the toot of a tin trumpet, and cheers of excitement at the amazing setup.
The girls all put on their necklaces, and danced about like fine ladies at a ball. The boys fell to comparing skates, balls, and cuff-buttons on the spot, while the little ones devoted all their energies to eating everything eatable they could lay their hands on.
The girls all put on their necklaces and danced around like elegant ladies at a ball. The boys immediately started comparing skates, balls, and cufflinks, while the little ones focused all their energy on eating everything they could get their hands on.
Games were played till nine o'clock, and then the party broke up, after they had taken hands round the tree and sung a song written by one whom you all know,—so faithfully and beautifully does she love and labor for children the world over.
Games were played until nine o'clock, and then the party ended, after they joined hands around the tree and sang a song written by someone you all know—she loves and works for children all over the world so faithfully and beautifully.
THE BLESSED DAY
THE LOVELY DAY
“What shall little children bring On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day? What shall little children bring On Christmas Day in the morning? This shall little children bring On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day; Love and joy to Christ their king, On Christmas Day in the morning! “What shall little children sing On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day? What shall little children sing On Christmas Day in the morning? The grand old carols shall they sing On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day; With all their hearts, their offerings bring On Christmas Day in the morning.”
“What will little kids bring On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day? What will little kids bring On Christmas Day in the morning? This is what little kids will bring On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day; Love and joy to Christ their king, On Christmas Day in the morning! “What will little kids sing On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day? What will little kids sing On Christmas Day in the morning? They will sing the classic carols On Christmas Day, on Christmas Day; With all their hearts, their gifts they’ll bring On Christmas Day in the morning.”
Jack was carried off to bed in such haste that he had only time to call out, “Good-night!” before he was rolled away, gaping as he went. Jill soon found herself tucked up in the great white bed she was to share with her mother, and lay looking about the pleasant chamber, while Mrs. Pecq ran home for a minute to see that all was safe there for the night.
Jack was rushed off to bed so quickly that he only had time to shout, “Good night!” before he was rolled away, wide-eyed as he went. Jill soon found herself settled in the big white bed she would share with her mom, looking around the cozy room while Mrs. Pecq ran home for a minute to check that everything was safe there for the night.
After the merry din the house seemed very still, with only a light step now and then, the murmur of voices not far away, or the jingle of sleigh-bells from without, and the little girl rested easily among the pillows, thinking over the pleasures of the day, too wide-awake for sleep. There was no lamp in the chamber, but she could look into the pretty Bird Room, where the fire-light still shone on flowery walls, deserted tree, and Christ-child floating above the green. Jill's eyes wandered there and lingered till they were full of regretful tears, because the sight of the little angel recalled the words spoken when it was hung up, the good resolution she had taken then, and how soon it was broken.
After the joyful noise, the house felt very quiet, with just a light footstep now and then, the soft murmur of voices nearby, or the sound of sleigh bells outside. The little girl rested comfortably among the pillows, reflecting on the day's joys, too awake to sleep. There was no lamp in the room, but she could see into the lovely Bird Room, where the firelight still glowed on the flowery walls, the empty tree, and the Christ-child floating above the greenery. Jill's gaze drifted there and stayed, filling her eyes with bittersweet tears because seeing the little angel reminded her of the words spoken when it was hung up, the promise she had made then, and how quickly it was broken.
“I said I couldn't be bad in that lovely place, and I was a cross, ungrateful girl after all they've done for Mammy and me. Poor Jack was hurt the worst, and he was brave, though he did scream. I wish I could go and tell him so, and hear him say, 'All right.' Oh, me, I've spoiled the day!”
“I said I couldn't act out in that beautiful place, and I was a moody, ungrateful girl after everything they've done for Mom and me. Poor Jack was hurt the most, and he was brave, even though he did scream. I wish I could go and tell him that, and hear him say, 'All right.' Oh, I've ruined the day!”
A great sob choked more words, and Jill was about to have a comfortable cry, when someone entered the other room, and she saw Frank doing something with a long cord and a thing that looked like a tiny drum. Quiet as a bright-eyed mouse, Jill peeped out wondering what it was, and suspecting mischief, for the boy was laughing to himself as he stretched the cord, and now and then bent over the little object in his hand, touching it with great care.
A great sob caught in Jill's throat, and she was about to have a good cry when someone walked into the other room. She saw Frank fiddling with a long cord and something that looked like a tiny drum. Silent as a curious mouse, Jill peeked out, wondering what he was up to and suspecting mischief because he was laughing to himself as he stretched the cord, bending over the little object in his hand and handling it carefully from time to time.
“May be it's a torpedo to blow up and scare me; Jack likes to play tricks. Well, I'll scream loud when it goes off, so he will be satisfied that I'm dreadfully frightened,” thought Jill, little dreaming what the last surprise of the day was to be.
“Maybe it's a torpedo to blow up and scare me; Jack likes to play tricks. Well, I'll scream really loud when it goes off, so he will be happy that I'm really scared,” thought Jill, not realizing what the last surprise of the day would be.
Presently a voice whispered,—
Right now a voice whispered,—
“I say! Are you awake?”
“Hey! Are you awake?”
“Yes.”
"Yep."
“Any one there but you?”
"Anyone there but you?"
“No.”
“No.”
“Catch this, then. Hold it to your ear and see what you'll get.”
“Here, take this. Hold it up to your ear and see what you can hear.”
The little drum came flying in, and, catching it, Jill, with some hesitation, obeyed Frank's order. Judge of her amazement when she caught in broken whispers these touching words:—
The small drum came zooming in, and, catching it, Jill, a bit hesitant, followed Frank's command. Just imagine her surprise when she heard these heartfelt words in broken whispers:—
“Sorry I was cross. Forgive and forget. Start fair to-morrow. All right. Jack.”
“Sorry I was upset. Let's forgive and forget. We'll start fresh tomorrow. Sounds good. Jack.”
Jill was so delighted with this handsome apology, that she could not reply for a moment, then steadied her voice, and answered back in her sweetest tone,—
Jill was so pleased with this charming apology that she couldn't respond for a moment. Then, she composed herself and replied in her sweetest tone,—
“I'm sorry, too. Never, never, will again. Feel much better now. Good-night, you dear old thing.”
“I'm sorry, too. I’ll never do that again. I feel much better now. Goodnight, you dear old thing.”
Satisfied with the success of his telephone, Frank twitched back the drum and vanished, leaving Jill to lay her cheek upon the hand that wore the little ring and fall asleep, saying to herself, with a farewell glance at the children's saint, dimly seen in the soft gloom, “I will not forget. I will be good!”
Satisfied with the success of his phone, Frank pulled back the drum and disappeared, leaving Jill to rest her cheek on the hand that wore the little ring and fall asleep, telling herself, with a final look at the children's saint, barely visible in the soft darkness, “I will not forget. I will be good!”
Chapter VII. Jill's Mission
The good times began immediately, and very little studying was done that week in spite of the virtuous resolutions made by certain young persons on Christmas Day. But, dear me, how was it possible to settle down to lessons in the delightful Bird Room, with not only its own charms to distract one, but all the new gifts to enjoy, and a dozen calls a day to occupy one's time?
The fun started right away, and hardly any studying happened that week despite the noble intentions of a few young people on Christmas Day. But honestly, how could anyone focus on lessons in the amazing Bird Room, with all its distractions and the excitement of new gifts, plus a dozen visits every day to fill up one's time?
“I guess we'd better wait till the others are at school, and just go in for fun this week,” said Jack, who was in great spirits at the prospect of getting up, for the splints were off, and he hoped to be promoted to crutches very soon.
“I guess we should wait until the others are at school and just go have some fun this week,” said Jack, who was in high spirits at the thought of getting up, since the splints were off and he hoped to move on to crutches very soon.
“I shall keep my Speller by me and take a look at it every day, for that is what I'm most backward in. But I intend to devote myself to you, Jack, and be real kind and useful. I've made a plan to do it, and I mean to carry it out, any way,” answered Jill, who had begun to be a missionary, and felt that this was a field of labor where she could distinguish herself.
I will keep my Speller close and look at it every day because it's what I struggle with the most. But I plan to focus on you, Jack, and be really kind and helpful. I've made a plan to do this, and I'm determined to follow through, no matter what,” Jill responded, who had started to be a missionary and felt that this was an opportunity where she could shine.
“Here's a home mission all ready for you, and you can be paying your debts beside doing yourself good,” Mrs. Pecq said to her in private, having found plenty to do herself.
“Here’s a home project all set for you, and you can be paying off your debts while doing something good for yourself,” Mrs. Pecq said to her privately, having found plenty to keep herself busy.
Now Jill made one great mistake at the outset—she forgot that she was the one to be converted to good manners and gentleness, and devoted her efforts to looking after Jack, finding it much easier to cure other people's faults than her own. Jack was a most engaging heathen, and needed very little instruction; therefore Jill thought her task would be an easy one. But three or four weeks of petting and play had rather demoralized both children, so Jill's Speller, though tucked under the sofa pillow every day, was seldom looked at, and Jack shirked his Latin shamefully. Both read all the story-books they could get, held daily levees in the Bird Room, and all their spare minutes were spent in teaching Snowdrop, the great Angora cat, to bring the ball when they dropped it in their game. So Saturday came, and both were rather the worse for so much idleness, since daily duties and studies are the wholesome bread which feeds the mind better than the dyspeptic plum-cake of sensational reading, or the unsubstantial bon-bons of frivolous amusement.
Now Jill made a big mistake right from the start—she forgot that she was supposed to learn good manners and kindness, and instead focused on taking care of Jack, finding it much easier to fix other people's faults than her own. Jack was a really charming troublemaker and didn't need much guidance; so Jill thought her job would be a simple one. But after three or four weeks of pampering and playing, both kids had become a bit spoiled, so Jill's Speller, although hidden under the sofa pillow every day, was rarely opened, and Jack avoided his Latin miserably. They both read all the storybooks they could find, held daily gatherings in the Bird Room, and spent every spare minute teaching Snowdrop, the big Angora cat, to fetch the ball whenever they dropped it in their game. So Saturday rolled around, and both were feeling the effects of too much laziness, since daily tasks and studies are the nourishing bread that feeds the mind far better than the unhealthy plum-cake of sensational reading or the empty treats of trivial entertainment.
It was a stormy day, so they had few callers, and devoted themselves to arranging the album; for these books were all the rage just then, and boys met to compare, discuss, buy, sell, and “swap” stamps with as much interest as men on 'Change gamble in stocks. Jack had a nice little collection, and had been saving up pocket-money to buy a book in which to preserve his treasures. Now, thanks to Jill's timely suggestion, Frank had given him a fine one, and several friends had contributed a number of rare stamps to grace the large, inviting pages. Jill wielded the gum-brush and fitted on the little flaps, as her fingers were skilful at this nice work, and Jack put each stamp in its proper place with great rustling of leaves and comparing of marks. Returning, after a brief absence, Mrs. Minot beheld the countenances of the workers adorned with gay stamps, giving them a very curious appearance.
It was a stormy day, so there were few visitors, and they focused on organizing the album; these books were the latest trend at the time, and boys gathered to compare, discuss, buy, sell, and "swap" stamps with as much enthusiasm as men on Wall Street trading stocks. Jack had a nice little collection and had been saving his allowance to buy a book to keep his treasures safe. Now, thanks to Jill’s timely suggestion, Frank had given him a great one, and several friends had contributed a number of rare stamps to fill the large, inviting pages. Jill used the gum-brush to attach the little flaps, as her fingers were skilled at this delicate task, and Jack placed each stamp in its correct spot with lots of rustling pages and comparing notes. When she returned after a short absence, Mrs. Minot saw the workers’ faces decorated with colorful stamps, giving them a very interesting look.
“My dears! what new play have you got now? Are you wild Indians? or letters that have gone round the world before finding the right address?” she asked, laughing at the ridiculous sight, for both were as sober as judges and deeply absorbed in some doubtful specimen.
“My dears! What new play do you have now? Are you wild Indians? Or letters that have traveled the globe before reaching the right address?” she asked, laughing at the absurd sight, since both were as serious as judges and deeply focused on some questionable specimen.
“Oh, we just stuck them there to keep them safe; they get lost if we leave them lying round. It's very handy, for I can see in a minute what I want on Jill's face and she on mine, and put our fingers on the right chap at once,” answered Jack, adding, with an anxious gaze at his friend's variegated countenance, “Where the dickens is my New Granada? It's rare, and I wouldn't lose it for a dollar.”
“Oh, we just put them there to keep them safe; they get lost if we leave them lying around. It's really convenient because I can quickly see what I want on Jill's face and she can see mine, and we can point to the right person immediately,” Jack replied, glancing worriedly at his friend's colorful expression. “Where on earth is my New Granada? It's special, and I wouldn't want to lose it for anything.”
“Why, there it is on your own nose. Don't you remember you put it there because you said mine was not big enough to hold it?” laughed Jill, tweaking a large orange square off the round nose of her neighbor, causing it to wrinkle up in a droll way, as the gum made the operation slightly painful.
“Look, it’s right on your own nose. Don’t you remember putting it there because you said mine wasn’t big enough to hold it?” laughed Jill, pulling a large orange square off the round nose of her neighbor, causing it to wrinkle up in a funny way, as the gum made the whole thing a bit painful.
“So I did, and gave you Little Bolivar on yours. Now I'll have Alsace and Lorraine, 1870. There are seven of them, so hold still and see how you like it,” returned Jack, picking the large, pale stamps one by one from Jill's forehead, which they crossed like a band.
“So I did, and gave you Little Bolivar on yours. Now I'll have Alsace and Lorraine, 1870. There are seven of them, so hold still and see how you like it,” Jack replied, picking the large, pale stamps one by one from Jill's forehead, which they crossed like a band.
She bore it without flinching, saying to herself with a secret smile, as she glanced at the hot fire, which scorched her if she kept near enough to Jack to help him, “This really is being like a missionary, with a tattooed savage to look after. I have to suffer a little, as the good folks did who got speared and roasted sometimes; but I won't complain a bit, though my forehead smarts, my arms are tired, and one cheek is as red as fire.”
She took it all without wavering, thinking to herself with a hidden smile, as she looked at the blazing fire, which burned her if she got too close to Jack to help him, “This really feels like being a missionary, taking care of a wild guy. I have to put up with a bit of discomfort, just like the good people who sometimes got speared and cooked; but I won’t complain at all, even though my forehead hurts, my arms are sore, and one cheek is bright red.”
“The Roman States make a handsome page, don't they?” asked Jack, little dreaming of the part he was playing in Jill's mind. “Oh, I say, isn't Corea a beauty? I'm ever so proud of that;” and he gazed fondly on a big blue stamp, the sole ornament of one page.
“The Roman States look great, don’t they?” asked Jack, not realizing his role in Jill’s thoughts. “Oh, wow, isn’t Corea beautiful? I’m really proud of that;” and he looked affectionately at a big blue stamp, the only decoration on one page.
“I don't see why the Cape of Good Hope has pyramids. They ought to go in Egypt. The Sandwich Islands are all right, with heads of the black kings and queens on them,” said Jill, feeling that they were very appropriate to her private play.
“I don’t understand why there are pyramids at the Cape of Good Hope. They should be in Egypt. The Sandwich Islands are fine, with those heads of the black kings and queens on them,” said Jill, thinking they were perfect for her private game.
“Turkey has crescents, Australia swans, and Spain women's heads, with black bars across them. Frank says it is because they keep women shut up so; but that was only his fun. I'd rather have a good, honest green United States, with Washington on it, or a blue one-center with old Franklin, than all their eagles and lions and kings and queens put together,” added the democratic boy, with a disrespectful slap on a crowned head as he settled Heligoland in its place.
“Turkey has crescents, Australia has swans, and Spain has women's heads with black bars across them. Frank says it’s because they keep women shut away like that, but that was just a joke. I’d rather have a good, honest green United States bill with Washington on it, or a blue one-dollar bill with old Franklin, than all their eagles and lions and kings and queens combined,” added the democratic boy, disrespectfully slapping a crowned head as he put Heligoland back in its place.
“Why does Austria have Mercury on the stamp, I wonder? Do they wear helmets like that?” asked Jill, with the brush-handle in her mouth as she cut a fresh batch of flaps.
“Why does Austria have Mercury on the stamp, I wonder? Do they wear helmets like that?” asked Jill, with the brush handle in her mouth as she cut a fresh batch of flaps.
“May be he was postman to the gods, so he is put on stamps now. The Prussians wear helmets, but they have spikes like the old Roman fellows. I like Prussians ever so much; they fight splendidly, and always beat. Austrians have a handsome uniform, though.”
“Maybe he was a messenger for the gods, which is why he’s featured on stamps now. The Prussians wear helmets, but they have spikes like the ancient Romans. I really like the Prussians; they fight remarkably well and always win. The Austrians have a nice uniform, though.”
“Talking of Romans reminds me that I have not heard your Latin for two days. Come, lazybones, brace up, and let us have it now. I've done my compo, and shall have just time before I go out for a tramp with Gus,” said Frank, putting by a neat page to dry, for he studied every day like a conscientious lad as he was.
“Speaking of Romans, I just realized I haven’t heard your Latin in two days. Come on, lazybones, get it together, and let’s hear it now. I’ve finished my composition, and I’ll just have enough time before I head out for a walk with Gus,” said Frank, setting aside a neat page to dry, since he studied every day like the diligent kid he was.
“Don't know it. Not going to try till next week. Grind away over your old Greek as much as you like, but don't bother me,” answered Jack, frowning at the mere thought of the detested lesson.
“Don’t know it. Not going to try until next week. Study your old Greek as much as you want, but don’t bother me,” Jack replied, frowning at the very thought of the hated lesson.
But Frank adored his Xenophon, and would not see his old friend, Caesar, neglected without an effort to defend him; so he confiscated the gum-pot, and effectually stopped the stamp business by whisking away at one fell swoop all that lay on Jill's table.
But Frank loved his Xenophon and wouldn't ignore his old friend, Caesar, without trying to defend him; so he took the gum pot and effectively shut down the stamp operation by swiftly clearing everything off Jill's table in one go.
“Now then, young man, you will quit this sort of nonsense and do your lesson, or you won't see these fellows again in a hurry. You asked me to hear you, and I'm going to do it; here's the book.”
“Alright, young man, it's time to stop this nonsense and focus on your lesson, or you won’t be seeing these guys again anytime soon. You asked me to listen to you, and I'm going to do that; here’s the book.”
Frank's tone was the dictatorial one, which Jack hated and always found hard to obey, especially when he knew he ought to do it. Usually, when his patience was tried, he strode about the room, or ran off for a race round the garden, coming back breathless, but good-tempered. Now both these vents for irritation were denied him, and he had fallen into the way of throwing things about in a pet. He longed to send Caesar to perpetual banishment in the fire blazing close by, but resisted the temptation, and answered honestly, though gruffly: “I know I did, but I don't see any use in pouncing on a fellow when he isn't ready. I haven't got my lesson, and don't mean to worry about it; so you may just give me back my things and go about your business.”
Frank's tone was strict, which Jack despised and always found difficult to follow, especially when he knew he should. Usually, when he was frustrated, he'd pace around the room or go for a run in the garden, coming back panting but in a good mood. Now, he couldn't do either of those things, and he had started throwing things around out of annoyance. He wanted to toss Caesar into the nearby fire but held back and replied honestly, though gruffly: “I know I did, but I don’t see any point in jumping on someone when they’re not ready. I haven’t got my lesson, and I don’t plan to stress about it, so just give me back my stuff and go on with your day.”
“I'll give you back a stamp for every perfect lesson you get, and you won't see them on any other terms;” and, thrusting the treasures into his pocket, Frank caught up his rubber boots, and went off swinging them like a pair of clubs, feeling that he would give a trifle to be able to use them on his lazy brother.
“I'll give you a stamp for every perfect lesson you get, and you won't get them any other way;” and, shoving the treasures into his pocket, Frank grabbed his rubber boots and walked off swinging them like a pair of clubs, feeling that he would pay a little just to be able to use them on his lazy brother.
At this high-handed proceeding, and the threat which accompanied it, Jack's patience gave out, and catching up Caesar, as he thought, sent him flying after the retreating tyrant with the defiant declaration,—
At this arrogant move and the threat that came with it, Jack lost his patience, and grabbing Caesar, as he believed, sent him hurtling after the fleeing tyrant with a bold declaration,—
“Keep them, then, and your old book, too! I won't look at it till you give all my stamps back and say you are sorry. So now!”
“Then keep them and your old book, too! I won't look at it until you give all my stamps back and say you're sorry. So there!”
It was all over before Mamma could interfere, or Jill do more than clutch and cling to the gum-brush. Frank vanished unharmed, but the poor book dashed against the wall to fall half open on the floor, its gay cover loosened, and its smooth leaves crushed by the blow.
It was all over before Mom could step in, and Jill could do no more than grab and hold the gum brush. Frank disappeared unharmed, but the poor book slammed against the wall, landing halfway open on the floor, its bright cover loosened and its smooth pages crumpled from the impact.
“It's the album! O Jack, how could you?” cried Jill, dismayed at sight of the precious book so maltreated by the owner.
“It's the album! Oh Jack, how could you?” cried Jill, upset at the sight of the precious book being so mistreated by its owner.
“Thought it was the other. Guess it isn't hurt much. Didn't mean to hit him, any way. He does provoke me so,” muttered Jack, very red and shamefaced as his mother picked up the book and laid it silently on the table before him. He did not know what to do with himself, and was thankful for the stamps still left him, finding great relief in making faces as he plucked them one by one from his mortified countenance. Jill looked on, half glad, half sorry that her savage showed such signs of unconverted ferocity, and Mrs. Minot went on writing letters, wearing the grave look her sons found harder to bear than another person's scolding. No one spoke for a moment, and the silence was becoming awkward when Gus appeared in a rubber suit, bringing a book to Jack from Laura and a note to Jill from Lotty.
“Thought it was the other guy. Guess it doesn't hurt much. I didn't mean to hit him anyway. He really provokes me,” muttered Jack, his face bright red and filled with shame as his mother picked up the book and quietly set it on the table in front of him. He didn’t know what to do with himself and was thankful for the leftover stamps, finding relief in making faces as he pulled them one by one from his embarrassed expression. Jill watched him, feeling half glad and half sorry that her wild side was showing such signs of unrefined anger, while Mrs. Minot continued writing letters, wearing the serious expression that her sons found harder to handle than any scolding from someone else. No one spoke for a moment, and the silence was becoming uncomfortable when Gus showed up in a rubber suit, bringing a book from Laura for Jack and a note from Lotty for Jill.
“Look here, you just trundle me into my den, please, I'm going to have a nap, it's so dull to-day I don't feel like doing much,” said Jack, when Gus had done his errands, trying to look as if he knew nothing about the fracas.
“Hey, just take me to my room, okay? I’m going to take a nap; it’s so boring today that I don't feel like doing much,” said Jack, after Gus had run his errands, trying to act like he had no idea about the mess.
Jack folded his arms and departed like a warrior borne from the battle-field, to be chaffed unmercifully for a “pepper-pot,” while Gus made him comfortable in his own room.
Jack crossed his arms and walked away like a warrior leaving the battlefield, ready to be teased relentlessly for being a “pepper-pot,” while Gus helped him settle into his own room.
“I heard once of a boy who threw a fork at his brother and put his eye out. But he didn't mean to, and the brother forgave him, and he never did so any more,” observed Jill, in a pensive tone, wishing to show that she felt all the dangers of impatience, but was sorry for the culprit.
“I once heard about a boy who threw a fork at his brother and caused him to go blind in one eye. But he didn’t intend to, and the brother forgave him, and he never did it again,” Jill remarked thoughtfully, wanting to express that she understood the risks of being impatient, but felt sympathy for the one who caused harm.
“Did the boy ever forgive himself?” asked Mrs. Minot.
“Did the boy ever forgive himself?” Mrs. Minot asked.
“No, 'm; I suppose not. But Jack didn't hit Frank, and feels real sorry, I know.”
“No, ma'am; I guess not. But Jack didn't hit Frank, and he feels really sorry, I know.”
“He might have, and hurt him very much. Our actions are in our own hands, but the consequences of them are not. Remember that, my dear, and think twice before you do anything.”
“He could have, and it would have hurt him a lot. Our actions are in our control, but we can't control their consequences. Keep that in mind, my dear, and think carefully before you do anything.”
“Yes, 'm, I will;” and Jill composed herself to consider what missionaries usually did when the natives hurled tomahawks and boomerangs at one another, and defied the rulers of the land.
“Yes, I will;” and Jill collected herself to think about what missionaries typically did when the locals were throwing tomahawks and boomerangs at each other, and challenging the rulers of the territory.
Mrs. Minot wrote one page of a new letter, then stopped, pushed her papers about, thought a little, and finally got up, saying, as if she found it impossible to resist the yearning of her heart for the naughty boy,—
Mrs. Minot wrote a page of a new letter, then paused, shuffled her papers, thought for a moment, and finally stood up, saying, as if she couldn’t help but follow her heart’s desire for the mischievous boy,—
“I am going to see if Jack is covered up, he is so helpless, and liable to take cold. Don't stir till I come back.”
“I’m going to check if Jack is tucked in; he’s so helpless and likely to catch a cold. Don’t move until I get back.”
“No, 'm, I won't.”
“No, I won't.”
Away went the tender parent to find her son studying Caesar for dear life, and all the more amiable for the little gust which had blown away the temporary irritability. The brothers were often called “Thunder and Lightning,” because Frank lowered and growled and was a good while clearing up, while Jack's temper came and went like a flash, and the air was all the clearer for the escape of dangerous electricity. Of course Mamma had to stop and deliver a little lecture, illustrated by sad tales of petulant boys, and punctuated with kisses which took off the edge of these afflicting narratives.
Away went the caring parent to find her son studying Caesar with great determination, and she was even more pleasant after the little storm had passed that had temporarily annoyed her. The brothers were often referred to as “Thunder and Lightning” because Frank would sulk and grumble for a while before settling down, while Jack's mood would shift in an instant, making the atmosphere much better once the tension faded. Naturally, Mom had to pause and give a little talk, sharing cautionary tales of bratty boys, sprinkled with kisses that softened the impact of those troubling stories.
Jill meantime meditated morally on the superiority of her own good temper over the hasty one of her dear playmate, and just when she was feeling unusually uplifted and secure, alas! like so many of us, she fell, in the most deplorable manner.
Jill, in the meantime, reflected on how much better her good temper was compared to the quick temper of her dear friend. Just when she felt particularly happy and confident, unfortunately, like so many of us, she fell in the most unfortunate way.
Glancing about the room for something to do, she saw a sheet of paper lying exactly out of reach, where it had fluttered from the table unperceived. At first her eye rested on it as carelessly as it did on the stray stamp Frank had dropped; then, as if one thing suggested the other, she took it into her head that the paper was Frank's composition, or, better still, a note to Annette, for the two corresponded when absence or weather prevented the daily meeting at school.
Glancing around the room for something to do, she noticed a piece of paper lying just out of reach, having fluttered off the table unnoticed. At first, she looked at it as casually as she did at the stray stamp Frank had dropped; then, as if one thought led to another, she convinced herself that the paper was Frank's essay, or even better, a note to Annette, since the two would write to each other when they couldn't meet at school because of being apart or bad weather.
“Wouldn't it be fun to keep it till he gives back Jack's stamps? It would plague him so if it was a note, and I do believe it is, for compo's don't begin with two words on one side. I'll get it, and Jack and I will plan some way to pay him off, cross thing!”
“Wouldn't it be fun to hold onto it until he returns Jack's stamps? It would really annoy him if it was a note, and I really think it is, because compo's don’t start with two words on one side. I'll grab it, and Jack and I will figure out a way to get back at him, sneaky thing!”
Forgetting her promise not to stir, also how dishonorable it was to read other people's letters, Jill caught up the long-handled hook, often in use now, and tried to pull the paper nearer. It would not come at once, for a seam in the carpet held it, and Jill feared to tear or crumple it if she was not very careful. The hook was rather heavy and long for her to manage, and Jack usually did the fishing, so she was not very skilful; and just as she was giving a particularly quick jerk, she lost her balance, fell off the sofa, and dropped the pole with a bang.
Forgetting her promise to stay still and how wrong it was to read other people's letters, Jill grabbed the long-handled hook, which was often used now, and tried to pull the paper closer. It wouldn't budge at first because a seam in the carpet was holding it, and Jill was afraid of tearing or crumpling it if she wasn't careful. The hook was a bit heavy and long for her to handle, and Jack usually did the fishing, so she wasn't very skilled at it; just as she gave a quick yank, she lost her balance, fell off the couch, and dropped the pole with a thud.
“Oh, my back!” was all she could think or say as she felt the jar all through her little body, and a corresponding fear in her guilty little mind that someone would come and find out the double mischief she had been at. For a moment she lay quite still to recover from the shock, then as the pain passed she began to wonder how she should get back, and looked about her to see if she could do it alone. She thought she could, as the sofa was near and she had improved so much that she could sit up a little if the doctor would have let her. She was gathering herself together for the effort, when, within arm's reach now, she saw the tempting paper, and seized it with glee, for in spite of her predicament she did want to tease Frank. A glance showed that it was not the composition nor a note, but the beginning of a letter from Mrs. Minot to her sister, and Jill was about to lay it down when her own name caught her eye, and she could not resist reading it. Hard words to write of one so young, doubly hard to read, and impossible to forget.
“Oh, my back!” was all she could think or say as she felt the jolt shake her entire little body, and a corresponding fear in her guilty little mind that someone would come and discover the double trouble she had caused. For a moment, she lay completely still to recover from the shock, then as the pain subsided, she began to wonder how she would get back and looked around to see if she could manage it on her own. She thought she could, since the sofa was nearby, and she had improved enough that she could sit up a little if the doctor had allowed her. She was gathering her strength for the effort when, within arm's reach now, she spotted the tempting paper and snatched it up with delight, for despite her situation, she wanted to tease Frank. A quick glance revealed that it wasn’t the composition or a note, but the start of a letter from Mrs. Minot to her sister, and Jill was about to put it down when her own name caught her eye, and she couldn’t resist reading it. Hard words to write about someone so young, doubly hard to read, and impossible to forget.
“Dear Lizzie,—Jack continues to do very well, and will soon be up again. But we begin to fear that the little girl is permanently injured in the back. She is here, and we do our best for her; but I never look at her without thinking of Lucinda Snow, who, you remember, was bedridden for twenty years, owing to a fall at fifteen. Poor little Janey does not know yet, and I hope”—There it ended, and “poor little Janey's” punishment for disobedience began that instant. She thought she was getting well because she did not suffer all the time, and every one spoke cheerfully about “by and by.” Now she knew the truth, and shut her eyes with a shiver as she said, low, to herself,—
“Dear Lizzie,—Jack is doing really well and will be up again soon. But we're starting to worry that the little girl has permanent damage to her back. She’s here with us, and we’re doing our best for her; but I can’t look at her without thinking of Lucinda Snow, who was stuck in bed for twenty years after a fall at fifteen. Poor little Janey doesn’t know yet, and I hope”—There it ended, and “poor little Janey's” punishment for disobedience began at that moment. She thought she was recovering since she wasn’t in pain all the time, and everyone talked cheerfully about “soon.” Now she knew the truth and shut her eyes with a shiver as she said quietly to herself,—
“Twenty years! I couldn't bear it; oh, I couldn't bear it!”
“Twenty years! I couldn’t stand it; oh, I couldn’t stand it!”
A very miserable Jill lay on the floor, and for a while did not care who came and found her; then the last words of the letter—“I hope”—seemed to shine across the blackness of the dreadful “twenty years” and cheer her up a bit, for despair never lives long in young hearts, and Jill was a brave child.
A very unhappy Jill lay on the floor, and for a while, she didn't care who came and found her; then the last words of the letter—“I hope”—seemed to shine through the darkness of the awful “twenty years” and lifted her spirits a little, because despair never lasts long in young hearts, and Jill was a brave kid.
“That is why Mammy sighs so when she dresses me, and every one is so good to me. Perhaps Mrs. Minot doesn't really know, after all. She was dreadfully scared about Jack, and he is getting well. I'd like to ask Doctor, but he might find out about the letter. Oh, dear, why didn't I keep still and let the horrid thing alone!”
“That’s why Mammy sighs so much when she dresses me, and everyone is so nice to me. Maybe Mrs. Minot doesn’t really know, after all. She was really worried about Jack, and he’s getting better. I’d like to ask the doctor, but he might discover the letter. Oh, why didn’t I just keep quiet and leave that awful thing alone!”
As she thought that, Jill pushed the paper away, pulled herself up, and with much painful effort managed to get back to her sofa, where she laid herself down with a groan, feeling as if the twenty years had already passed over her since she tumbled off.
As she thought that, Jill pushed the paper away, sat up, and with a lot of effort managed to get back to her sofa, where she lay down with a groan, feeling like twenty years had already passed since she fell off.
“I've told a lie, for I said I wouldn't stir. I've hurt my back, I've done a mean thing, and I've got paid for it. A nice missionary I am; I'd better begin at home, as Mammy told me to;” and Jill groaned again, remembering her mother's words. “Now I've got another secret to keep all alone, for I'd be ashamed to tell the girls. I guess I'll turn round and study my spelling; then no one will see my face.”
“I've lied because I said I wouldn't move. I’ve hurt my back, I’ve done something terrible, and I’ve paid for it. What a great missionary I am; I should start at home, just like Mammy told me to;” and Jill sighed again, recalling her mother’s words. “Now I have another secret to keep all by myself, because I’d be embarrassed to tell the girls. I guess I’ll just turn around and study my spelling; then no one will see my face.”
Jill looked the picture of a good, industrious child as she lay with her back to the large table, her book held so that nothing was to be seen but one cheek and a pair of lips moving busily. Fortunately, it is difficult for little sinners to act a part, and, even if the face is hidden, something in the body seems to betray the internal remorse and shame. Usually, Jill lay flat and still; now her back was bent in a peculiar way as she leaned over her book, and one foot wagged nervously, while on the visible cheek was a Spanish stamp with a woman's face looking through the black bars, very suggestively, if she had known it. How long the minutes seemed till some one came, and what a queer little jump her heart gave when Mrs. Minot's voice said, cheerfully, “Jack is all right, and, I declare, so is Jill. I really believe there is a telegraph still working somewhere between you two, and each knows what the other is about without words.”
Jill looked like the perfect, hardworking child as she lay with her back to the big table, her book positioned so that only one cheek and a pair of lips moving busily were visible. Fortunately, it's tough for little troublemakers to play a role, and even if the face is out of sight, something about the body seems to reveal the inner guilt and shame. Usually, Jill lay flat and still; now her back was bent awkwardly as she leaned over her book, and one foot wagged nervously. On the visible cheek, there was a Spanish stamp with a woman's face peering through black bars, very suggestively, if she had realized it. The minutes felt endless until someone arrived, and her heart gave a strange little jump when Mrs. Minot's cheerful voice said, “Jack is all right, and, I declare, so is Jill. I really believe there's a telegraph still working somewhere between you two, and each knows what the other is doing without needing to say a word.”
“I didn't have any other book handy, so I thought I'd study awhile,” answered Jill, feeling that she deserved no praise for her seeming industry.
“I didn't have any other book available, so I thought I’d study for a while,” answered Jill, feeling that she deserved no praise for her apparent effort.
She cast a sidelong glance as she spoke, and seeing that Mrs. Minot was looking for the letter, hid her face and lay so still she could hear the rustle of the paper as it was taken from the floor. It was well she did not also see the quick look the lady gave her as she turned the letter and found a red stamp sticking to the under side, for this unlucky little witness told the story.
She shot a sideways glance while talking, and noticing that Mrs. Minot was searching for the letter, she hid her face and lay completely still, listening to the rustle of the paper as it was picked up from the floor. It was a good thing she didn’t see the quick look the lady gave her when she flipped the letter over and found a red stamp stuck to the underside, because that unfortunate little detail revealed everything.
Mrs. Minot remembered having seen the stamp lying close to the sofa when she left the room, for she had had half a mind to take it to Jack, but did not, thinking Frank's plan had some advantages. She also recollected that a paper flew off the table, but being in haste she had not stopped to see what it was. Now, the stamp and the letter could hardly have come together without hands, for they lay a yard apart, and here, also, on the unwritten portion of the page, was the mark of a small green thumb. Jill had been winding wool for a stripe in her new afghan, and the green ball lay on her sofa. These signs suggested and confirmed what Mrs. Minot did not want to believe; so did the voice, attitude, and air of Jill, all very unlike her usual open, alert ways.
Mrs. Minot remembered seeing the stamp lying near the sofa when she left the room because she had thought about taking it to Jack, but she didn't, thinking Frank's plan had some benefits. She also recalled that a piece of paper flew off the table, but since she was in a hurry, she hadn’t stopped to check what it was. Now, the stamp and the letter couldn’t have ended up together without someone’s help, as they were a yard apart, and there was also a mark of a small green thumb on the blank part of the page. Jill had been winding wool for a stripe in her new afghan, and the green ball was on her sofa. These clues suggested and confirmed what Mrs. Minot didn’t want to believe; so did Jill’s voice, attitude, and demeanor, which were all very unlike her usual open, alert self.
The kind lady could easily forgive the reading of her letter since the girl had found such sad news there, but the dangers of disobedience were serious in her case, and a glance showed that she was suffering either in mind or body—perhaps both.
The kind lady could easily forgive the girl for reading her letter since it contained such sad news, but the risks of disobedience were serious for her, and a look revealed that she was in distress either mentally or physically—maybe even both.
“I will wait for her to tell me. She is an honest child, and the truth will soon come out,” thought Mrs. Minot, as she took a clean sheet, and Jill tried to study.
“I'll wait for her to tell me. She’s an honest kid, and the truth will come out soon,” thought Mrs. Minot as she grabbed a clean sheet of paper, while Jill tried to study.
“Shall I hear your lesson, dear? Jack means to recite his like a good boy, so suppose you follow his example,” she said, presently.
“Do you want to hear your lesson, dear? Jack plans to recite his like a good boy, so why don’t you follow his example?” she said after a moment.
“I don't know as I can say it, but I'll try.”
“I’m not sure how to say it, but I’ll give it a shot.”
Jill did try, and got on bravely till she came to the word “permanent;” there she hesitated, remembering where she saw it last.
Jill made an effort and pressed on until she reached the word “permanent;” at that point, she paused, recalling where she had last seen it.
“Do you know what that means?” asked her teacher, thinking to help her on by defining the word.
“Do you know what that means?” her teacher asked, hoping to assist her by defining the word.
“Always—for a great while—or something like that; doesn't it?” faltered Jill, with a tight feeling in her throat, and the color coming up, as she tried to speak easily, yet felt so shame-stricken she could not.
"Always—for a long time—or something like that; doesn't it?" Jill hesitated, a tight feeling in her throat, and her face flushed as she tried to speak casually, but felt so ashamed that she couldn't.
“Are you in pain, my child? Never mind the lesson; tell me, and I'll do something for you.”
“Are you hurting, my child? Forget about the lesson; just tell me, and I'll help you.”
The kind words, the soft hand on her hot cheek, and the pity in the eyes that looked at her, were too much for Jill. A sob came first, and then the truth, told with hidden face and tears that washed the blush away, and set free the honest little soul that could not hide its fault from such a friend.
The kind words, the gentle touch on her flushed cheek, and the pity in the eyes that looked at her were overwhelming for Jill. She first let out a sob, and then the truth came out, hidden face and tears wiping away her embarrassment, releasing the honest little soul that couldn’t hide its mistake from such a friend.
“I knew it all before, and was sure you would tell me, else you would not be the child I love and like to help so well.”
“I already knew everything, and I was sure you would tell me; otherwise, you wouldn’t be the child I love and want to help so much.”
Then, while she soothed Jill's trouble, Mrs. Minot told her story and showed the letter, wishing to lessen, if possible, some part of the pain it had given.
Then, while she comforted Jill with her troubles, Mrs. Minot shared her story and showed the letter, hoping to ease some of the pain it had caused.
“Sly old stamp! To go and tell on me when I meant to own up, and get some credit if I could, after being so mean and bad,” said Jill, smiling through her tears when she saw the tell-tale witnesses against her.
“Sly old stamp! To go and snitch on me when I meant to confess and get some credit if I could, after being so mean and bad,” said Jill, smiling through her tears when she saw the tell-tale witnesses against her.
“You had better stick it in your book to remind you of the bad consequences of disobedience, then perhaps this lesson will leave a 'permanent' impression on your mind and memory,” answered Mrs. Minot, glad to see her natural gayety coming back, and hoping that she had forgotten the contents of the unfortunate letter. But she had not; and presently, when the sad affair had been talked over and forgiven, Jill asked, slowly, as she tried to put on a brave look,—
“You should probably stick it in your book to remind you of the negative consequences of disobedience; then maybe this lesson will make a 'lasting' impression on your mind and memory,” Mrs. Minot replied, pleased to see her natural cheerfulness returning, and hoping she had forgotten the content of the unfortunate letter. But she hadn’t; and soon, after they had discussed and forgiven the sad incident, Jill asked, slowly, as she attempted to put on a brave face,—
“Please tell me about Lucinda Snow. If I am to be like her, I might as well know how she managed to bear it so long.”
“Please tell me about Lucinda Snow. If I’m supposed to be like her, I might as well know how she put up with it for so long.”
“I'm sorry you ever heard of her, and yet perhaps it may help you to bear your trial, dear, which I hope will never be as heavy a one as hers. This Lucinda I knew for years, and though at first I thought her fate the saddest that could be, I came at last to see how happy she was in spite of her affliction, how good and useful and beloved.”
"I'm sorry you ever heard of her, but maybe it will help you get through your struggle, dear, which I hope won’t be as tough as hers. I knew Lucinda for years, and even though I initially thought her situation was the worst it could be, I eventually realized how happy she was despite her challenges, how good and helpful and loved she was."
“Why, how could she be? What did she do?” cried Jill, forgetting her own troubles to look up with an open, eager face again.
“Why, how could she be? What did she do?” cried Jill, forgetting her own troubles as she looked up with a bright, eager expression again.
“She was so patient, other people were ashamed to complain of their small worries; so cheerful, that her own great one grew lighter; so industrious, that she made both money and friends by pretty things she worked and sold to her many visitors. And, best of all, so wise and sweet that she seemed to get good out of everything, and make her poor room a sort of chapel where people went for comfort, counsel, and an example of a pious life. So, you see, Lucinda was not so very miserable after all.”
“She was incredibly patient that others felt embarrassed to voice their minor concerns; so cheerful that her own significant troubles felt lighter; so hardworking that she earned both money and friends through the lovely things she created and sold to her many visitors. And, best of all, so wise and kind that she seemed to find something good in everything, turning her small room into a kind of sanctuary where people came for comfort, advice, and a model of a faithful life. So, you see, Lucinda wasn’t as miserable as it might seem.”
“Well, if I could not be as I was, I'd like to be a woman like that. Only, I hope I shall not!” answered Jill, thoughtfully at first, then coming out so decidedly with the last words that it was evident the life of a bedridden saint was not at all to her mind.
“Well, if I couldn't be the way I am, I'd want to be a woman like that. But, I really hope I won't!” replied Jill, initially in a thoughtful tone, then expressing herself so firmly with the last words that it was clear the life of a bedridden saint was not at all appealing to her.
“So do I; and I mean to believe that you will not. Meantime, we can try to make the waiting as useful and pleasant as possible. This painful little back will be a sort of conscience to remind you of what you ought to do and leave undone, and so you can be learning obedience. Then, when the body is strong, it will have formed a good habit to make duty easier; and my Lucinda can be a sweet example, even while lying here, if she chooses.”
“So do I; and I truly believe that you won’t. In the meantime, let’s try to make the waiting as useful and enjoyable as possible. This painful little back will serve as a reminder of what you should and shouldn’t do, so you can learn obedience. Then, when your body is strong, it will have developed a good habit that makes fulfilling your duties easier; and my Lucinda can be a lovely example, even while lying here, if she chooses.”
“Can I?” and Jill's eyes were full of softer tears as the comfortable, cheering words sank into her heart, to blossom slowly by and by into her life, for this was to be a long lesson, hard to learn, but very useful in the years to come.
“Can I?” Jill's eyes were filled with gentle tears as the comforting, encouraging words settled into her heart, gradually taking root in her life, because this was going to be a long lesson, tough to grasp, but extremely valuable in the years ahead.
When the boys returned, after the Latin was recited and peace restored, Jack showed her a recovered stamp promptly paid by Frank, who was as just as he was severe, and Jill asked for the old red one, though she did not tell why she wanted it, nor show it put away in the spelling-book, a little seal upon a promise made to be kept.
When the boys came back, after they finished reciting Latin and everything was calm again, Jack showed her a stamp that Frank had quickly paid for. Frank was fair but strict, and Jill asked for the old red stamp, even though she didn’t say why she wanted it or show that she had tucked it away in her spelling book, a little seal on a promise to be kept.
Chapter VIII. Merry and Molly
Now let us see how the other missionaries got on with their tasks.
Now let's see how the other missionaries are doing with their tasks.
Farmer Grant was a thrifty, well-to-do man, anxious to give his children greater advantages than he had enjoyed, and to improve the fine place of which he was justly proud. Mrs. Grant was a notable housewife, as ambitious and industrious as her husband, but too busy to spend any time on the elegancies of life, though always ready to help the poor and sick like a good neighbor and Christian woman. The three sons—Tom, Dick, and Harry—were big fellows of seventeen, nineteen, and twenty-one; the first two on the farm, and the elder in a store just setting up for himself. Kind-hearted but rough-mannered youths, who loved Merry very much, but teased her sadly about her “fine lady airs,” as they called her dainty ways and love of beauty.
Farmer Grant was a practical, well-off man, eager to provide his children with better opportunities than he had and to enhance the beautiful property he was rightly proud of. Mrs. Grant was an exceptional homemaker, as ambitious and hardworking as her husband, but too occupied to focus on the finer things in life, although always willing to help the needy and the sick like a good neighbor and supportive Christian woman. The three sons—Tom, Dick, and Harry—were big guys aged seventeen, nineteen, and twenty-one; the first two worked on the farm, while the eldest was starting a business of his own. They were kind-hearted but a bit rough around the edges, who cared deeply for Merry but often teased her about her “fine lady airs,” as they called her delicate mannerisms and appreciation for beauty.
Merry was a thoughtful girl, full of innocent fancies, refined tastes, and romantic dreams, in which no one sympathized at home, though she was the pet of the family. It did seem, to an outsider, as if the delicate little creature had got there by mistake, for she looked very like a tea-rose in a field of clover and dandelions, whose highest aim in life was to feed cows and help make root beer.
Merry was a thoughtful girl, filled with innocent daydreams, refined tastes, and romantic aspirations, which no one at home understood, even though she was the family's favorite. To an outsider, it seemed as if this delicate little girl had ended up there by accident, as she resembled a tea rose in a field of clover and dandelions, whose main purpose in life was to feed cows and help make root beer.
When the girls talked over the new society, it pleased Merry very much, and she decided not only to try and love work better, but to convert her family to a liking for pretty things, as she called her own more cultivated tastes.
When the girls discussed the new society, Merry felt really happy about it, and she decided not only to work on loving her chores more but also to persuade her family to appreciate beautiful things, which she referred to as her own more refined tastes.
“I will begin at once, and show them that I don't mean to shirk my duty, though I do want to be nice,” thought she, as she sat at supper one night and looked about her, planning her first move.
“I'll get started right away and show them that I’m not avoiding my responsibilities, even though I really want to be pleasant,” she thought, as she sat down for dinner one night and looked around, planning her first step.
Not a very cheering prospect for a lover of the beautiful, certainly, for the big kitchen, though as neat as wax, had nothing lovely in it, except a red geranium blooming at the window. Nor were the people all that could be desired, in some respects, as they sat about the table shovelling in pork and beans with their knives, drinking tea from their saucers, and laughing out with a hearty “Haw, haw,” when anything amused them. Yet the boys were handsome, strong specimens, the farmer a hale, benevolent-looking man, the housewife a pleasant, sharp-eyed matron, who seemed to find comfort in looking often at the bright face at her elbow, with the broad forehead, clear eyes, sweet mouth, and quiet voice that came like music in among the loud masculine ones, or the quick, nervous tones of a woman always in a hurry.
Not a very uplifting sight for someone who loves beauty, for the large kitchen, although spotless, had nothing appealing in it except a red geranium blooming at the window. The people weren't exactly ideal either, as they sat around the table shoveling in pork and beans with their knives, drinking tea from their saucers, and bursting out with hearty “Haw, haw” laughter whenever they found something funny. Still, the boys were handsome, strong young men, the farmer looked healthy and kind, and the housewife was a pleasant, sharp-eyed woman who seemed to take comfort in frequently glancing at the cheerful face next to her, with the broad forehead, clear eyes, sweet mouth, and a calm voice that stood out among the loud men and the quick, nervous tones of a woman always in a rush.
Merry's face was so thoughtful that evening that her father observed it, for, when at home, he watched her as one watches a kitten, glad to see anything so pretty, young, and happy, at its play.
Merry's face was so pensive that evening that her father noticed it, for when they were home, he watched her like one observes a kitten, pleased to see something so lovely, youthful, and joyful, at play.
“Little daughter has got something on her mind, I mistrust. Come and tell father all about it,” he said, with a sounding slap on his broad knee as he turned his chair from the table to the ugly stove, where three pairs of wet boots steamed underneath, and a great kettle of cider apple-sauce simmered above.
“Little daughter has something on her mind, I suspect. Come and tell me all about it,” he said, giving a firm slap on his broad knee as he turned his chair from the table to the ugly stove, where three pairs of wet boots steamed underneath and a large pot of cider apple-sauce simmered above.
“When I've helped clear up, I'll come and talk. Now, mother, you sit down and rest; Roxy and I can do everything,” answered Merry, patting the old rocking-chair so invitingly that the tired woman could not resist, especially as watching the kettle gave her an excuse for obeying.
“When I’m done helping clean up, I’ll come and chat. Now, Mom, you sit down and relax; Roxy and I can handle everything,” replied Merry, patting the old rocking chair in such a cozy way that the tired woman couldn’t resist, especially since keeping an eye on the kettle gave her an excuse to comply.
“Well, I don't care if I do, for I've been on my feet since five o'clock. Be sure you cover things up, and shut the buttery door, and put the cat down cellar, and sift your meal. I'll see to the buckwheats last thing before I go to bed.”
"Well, I don't mind if I do, because I've been on my feet since five o'clock. Make sure you cover everything up, shut the pantry door, put the cat in the basement, and sift your flour. I'll take care of the buckwheat last thing before I head to bed."
Mrs. Grant subsided with her knitting, for her hands were never idle; Tom tilted his chair back against the wall and picked his teeth with his pen-knife; Dick got out a little pot of grease, to make the boots water-tight; and Harry sat down at the small table to look over his accounts, with an important air,—for every one occupied this room, and the work was done in the out-kitchen behind.
Mrs. Grant settled down with her knitting, since her hands were always busy; Tom leaned his chair back against the wall and picked at his teeth with his penknife; Dick pulled out a small pot of grease to make his boots waterproof; and Harry sat at the small table to review his accounts with a serious look—because everyone was using this room while the actual work was being done in the out-kitchen behind.
Merry hated clearing up, but dutifully did every distasteful task, and kept her eye on careless Roxy till all was in order; then she gladly went to perch on her father's knee, seeing in all the faces about her the silent welcome they always wore for the “little one.”
Merry hated cleaning up, but she faithfully tackled every unpleasant chore and kept an eye on careless Roxy until everything was tidy; then she happily perched on her father's knee, noticing the silent welcome in all the faces around her for the "little one."
“Yes, I do want something, but I know you will say it is silly,” she began, as her father pinched her blooming cheek, with the wish that his peaches would ever look half as well.
“Yes, I want something, but I know you'll think it's silly,” she began, as her father pinched her bright cheek, wishing his peaches could look half as good.
“Shouldn't wonder if it was a doll now;” and Mr. Grant stroked her head with an indulgent smile, as if she was about six instead of fifteen.
“Wouldn't be surprised if it was a doll now;” and Mr. Grant gently stroked her head with a caring smile, as if she were about six instead of fifteen.
“Why, father, you know I don't! I haven't played with dollies for years and years. No; I want to fix up my room pretty, like Jill's. I'll do it all myself, and only want a few things, for I don't expect it to look as nice as hers.”
“Why, Dad, you know I don't! I haven't played with dolls in ages. No; I want to decorate my room nicely, like Jill's. I'll do it all myself and just need a few things, because I don't expect it to look as nice as hers.”
Indignation gave Merry courage to state her wishes boldly, though she knew the boys would laugh. They did, and her mother said in a tone of surprise,—
Indignation gave Merry the courage to express her wishes confidently, even though she knew the boys would laugh. They did, and her mother remarked in a surprised tone,—
“Why, child, what more can you want? I'm sure your room is always as neat as a new pin, thanks to your bringing up, and I told you to have a fire there whenever you wanted to.”
“Why, kid, what else could you want? I'm sure your room is always as tidy as can be, thanks to how you were raised, and I told you to have a fire there whenever you felt like it.”
“Let me have some old things out of the garret, and I'll show you what I want. It is neat, but so bare and ugly I hate to be there. I do so love something pretty to look at!” and Merry gave a little shiver of disgust as she turned her eyes away from the large greasy boot Dick was holding up to be sure it was well lubricated all round.
“Let me grab some old stuff from the attic, and I'll show you what I want. It’s tidy, but so empty and ugly that I can't stand being there. I really love something nice to look at!” Merry said with a slight shiver of disgust as she turned her eyes away from the large, greasy boot Dick was holding up to make sure it was well oiled all around.
“So do I, and that's a fact. I couldn't get on without my pretty girl here, any way. Why, she touches up the old place better than a dozen flower-pots in full blow,” said the farmer, as his eye went from the scarlet geranium to the bright young face so near his own.
“So do I, and that's for sure. I couldn't get by without my lovely girl here, no way. Honestly, she brightens up the whole place more than a whole bunch of flowers in full bloom,” said the farmer, as his gaze shifted from the scarlet geranium to the bright young face right next to his own.
“I wish I had a dozen in the sitting-room window. Mother says they are not tidy, but I'd keep them neat, and I know you'd like it,” broke in Merry, glad of the chance to get one of the long-desired wishes of her heart fulfilled.
“I wish I had a dozen in the living room window. Mom says they’re not neat, but I’d keep them organized, and I know you’d like it,” interrupted Merry, excited to have a chance to fulfill one of the long-desired wishes of her heart.
“I'll fetch you some next time I go over to Ballad's. Tell me what you want, and we'll have a posy bed somewhere round, see if we don't,” said her father, dimly understanding what she wanted.
“I'll grab you some the next time I head over to Ballad's. Let me know what you want, and we'll have a flower bed somewhere around, just you wait,” her father said, vaguely realizing what she wanted.
“Now, if mother says I may fix my room, I shall be satisfied, and I'll do my chores without a bit of fuss, to show how grateful I am,” said the girl, thanking her father with a kiss, and smiling at her mother so wistfully that the good woman could not refuse.
“Now, if mom says I can clean my room, I’ll be happy, and I’ll do my chores without any complaints to show how grateful I am,” said the girl, giving her dad a kiss and smiling at her mom so hopefully that the kind woman couldn't say no.
“You may have anything you like out of the blue chest. There's a lot of things there that the moths got at after Grandma died, and I couldn't bear to throw or give 'em away. Trim up your room as you like, and mind you don't forget your part of the bargain,” answered Mrs. Grant, seeing profit in the plan.
“You can take whatever you want from the blue chest. There are a lot of things in there that the moths got to after Grandma died, and I couldn’t bring myself to throw them away or give them away. Organize your room however you like, and don’t forget your part of the deal,” Mrs. Grant replied, seeing the benefit in the plan.
“I won't; I'll work all the morning to-morrow, and in the afternoon I'll get ready to show you what I call a nice, pretty room,” answered Merry, looking so pleased it seemed as if another flower had blossomed in the large bare kitchen.
“I won't; I'll work all morning tomorrow, and in the afternoon I'll get ready to show you what I think is a nice, pretty room,” replied Merry, looking so happy it felt like another flower had bloomed in the large, empty kitchen.
She kept her word, and the very stormy afternoon when Jill got into trouble, Merry was working busily at her little bower. In the blue chest she found a variety of treasures, and ignoring the moth holes, used them to the best advantage, trying to imitate the simple comfort with a touch of elegance which prevailed in Mrs. Minot's back bedroom.
She kept her promise, and on that very stormy afternoon when Jill got into trouble, Merry was busy working at her little bower. In the blue chest, she found a mix of treasures, and despite the moth holes, she made the best of them, trying to capture the simple comfort with a hint of elegance that was present in Mrs. Minot's back bedroom.
Three faded red-moreen curtains went up at the windows over the chilly paper shades, giving a pleasant glow to the bare walls. A red quilt with white stars, rather the worse for many washings, covered the bed, and a gay cloth the table, where a judicious arrangement of books and baskets concealed the spots. The little air-tight stove was banished, and a pair of ancient andirons shone in the fire-light. Grandma's last and largest braided rug lay on the hearth, and her brass candlesticks adorned the bureau, over the mirror of which was festooned a white muslin skirt, tied up with Merry's red sash. This piece of elegance gave the last touch to her room, she thought, and she was very proud of it, setting forth all her small store of trinkets in a large shell, with an empty scent bottle, and a clean tidy over the pincushion. On the walls she hung three old-fashioned pictures, which she ventured to borrow from the garret till better could be found. One a mourning piece, with a very tall lady weeping on an urn in a grove of willows, and two small boys in knee breeches and funny little square tails to their coats, looking like cherubs in large frills. The other was as good as a bonfire, being an eruption of Vesuvius, and very lurid indeed, for the Bay of Naples was boiling like a pot, the red sky raining rocks, and a few distracted people lying flat upon the shore. The third was a really pretty scene of children dancing round a May-pole, for though nearly a hundred years old, the little maids smiled and the boys pranced as gayly as if the flowers they carried were still alive and sweet.
Three faded red curtains hung at the windows over the cold paper shades, giving a nice glow to the bare walls. A red quilt with white stars, a bit worse for wear after many washings, covered the bed, and a cheerful cloth adorned the table, where a careful arrangement of books and baskets hid the stains. The little airtight stove was removed, and a set of old andirons gleamed in the firelight. Grandma's last and largest braided rug lay on the hearth, and her brass candlesticks decorated the dresser, above which a white muslin skirt was draped, tied with Merry's red sash. This touch of elegance completed her room, making her very proud of it, as she displayed her small collection of trinkets in a large shell, along with an empty perfume bottle and a clean tidy over the pincushion. On the walls, she hung three old-fashioned pictures that she dared to borrow from the attic until she could find something better. One was a mourning piece, featuring a very tall lady weeping over an urn in a grove of willows, with two small boys in knee breeches and quirky little square-tailed coats looking like cherubs in large frills. The second was as dramatic as a bonfire, depicting an eruption of Vesuvius, with the Bay of Naples boiling like a pot, a red sky raining rocks, and a few panicking people lying flat on the shore. The third was a genuinely pretty scene of children dancing around a Maypole; though it was nearly a hundred years old, the little girls smiled and the boys pranced as happily as if the flowers they carried were still vibrant and sweet.
“Now I'll call them all to see, and say that it is pretty. Then I'll enjoy it, and come here when things look dismal and bare everywhere else,” said Merry, when at last it was done. She had worked all the afternoon, and only finished at supper time, so the candles had to be lighted that the toilette might look its best, and impress the beholders with an idea of true elegance. Unfortunately, the fire smoked a little, and a window was set ajar to clear the room; an evil-disposed gust blew in, wafting the thin drapery within reach of the light, and when Merry threw open the door proudly thinking to display her success, she was horrified to find the room in a blaze, and half her labor all in vain.
“Now I’ll call everyone in to see it and say that it looks beautiful. Then I’ll enjoy it and come here when everything else looks dreary and bare,” said Merry, once it was finally done. She had worked all afternoon and only finished around dinner time, so the candles had to be lit to make the décor look its best and impress everyone with a sense of true elegance. Unfortunately, the fire was smoking a bit, and a window was opened to clear the room; a sudden gust blew in, bringing the thin fabric too close to the flame. When Merry proudly threw open the door, thinking to show off her success, she was horrified to see the room on fire, and half her hard work wasted.
The conflagration was over in a minute, however, for the boys tore down the muslin and stamped out the fire with much laughter, while Mrs. Grant bewailed the damage to her carpet, and poor Merry took refuge in her father's arms, refusing to be comforted in spite of his kind commendation of “Grandma's fixins.”
The fire was gone in a minute, though, because the boys ripped down the muslin and put out the flames with lots of laughter, while Mrs. Grant cried over the damage to her carpet, and poor Merry hid in her father's arms, refusing to be comforted despite his kind praise of “Grandma's fixins.”
The third little missionary had the hardest time of all, and her first efforts were not much more satisfactory nor successful than the others. Her father was away from morning till night, and then had his paper to read, books to keep, or “a man to see down town,” so that, after a hasty word at tea, he saw no more of the children till another evening, as they were seldom up at his early breakfast. He thought they were well taken care of, for Miss Bathsheba Dawes was an energetic, middle-aged spinster when she came into the family, and had been there fifteen years, so he did not observe, what a woman would have seen at once, that Miss Bat was getting old and careless, and everything about the house was at sixes and sevens. She took good care of him, and thought she had done her duty if she got three comfortable meals, nursed the children when they were ill, and saw that the house did not burn up. So Maria Louisa and Napoleon Bonaparte got on as they could, without the tender cares of a mother. Molly had been a happy-go-lucky child, contented with her pets, her freedom, and little Boo to love; but now she was just beginning to see that they were not like other children, and to feel ashamed of it.
The third little missionary had the toughest time of all, and her first attempts were just as unsatisfactory and unsuccessful as the others. Her dad was gone from morning until night, and when he was home, he had his newspaper to read, books to manage, or “a guy to meet downtown,” so after a quick chat at dinner, he didn’t see the kids again until the next evening since they rarely got up for his early breakfast. He thought they were well taken care of because Miss Bathsheba Dawes was a capable, middle-aged single woman who had been with the family for fifteen years, so he didn’t notice, as a woman would have, that Miss Bat was getting older and more careless, and the house was in chaos. She took good care of him and believed she had done her job if she provided three decent meals, looked after the kids when they were sick, and made sure the house didn't burn down. So, Maria Louisa and Napoleon Bonaparte managed as best as they could without a mother's nurturing. Molly had always been a carefree child, happy with her pets, her freedom, and little Boo to love; but now she was starting to realize that they were different from other kids, and she began to feel ashamed of it.
“Papa is busy, but Miss Bat ought to see to us; she is paid for it, and goodness knows she has an easy time now, for if I ask her to do anything, she groans over her bones, and tells me young folks should wait on themselves. I take all the care of Boo off her hands, but I can't wash my own things, and he hasn't a decent trouser to his blessed little legs. I'd tell papa, but it wouldn't do any good; he'd only say, 'Yes, child, yes, I'll attend to it,' and never do a thing.”
“Dad is busy, but Miss Bat should be taking care of us; that’s what she’s paid for, and honestly, she's got it easy now. Whenever I ask her to do anything, she lets out a groan and says young people should take care of themselves. I handle all of Boo's needs, but I can’t wash my own clothes, and he doesn’t have a decent pair of pants for his little legs. I’d tell Dad, but it wouldn’t change anything; he’d just say, ‘Yes, sweetheart, yes, I’ll take care of it,’ and then not do anything.”
This used to be Molly's lament, when some especially trying event occurred, and if the girls were not there to condole with her, she would retire to the shed-chamber, call her nine cats about her, and, sitting in the old bushel basket, pull her hair about her ears, and scold all alone. The cats learned to understand this habit, and nobly did their best to dispel the gloom which now and then obscured the sunshine of their little mistress. Some of them would creep into her lap and purr till the comfortable sound soothed her irritation; the sedate elders sat at her feet blinking with such wise and sympathetic faces, that she felt as if half a dozen Solomons were giving her the sagest advice; while the kittens frisked about, cutting up their drollest capers till she laughed in spite of herself. When the laugh came, the worst of the fit was over, and she soon cheered up, dismissing the consolers with a pat all round, a feast of good things from Miss Bat's larder, and the usual speech:—
This used to be Molly's complaint whenever something particularly challenging happened. If the girls weren't around to comfort her, she'd retreat to the shed, call her nine cats over, sit in the old bushel basket, mess with her hair, and scold by herself. The cats learned to pick up on this routine and did their best to lift the mood that sometimes darkened their little owner's spirits. Some would curl up in her lap and purr until the soothing sound calmed her down; the older ones would sit by her feet, blinking with such wise and understanding expressions that it felt like half a dozen Solomons were giving her the best advice. Meanwhile, the kittens would play around, doing their silliest antics until she laughed despite herself. Once the laughter came, the worst of her bad mood was behind her, and she would soon perk up, sending the comforters off with a pat for each one, a treat from Miss Bat's pantry, and her usual speech:—
“Well, dears, it's of no use to worry. I guess we shall get along somehow, if we don't fret.”
“Well, dear ones, there's no point in worrying. I think we'll manage somehow, as long as we don’t stress out.”
With which wise resolution, Molly would leave her retreat and freshen up her spirits by a row on the river or a romp with Boo, which always finished the case. Now, however, she was bound to try the new plan and do something toward reforming not only the boy's condition, but the disorder and discomfort of home.
With this wise decision, Molly would leave her quiet spot and lift her spirits by going for a row on the river or playing with Boo, which always made her feel better. However, this time she was determined to try the new plan and do something to improve not only the boy's situation but also the chaos and unease at home.
“I'll play it is Siam, and this the house of a native, and I'm come to show the folks how to live nicely. Miss Bat won't know what to make of it, and I can't tell her, so I shall get some fun out of it, any way,” thought Molly, as she surveyed the dining-room the day her mission began.
“I'll pretend it's Siam, and this is a local's house, and I'm here to show everyone how to enjoy life. Miss Bat will be completely confused, and I can't explain it to her, so I'm just going to have some fun with it, no matter what,” thought Molly, as she looked around the dining room on the day her mission started.
The prospect was not cheering; and, if the natives of Siam live in such confusion, it is high time they were attended to. The breakfast-table still stood as it was left, with slops of coffee on the cloth; bits of bread, egg-shells, and potato-skins lay about, and one lonely sausage was cast away in the middle of a large platter. The furniture was dusty, stove untidy, and the carpet looked as if crumbs had been scattered to chickens who declined their breakfast. Boo was sitting on the sofa, with his arm through a hole in the cover, hunting for some lost treasure put away there for safe keeping, like a little magpie as he was. Molly fancied she washed and dressed him well enough; but to-day she seemed to see more clearly, and sighed as she thought of the hard job in store for her if she gave him the thorough washing he needed, and combed out that curly mop of hair.
The scene wasn’t encouraging; and if the people of Siam live in such chaos, it’s definitely time they got some help. The breakfast table was still set up as it had been left, with coffee stains on the cloth; crumbs, egg shells, and potato peels were scattered around, and one solitary sausage lay abandoned in the center of a large plate. The furniture was covered in dust, the stove was messy, and the carpet looked like crumbs had been tossed for chickens that refused to eat. Boo was sitting on the sofa, with his arm through a hole in the cover, searching for some hidden treasure he had stashed there, just like the little magpie he was. Molly thought she had washed and dressed him well enough; but today she seemed to see things more clearly, and sighed as she considered the tough task ahead of her if she really cleaned him up properly and sorted out that curly mop of hair.
“I'll clear up first and do that by and by. I ought to have a nice little tub and good towels, like Mrs. Minot, and I will, too, if I buy them myself,” she said, piling up cups with an energy that threatened destruction to handles.
“I'll sort that out first and do it later. I should have a nice little bathtub and good towels, like Mrs. Minot, and I will, even if I have to buy them myself,” she said, stacking cups with an energy that almost broke their handles.
Miss Bat, who was trailing about the kitchen, with her head pinned up in a little plaid shawl, was so surprised by the demand for a pan of hot water and four clean towels, that she nearly dropped her snuff-box, chief comfort of her lazy soul.
Miss Bat, who was wandering around the kitchen with her head wrapped in a little plaid shawl, was so taken aback by the request for a pan of hot water and four clean towels that she almost dropped her snuff box, the main comfort of her laid-back life.
“What new whimsey now? Generally, the dishes stand round till I have time to pick 'em up, and you are off coasting or careering somewhere. Well, this tidy fit won't last long, so I may as well make the most of it,” said Miss Bat, as she handed out the required articles, and then pushed her spectacles from the tip of her sharp nose to her sharper black eyes for a good look at the girl who stood primly before her, with a clean apron on and her hair braided up instead of flying wildly about her shoulders.
“What new nonsense now? Usually, the dishes sit around until I have time to pick them up, while you’re off gliding or racing around somewhere. Well, this neat mood won’t last long, so I might as well take advantage of it,” said Miss Bat, as she handed out the needed items, then pushed her glasses from the tip of her sharp nose to her even sharper black eyes for a good look at the girl who stood properly before her, wearing a clean apron and with her hair neatly braided instead of flying wildly around her shoulders.
“Umph!” was all the comment that Miss Bat made on this unusual neatness, and she went on scraping her saucepans, while Molly returned to her work, very well pleased with the effect of her first step, for she felt that the bewilderment of Miss Bat would be a constant inspiration to fresh efforts.
“Umph!” was the only remark Miss Bat made about this unusual neatness, and she continued scraping her saucepans while Molly went back to her work, feeling very pleased with the impact of her first step, knowing that Miss Bat’s confusion would keep her inspired to keep trying.
An hour of hard work produced an agreeable change in the abode of the native, for the table was cleared, room swept and dusted, fire brightened, and the holes in the sofa-covering were pinned up till time could be found to mend them. To be sure, rolls of lint lay in corners, smears of ashes were on the stove hearth, and dust still lurked on chair rounds and table legs. But too much must not be expected of a new convert, so the young missionary sat down to rest, well pleased and ready for another attempt as soon as she could decide in what direction it should be made. She quailed before Boo as she looked at the unconscious innocent peacefully playing with the spotted dog, now bereft of his tail, and the lone sausage with which he was attempting to feed the hungry animal, whose red mouth always gaped for more.
An hour of hard work brought a noticeable change to the native's home; the table was cleared, the room swept and dusted, the fire brightened, and the holes in the sofa covering were pinned up until there was time to fix them. Of course, there were still rolls of lint in the corners, smudges of ash on the hearth, and dust still lurking on the chair rounds and table legs. But you can't expect too much from a new convert, so the young missionary sat down to rest, feeling satisfied and ready for another effort as soon as she figured out what direction to take. She felt intimidated by Boo as she watched the unaware child playing peacefully with the spotted dog, which had now lost its tail, and the single sausage with which he was trying to feed the hungry animal, whose red mouth was always open for more.
“It will be an awful job, and he is so happy I won't plague him yet. Guess I'll go and put my room to rights first, and pick up some clean clothes to put on him, if he is alive after I get through with him,” thought Molly, foreseeing a stormy passage for the boy, who hated a bath as much as some people hate a trip across the Atlantic.
“It’s going to be a terrible task, and he’s so happy that I won’t bother him yet. I suppose I’ll go tidy up my room first and grab some clean clothes for him, if he’s still alive after I’m done with him,” Molly thought, predicting a rough time for the boy, who hated baths as much as some people dislike a journey across the Atlantic.
Up she went, and finding the fire out felt discouraged, thought she would rest a little more, so retired under the blankets to read one of the Christmas books. The dinner-bell rang while she was still wandering happily in “Nelly's Silver Mine,” and she ran down to find that Boo had laid out a railroad all across her neat room, using bits of coal for sleepers and books for rails, over which he was dragging the yellow sled laden with a dismayed kitten, the tailless dog, and the remains of the sausage, evidently on its way to the tomb, for Boo took bites at it now and then, no other lunch being offered him.
Up she went, and finding the fire out felt discouraged, so she decided to rest a bit longer and crawled under the blankets to read one of the Christmas books. The dinner bell rang while she was still happily lost in “Nelly's Silver Mine,” and she rushed downstairs to discover that Boo had built a railroad all across her tidy room, using bits of coal for the ties and books for the tracks. He was dragging the yellow sled loaded with a confused kitten, the tailless dog, and the leftover sausage, clearly on its way to the trash, since Boo was taking bites out of it every now and then, as no other lunch was offered to him.
“Oh dear! why can't boys play without making such a mess,” sighed Molly, picking up the feathers from the duster with which Boo had been trying to make a “cocky-doo” of the hapless dog. “I'll wash him right after dinner, and that will keep him out of mischief for a while,” she thought, as the young engineer unsuspiciously proceeded to ornament his already crocky countenance with squash, cranberry sauce, and gravy, till he looked more like a Fiji chief in full war-paint than a Christian boy.
“Oh no! Why can't boys play without making such a mess?” sighed Molly, picking up the feathers from the duster that Boo had been using to try to turn the poor dog into a “cocky-doo.” “I’ll wash him right after dinner, and that should keep him out of trouble for a bit,” she thought, as the young engineer cluelessly continued to decorate his already messy face with squash, cranberry sauce, and gravy, making him look more like a Fiji chief in full war paint than a regular boy.
“I want two pails of hot water, please, Miss Bat, and the big tub,” said Molly, as the ancient handmaid emptied her fourth cup of tea, for she dined with the family, and enjoyed her own good cooking in its prime.
“I want two buckets of hot water, please, Miss Bat, and the big tub,” said Molly, as the old maid emptied her fourth cup of tea, since she dined with the family and enjoyed her own great cooking at its best.
“What are you going to wash now?”
“What are you going to wash next?”
“Boo—I'm sure he needs it enough;” and Molly could not help laughing as the victim added to his brilliant appearance by smearing the colors all together with a rub of two grimy hands, making a fine “Turner” of himself.
“Boo—I'm sure he needs it enough,” and Molly couldn’t help laughing as the victim made his brilliant appearance even better by smearing the colors together with two dirty hands, turning himself into a real mess.
“Now, Maria Louisa Bemis, you ain't going to cut up no capers with that child! The idea of a hot bath in the middle of the day, and him full of dinner, and croupy into the bargain! Wet a corner of a towel at the kettle-spout and polish him off if you like, but you won't risk his life in no bath-tubs this cold day.”
“Now, Maria Louisa Bemis, you’re not going to mess around with that kid! The thought of a hot bath in the middle of the day, with him just having eaten dinner, and being all croupy too! You can wet a corner of a towel at the kettle spout and wipe him down if you want, but you’re not risking his life in a bathtub on a cold day like this.”
Miss Bat's word was law in some things, so Molly had to submit, and took Boo away, saying, loftily, as she left the room,—
Miss Bat had the final say on some things, so Molly had to obey and took Boo away, saying, haughtily, as she left the room,—
“I shall ask father, and do it to-night, for I will not have my brother look like a pig.”
“I'll ask Dad and do it tonight because I won’t let my brother look like a pig.”
“My patience! how the Siamese do leave their things round,” she exclaimed, as she surveyed her room after making up the fire and polishing off Boo. “I'll put things in order, and then mend up my rags, if I can find my thimble. Now, let me see;” and she went to exploring her closet, bureau, and table, finding such disorder everywhere that her courage nearly gave out.
“My patience! The Siamese really leave their stuff everywhere,” she exclaimed, as she looked around her room after starting the fire and tidying up Boo. “I’ll organize everything, and then I’ll try to fix my rags if I can find my thimble. Now, let me see;” and she began searching through her closet, dresser, and table, discovering such chaos everywhere that her motivation nearly faded.
She had clothes enough, but all needed care; even her best dress had two buttons off, and her Sunday hat but one string. Shoes, skirts, books, and toys lay about, and her drawers were a perfect chaos of soiled ruffles, odd gloves, old ribbons, boot lacings, and bits of paper.
She had plenty of clothes, but they all needed attention; even her best dress was missing two buttons, and her Sunday hat only had one string. Shoes, skirts, books, and toys were scattered everywhere, and her drawers were a total mess of dirty ruffles, mismatched gloves, old ribbons, shoelaces, and scraps of paper.
“Oh, my heart, what a muddle! Mrs. Minot wouldn't think much of me if she could see that,” said Molly, recalling how that lady once said she could judge a good deal of a little girl's character and habits by a peep at her top drawer, and went on, with great success, to guess how each of the school-mates kept her drawer.
“Oh, my gosh, what a mess! Mrs. Minot wouldn't think much of me if she could see this,” said Molly, remembering how that lady once said she could learn a lot about a little girl's character and habits just by taking a look at her top drawer and went on, quite successfully, to guess how each of her classmates kept theirs.
“Come, missionary, clear up, and don't let me find such a glory-hole again, or I'll report you to the society,” said Molly, tipping the whole drawer-full out upon the bed, and beguiling the tiresome job by keeping up the new play.
“Come on, missionary, clean up, and don’t let me catch you with such a mess again, or I’ll report you to the society,” said Molly, dumping the entire drawer onto the bed and making the boring task more fun by continuing the new play.
Twilight came before it was done, and a great pile of things loomed up on her table, with no visible means of repair,—for Molly's work-basket was full of nuts, and her thimble down a hole in the shed-floor, where the cats had dropped it in their play.
Twilight fell before she finished, and a huge pile of stuff towered on her table, with no clear way to fix it—Molly's sewing basket was filled with nuts, and her thimble was stuck down a hole in the shed floor, where the cats had dropped it while playing.
“I'll ask Bat for hooks and tape, and papa for some money to buy scissors and things, for I don't know where mine are. Glad I can't do any more now! Being neat is such hard work!” and Molly threw herself down on the rug beside the old wooden cradle in which Boo was blissfully rocking, with a cargo of toys aboard.
“I'll ask Bat for some hooks and tape, and Dad for some money to buy scissors and other supplies because I can't find mine anywhere. I'm glad I can't do any more right now! Being organized is so much work!” And Molly flopped down on the rug next to the old wooden cradle, where Boo was happily rocking with a bunch of toys.
She watched her time, and as soon as her father had done supper, she hastened to say, before he got to his desk,—
She kept an eye on the clock, and as soon as her dad finished dinner, she rushed to speak up before he sat down at his desk,—
“Please, papa, I want a dollar to get some brass buttons and things to fix Boo's clothes with. He wore a hole in his new trousers coasting down the Kembles' steps. And can't I wash him? He needs it, and Miss Bat won't let me have a tub.”
“Please, Dad, I want a dollar to buy some brass buttons and stuff to fix Boo's clothes. He wore a hole in his new pants sliding down the Kembles' steps. And can I wash him? He really needs it, and Miss Bat won't let me use a tub.”
“Certainly, child, certainly; do what you like, only don't keep me. I must be off, or I shall miss Jackson, and he's the man I want;” and, throwing down two dollars instead of one, Mr. Bemis hurried away, with a vague impression that Boo had swallowed a dozen brass buttons, and Miss Bat had been coasting somewhere in a bath-pan; but catching Jackson was important, so he did not stop to investigate.
“Sure, kid, sure; do whatever you want, just don’t hold me up. I really need to go, or I’ll miss Jackson, and he’s the guy I’m looking for;” and, tossing down two dollars instead of one, Mr. Bemis rushed off, with a hazy thought that Boo might have swallowed a bunch of brass buttons, and Miss Bat had been sledding somewhere in a tub; but catching Jackson was crucial, so he didn’t take the time to check.
Armed with the paternal permission, Molly carried her point, and oh, what a dreadful evening poor Boo spent! First, he was decoyed upstairs an hour too soon, then put in a tub by main force and sternly scrubbed, in spite of shrieks that brought Miss Bat to the locked door to condole with the sufferer, scold the scrubber, and depart, darkly prophesying croup before morning.
With her father's permission, Molly got her way, and oh, what a terrible evening poor Boo had! First, he was lured upstairs an hour too early, then forcibly put in a tub and scrubbed harshly, despite his screams that brought Miss Bat to the locked door to comfort him, scold the person scrubbing him, and leave, ominously predicting croup before morning.
“He always howls when he is washed; but I shall do it, since you won't, and he must get used to it. I will not have people tell me he's neglected, if I can help it,” cried Molly, working away with tears in her eyes—for it was as hard for her as for Boo; but she meant to be thorough for once in her life, no matter what happened.
“He always howls when he gets a bath, but I’m going to do it since you won’t, and he needs to get used to it. I don’t want anyone saying he’s neglected if I can prevent it,” cried Molly, working away with tears in her eyes—because it was just as hard for her as it was for Boo; but she was determined to be thorough for once in her life, no matter what happened.
When the worst was over, she coaxed him with candy and stories till the long task of combing out the curls was safely done; then, in the clean night-gown with a blue button newly sewed on, she laid him in bed, worn out, but sweet as a rose.
When it was all over, she sweet-talked him with candy and stories until she had successfully combed out the curls; then, in the fresh nightgown with a new blue button sewn on, she tucked him into bed, exhausted, but as sweet as can be.
“Now, say your prayers, darling, and go to sleep with the nice red blanket all tucked round so you won't get cold,” said Molly, rather doubtful of the effect of the wet head.
“Now, say your prayers, sweetie, and go to sleep with the nice red blanket all wrapped around you so you won't get cold,” said Molly, a bit unsure about how the wet hair would affect things.
“No, I won't! Going to sleep now!” and Boo shut his eyes wearily, feeling that his late trials had not left him in a prayerful mood.
“No, I won't! I'm going to sleep now!” and Boo closed his eyes tiredly, feeling that his recent struggles hadn’t put him in a prayerful mood.
“Then you'll be a real little heathen, as Mrs. Pecq called you, and I don't know what I shall do with you,” said Molly, longing to cuddle rather than scold the little fellow, whose soul needed looking after as well as his body.
“Then you'll be a real little troublemaker, as Mrs. Pecq called you, and I don't know what I'm going to do with you,” said Molly, eager to hug rather than scold the little guy, whose spirit needed care as much as his body.
“No, no; I won't be a heevin! I don't want to be frowed to the trockindiles. I will say my prayers! oh, I will!” and, rising in his bed, Boo did so, with the devotion of an infant Samuel, for he remembered the talk when the society was formed.
“No, no; I won’t be a heathen! I don’t want to be thrown to the torturers. I will say my prayers! Oh, I will!” And, sitting up in his bed, Boo did just that, with the devotion of a young Samuel, as he recalled the conversation when the society was formed.
Molly thought her labors were over for that night, and soon went to bed, tired with her first attempts. But toward morning she was wakened by the hoarse breathing of the boy, and was forced to patter away to Miss Bat's room, humbly asking for the squills, and confessing that the prophecy had come to pass.
Molly figured her work was done for the night and soon went to bed, worn out from her first efforts. But early in the morning, she was awakened by the boy’s raspy breathing and had to hurry over to Miss Bat's room, politely asking for the squills and admitting that the prediction had come true.
“I knew it! Bring the child to me, and don't fret. I'll see to him, and next time you do as I say,” was the consoling welcome she received as the old lady popped up a sleepy but anxious face in a large flannel cap, and shook the bottle with the air of a general who had routed the foe before and meant to do it again.
“I knew it! Bring the child to me, and don’t worry. I’ll take care of him, and next time, just do what I say,” was the reassuring welcome she got as the old lady appeared with a drowsy but worried face under a big flannel cap, shaking the bottle like a general who had defeated an enemy before and was ready to do it again.
Leaving her little responsibility in Miss Bat's arms, Molly retired to wet her pillow with a few remorseful tears, and to fall asleep, wondering if real missionaries ever killed their pupils in the process of conversion.
Leaving her small responsibility in Miss Bat's care, Molly went to wet her pillow with a few remorseful tears and fell asleep, wondering if real missionaries ever harmed their students during the process of conversion.
So the girls all failed in the beginning; but they did not give up, and succeeded better next time, as we shall see.
So the girls all struggled at first, but they didn’t give up, and they did even better the next time, as we'll see.
Chapter IX. The Debating Club
“Look here, old man, we ought to have a meeting. Holidays are over, and we must brace up and attend to business,” said Frank to Gus, as they strolled out of the schoolyard one afternoon in January, apparently absorbed in conversation, but in reality waiting for a blue cloud and a scarlet feather to appear on the steps.
“Hey, man, we should have a meeting. The holidays are over, and we need to get back to business,” said Frank to Gus, as they walked out of the schoolyard one afternoon in January, seemingly deep in conversation, but actually waiting for a blue cloud and a red feather to show up on the steps.
“All right. When, where, and what?” asked Gus, who was a man of few words.
“All right. When, where, and what?” asked Gus, a man of few words.
“To-night, our house, subject, 'Shall girls go to college with us?' Mother said we had better be making up our minds, because every one is talking about it, and we shall have to be on one side or the other, so we may as well settle it now,” answered Frank, for there was an impression among the members that all vexed questions would be much helped by the united eloquence and wisdom of the club.
“To-night, our house topic is 'Should girls go to college with us?' Mom said we should start making up our minds because everyone is talking about it, and we’ll have to choose a side, so we might as well figure it out now,” Frank replied, since the members believed that all contentious issues would benefit from the combined insight and arguments of the club.
“Very good; I'll pass the word and be there. Hullo, Neddy! The D.C. meets to-night, at Minot's, seven sharp. Co-ed, &c.,” added Gus, losing no time, as a third boy came briskly round the corner, with a little bag in his hand.
“Sounds good; I'll spread the word and show up. Hey, Neddy! The D.C. is meeting tonight at Minot's, seven o'clock sharp. Co-ed, etc.,” added Gus, not wasting any time, as a third boy came around the corner quickly, holding a small bag in his hand.
“I'll come. Got home an hour earlier to-night, and thought I'd look you up as I went by,” responded Ed Devlin, as he took possession of the third post, with a glance toward the schoolhouse to see if a seal-skin cap, with a long, yellow braid depending therefrom, was anywhere in sight.
“I'll come by. I got home an hour earlier tonight and thought I'd stop by as I passed,” Ed Devlin replied, taking his place at the third post while glancing toward the schoolhouse to see if a seal-skin cap, with a long yellow braid hanging down from it, was anywhere in sight.
“Very good of you, I'm sure,” said Gus, ironically, not a bit deceived by this polite attention.
“Really nice of you, I’m sure,” said Gus, sarcastically, not fooled at all by this polite gesture.
“The longest way round is sometimes the shortest way home, hey, Ed?” and Frank gave him a playful poke that nearly sent him off his perch.
“The longest way around is sometimes the quickest way home, right, Ed?” and Frank gave him a playful poke that almost knocked him off his seat.
Then they all laughed at some joke of their own, and Gus added, “No girls coming to hear us to-night. Don't think it, my son.
Then they all laughed at some inside joke, and Gus said, “No girls are coming to listen to us tonight. Don’t even think it, my son."
“More's the pity,” and Ed shook his head regretfully over the downfall of his hopes.
"That's too bad," Ed said, shaking his head in disappointment over the collapse of his hopes.
“Can't help it; the other fellows say they spoil the fun, so we have to give in, sometimes, for the sake of peace and quietness. Don't mind having them a bit myself,” said Frank, in such a tone of cheerful resignation that they laughed again, for the “Triangle,” as the three chums were called, always made merry music.
“Can’t help it; the other guys say they ruin the fun, so we have to give in sometimes for the sake of peace and quiet. I don’t really mind having them around a bit myself,” said Frank, in such a tone of cheerful resignation that they laughed again, because the “Triangle,” as the three friends were called, always made cheerful music.
“We must have a game party next week. The girls like that, and so do I,” candidly observed Gus, whose pleasant parlors were the scene of many such frolics.
“We need to have a game night next week. The girls enjoy that, and I do too,” Gus said openly, whose lovely home was the setting for many of these fun gatherings.
“And so do your sisters and your cousins and your aunts,” hummed Ed, for Gus was often called Admiral because he really did possess three sisters, two cousins, and four aunts, besides mother and grandmother, all living in the big house together.
“And so do your sisters, cousins, and aunts,” hummed Ed, because Gus was often called Admiral since he really did have three sisters, two cousins, and four aunts, in addition to his mother and grandmother, all living together in the big house.
The boys promptly joined in the popular chorus, and other voices all about the yard took it up, for the “Pinafore” epidemic raged fearfully in Harmony Village that winter.
The boys quickly joined in the popular song, and other voices around the yard joined in too, because the “Pinafore” craze was spreading rapidly in Harmony Village that winter.
“How's business?” asked Gus, when the song ended, for Ed had not returned to school in the autumn, but had gone into a store in the city.
“How’s business?” Gus asked when the song ended, since Ed hadn’t come back to school in the fall but had taken a job at a store in the city.
“Dull; things will look up toward spring, they say. I get on well enough, but I miss you fellows dreadfully;” and Ed put a hand on the broad shoulder of each friend, as if he longed to be a school-boy again.
“Things will get better by spring, or so they say. I'm doing fine, but I miss you guys a lot;” and Ed placed a hand on each of his friends' broad shoulders, as if he wished he could go back to being a schoolboy again.
“Better give it up and go to college with me next year,” said Frank, who was preparing for Boston University, while Gus fitted for Harvard.
“Better give it up and come to college with me next year,” said Frank, who was getting ready for Boston University, while Gus was preparing for Harvard.
“No; I've chosen business, and I mean to stick to it, so don't you unsettle my mind. Have you practised that March?” asked Ed, turning to a gayer subject, for he had his little troubles, but always looked on the bright side of things.
“No; I've chosen business, and I plan to stick with it, so don't confuse me. Have you practiced that March?” asked Ed, shifting to a more cheerful topic, because he had his own little issues but always tried to see the positive side of things.
“Skating is so good, I don't get much time. Come early, and we'll have a turn at it.”
“Skating is really fun, but I don’t have much time. Come early, and we’ll take our turn.”
“I will. Must run home now.”
“I will. I have to head home now.”
“Pretty cold loafing here.”
“Really cold hanging out here.”
“Mail is in by this time.”
"Mail should have arrived now."
And with these artless excuses the three boys leaped off the posts, as if one spring moved them, as a group of girls came chattering down the path. The blue cloud floated away beside Frank, the scarlet feather marched off with the Admiral, while the fur cap nodded to the gray hat as two happy faces smiled at each other.
And with these simple excuses, the three boys jumped off the posts, as if they were all moved by the same spring, just as a group of girls came chatting down the path. The blue cloud floated away with Frank, the red feather strutted off with the Admiral, while the fur hat tipped to the gray hat as two happy faces smiled at each other.
The same thing often happened, for twice a-day the streets were full of young couples walking to and from school together, smiled at by the elders, and laughed at by the less susceptible boys and girls, who went alone or trooped along in noisy groups. The prudent mothers had tried to stop this guileless custom, but found it very difficult, as the fathers usually sympathized with their sons, and dismissed the matter with the comfortable phrase, “Never mind; boys will be boys.” “Not forever,” returned the anxious mammas, seeing the tall lads daily grow more manly, and the pretty daughters fast learning to look demure when certain names were mentioned.
The same thing often happened, as twice a day the streets were filled with young couples walking to and from school together, smiled at by the elders and laughed at by the less interested boys and girls, who either walked alone or hung out in noisy groups. The concerned mothers tried to put a stop to this innocent custom, but found it very difficult, as the fathers usually sided with their sons and brushed it off with the comforting phrase, “Never mind; boys will be boys.” “Not forever,” replied the worried moms, watching the tall boys become more manly each day and the pretty daughters quickly learning to look modest when certain names were brought up.
It could not be stopped without great parental sternness and the danger of deceit, for co-education will go on outside of school if not inside, and the safest way is to let sentiment and study go hand in hand, with teachers and parents to direct and explain the great lesson all are the better for learning soon or late. So the elders had to give in, acknowledging that this sudden readiness to go to school was a comfort, that the new sort of gentle emulation worked wonders in lazy girls and boys, and that watching these “primrose friendships” bud, blossom, and die painless deaths, gave a little touch of romance to their own work-a-day lives.
It couldn't be stopped without strong parental discipline and the risk of dishonesty, because co-education will continue outside of school if not inside, and the best approach is to let emotions and academics go together, with teachers and parents guiding and explaining the important lesson everyone benefits from learning eventually. So, the older generations had to accept it, realizing that this sudden eagerness to go to school was reassuring, that this new kind of gentle competition had a positive effect on lazy girls and boys, and that witnessing these “primrose friendships” grow, flourish, and end gracefully added a touch of romance to their everyday lives.
“On the whole I'd rather have my sons walking, playing, and studying with bright, well-mannered girls, than always knocking about with rough boys,” said Mrs. Minot at one of the Mothers' Meetings, where the good ladies met to talk over their children, and help one another to do their duty by them.
“Overall, I’d prefer my sons to be walking, playing, and studying with bright, well-mannered girls rather than always hanging out with rowdy boys,” said Mrs. Minot at one of the Mothers' Meetings, where the ladies gathered to discuss their children and support each other in doing right by them.
“I find that Gus is more gentle with his sisters since Juliet took him in hand, for he wants to stand well with her, and they report him if he troubles them. I really see no harm in the little friendship, though I never had any such when I was a girl,” said Mrs. Burton, who adored her one boy and was his confidante.
“I notice that Gus is nicer to his sisters now that Juliet has taken him under her wing, since he wants to impress her, and they tell her if he bothers them. I honestly don’t see any issue with their little friendship, even though I never had anything like that when I was a girl,” said Mrs. Burton, who cherished her only son and was his confidante.
“My Merry seems to be contented with her brothers so far, but I shouldn't wonder if I had my hands full by and by,” added Mrs. Grant, who already foresaw that her sweet little daughter would be sought after as soon as she should lengthen her skirts and turn up her bonny brown hair.
“My Merry seems to be happy with her brothers so far, but I wouldn’t be surprised if I have my hands full soon,” added Mrs. Grant, who already predicted that her sweet little daughter would be popular as soon as she grew up and styled her lovely brown hair.
Molly Loo had no mother to say a word for her, but she settled matters for herself by holding fast to Merry, and declaring that she would have no escort but faithful Boo.
Molly Loo had no mother to speak up for her, but she took charge of the situation by sticking close to Merry and insisting that she would only have faithful Boo as her escort.
It is necessary to dwell a moment upon this new amusement, because it was not peculiar to Harmony Village, but appears everywhere as naturally as the game parties and croquet which have taken the place of the husking frolics and apple-bees of olden times, and it is impossible to dodge the subject if one attempts to write of boys and girls as they really are nowadays.
It’s important to take a moment to discuss this new pastime because it’s not unique to Harmony Village; it seems to pop up everywhere just like the game nights and croquet that have replaced the old husking parties and apple-bees. You can’t avoid the topic if you’re trying to write about boys and girls as they truly are today.
“Here, my hero, see how you like this. If it suits, you will be ready to march as soon as the doctor gives the word,” said Ralph, coming into the Bird Room that evening with a neat little crutch under his arm.
“Here, my hero, see how you like this. If it works for you, you'll be ready to march as soon as the doctor gives the go-ahead,” said Ralph, entering the Bird Room that evening with a neat little crutch under his arm.
“Ha, ha, that looks fine! I'd like to try it right off, but I won't till I get leave. Did you make it yourself, Ral?” asked Jack, handling it with delight, as he sat bolt upright, with his leg on a rest, for he was getting on capitally now.
“Ha, ha, that looks great! I want to try it right away, but I won’t until I get permission. Did you make it yourself, Ral?” asked Jack, handling it with pleasure, as he sat up straight with his leg on a rest, since he was doing really well now.
“Mostly. Rather a neat job, I flatter myself.”
“Mostly. I think it’s a pretty good job, if I do say so myself.”
“I should say so. What a clever fellow you are! Any new inventions lately?” asked Frank, coming up to examine and admire.
“I should say so. What a clever guy you are! Any new inventions lately?” asked Frank, approaching to check it out and admire.
“Only an anti-snoring machine and an elbow-pad,” answered Ralph, with a twinkle in his eye, as if reminded of something funny.
“Just an anti-snoring machine and an elbow pad,” Ralph replied, a twinkle in his eye, as if he remembered something funny.
“Go on, and tell about them. I never heard of an anti-snorer. Jack better have one,” said Frank, interested at once.
“Go ahead and tell me about them. I’ve never heard of an anti-snorer. Jack better have one,” Frank said, suddenly interested.
“Well, a rich old lady kept her family awake with that lively music, so she sent to Shirtman and Codleff for something to stop it. They thought it was a good joke, and told me to see what I could do. I thought it over, and got up the nicest little affair you ever saw. It went over the mouth, and had a tube to fit the ear, so when the lady snored she woke herself up and stopped it. It suited exactly. I think of taking out a patent,” concluded Ralph, joining in the boys' laugh at the droll idea.
"Well, a wealthy old lady kept her family awake with that lively music, so she asked Shirtman and Codleff for something to stop it. They thought it was a funny joke and told me to see what I could come up with. I thought about it and created the cutest little gadget you’ve ever seen. It went over her mouth and had a tube that fit into her ear, so when the lady snored, she'd wake herself up and stop it. It worked perfectly. I’m thinking about getting a patent," concluded Ralph, laughing along with the boys at the funny idea.
“What was the pad?” asked Frank, returning to the small model of an engine he was making.
“What was the pad?” Frank asked, focusing again on the small model of the engine he was working on.
“Oh, that was a mere trifle for a man who had a tender elbow-joint and wanted something to protect it. I made a little pad to fit on, and his crazy-bone was safe.”
“Oh, that was just a small thing for a guy who had a sensitive elbow and needed something to shield it. I made a little pad to put on, and his funny bone was protected.”
“I planned to have you make me a new leg if this one was spoilt,” said Jack, sure that his friend could invent anything under the sun.
“I was going to have you build me a new leg if this one was messed up,” said Jack, confident that his friend could create anything imaginable.
“I'd do my best for you. I made a hand for a fellow once, and that got me my place, you know,” answered Ralph, who thought little of such mechanical trifles, and longed to be painting portraits or modelling busts, being an artist as well as an inventor.
“I'll do my best for you. I once built a hand for someone, and that got me my spot, you know,” replied Ralph, who thought little of such mechanical things and longed to be painting portraits or sculpting busts, being an artist as well as an inventor.
Here Gus, Ed, and several other boys came in, and the conversation became general. Grif, Chick, and Brickbat were three young gentlemen whose own respectable names were usually ignored, and they cheerfully answered to these nicknames.
Here Gus, Ed, and several other guys came in, and the conversation became lively. Grif, Chick, and Brickbat were three young men whose actual names were often overlooked, and they happily responded to these nicknames.
As the clock struck seven, Frank, who ruled the club with a rod of iron when Chairman, took his place behind the study table. Seats stood about it, and a large, shabby book lay before Gus, who was Secretary, and kept the records with a lavish expenditure of ink, to judge by the blots. The members took their seats, and nearly all tilted back their chairs and put their hands in their pockets, to keep them out of mischief; for, as every one knows, it is impossible for two lads to be near each other and refrain from tickling or pinching. Frank gave three raps with an old croquet-mallet set on a short handle, and with much dignity opened the meeting.
As the clock hit seven, Frank, who ran the club with an iron fist when he was Chairman, took his spot behind the study table. Chairs surrounded it, and a large, worn-out book lay in front of Gus, the Secretary, who kept the records with a generous use of ink, judging by the smudges. The members took their seats, and almost all of them leaned back in their chairs and shoved their hands in their pockets to keep them out of trouble; because, as everyone knows, it's impossible for two guys to be close together without tickling or pinching each other. Frank tapped three times with an old croquet mallet that had a short handle, and with a lot of dignity, he started the meeting.
“Gentlemen, the business of the club will be attended to, and then we will discuss the question, 'Shall girls go to our colleges?' The Secretary will now read the report of the last meeting.”
“Gentlemen, we will take care of the club’s business, and then we will discuss the question, 'Should girls be allowed in our colleges?' The Secretary will now read the report from the last meeting.”
Clearing his throat, Gus read the following brief and elegant report:—
Clearing his throat, Gus read the following short and stylish report:—
“Club met, December 18th, at the house of G. Burton, Esq. Subject: 'Is summer or winter best fun?' A lively pow-wow. About evenly divided. J. Flint fined five cents for disrespect to the Chair. A collection of forty cents taken up to pay for breaking a pane of glass during a free fight of the members on the door-step. E. Devlin was chosen Secretary for the coming year, and a new book contributed by the Chairman.”
“Club met on December 18th at the house of G. Burton, Esq. Subject: 'Which is more fun, summer or winter?' A lively debate ensued. Opinions were about evenly split. J. Flint was fined five cents for showing disrespect to the Chair. A collection of forty cents was taken up to cover the cost of a broken pane of glass during a scuffle among the members on the doorstep. E. Devlin was elected Secretary for the upcoming year, and a new book was contributed by the Chairman.”
“That's all.”
"That's it."
“Is there any other business before the meeting?” asked Frank, as the reader closed the old book with a slam and shoved the new one across the table.
“Is there any other business before the meeting?” asked Frank, as the reader closed the old book with a bang and pushed the new one across the table.
Ed rose, and glancing about him with an appealing look, said, as if sure his proposition would not be well received, “I wish to propose the name of a new member. Bob Walker wants to join, and I think we ought to let him. He is trying to behave well, and I am sure we could help him. Can't we?”
Ed stood up, looked around with a hopeful expression, and said, as if he expected his suggestion to be met with resistance, “I’d like to propose a new member. Bob Walker wants to join, and I think we should allow him. He’s trying to improve himself, and I’m sure we could support him. Can’t we?”
All the boys looked sober, and Joe, otherwise Brickbat, said, bluntly, “I won't. He's a bad lot, and we don't want any such here. Let him go with chaps of his own sort.”
All the boys looked serious, and Joe, also known as Brickbat, said straightforwardly, “I won't. He's trouble, and we don't want any of that here. Let him hang out with people like him.”
“That is just what I want to keep him from! He's a good-hearted boy enough, only no one looks after him; so he gets into scrapes, as we should, if we were in his place, I dare say. He wants to come here, and would be so proud if he was let in, I know he'd behave. Come now, let's give him a chance,” and Ed looked at Gus and Frank, sure that if they stood by him he should carry his point.
"That's exactly what I want to prevent! He's a good-hearted kid, but nobody keeps an eye on him, so he gets into trouble, just like we would if we were in his position, I bet. He wants to come here, and he'd be so proud if we let him in; I know he'd act right. Come on, let's give him a chance," Ed said, looking at Gus and Frank, confident that if they backed him up, he could make it happen.
But Gus shook his head, as if doubtful of the wisdom of the plan, and Frank said gravely: “You know we made the rule that the number should never be over eight, and we cannot break it.”
But Gus shook his head, as if unsure about the wisdom of the plan, and Frank said seriously: “You know we made the rule that the number should never exceed eight, and we can't break it.”
“You needn't. I can't be here half the time, so I will resign and let Bob have my place,” began Ed, but he was silenced by shouts of “No, no, you shan't!” “We won't let you off!” “Club would go to smash, if you back out!”
“You don’t have to. I can’t be here half the time, so I’ll resign and let Bob take my spot,” Ed started, but he was interrupted by shouts of “No, no, you can’t!” “We won’t let you quit!” “The club would fall apart if you back out!”
“Let him have my place; I'm the youngest, and you won't miss me,” cried Jack, bound to stand by Ed at all costs.
“Let him take my spot; I’m the youngest, and you won’t even notice I’m gone,” shouted Jack, determined to support Ed no matter what.
“We might do that,” said Frank, who did object to small boys, though willing to admit this particular one.
“We might do that,” said Frank, who didn’t typically mind small boys, though he was open to accepting this one.
“Better make a new rule to have ten members, and admit both Bob and Tom Grant,” said Ralph, whereat Grif grinned and Joe scowled, for one lad liked Merry's big brother and the other did not.
“Better make a new rule to have ten members and let both Bob and Tom Grant join,” said Ralph, which made Grif smile and Joe frown, since one boy liked Merry's big brother and the other did not.
“That's a good idea! Put it to vote,” said Gus, too kind-hearted to shut the door on any one.
“That's a great idea! Let's put it to a vote,” said Gus, too nice to turn anyone away.
“First I want to ask if all you fellows are ready to stand by Bob, out of the club as well as in, for it won't do much good to be kind to him here and cut him at school and in the street,” said Ed, heartily in earnest about the matter.
“First, I want to ask if all you guys are ready to support Bob, both in the club and outside of it, because it won't help much to be nice to him here and then ignore him at school and on the street,” Ed said, genuinely serious about the issue.
“I will!” cried Jack, ready to follow where his beloved friend led, and the others nodded, unwilling to be outdone by the youngest member.
“I will!” shouted Jack, eager to follow wherever his beloved friend went, and the others nodded, not wanting to be outdone by the youngest member.
“Good! With all of us to lend a hand, we can do a great deal; and I tell you, boys, it is time, if we want to keep poor Bob straight. We all turn our backs on him, so he loafs round the tavern, and goes with fellows we don't care to know. But he isn't bad yet, and we can keep him up, I'm sure, if we just try. I hope to get him into the Lodge, and that will be half the battle, won't it, Frank?” added Ed, sure that this suggestion would have weight with the honorable Chairman.
“Great! With all of us pitching in, we can accomplish a lot; and I’m telling you, guys, it’s time to step in if we want to help poor Bob. We’ve all turned our backs on him, so he’s hanging out at the tavern and associating with people we don’t want to know. But he’s not a lost cause yet, and I know we can support him if we really try. I hope to get him into the Lodge, and that will be half the battle, right, Frank?” Ed added, confident that this idea would resonate with the Chairman.
“Bring him along; I'm with you!” answered Frank, making up his mind at once, for he had joined the Temperance Lodge four years ago, and already six boys had followed his example.
“Bring him with us; I'm in!” Frank replied, deciding right away, since he had joined the Temperance Lodge four years ago, and already six boys had followed his lead.
“He is learning to smoke, but we'll make him drop it before it leads to worse. You can help him there, Admiral, if you only will,” added Ed, giving a grateful look at one friend, and turning to the other.
“He's learning to smoke, but we'll get him to quit before it leads to worse things. You can help him with that, Admiral, if you're willing,” Ed added, giving a thankful glance at one friend and turning to the other.
“I'm your man;” and Gus looked as if he knew what he promised, for he had given up smoking to oblige his father, and kept his word like a hero.
“I’m your man,” Gus said, and he looked like he understood the promise he made, because he had quit smoking to please his father and kept his word like a true champion.
“You other fellows can do a good deal by just being kind and not twitting him with old scrapes, and I'll do anything I can for you all to pay for this;” and Ed sat down with a beaming smile, feeling that his cause was won.
“You guys can really help by just being nice and not bringing up his past mistakes, and I’ll do whatever I can for all of you to make up for this;” and Ed sat down with a big smile, feeling like he had won.
The vote was taken, and all hands went up, for even surly Joe gave in; so Bob and Tom were duly elected, and proved their gratitude for the honor done them by becoming worthy members of the club. It was only boys' play now, but the kind heart and pure instincts of one lad showed the others how to lend a helping hand to a comrade in danger, and win him away from temptation to the safer pastimes of their more guarded lives.
The vote was in, and everyone raised their hands, even grumpy Joe agreed; so Bob and Tom were officially elected and showed their appreciation for the honor by becoming valuable members of the club. It was just boys having fun now, but the kind heart and good instincts of one boy demonstrated to the others how to help a friend in trouble and steer him away from temptation towards the safer activities of their more protected lives.
Well pleased with themselves—for every genuine act or word, no matter how trifling it seems, leaves a sweet and strengthening influence behind—the members settled down to the debate, which was never very long, and often only an excuse for fun of all sorts.
Well pleased with themselves—because every genuine act or word, no matter how small it seems, leaves a positive and uplifting impact behind—the members settled down to the debate, which was never very long and often just an excuse for all kinds of fun.
“Ralph, Gus, and Ed are for, and Brickbat, Grif, and Chick against, I suppose?” said Frank, surveying his company like a general preparing for battle.
“Ralph, Gus, and Ed are for it, and Brickbat, Grif, and Chick are against it, I guess?” said Frank, looking over his group like a general getting ready for a fight.
“No, sir! I believe in co-everything!” cried Chick, a mild youth, who loyally escorted a chosen damsel home from school every day.
“No, sir! I believe in co-everything!” shouted Chick, a gentle young man who faithfully walked a selected girl home from school every day.
A laugh greeted this bold declaration, and Chick sat down, red but firm.
A laugh greeted this bold statement, and Chick sat down, flushed but determined.
“I'll speak for two since the Chairman can't, and Jack won't go against those who pet him most to death,” said Joe, who, not being a favorite with the girls, considered them a nuisance and lost no opportunity of telling them so.
“I'll speak for both of us since the Chairman can't, and Jack isn't going to oppose those who spoil him the most,” said Joe, who, since he wasn't a favorite with the girls, saw them as a hassle and never missed a chance to let them know.
“Fire away, then, since you are up;” commanded Frank.
"Go ahead and shoot, since you're up," Frank ordered.
“Well,” began Joe, feeling too late how much he had undertaken, “I don't know a great deal about it, and I don't care, but I do not believe in having girls at college. They don't belong there, nobody wants 'em, and they'd better be at home darning their stockings.”
“Well,” started Joe, realizing a bit too late how much he had taken on, “I don’t know much about it, and honestly, I don’t care, but I do not believe in having girls at college. They don’t belong there, nobody wants them, and they’d be better off at home mending their stockings.”
“Yours, too,” put in Ralph, who had heard that argument so often he was tired of it.
“Yours, too,” added Ralph, who had heard that argument so many times he was tired of it.
“Of course; that's what girls are for. I don't mind 'em at school, but I'd just as soon they had a room to themselves. We should get on better.”
“Of course; that's what girls are for. I don't mind them at school, but I'd prefer if they had a room to themselves. We’d get along better.”
“You would if Mabel wasn't in your class and always ahead of you,” observed Ed, whose friend was a fine scholar, and he very proud of the fact.
“You would if Mabel wasn't in your class and always ahead of you,” noted Ed, whose friend was a great student, and he was very proud of that.
“Look here, if you fellows keep interrupting, I won't sit down for half an hour,” said Joe, well knowing that eloquence was not his gift, but bound to have his say out.
“Listen, if you guys keep interrupting, I won’t sit down for another half hour,” Joe said, fully aware that he wasn’t a great speaker but determined to get his point across.
Deep silence reigned, for that threat quelled the most impatient member, and Joe prosed on, using all the arguments he had ever heard, and paying off several old scores by sly hits of a personal nature, as older orators often do.
A deep silence filled the room, as that threat silenced even the most restless person. Joe kept talking, using every argument he had ever come across and settling some old grudges with subtle personal jabs, like seasoned speakers often do.
“It is clear to my mind that boys would get on better without any girls fooling round. As for their being as smart as we are, it is all nonsense, for some of 'em cry over their lessons every day, or go home with headaches, or get mad and scold all recess, because something 'isn't fair.' No, sir; girls ain't meant to know much, and they can't. Wise folks say so and I believe 'em. Haven't got any sisters myself, and I don't want any, for they don't seem to amount to much, according to those who do have 'em.”
“I honestly think boys would do better without any girls around. The idea that girls are just as smart as we are is ridiculous; some of them cry over their homework every day, go home with headaches, or get upset and complain all recess because something ‘isn't fair.’ No way; girls aren’t meant to know much, and they just can’t. Smart people say that, and I believe them. I don’t have any sisters myself, and I don’t want any, because they don’t seem to be worth much, at least according to those who do have them.”
Groans from Gus and Ed greeted the closing remarks of the ungallant Joe, who sat down, feeling that he had made somebody squirm. Up jumped Grif, the delight of whose life was practical jokes, which amiable weakness made him the terror of the girls, though they had no other fault to find with the merry lad.
Groans from Gus and Ed welcomed Joe’s ungracious closing remarks as he sat down, feeling like he had made someone uncomfortable. Grif jumped up; practical jokes were the highlight of his life, a fun trait that made him a source of fear for the girls, even though they had no other complaints about the cheerful guy.
“Mr. Chairman, the ground I take is this: girls have not the strength to go to college with us. They couldn't row a race, go on a lark, or take care of themselves, as we do. They are all well enough at home, and I like them at parties, but for real fun and go I wouldn't give a cent for them,” began Grif, whose views of a collegiate life were confined to the enjoyments rather than the studies of that festive period. “I have tried them, and they can't stand anything. They scream if you tell them there is a mouse in the room, and run if they see a big dog. I just put a cockroach in Molly's desk one day, and when she opened it she jumped as if she was shot.”
“Mr. Chairman, here’s my take: girls just don’t have the strength to attend college with us. They wouldn’t be able to row in a race, go on adventures, or look out for themselves like we do. They do just fine at home, and I enjoy their company at parties, but for real fun and excitement, I wouldn’t give a dime for them,” started Grif, whose view of college life focused more on the fun than the academics. “I’ve given them a chance, and they can’t handle anything. They scream if you mention a mouse in the room and run away when they see a big dog. I once put a cockroach in Molly's desk, and when she opened it, she jumped like she’d been shot.”
So did the gentlemen of the club, for at that moment half-a-dozen fire-crackers exploded under the chair Grif had left, and flew wildly about the room. Order was with difficulty restored, the mischievous party summarily chastised and commanded to hold his tongue, under penalty of ejectment from the room if he spoke again. Firmly grasping that red and unruly member, Grif composed himself to listen, with his nose in the air and his eyes shining like black beads.
So did the guys in the club, because at that moment half a dozen firecrackers went off under the chair Grif had just left and flew all around the room. It was hard to get order back, and the troublemaker was quickly punished and told to be quiet, with a warning that he'd be kicked out if he spoke again. Firmly holding onto that red and unruly thing, Grif settled down to listen, with his nose in the air and his eyes shining like black beads.
Ed was always the peace-maker, and now, when he rose with his engaging smile, his voice fell like oil upon the troubled waters, and his bright face was full of the becoming bashfulness which afflicts youths of seventeen when touching upon such subjects of newly acquired interest as girls and their pleasant but perplexing ways.
Ed was always the peacemaker, and now, when he stood up with his charming smile, his voice soothed the troubled atmosphere like oil on water, and his cheerful face showed the charming shyness that affects seventeen-year-olds when talking about new interests like girls and their delightful yet confusing ways.
“It seems to me we have hardly considered the matter enough to be able to say much. But I think that school would be awfully dry and dismal without—ahem!—any young ladies to make it nice. I wouldn't give a pin to go if there was only a crowd of fellows, though I like a good game as well as any man. I pity any boy who has no sisters,” continued Ed, warming up as he thought of his own, who loved him dearly, as well they might, for a better brother never lived. “Home wouldn't be worth having without them to look after a fellow, to keep him out of scrapes, help him with his lessons, and make things jolly for his friends. I tell you we can't do without girls, and I'm not ashamed to say that I think the more we see of them, and try to be like them in many ways, the better men we shall be by and by.”
“It seems to me we haven't really thought about this enough to say much. But I think school would be pretty boring and dull without—um!—any young ladies to make it enjoyable. I wouldn't care at all to go if there were only a bunch of guys, even though I enjoy a good game as much as anyone. I feel sorry for any boy who has no sisters,” Ed continued, getting more animated as he thought of his own sisters, who loved him dearly, as they should, because he was a great brother. “Home wouldn’t be worth having without them to look out for me, keep me out of trouble, help me with my homework, and make things fun for my friends. I’m telling you, we can’t do without girls, and I’m not ashamed to say that the more we see them and try to be like them in many ways, the better men we’ll become in the future.”
“Hear! hear!” cried Frank, in his deepest tone, for he heartily agreed to that, having talked the matter over with his mother, and received much light upon things which should always be set right in young heads and hearts. And who can do this so wisely and well as mothers, if they only will?
“Hear! hear!” Frank exclaimed in his deepest voice, fully agreeing with that after discussing the matter with his mother, who had shed a lot of light on things that should always be clarified in young minds and hearts. And who can do this as wisely and effectively as mothers, if they only choose to?
Feeling that his sentiments had been approved, and he need not be ashamed of the honest color in his cheeks, Ed sat down amid the applause of his side, especially of Jack, who pounded so vigorously with his crutch that Mrs. Pecq popped in her head to see if anything was wanted.
Feeling that his feelings had been accepted, and he didn’t need to be embarrassed about the genuine color in his cheeks, Ed sat down amidst the applause from his side, especially from Jack, who pounded so enthusiastically with his crutch that Mrs. Pecq popped her head in to see if anything was needed.
“No, thank you, ma'am, we were only cheering Ed,” said Gus, now upon his legs, and rather at a loss what to say till Mrs. Pecq's appearance suggested an idea, and he seized upon it.
“No, thank you, ma'am, we were just cheering for Ed,” said Gus, now on his feet and a bit unsure of what to say until Mrs. Pecq showed up, which gave him an idea, and he jumped on it.
“My honored friend has spoken so well that I have little to add. I agree with him, and if you want an example of what girls can do, why, look at Jill. She's young, I know, but a first-rate scholar for her age. As for pluck, she is as brave as a boy, and almost as smart at running, rowing, and so on. Of course, she can't play ball—no girl can; their arms are not made right to throw—but she can catch remarkably well. I'll say that for her. Now, if she and Mabel—and—and—some others I could name, are so clever and strong at the beginning, I don't see why they shouldn't keep up and go along with us all through. I'm willing, and will do what I can to help other fellows' sisters as I'd like to have them help mine. And I'll punch their heads if they don't;” and Gus subsided, assured, by a burst of applause, that his manly way of stating the case met with general approval.
“My respected friend has expressed himself so well that I have little to add. I agree with him, and if you want an example of what girls can do, look at Jill. She's young, I know, but a first-rate scholar for her age. As for determination, she's as brave as a boy and nearly as skilled at running, rowing, and so on. Of course, she can't play ball—no girl can; their arms aren't built to throw—but she can catch remarkably well. I’ll give her that. Now, if she and Mabel—and some others I could mention—are so clever and strong from the start, I don’t see why they shouldn’t keep up and join us throughout. I’m willing and will do what I can to help other guys’ sisters just like I’d want them to help mine. And I’ll knock their heads if they don’t;” and Gus quieted down, reassured by a burst of applause that his straightforward way of putting things was well-received.
“We shall be happy to hear from our senior member if he will honor us with a few remarks,” said Frank, with a bow to Ralph.
“We would be glad to hear from our senior member if he could share a few words with us,” said Frank, giving a nod to Ralph.
No one ever knew whom he would choose to personate, for he never spoke in his own character. Now he rose slowly, put one hand in his bosom, and fixing his eye sternly on Grif, who was doing something suspicious with a pin, gave them a touch of Sergeant Buzfuz, from the Pickwick trial, thinking that the debate was not likely to throw much light on the subject under discussion. In the midst of this appeal to “Me lud and gentlemen of the jury,” he suddenly paused, smoothed his hair down upon his forehead, rolled up his eyes, and folding his hands, droned out Mr. Chadband's sermon on Peace, delivered over poor Jo, and ending with the famous lines:—
No one ever knew who he would choose to imitate, because he never spoke as himself. He slowly stood up, put one hand in his chest, and fixed his gaze sternly on Grif, who was doing something shady with a pin. He gave them a taste of Sergeant Buzfuz from the Pickwick trial, thinking that the argument wasn’t likely to clarify the topic being discussed. In the middle of this appeal to “My Lord and gentlemen of the jury,” he suddenly stopped, smoothed his hair down on his forehead, rolled his eyes, and with his hands folded, droned out Mr. Chadband's sermon on Peace, delivered over poor Jo, and ending with the famous lines:—
“Oh, running stream of sparkling joy, To be a glorious human boy!”
“Oh, flowing stream of bright happiness, To be a wonderful human boy!”
Then, setting his hair erect with one comprehensive sweep, he caught up his coat-skirts over his arm, and, assuming a parliamentary attitude, burst into a comical medley, composed of extracts from Jefferson Brick's and Lafayette Kettle's speeches, and Elijah Pogram's Defiance, from “Martin Chuzzlewit.” Gazing at Gus, who was convulsed with suppressed merriment, he thundered forth:—
Then, slicking up his hair with one quick motion, he grabbed his coat over his arm and, striking a formal pose, launched into a funny mix of lines from Jefferson Brick's and Lafayette Kettle's speeches, and Elijah Pogram's Defiance from “Martin Chuzzlewit.” Looking at Gus, who was shaking with barely contained laughter, he roared out:—
“In the name of our common country, sir, in the name of that righteous cause in which we are jined, and in the name of the star-spangled banner, I thank you for your eloquent and categorical remarks. You, sir, are a model of a man fresh from Natur's mould. A true-born child of this free hemisphere; verdant as the mountains of our land; bright and flowin' as our mineral Licks; unspiled by fashion as air our boundless perearers. Rough you may be; so air our Barrs. Wild you may be; so air our Buffalers. But, sir, you air a Child of Freedom, and your proud answer to the Tyrant is, that your bright home is in the Settin' Sun. And, sir, if any man denies this fact, though it be the British Lion himself, I defy him. Let me have him here!”—smiting the table, and causing the inkstand to skip—“here, upon this sacred altar! Here, upon the ancestral ashes cemented with the glorious blood poured out like water on the plains of Chickabiddy Lick. Alone I dare that Lion, and tell him that Freedom's hand once twisted in his mane, he rolls a corse before me, and the Eagles of the Great Republic scream, Ha, ha!”
"In the name of our shared country, sir, in the name of the just cause we’re united for, and in the name of the star-spangled banner, I thank you for your eloquent and clear remarks. You, sir, are a true example of a man shaped by nature. A true-born child of this free hemisphere; as lush as our mountains; bright and flowing like our mineral springs; untouched by trends like our vast wilderness. You may be rough; so are our bears. You may be wild; so are our buffalo. But, sir, you are a Child of Freedom, and your proud response to the oppressor is that your bright home is in the West. And, sir, if anyone denies this, even the British Lion himself, I challenge him. Let me have him here!"—slamming the table, causing the inkstand to bounce—"here, on this sacred altar! Here, on the ancestral ashes cemented with the glorious blood spilled like water on the plains of Chickabiddy Lick. Alone I dare to face that Lion, and tell him that with Freedom's hand once tangled in his mane, he falls dead before me, and the Eagles of the Great Republic cry out, Ha, ha!"
By this time the boys were rolling about in fits of laughter; even sober Frank was red and breathless, and Jack lay back, feebly squealing, as he could laugh no more. In a moment Ralph was as meek as a Quaker, and sat looking about him with a mildly astonished air, as if inquiring the cause of such unseemly mirth. A knock at the door produced a lull, and in came a maid with apples.
By this time, the boys were rolling around, doubled over with laughter; even sober Frank was bright red and out of breath, and Jack was sprawled out, weakly squealing, unable to laugh any more. In a moment, Ralph was as calm as a Quaker, sitting and looking around with a mildly surprised expression, as if he were trying to figure out what was causing such inappropriate laughter. A knock at the door created a pause, and in walked a maid carrying apples.
“Time's up; fall to and make yourselves comfortable,” was the summary way in which the club was released from its sterner duties and permitted to unbend its mighty mind for a social half-hour, chiefly devoted to whist, with an Indian war-dance as a closing ceremony.
“Time's up; get to it and make yourselves comfortable,” was how the club was quickly released from its serious responsibilities and allowed to relax its sharp focus for a social half-hour, mainly dedicated to whist, followed by an Indian war dance as a closing ceremony.
Chapter X. The Dramatic Club
While Jack was hopping gayly about on his crutches, poor Jill was feeling the effects of her second fall, and instead of sitting up, as she hoped to do after six weeks of rest, she was ordered to lie on a board for two hours each day. Not an easy penance, by any means, for the board was very hard, and she could do nothing while she lay there, as it did not slope enough to permit her to read without great fatigue of both eyes and hands. So the little martyr spent her first hour of trial in sobbing, the second in singing, for just as her mother and Mrs. Minot were deciding in despair that neither she nor they could bear it, Jill suddenly broke out into a merry chorus she used to hear her father sing:—
While Jack was happily bouncing around on his crutches, poor Jill was struggling with the pain from her second fall. Instead of finally sitting up after six weeks of rest, she was told to lie on a board for two hours each day. This was no easy punishment because the board was extremely hard, and she couldn't do anything while lying there, as it wasn't tilted enough for her to read without getting very tired in her eyes and hands. So, the little martyr spent her first hour of this challenge crying, and in the second hour, she started singing. Just when her mother and Mrs. Minot were considering in despair that neither they nor Jill could handle it, she suddenly burst into a cheerful song she used to hear her father sing:—
“Faut jouer le mirliton, Faut jouer le mirlitir, Faut jouer le mirliter, Mir—li—ton.”
“Gotta play the mirliton, Gotta play the mirlitir, Gotta play the mirliter, Mir—li—ton.”
The sound of the brave little voice was very comforting to the two mothers hovering about her, and Jack said, with a look of mingled pity and admiration, as he brandished his crutch over the imaginary foes,—
The sound of the brave little voice was very comforting to the two mothers hovering nearby, and Jack said, with a look of mixed pity and admiration, as he waved his crutch at the imaginary enemies,—
“That's right! Sing away, and we'll play you are an Indian captive being tormented by your enemies, and too proud to complain. I'll watch the clock, and the minute time is up I'll rush in and rescue you.”
"Exactly! Sing your heart out, and we’ll pretend you’re an Indian captive being tormented by your enemies, too proud to speak up. I’ll keep an eye on the clock, and the moment time’s up, I’ll rush in and save you."
Jill laughed, but the fancy pleased her, and she straightened herself out under the gay afghan, while she sang, in a plaintive voice, another little French song her father taught her:—
Jill laughed, but she enjoyed the fancy, and she adjusted herself under the colorful blanket, while she sang, in a wistful voice, another little French song her dad taught her:—
“J'avais une colombe blanche, J'avais un blanc petit pigeon, Tous deux volaient, de branche en branche, Jusqu'au faîte de mon dongeon: Mais comme un coup de vent d'automne, S'est abattu là, l'épervier, Et ma colombe si mignonne Ne revient plus au colombier.”
“I had a white dove, I had a small white pigeon, Both flew from branch to branch, Up to the top of my tower: But like a swift autumn wind, The hawk came down there, And my sweet little dove No longer returns to the loft.”
“My poor Jean had a fine voice, and always hoped the child would take after him. It would break his heart to see her lying there trying to cheer her pain with the songs he used to sing her to sleep with,” said Mrs. Pecq, sadly.
“My poor Jean had a beautiful voice, and always hoped the child would inherit it. It would break his heart to see her lying there, trying to ease her pain with the songs he used to sing her to sleep,” said Mrs. Pecq, sadly.
“She really has a great deal of talent, and when she is able she shall have some lessons, for music is a comfort and a pleasure, sick or well,” answered Mrs. Minot, who had often admired the fresh voice, with its pretty accent.
“She has a lot of talent, and when she can, she'll take some lessons because music is comforting and enjoyable, whether you're sick or healthy,” replied Mrs. Minot, who had often admired the sweet voice with its lovely accent.
Here Jill began the Canadian boat-song, with great vigor, as if bound to play her part of Indian victim with spirit, and not disgrace herself by any more crying. All knew the air, and joined in, especially Jack, who came out strong on the “Row, brothers, row,” but ended in a squeak on a high note, so drolly, that the rest broke down. So the hour that began with tears ended with music and laughter, and a new pleasure to think of for the future.
Here, Jill started singing the Canadian boat song with a lot of energy, as if determined to play her part as the Indian victim with enthusiasm, wanting to avoid any more tears. Everyone recognized the melody and joined in, especially Jack, who really got into the “Row, brothers, row,” but ended with a squeaky high note that was so funny that everyone else started laughing. So, the hour that began with tears wrapped up with music and laughter, leaving something new to look forward to in the future.
After that day Jill exerted all her fortitude, for she liked to have the boys call her brave and admire the cheerful way in which she endured two hours of discomfort. She found she could use her zither as it lay upon her breast, and every day the pretty music began at a certain hour, and all in the house soon learned to love and listen for it. Even the old cook set open her kitchen door, saying pitifully, “Poor darlint, hear how purty she's singin', wid the pain, on that crewel boord. It's a little saint, she is. May her bed above be aisy!”
After that day, Jill used all her strength because she liked it when the boys called her brave and admired how cheerfully she dealt with two hours of discomfort. She discovered that she could play her zither while it rested on her chest, and every day at a certain time, the lovely music would start, and everyone in the house soon grew to love and listen for it. Even the old cook would open her kitchen door and say sadly, “Poor darling, listen to how beautifully she's singing, despite the pain, on that crewel board. She’s a little saint, she is. May her bed in heaven be easy!”
Frank would lift her gently on and off, with a kind word that comforted her immensely, and gentle Ed would come and teach her new bits of music, while the other fellows were frolicking below. Ralph added his share to her amusement, for he asked leave to model her head in clay, and set up his work in a corner, coming to pat, scrape, and mould whenever he had a spare minute, amusing her by his lively chat, and showing her how to shape birds, rabbits, and queer faces in the soft clay, when the songs were all sung and her fingers tired of the zither.
Frank would gently lift her on and off, sharing comforting words that really put her at ease, while kind Ed would come over to teach her new pieces of music, as the other guys played around downstairs. Ralph contributed to her enjoyment too; he asked for permission to model her head in clay and set up his work in a corner, coming to pat, scrape, and reshape whenever he had a moment to spare. He kept her entertained with his lively conversation and showed her how to mold birds, rabbits, and funny faces in the soft clay after the songs were all sung and her fingers were tired from playing the zither.
The girls sympathized very heartily with her new trial, and brought all manner of gifts to cheer her captivity. Merry and Molly made a gay screen by pasting pictures on the black cambric which covered the folding frame that stood before her to keep the draughts from her as she lay on her board. Bright birds and flowers, figures and animals, covered one side, and on the other they put mottoes, bits of poetry, anecdotes, and short stories, so that Jill could lie and look or read without the trouble of holding a book. It was not all done at once, but grew slowly, and was a source of instruction as well as amusement to them all, as they read carefully, that they might make good selections.
The girls really felt for her new situation and brought all kinds of gifts to lift her spirits while she was stuck there. Merry and Molly created a cheerful display by gluing pictures onto the black fabric covering the folding frame that stood in front of her to block drafts while she lay on her board. One side was covered with bright birds, flowers, figures, and animals, and on the other side, they added quotes, bits of poetry, anecdotes, and short stories, so Jill could lie there and look or read without having to hold a book. It wasn’t all finished at once; it developed over time and served as both a source of learning and fun for everyone, as they read carefully to choose the best selections.
But the thing that pleased Jill most was something Jack did, for he gave up going to school, and stayed at home nearly a fortnight after he might have gone, all for her sake. The day the doctor said he might try it if he would be very careful, he was in great spirits, and limped about, looking up his books, and planning how he would astonish his mates by the rapidity of his recovery. When he sat down to rest he remembered Jill, who had been lying quietly behind the screen, while he talked with his mother, busy putting fresh covers on the books.
But what made Jill happiest was something Jack did: he gave up going to school and stayed home for almost two weeks longer than he needed to, all for her. The day the doctor said he could try going back if he was careful, he was in a great mood, limping around, gathering his books, and planning how he'd impress his friends with how quickly he recovered. When he finally sat down to relax, he remembered Jill, who had been quietly lying behind the screen while he chatted with his mom, who was busy putting new covers on the books.
“She is so still, I guess she is asleep,” thought Jack, peeping round the corner.
“She's so still, I think she must be asleep,” Jack thought, peeking around the corner.
No, not asleep, but lying with her eyes fixed on the sunny window, beyond which the bright winter world sparkled after a fresh snow-fall. The jingle of sleigh-bells could be heard, the laughter of boys and girls on their way to school, all the pleasant stir of a new day of happy work and play for the rest of the world, more lonely, quiet, and wearisome than ever to her since her friend and fellow-prisoner was set free and going to leave her.
No, she wasn't asleep; she was lying there with her eyes fixed on the sunny window, beyond which the bright winter world sparkled after fresh snowfall. The sound of sleigh bells could be heard, along with the laughter of kids on their way to school—all the lovely buzz of a new day filled with happy work and play for everyone else, feeling more lonely, quiet, and exhausting than ever to her since her friend and fellow prisoner had been freed and was about to leave her.
Jack understood that patient, wistful look, and, without a word, went back to his seat, staring at the fire so soberly, that his mother presently asked: “What are you thinking of so busily, with that pucker in your forehead?”
Jack knew that patient, longing look, and, without saying anything, returned to his seat, looking at the fire so seriously that his mother soon asked, “What are you thinking about so intensely with that furrow in your brow?”
“I've about made up my mind that I won't go to school just yet,” answered Jack, slowly lifting his head, for it cost him something to give up the long-expected pleasure.
“I've almost decided that I won't be going to school just yet,” Jack replied, slowly raising his head, since it was a bit of a struggle for him to let go of the long-awaited enjoyment.
“Why not?” and Mrs. Minot looked much surprised, till Jack pointed to the screen, and, making a sad face to express Jill's anguish, answered in a cheerful tone, “Well, I'm not sure that it is best. Doctor did not want me to go, but said I might because I teased. I shall be sure to come to grief, and then every one will say, 'I told you so,' and that is so provoking. I'd rather keep still a week longer. Hadn't I better?”
“Why not?” Mrs. Minot looked surprised until Jack pointed to the screen and, making a sad face to show Jill's distress, replied cheerfully, “Well, I'm not sure it's the best idea. The doctor didn’t want me to go, but said I could because I kept teasing. I’m sure I’ll end up in trouble, and then everyone will say, ‘I told you so,’ and that’s really annoying. I'd rather wait another week. Shouldn’t I?”
His mother smiled and nodded as she said, sewing away at much-abused old Caesar, as if she loved him, “Do as you think best, dear. I always want you at home, but I don't wonder you are rather tired of it after this long confinement.”
His mother smiled and nodded while she sewed on the well-worn old Caesar, as if she genuinely cared for him, “Do what you think is best, dear. I always want you home, but I can understand why you might be a bit tired of it after being stuck here for so long.”
“I say, Jill, should I be in your way if I didn't go to school till the first of February?” called Jack, laughing to himself at the absurdity of the question.
“I say, Jill, would I be in your way if I didn’t go to school until the first of February?” called Jack, laughing to himself at the ridiculousness of the question.
“Not much!” answered a glad voice from behind the screen, and he knew the sorrowful eyes were shining with delight, though he could not see them.
“Not much!” said a happy voice from behind the screen, and he knew the sad eyes were sparkling with joy, even though he couldn't see them.
“Well, I guess I may as well, and get quite firm on my legs before I start. Another week or so will bring me up if I study hard, so I shall not lose my time. I'll tackle my Latin as soon as it's ready, mother.”
“Well, I guess I might as well get really steady on my feet before I start. Another week or so of hard studying should get me there, so I won't waste any time. I'll dive into my Latin as soon as it's ready, Mom.”
Jack got a hearty kiss with the neatly covered book, and Mamma loved him for the little sacrifice more than if he had won a prize at school. He did get a reward, for, in five minutes from the time he decided, Jill was singing like a bobolink, and such a medley of merry music came from behind the screen, that it was a regular morning concert. She did not know then that he stayed for her sake, but she found it out soon after, and when the time came did as much for him, as we shall see.
Jack received a warm kiss along with the neatly wrapped book, and Mom appreciated his small sacrifice even more than if he had won an award at school. He did get a reward because, just five minutes after he made his decision, Jill was singing happily, and a delightful mix of cheerful tunes filled the air from behind the screen, turning it into a morning concert. She didn't realize at that moment that he stayed for her, but she figured it out soon after, and when the time came, she did just as much for him, as we will see.
It proved a wise decision, for the last part of January was so stormy Jack could not have gone half the time. So, while the snow drifted, and bitter winds raged, he sat snugly at home amusing Jill, and getting on bravely with his lessons, for Frank took great pains with him to show his approbation of the little kindness, and, somehow, the memory of it seemed to make even the detested Latin easier.
It turned out to be a smart choice, because the end of January was so stormy that Jack wouldn't have been able to go out half the time. So, while the snow piled up and the harsh winds blew, he stayed comfortably at home entertaining Jill and making good progress with his lessons. Frank worked hard with him to show his appreciation for the little kindness, and somehow, remembering that made even the hated Latin feel easier.
With February fair weather set in, and Jack marched happily away to school, with Jill's new mittens on his hands, Mamma nodding from the door-step, and Frank ready to give him a lift on the new sled, if the way proved too long or too rough.
With February's nice weather in place, Jack happily walked to school, wearing Jill's new mittens. Mom waved from the doorstep, and Frank was ready to give him a lift on the new sled if the journey turned out to be too long or too tough.
“I shall not have time to miss him now, for we are to be very busy getting ready for the Twenty-second. The Dramatic Club meets to-night, and would like to come here, if they may, so I can help?” said Jill, as Mrs. Minot came up, expecting to find her rather low in her mind.
“I won’t have time to miss him now because we’ll be really busy getting ready for the Twenty-second. The Dramatic Club is meeting tonight and wants to come here, if that's okay, so I can help?” said Jill, as Mrs. Minot approached, expecting to find her feeling down.
“Certainly; and I have a basket of old finery I looked up for the club when I was rummaging out bits of silk for your blue quilt,” answered the good lady, who had set up a new employment to beguile the hours of Jack's absence.
“Sure thing; I have a basket of old fancy clothes I dug out for the club when I was searching for bits of silk for your blue quilt,” replied the kind woman, who had taken up a new hobby to pass the time while Jack was away.
When the girls arrived, that evening, they found Mrs. Chairwoman surrounded by a strew of theatrical properties, enjoying herself very much. All brought such contributions as they could muster, and all were eager about a certain tableau which was to be the gem of the whole, they thought. Jill, of course, was not expected to take any part, but her taste was good, so all consulted her as they showed their old silks, laces, and flowers, asking who should be this, and who that. All wanted to be the “Sleeping Beauty,” for that was the chosen scene, with the slumbering court about the princess, and the prince in the act of awakening her. Jack was to be the hero, brave in his mother's velvet cape, red boots, and a real sword, while the other boys were to have parts of more or less splendor.
When the girls arrived that evening, they found Mrs. Chairwoman surrounded by a mess of theatrical props, having a great time. Everyone brought whatever they could contribute, and they were all excited about a particular tableau that they believed would be the highlight of the show. Jill, of course, wasn’t expected to participate, but her taste was excellent, so everyone consulted her as they showed off their old silks, laces, and flowers, asking her who should play each role. Everyone wanted to be the "Sleeping Beauty," since that was the chosen scene, featuring the sleeping court around the princess and the prince waking her up. Jack was set to be the hero, looking brave in his mother's velvet cape, red boots, and a real sword, while the other boys were assigned parts of varying significance.
“Mabel should be the Beauty, because her hair is so lovely,” said Juliet, who was quite satisfied with her own part of the Queen.
“Mabel should be the Beauty, because her hair is so gorgeous,” said Juliet, who was pretty happy with her role as the Queen.
“No, Merry ought to have it, as she is the prettiest, and has that splendid veil to wear,” answered Molly, who was to be the maid of honor, cuffing the little page, Boo.
“No, Merry should have it, since she’s the prettiest and has that beautiful veil to wear,” replied Molly, who was going to be the maid of honor, giving a light tap to the little page, Boo.
“I don't care a bit, but my feather would be fine for the Princess, and I don't know as Emma would like to have me lend it to any one else,” said Annette, waving a long white plume over her head, with girlish delight in its grace.
“I don't care at all, but my feather would look great on the Princess, and I don’t think Emma would be happy if I lent it to anyone else,” said Annette, waving a long white plume over her head, her girlish delight shining through its elegance.
“I should think the white silk dress, the veil, and the feather ought to go together, with the scarlet crape shawl and these pearls. That would be sweet, and just what princesses really wear,” advised Jill, who was stringing a quantity of old Roman pearls.
“I think the white silk dress, veil, and feather should match with the red crape shawl and these pearls. That would look nice and is exactly what princesses actually wear,” suggested Jill, who was threading a bunch of old Roman pearls.
“We all want to wear the nice things, so let us draw lots. Wouldn't that be the fairest way?” asked Merry, looking like a rosy little bride, under a great piece of illusion, which had done duty in many plays.
“We all want to wear the nice things, so let’s draw lots. Wouldn’t that be the fairest way?” asked Merry, looking like a rosy little bride under a big piece of illusion that had been used in many plays.
“The Prince is light, so the Princess must be darkish. We ought to choose the girl who will look best, as it is a picture. I heard Miss Delano say so, when the ladies got up the tableaux, last winter, and every one wanted to be Cleopatra,” said Jill decidedly.
“The Prince is bright, so the Princess should be a bit darker. We should pick the girl who will look the best since it’s all about the visuals. I heard Miss Delano say that when the ladies put together the tableaux last winter, and everyone wanted to be Cleopatra,” Jill said firmly.
“You choose, and then if we can't agree we will draw lots,” proposed Susy, who, being plain, knew there was little hope of her getting a chance in any other way.
“You choose, and if we can't agree, we'll draw lots,” suggested Susy, who, being plain, knew there wasn't much chance of her having a shot in any other way.
So all stood in a row, and Jill, from her sofa, surveyed them critically, feeling that the one Jack would really prefer was not among the number.
So everyone lined up, and Jill, from her sofa, looked them over critically, sensing that the one Jack would actually prefer wasn't in the group.
“I choose that one, for Juliet wants to be Queen, Molly would make faces, and the others are too big or too light,” pronounced Jill, pointing to Merry, who looked pleased, while Mabel's face darkened, and Susy gave a disdainful sniff.
“I choose that one because Juliet wants to be Queen, Molly would make faces, and the others are either too big or too light,” said Jill, pointing to Merry, who looked happy, while Mabel's expression soured, and Susy gave a dismissive sniff.
“You'd better draw lots, and then there will be no fuss. Ju and I are out of the fight, but you three can try, and let this settle the matter,” said Molly, handing Jill a long strip of paper.
“You should probably draw lots, and then there won't be any arguments. Ju and I are out of this, but you three can give it a shot, and let this decide things,” said Molly, handing Jill a long strip of paper.
All agreed to let it be so, and when the bits were ready drew in turn. This time fate was evidently on Merry's side, and no one grumbled when she showed the longest paper.
All agreed to let it be, and when the pieces were ready, they took turns drawing. This time, luck was clearly on Merry's side, and no one complained when she revealed the longest slip of paper.
“Go and dress, then come back, and we'll plan how we are to be placed before we call up the boys,” commanded Jill, who was manager, since she could be nothing else.
“Go get ready, then come back, and we’ll figure out how we’re going to set up before we call the guys,” ordered Jill, who was in charge, since she couldn’t be anything else.
The girls retired to the bedroom and began to “rig up,” as they called it; but discontent still lurked among them, and showed itself in sharp words, envious looks, and disobliging acts.
The girls went to the bedroom and started to “rig up,” as they called it; but dissatisfaction still lingered among them, showing in harsh words, jealous looks, and rude actions.
“Am I to have the white silk and the feather?” asked Merry, delighted with the silvery shimmer of the one and the graceful droop of the other, though both were rather shabby.
“Do I get the white silk and the feather?” Merry asked, excited by the shiny silver look of the one and the elegant droop of the other, even though both were a bit worn.
“You can use your own dress. I don't see why you should have everything,” answered Susy, who was at the mirror, putting a wreath of scarlet flowers on her red head, bound to be gay since she could not be pretty.
“You can wear your own dress. I don’t see why you should have everything,” answered Susy, who was at the mirror, putting a wreath of bright red flowers on her vibrant hair, determined to be cheerful since she couldn’t be beautiful.
“I think I'd better keep the plume, as I haven't anything else that is nice, and I'm afraid Emma wouldn't like me to lend it,” added Annette, who was disappointed that Mabel was not to be the Beauty.
“I think I'd better keep the feather, since I don't have anything else nice, and I'm worried Emma wouldn't want me to lend it,” added Annette, who was disappointed that Mabel wasn't going to be the Beauty.
“I don't intend to act at all!” declared Mabel, beginning to braid up her hair with a jerk, out of humor with the whole affair.
“I don’t plan to act at all!” Mabel declared, starting to braid her hair abruptly, annoyed with the whole situation.
“I think you are a set of cross, selfish girls to back out and keep your nice things just because you can't all have the best part. I'm ashamed of you!” scolded Molly, standing by Merry, who was sadly surveying her mother's old purple silk, which looked like brown in the evening.
I think you are a group of bitter, selfish girls for backing out and keeping your nice things just because you can't all have the best part. I'm ashamed of you!” scolded Molly, standing by Merry, who was sadly looking at her mother's old purple silk, which appeared brown in the evening light.
“I'm going to have Miss Delano's red brocade for the Queen, and I shall ask her for the yellow-satin dress for Merry when I go to get mine, and tell her how mean you are,” said Juliet, frowning under her gilt-paper crown as she swept about in a red table-cloth for train till the brocade arrived.
“I'm going to get Miss Delano's red brocade for the Queen, and I’ll ask her for the yellow satin dress for Merry when I go to pick mine up, and I'll tell her how mean you are,” said Juliet, frowning under her gold-paper crown as she twirled around in a red tablecloth for a train until the brocade arrived.
“Perhaps you'd like to have Mabel cut her hair off, so Merry can have that, too?” cried Susy, with whom hair was a tender point.
“Maybe you want Mabel to cut her hair off so Merry can have that too?” exclaimed Susy, for whom hair was a sensitive topic.
“Light hair isn't wanted, so Ju will have to give hers, or you'd better borrow Miss Bat's frisette,” added Mabel, with a scornful laugh.
“Light hair isn’t in style, so Ju will have to part with hers, or you should just borrow Miss Bat's wig,” added Mabel with a mocking laugh.
“I just wish Miss Bat was here to give you girls a good shaking. Do let someone else have a chance at the glass, you peacock!” exclaimed Molly Loo, pushing Susy aside to arrange her own blue turban, out of which she plucked the pink pompon to give Merry.
“I just wish Miss Bat was here to give you girls a good shake. Come on, let someone else have a turn with the glass, you show-off!” exclaimed Molly Loo, shoving Susy aside to fix her own blue turban, from which she pulled off the pink pompom to give to Merry.
“Don't quarrel about me. I shall do well enough, and the scarlet shawl will hide my ugly dress,” said Merry, from the corner, where she sat waiting for her turn at the mirror.
“Don’t argue over me. I’ll be fine, and the red shawl will cover up my ugly dress,” said Merry, from the corner, where she sat waiting for her turn at the mirror.
As she spoke of the shawl her eye went in search of it, and something that she saw in the other room put her own disappointment out of her head. Jill lay there all alone, rather tired with the lively chatter, and the effort it cost her not to repine at being shut out from the great delight of dressing up and acting.
As she talked about the shawl, her gaze searched for it, and something she noticed in the other room made her forget her own disappointment. Jill was lying there all alone, feeling a bit worn out from the lively chatter and the effort it took not to dwell on missing out on the fun of dressing up and performing.
Her eyes were closed, her net was off, and all the pretty black curls lay about her shoulders as one hand idly pulled them out, while the other rested on the red shawl, as if she loved its glowing color and soft texture. She was humming to herself the little song of the dove and the donjon, and something in the plaintive voice, the solitary figure, went straight to Merry's gentle heart.
Her eyes were closed, her net was off, and all her pretty black curls were resting on her shoulders as one hand casually tugged at them while the other rested on the red shawl, as if she loved its bright color and soft feel. She was humming to herself the little song of the dove and the donjon, and something about her sorrowful voice and solitary figure went straight to Merry's kind heart.
“Poor Jilly can't have any of the fun,” was the first thought; then came a second, that made Merry start and smile, and in a minute whisper so that all but Jill could hear her, “Girls, I'm not going to be the Princess. But I've thought of a splendid one!”
“Poor Jilly can't join in the fun,” was the first thought; then came a second that made Merry pause and smile, and in a minute whispered so that everyone except Jill could hear her, “Girls, I’m not going to be the Princess. But I’ve come up with a great idea for one!”
“Who?” asked the rest, staring at one another, much surprised by this sudden announcement.
“Who?” asked the others, looking at each other, completely surprised by this sudden announcement.
“Hush! Speak low, or you will spoil it all. Look in the Bird Room, and tell me if that isn't a prettier Princess than I could make?”
“Hush! Talk quietly, or you’ll ruin everything. Check out the Bird Room, and tell me if that isn't a prettier Princess than I could create?”
They all looked, but no one spoke, and Merry added, with sweet eagerness, “It is the only thing poor Jill can be, and it would make her so happy; Jack would like it, and it would please every one, I know. Perhaps she will never walk again, so we ought to be very good to her, poor dear.”
They all looked, but no one said anything, and Merry added, with cheerful eagerness, “It’s the only thing poor Jill can be, and it would make her so happy; Jack would like it, and it would make everyone happy, I’m sure. Maybe she will never walk again, so we should be really kind to her, poor thing.”
The last words, whispered with a little quiver in the voice, settled the matter better than hours of talking, for girls are tender-hearted creatures, and not one of these but would have gladly given all the pretty things she owned to see Jill dancing about well and strong again. Like a ray of sunshine the kind thought touched and brightened every face; envy, impatience, vanity, and discontent flew away like imps at the coming of the good fairy, and with one accord they all cried,—
The last words, whispered with a slight tremble in the voice, resolved the issue more effectively than hours of discussion, because girls are sensitive souls, and each one would have happily given up all her beautiful things to see Jill dancing around healthy and strong again. Like a ray of sunshine, the kind thought warmed and brightened every face; envy, impatience, vanity, and discontent vanished like mischievous spirits at the arrival of a good fairy, and together they all exclaimed,—
“It will be lovely; let us go and tell her!”
“It will be great; let’s go tell her!”
Forgetting their own adornment, out they trooped after Merry, who ran to the sofa, saying, with a smile which was reflected in all the other faces, “Jill, dear, we have chosen another Princess, and I know you'll like her.”
Forgetting about their own outfits, they all followed Merry, who dashed to the sofa, saying with a smile that lit up everyone's faces, “Jill, dear, we’ve chosen another Princess, and I know you’ll like her.”
“Who is it?” asked Jill, languidly, opening her eyes without the least suspicion of the truth.
“Who is it?” Jill asked lazily, opening her eyes without the slightest suspicion of the truth.
“I'll show you;” and taking the cherished veil from her own head, Merry dropped it like a soft cloud over Jill; Annette added the long plume, Susy laid the white silk dress about her, while Juliet and Mabel lifted the scarlet shawl to spread it over the foot of the sofa, and Molly tore the last ornament from her turban, a silver star, to shine on Jill's breast. Then they all took hands and danced round the couch, singing, as they laughed at her astonishment, “There she is! There she is! Princess Jill as fine as you please!
"I'll show you," said Merry, taking her beloved veil from her own head and gently draping it over Jill like a soft cloud. Annette added the long feather, Susy arranged the white silk dress around her, while Juliet and Mabel spread the red shawl over the foot of the sofa. Molly removed the last decoration from her turban, a silver star, to place on Jill's chest. Then they all joined hands and danced around the couch, singing and laughing at her surprise, "There she is! There she is! Princess Jill, looking fabulous!"
“Do you really mean it? But can I? Is it fair? How sweet of you! Come here and let me hug you all!” cried Jill, in a rapture at the surprise, and the pretty way in which it was done.
“Do you really mean it? But can I? Is it fair? That’s so sweet of you! Come here and let me hug all of you!” cried Jill, overjoyed by the surprise and the lovely way it was presented.
The grand scene on the Twenty-second was very fine, indeed; but the little tableau of that minute was infinitely better, though no one saw it, as Jill tried to gather them all in her arms, for that nosegay of girlish faces was the sweeter, because each one had sacrificed her own little vanity to please a friend, and her joy was reflected in the eyes that sparkled round the happy Princess.
The grand scene on the twenty-second was really impressive, but the little moment at that second was even better, even though no one saw it, as Jill tried to hug them all in her arms. That cluster of young faces was even sweeter because each girl had put aside her own little pride to make a friend happy, and her joy shone in the eyes that sparkled around the happy Princess.
“Oh, you dear, kind things, to think of me and give me all your best clothes! I never shall forget it, and I'll do anything for you. Yes! I'll write and ask Mrs. Piper to lend us her ermine cloak for the king. See if I don't!”
“Oh, you sweet, wonderful people, to think of me and give me all your best clothes! I’ll never forget it, and I’ll do anything for you. Yes! I’ll reach out and ask Mrs. Piper to lend us her ermine cloak for the king. Just watch me!”
Shrieks of delight hailed this noble offer, for no one had dared to borrow the much-coveted mantle, but all agreed that the old lady would not refuse Jill. It was astonishing how smoothly everything went after this, for each was eager to help, admire, and suggest, in the friendliest way; and when all were dressed, the boys found a party of very gay ladies waiting for them round the couch, where lay the brightest little Princess ever seen.
Cheers of joy greeted this generous offer, since no one had dared to borrow the highly sought-after cloak, but everyone agreed that the old lady wouldn't say no to Jill. It was remarkable how smoothly everything proceeded after this, as everyone was eager to help, compliment, and offer suggestions in the friendliest manner; and when they were all dressed, the boys discovered a group of very cheerful ladies waiting for them around the couch, where the brightest little princess anyone had ever seen lay.
“Oh, Jack, I'm to act! Wasn't it dear of the girls to choose me? Don't they look lovely? Aren't you glad?” cried Jill, as the lads stared and the lasses blushed and smiled, well pleased at the frank admiration the boyish faces showed.
“Oh, Jack, I get to perform! Wasn't it sweet of the girls to pick me? Don’t they look amazing? Aren’t you happy?” shouted Jill, as the guys stared and the girls blushed and smiled, clearly pleased at the obvious admiration on the boys' faces.
“I guess I am! You are a set of trumps, and we'll give you a first-class spread after the play to pay for it. Won't we, fellows?” answered Jack, much gratified, and feeling that now he could act his own part capitally.
“I guess I am! You’re a great bunch, and we’ll treat you to a top-notch spread after the game to make up for it. Right, guys?” replied Jack, feeling pleased and thinking that now he could really play his part well.
“We will. It was a handsome thing to do, and we think well of you for it. Hey, Gus?” and Frank nodded approvingly at all, though he looked only at Annette.
“We will. It was a great thing to do, and we have a good opinion of you for it. Hey, Gus?” and Frank nodded in agreement at everyone, though his gaze was only on Annette.
“As king of this crowd, I call it to order,” said Gus, retiring to the throne, where Juliet sat laughing in her red table-cloth.
“As king of this crowd, I call it to order,” Gus said, stepping back to the throne, where Juliet sat laughing in her red tablecloth.
“We'll have 'The Fair One with Golden Locks' next time; I promise you that,” whispered Ed to Mabel, whose shining hair streamed over her blue dress like a mantle of gold-colored silk.
“We'll have 'The Fair One with Golden Locks' next time; I promise you that,” whispered Ed to Mabel, whose shiny hair flowed over her blue dress like a mantle of golden silk.
“Girls are pretty nice things, aren't they? Kind of 'em to take Jill in. Don't Molly look fine, though?” and Grif's black eyes twinkled as he planned to pin her skirts to Merry's at the first opportunity.
“Girls are pretty great, aren’t they? It was nice of them to take Jill in. Doesn’t Molly look good, though?” and Grif's dark eyes sparkled as he thought about pinning her skirts to Merry's at the first chance.
“Susy looks as gay as a feather-duster. I like her. She never snubs a fellow,” said Joe, much impressed with the splendor of the court ladies.
“Susy looks as cheerful as a feather duster. I like her. She never ignores anyone,” said Joe, really impressed with the elegance of the court ladies.
The boys' costumes were not yet ready, but they posed well, and all had a merry time, ending with a game of blind-man's-buff, in which every one caught the right person in the most singular way, and all agreed as they went home in the moonlight that it had been an unusually jolly meeting.
The boys' costumes weren't ready yet, but they posed nicely and all had a great time, finishing up with a game of blind man’s bluff, where everyone managed to catch the right person in a really unusual way. As they walked home in the moonlight, they all agreed that it had been an unusually fun gathering.
So the fairy play woke the sleeping beauty that lies in all of us, and makes us lovely when we rouse it with a kiss of unselfish good-will, for, though the girls did not know it then, they had adorned themselves with pearls more precious than the waxen ones they decked their Princess in.
So the fairy performance awakened the sleeping beauty inside all of us, making us charming when we bring it to life with a kiss of selfless kindness. Because, even though the girls didn’t realize it at the time, they had decorated themselves with pearls more valuable than the waxen ones they adorned their Princess with.
Chapter XI. “Down Brakes”
The greatest people have their weak points, and the best-behaved boys now and then yield to temptation and get into trouble, as everybody knows. Frank was considered a remarkably well-bred and proper lad, and rather prided himself on his good reputation, for he never got into scrapes like the other fellows. Well, hardly ever, for we must confess that at rare intervals his besetting sin overcame his prudence, and he proved himself an erring, human boy. Steam-engines had been his idols for years, and they alone could lure him from the path of virtue. Once, in trying to investigate the mechanism of a toy specimen, which had its little boiler and ran about whistling and puffing in the most delightful way, he nearly set the house afire by the sparks that dropped on the straw carpet. Another time, in trying experiments with the kitchen tea-kettle, he blew himself up, and the scars of that explosion he still carried on his hands.
The greatest people have their weaknesses, and even the best-behaved boys sometimes give in to temptation and get into trouble, as everyone knows. Frank was seen as a well-mannered and proper kid, and he took pride in his good reputation since he rarely got into trouble like the other boys. Well, almost never, because we have to admit that on rare occasions, his major weakness got the better of his caution, and he showed himself to be an imperfect human boy. Steam engines had been his obsession for years, and they were the only thing that could pull him off the straight and narrow. Once, while trying to figure out how a toy steam engine worked, which had its own little boiler and ran around whistling and puffing delightfully, he almost set the house on fire when sparks fell onto the straw carpet. Another time, while experimenting with the kitchen kettle, he blew himself up, and the scars from that explosion are still visible on his hands.
He was long past such childish amusements now, but his favorite haunt was the engine-house of the new railroad, where he observed the habits of his pets with never-failing interest, and cultivated the good-will of stokers and brakemen till they allowed him many liberties, and were rather flattered by the admiration expressed for their iron horses by a young gentleman who liked them better even than his Greek and Latin.
He was well beyond such childish games now, but his favorite spot was the engine house of the new railroad, where he watched the habits of his pets with constant interest and won over the goodwill of the stokers and brakemen until they let him have a lot of freedom. They were also a bit flattered by the admiration he showed for their engines, which he liked even more than his Greek and Latin.
There was not much business doing on this road as yet, and the two cars of the passenger-trains were often nearly empty, though full freight-trains rolled from the factory to the main road, of which this was only a branch. So things went on in a leisurely manner, which gave Frank many opportunities of pursuing his favorite pastime. He soon knew all about No. 11, his pet engine, and had several rides on it with Bill, the engineer, so that he felt at home there, and privately resolved that when he was a rich man he would have a road of his own, and run trains as often as he liked.
There wasn't much traffic on this road yet, and the two cars of the passenger trains were often nearly empty, even though full freight trains were rolling from the factory to the main road, which was just a branch. So everything moved at a relaxed pace, which gave Frank plenty of chances to enjoy his favorite hobby. He quickly learned all about No. 11, his favorite engine, and had several rides on it with Bill, the engineer, making him feel comfortable there. He secretly promised himself that when he became rich, he would have his own railroad and run trains as often as he wanted.
Gus took less interest than his friend in the study of steam, but usually accompanied him when he went over after school to disport himself in the engine-house, interview the stoker, or see if there was anything new in the way of brakes.
Gus was less interested than his friend in studying steam, but he usually joined him after school to hang out in the engine house, chat with the stoker, or check out any new brakes.
One afternoon they found No. 11 on the side-track, puffing away as if enjoying a quiet smoke before starting. No cars were attached, and no driver was to be seen, for Bill was off with the other men behind the station-house, helping the expressman, whose horse had backed down a bank and upset the wagon.
One afternoon, they spotted No. 11 on the side track, puffing away like it was casually enjoying a smoke before getting going. There were no cars attached, and no driver in sight, because Bill was off with the other guys behind the station house, helping the expressman, whose horse had backed down a hill and tipped over the wagon.
“Good chance for a look at the old lady,” said Frank, speaking of the engine as Bill did, and jumping aboard with great satisfaction, followed by Gus.
“Great opportunity to get a glimpse of the old lady,” Frank said, referring to the engine just like Bill did, as he hopped on board with a sense of satisfaction, followed by Gus.
“I'd give ten dollars if I could run her up to the bend and back,” he added, fondly touching the bright brass knobs and glancing at the fire with a critical eye.
“I’d pay ten dollars to take her to the bend and back,” he said, affectionately touching the shiny brass knobs and looking at the fire with a scrutinizing gaze.
“You couldn't do it alone,” answered Gus, sitting down on the grimy little perch, willing to indulge his mate's amiable weakness.
“You couldn’t do it alone,” Gus replied, sitting down on the dirty little perch, ready to indulge his friend’s friendly weakness.
“Give me leave to try? Steam is up, and I could do it as easy as not;” and Frank put his hand on the throttle-valve, as if daring Gus to give the word.
“Can I give it a shot? The steam is ready, and I could do it without a problem;” and Frank placed his hand on the throttle-valve, as if challenging Gus to say the word.
“Fire up and make her hum!” laughed Gus, quoting Bill's frequent order to his mate, but with no idea of being obeyed.
“Get it going and make it sing!” laughed Gus, repeating Bill's usual command to his partner, but without any expectation of compliance.
“All right; I'll just roll her up to the switch and back again. I've often done it with Bill;” and Frank cautiously opened the throttle-valve, threw back the lever, and the great thing moved with a throb and a puff.
“All right; I'll just run her up to the switch and back again. I've done it plenty of times with Bill;” and Frank carefully opened the throttle, pulled back the lever, and the big machine started moving with a throb and a puff.
“Steady, old fellow, or you'll come to grief. Here, don't open that!” shouted Gus, for just at that moment Joe appeared at the switch, looking ready for mischief.
“Careful, my friend, or you'll get into trouble. Hey, don’t touch that!” shouted Gus, because just then Joe showed up at the switch, looking like he was up to no good.
“Wish he would; no train for twenty minutes, and we could run up to the bend as well as not,” said Frank, getting excited with the sense of power, as the monster obeyed his hand so entirely that it was impossible to resist prolonging the delight.
“Wish he would; no train for twenty minutes, and we could run up to the bend just as easily,” said Frank, getting pumped with the feeling of control, as the machine followed his commands so completely that it felt impossible to stop enjoying the thrill.
“By George, he has! Stop her! Back her! Hold on, Frank!” cried Gus, as Joe, only catching the words “Open that!” obeyed, without the least idea that they would dare to leave the siding.
“By George, he has! Stop her! Back her up! Hold on, Frank!” shouted Gus, as Joe, only hearing the words “Open that!” complied, without any idea that they would actually leave the siding.
But they did, for Frank rather lost his head for a minute, and out upon the main track rolled No. 11 as quietly as a well-trained horse taking a familiar road.
But they did, because Frank kind of lost his head for a minute, and out onto the main track rolled No. 11 as smoothly as a well-trained horse on a familiar path.
“Now you've done it! I'll give you a good thrashing when I get back!” roared Gus, shaking his fist at Joe, who stood staring, half-pleased, half-scared, at what he had done.
“Now you’ve really done it! I’m going to give you a good beating when I get back!” roared Gus, shaking his fist at Joe, who stood staring, half-pleased, half-scared, at what he had done.
“Are you really going to try it?” asked Gus, as they glided on with increasing speed, and he, too, felt the charm of such a novel adventure, though the consequences bid fair to be serious.
“Are you actually going to do it?” Gus asked as they picked up speed, and he also felt the excitement of such a unique adventure, even though it seemed like the outcome could be serious.
“Yes, I am,” answered Frank, with the grim look he always wore when his strong will got the upper hand. “Bill will give it to us, any way, so we may as well have our fun out. If you are afraid, I'll slow down and you can jump off,” and his brown eyes sparkled with the double delight of getting his heart's desire and astonishing his friend at the same time by his skill and coolness.
“Yes, I am,” Frank replied, wearing the serious expression he always had when his strong will took over. “Bill will give it to us anyway, so we might as well enjoy ourselves. If you’re scared, I can slow down and you can jump off,” and his brown eyes sparkled with the excitement of getting what he wanted and surprising his friend at the same time with his skill and composure.
“Go ahead. I'll jump when you do;” and Gus calmly sat down again, bound in honor to stand by his mate till the smash came, though rather dismayed at the audacity of the prank.
“Go ahead. I'll jump when you do;” and Gus calmly sat down again, committed to standing by his friend until the end, though he felt a bit unsettled by the boldness of the joke.
“Don't you call this just splendid?” exclaimed Frank, as they rolled along over the crossing, past the bridge, toward the curve, a mile from the station.
“Isn't this just amazing?” Frank exclaimed as they rolled over the crossing, past the bridge, toward the curve, a mile from the station.
“Not bad. They are yelling like mad after us. Better go back, if you can,” said Gus, who was anxiously peering out, and, in spite of his efforts to seem at ease, not enjoying the trip a particle.
“Not bad. They’re screaming like crazy after us. We should head back, if you can,” said Gus, who was nervously looking out and, despite trying to act calm, was not having a good time at all.
“Let them yell. I started to go to the curve, and I'll do it if it costs me a hundred dollars. No danger; there's no train under twenty minutes, I tell you,” and Frank pulled out his watch. But the sun was in his eyes, and he did not see clearly, or he would have discovered that it was later than he thought.
“Let them shout. I began to head toward the curve, and I'll do it if it costs me a hundred bucks. No worries; there isn’t a train for at least twenty minutes, trust me,” Frank said as he checked his watch. But the sun was in his eyes, and he couldn’t see clearly, or he would have realized that it was later than he thought.
On they went, and were just rounding the bend when a shrill whistle in front startled both boys, and drove the color out of their cheeks.
On they went, and were just rounding the bend when a sharp whistle ahead startled both boys, draining the color from their faces.
“It's the factory train!” cried Gus, in a husky tone, as he sprang to his feet.
“It's the factory train!” shouted Gus, his voice rough, as he jumped to his feet.
“No; it's the five-forty on the other road,” answered Frank, with a queer thrill all through him at the thought of what might happen if it was not. Both looked straight ahead as the last tree glided by, and the long track lay before them, with the freight train slowly coming down. For an instant, the boys stood as if paralyzed.
“No; it’s the five-forty on the other road,” Frank replied, a strange thrill running through him at the thought of what could happen if it wasn’t. Both of them stared straight ahead as the last tree passed by, and the long track stretched out before them, with the freight train moving down slowly. For a moment, the boys stood there as if frozen.
“Jump!” said Gus, looking at the steep bank on one side and the river on the other, undecided which to try.
“Jump!” Gus shouted, glancing at the steep bank on one side and the river on the other, unsure which to tackle.
“Sit still!” commanded Frank, collecting his wits, as he gave a warning whistle to retard the on-coming train, while he reversed the engine and went back faster than he came.
“Sit still!” Frank ordered, gathering his thoughts as he let out a warning whistle to slow down the approaching train, while he reversed the engine and moved back faster than he had come.
A crowd of angry men was waiting for them, and Bill stood at the open switch in a towering passion as No. 11 returned to her place unharmed, but bearing two pale and frightened boys, who stepped slowly and silently down, without a word to say for themselves, while the freight train rumbled by on the main track.
A crowd of angry men was waiting for them, and Bill stood at the open switch in a furious rage as No. 11 returned to her spot unharmed, but carrying two pale and frightened boys, who got off slowly and quietly, without a word to defend themselves, while the freight train rolled by on the main track.
Frank and Gus never had a very clear idea as to what occurred during the next few minutes, but vaguely remembered being well shaken, sworn at, questioned, threatened with direful penalties, and finally ordered off the premises forever by the wrathful depot-master. Joe was nowhere to be seen, and as the two culprits walked away, trying to go steadily, while their heads spun round, and all the strength seemed to have departed from their legs, Frank said, in an exhausted tone,—
Frank and Gus never really understood what happened in the next few minutes, but they vaguely remembered being shaken up, yelled at, questioned, threatened with serious consequences, and eventually kicked off the property forever by the angry depot-master. Joe was nowhere to be found, and as the two of them walked away, trying to keep their composure while their heads spun and their legs felt weak, Frank said in a tired voice,—
“Come down to the boat-house and rest a minute.”
“Come down to the boathouse and take a break for a minute.”
Both were glad to get out of sight, and dropped upon the steps red, rumpled, and breathless, after the late exciting scene. Gus generously forebore to speak, though he felt that he was the least to blame; and Frank, after eating a bit of snow to moisten his dry lips, said, handsomely,—
Both were relieved to get out of sight and collapsed onto the steps, red-faced, disheveled, and out of breath after the intense scene. Gus kindly held back from saying anything, even though he felt he was the least at fault; and Frank, after eating a bit of snow to wet his dry lips, said with kindness,—
“Now, don't you worry, old man. I'll pay the damages, for it was my fault. Joe will dodge, but I won't, so make your mind easy.
“Now, don’t worry, old man. I’ll pay for the damages because it was my fault. Joe will avoid it, but I won’t, so just relax.”
“We sha'n't hear the last of this in a hurry,” responded Gus, relieved, yet anxious, as he thought of the reprimand his father would give him.
“We won’t hear the end of this anytime soon,” Gus replied, feeling relieved but anxious as he thought about the lecture his father would give him.
“I hope mother won't hear of it till I tell her quietly myself. She will be so frightened, and think I'm surely smashed up, if she is told in a hurry;” and Frank gave a shiver, as all the danger he had run came over him suddenly.
“I hope Mom won't hear about it until I can tell her quietly myself. She'll be so scared and think I'm seriously hurt if she hears it too soon.” Frank shivered as the reality of all the danger he had faced hit him all at once.
“I thought we were done for when we saw that train. Guess we should have been if you had not had your wits about you. I always said you were a cool one;” and Gus patted Frank's back with a look of great admiration, for, now that it was all over, he considered it a very remarkable performance.
“I thought we were finished when we saw that train. We probably should have been if you hadn’t kept your cool. I always said you were the calm one,” and Gus patted Frank's back with a look of deep admiration, because now that it was all over, he thought it was an impressive performance.
“Which do you suppose it will be, fine or imprisonment?” asked Frank, after sitting in a despondent attitude for a moment.
“Which do you think it’ll be, a fine or jail time?” asked Frank, after sitting in a gloomy posture for a moment.
“Shouldn't wonder if it was both. Running off with an engine is no joke, you know.”
“Wouldn't be surprised if it was both. Stealing an engine isn't a joke, you know.”
“What did possess me to be such a fool?” groaned Frank, repenting, all too late, of yielding to the temptation which assailed him.
“What made me such a fool?” Frank groaned, regretting, all too late, giving in to the temptation that attacked him.
“Bear up, old fellow, I'll stand by you; and if the worst comes, I'll call as often as the rules of the prison allow,” said Gus, consolingly, as he gave his afflicted friend an arm, and they walked away, both feeling that they were marked men from that day forth.
“Hang in there, buddy, I’ve got your back; and if it gets really bad, I’ll visit as much as the prison rules permit,” said Gus, trying to comfort his troubled friend as he took his arm, and they walked away, both realizing that they would be seen as marked men from that day on.
Meantime, Joe, as soon as he recovered from the shock of seeing the boys actually go off, ran away, as fast as his legs could carry him, to prepare Mrs. Minot for the loss of her son; for the idea of their coming safely back never occurred to him, his knowledge of engines being limited. A loud ring at the bell brought Mrs. Pecq, who was guarding the house, while Mrs. Minot entertained a parlor full of company.
Meantime, Joe, as soon as he got over the shock of seeing the boys actually leave, ran away as fast as he could to get Mrs. Minot ready for the loss of her son; he never even considered that they might come back safely, since he didn't know much about engines. A loud ring at the bell brought Mrs. Pecq, who was watching the house, while Mrs. Minot entertained a room full of guests.
“Frank's run off with No. 11, and he'll be killed sure. Thought I'd come up and tell you,” stammered Joe, all out of breath and looking wild.
“Frank's run off with No. 11, and he's definitely going to get killed. I thought I'd come up and tell you,” Joe stammered, out of breath and looking frantic.
He got no further, for Mrs. Pecq clapped one hand over his mouth, caught him by the collar with the other, and hustled him into the ante-room before any one else could hear the bad news.
He couldn't continue because Mrs. Pecq pressed one hand over his mouth, grabbed him by the collar with the other, and quickly shoved him into the ante-room before anyone else could hear the bad news.
“Tell me all about it, and don't shout. What's come to the boy?” she demanded, in a tone that reduced Joe to a whisper at once.
“Tell me everything, and don't yell. What's wrong with the boy?” she demanded, in a tone that made Joe drop to a whisper immediately.
“Go right back and see what has happened to him, then come and tell me quietly. I'll wait for you here. I wouldn't have his mother startled for the world,” said the good soul, when she knew all.
“Go back and find out what happened to him, then come and tell me quietly. I’ll be waiting for you here. I wouldn’t want to startle his mother for anything,” said the kind-hearted person once she knew everything.
“Oh, I dar'sn't! I opened the switch as they told me to, and Bill will half kill me when he knows it!” cried Joe, in a panic, as the awful consequences of his deed rose before him, showing both boys mortally injured and several trains wrecked.
“Oh, I can’t! I flipped the switch like they told me to, and Bill is going to seriously hurt me when he finds out!” cried Joe, panicking as the terrifying outcomes of his actions flashed before him, showing both boys badly injured and several trains derailed.
“Then take yourself off home and hold your tongue. I'll watch the door, for I won't have any more ridiculous boys tearing in to disturb my lady.”
“Then go home and keep quiet. I'll watch the door, because I won't let any more silly boys barge in and interrupt my lady.”
Mrs. Pecq often called this good neighbor “my lady” when speaking of her, for Mrs. Minot was a true gentlewoman, and much pleasanter to live with than the titled mistress had been.
Mrs. Pecq often referred to this good neighbor as “my lady” when talking about her, because Mrs. Minot was a real gentlewoman and much more enjoyable to live with than the titled mistress had been.
Joe scudded away as if the constable was after him, and presently Frank was seen slowly approaching with an unusually sober face and a pair of very dirty hands.
Joe darted off as if the cop was chasing him, and soon Frank was seen slowly walking up with a strangely serious expression and a pair of really dirty hands.
“Thank heaven, he's safe!” and, softly opening the door, Mrs. Pecq actually hustled the young master into the ante-room as unceremoniously as she had hustled Joe.
“Thank goodness, he's safe!” and, gently opening the door, Mrs. Pecq actually ushered the young master into the foyer as casually as she had done with Joe.
“I beg pardon, but the parlor is full of company, and that fool of a Joe came roaring in with a cock-and-bull story that gave me quite a turn. What is it, Mr. Frank?” she asked eagerly, seeing that something was amiss.
“I’m sorry, but the parlor is packed with guests, and that idiot Joe came barging in with some ridiculous story that really threw me off. What’s going on, Mr. Frank?” she asked eagerly, noticing that something was wrong.
He told her in a few words, and she was much relieved to find that no harm had been done.
He told her briefly, and she was greatly relieved to discover that nothing bad had happened.
“Ah, the danger is to come,” said Frank, darkly, as he went away to wash his hands and prepare to relate his misdeeds.
“Ah, the danger is yet to come,” Frank said ominously as he walked away to wash his hands and get ready to talk about his wrongdoings.
It was a very bad quarter of an hour for the poor fellow, who so seldom had any grave faults to confess; but he did it manfully, and his mother was so grateful for the safety of her boy that she found it difficult to be severe enough, and contented herself with forbidding any more visits to the too charming No. 11.
It was a really rough fifteen minutes for the poor guy, who usually didn’t have any serious mistakes to admit; but he faced it bravely, and his mom was so thankful for her son’s safety that she struggled to be strict enough and settled for banning any more visits to the way too charming No. 11.
“What do you suppose will be done to me?” asked Frank, on whom the idea of imprisonment had made a deep impression.
“What do you think will happen to me?” asked Frank, who was deeply affected by the thought of being imprisoned.
“I don't know, dear, but I shall go over to see Mr. Burton right after tea. He will tell us what to do and what to expect. Gus must not suffer for your fault.”
“I don’t know, honey, but I’ll go talk to Mr. Burton right after tea. He’ll let us know what we should do and what to expect. Gus shouldn’t suffer because of your mistake.”
“He'll come off clear enough, but Joe must take his share, for if he hadn't opened that confounded switch, no harm would have been done. But when I saw the way clear, I actually couldn't resist going ahead,” said Frank, getting excited again at the memory of that blissful moment when he started the engine.
“He’ll come off just fine, but Joe has to take his part of the blame because if he hadn't messed with that damn switch, nothing would have happened. But when I saw the way clear, I really couldn't help but go for it,” said Frank, getting excited again at the memory of that amazing moment when he started the engine.
Here Jack came hurrying in, having heard the news, and refused to believe it from any lips but Frank's. When he could no longer doubt, he was so much impressed with the daring of the deed that he had nothing but admiration for his brother, till a sudden thought made him clap his hands and exclaim exultingly,—
Here came Jack rushing in, having heard the news, and he wouldn’t believe it from anyone but Frank. When he could no longer doubt it, he was so impressed by the boldness of the act that he felt nothing but admiration for his brother, until a sudden thought made him clap his hands and exclaim joyfully,—
“His runaway beats mine all hollow, and now he can't crow over me! Won't that be a comfort? The good boy has got into a scrape. Hooray!”
“His runaway totally beats mine, and now he can't brag about it! Won't that be a relief? The good kid is in trouble. Hooray!”
This was such a droll way of taking it, that they had to laugh; and Frank took his humiliation so meekly that Jack soon fell to comforting him, instead of crowing over him.
This was such a funny way of dealing with it that they couldn't help but laugh; and Frank accepted his embarrassment so humbly that Jack quickly started to console him, instead of gloating over him.
Jill thought it a most interesting event; and, when Frank and his mother went over to consult Mr. Burton, she and Jack planned out for the dear culprit a dramatic trial which would have convulsed the soberest of judges. His sentence was ten years' imprisonment, and such heavy fines that the family would have been reduced to beggary but for the sums made by Jill's fancy work and Jack's success as a champion pedestrian.
Jill found it to be a really interesting event; and when Frank and his mom went to talk to Mr. Burton, she and Jack came up with a dramatic trial for the poor guilty one that would have shocked even the most serious judges. His sentence was ten years in prison and such hefty fines that the family would have been left in poverty if it weren't for the money Jill made from her crafts and Jack's success as a champion walker.
They found such comfort and amusement in this sensational programme that they were rather disappointed when Frank returned, reporting that a fine would probably be all the penalty exacted, as no harm had been done, and he and Gus were such respectable boys. What would happen to Joe, he could not tell, but he thought a good whipping ought to be added to his share.
They found so much comfort and entertainment in this sensational program that they felt a bit let down when Frank came back, saying that a fine would likely be the only penalty since no harm had been done, and he and Gus were such upstanding boys. He couldn’t say what would happen to Joe, but he thought a good spanking should definitely be included in his punishment.
Of course, the affair made a stir in the little world of children; and when Frank went to school, feeling that his character for good behavior was forever damaged, he found himself a lion, and was in danger of being spoiled by the admiration of his comrades, who pointed him out with pride as “the fellow who ran off with a steam-engine.”
Of course, the incident created a buzz in the small world of kids; and when Frank went to school, feeling that his reputation for good behavior was permanently ruined, he became quite the celebrity and risked getting spoiled by the admiration of his peers, who proudly pointed him out as “the guy who ran off with a steam engine.”
But an interview with Judge Kemble, a fine of twenty-five dollars, and lectures from all the grown people of his acquaintance, prevented him from regarding his escapade as a feat to boast of. He discovered, also, how fickle a thing is public favor, for very soon those who had praised began to tease, and it took all his courage, patience, and pride to carry him through the next week or two. The lads were never tired of alluding to No. 11, giving shrill whistles in his ear, asking if his watch was right, and drawing locomotives on the blackboard whenever they got a chance.
But an interview with Judge Kemble, a twenty-five dollar fine, and lectures from all the adults he knew made him see his little adventure as something to be embarrassed about rather than proud of. He also realized how unpredictable public opinion can be, as those who had praised him soon started to tease him, and it took all his courage, patience, and pride to get through the next week or two. The other boys never got tired of bringing up No. 11, making loud whistles in his ear, asking if his watch was accurate, and drawing trains on the blackboard whenever they had the chance.
The girls, too, had sly nods and smiles, hints and jokes of a milder sort, which made him color and fume, and once lose his dignity entirely. Molly Loo, who dearly loved to torment the big boys, and dared attack even solemn Frank, left one of Boo's old tin trains on the door-step, directed to “Conductor Minot,” who, I regret to say, could not refrain from kicking it into the street, and slamming the door with a bang that shook the house. Shrieks of laughter from wicked Molly and her coadjutor, Grif, greeted this explosion of wrath, which did no good, however, for half an hour later the same cars, all in a heap, were on the steps again, with two headless dolls tumbling out of the cab, and the dilapidated engine labelled, “No. 11 after the collision.”
The girls also exchanged sly nods and smiles, along with subtle hints and jokes that were less harsh, making him blush and get angry, and at one point, he completely lost his composure. Molly Loo, who loved to tease the older boys and even dared to mess with serious Frank, left one of Boo's old tin trains on the doorstep, addressed to “Conductor Minot,” who, I regret to say, couldn’t help but kick it into the street and slam the door so hard it shook the house. Shrieks of laughter from mischievous Molly and her accomplice, Grif, followed this outburst of anger, but it didn’t help, as half an hour later, the same cars, all piled up, were back on the steps again, with two headless dolls spilling out of the cab, and the battered engine labeled, “No. 11 after the collision.”
No one ever saw that ruin again, and for days Frank was utterly unconscious of Molly's existence, as propriety forbade his having it out with her as he had with Grif. Then Annette made peace between them, and the approach of the Twenty-second gave the wags something else to think of.
No one ever saw that ruin again, and for days Frank was completely unaware of Molly's presence, as manners prevented him from confronting her like he had with Grif. Then Annette helped them make up, and the coming of the Twenty-second gave the jokesters something else to focus on.
But it was long before Frank forgot that costly prank; for he was a thoughtful boy, who honestly wanted to be good; so he remembered this episode humbly, and whenever he felt the approach of temptation he made the strong will master it, saying to himself “Down brakes!” thus saving the precious freight he carried from many of the accidents which befall us when we try to run our trains without orders, and so often wreck ourselves as well as others.
But it took Frank a long time to forget that expensive prank because he was a thoughtful kid who genuinely wanted to be good. He remembered this situation humbly, and whenever he felt temptation coming on, he made his strong will take control, telling himself “Brake down!” This way, he saved the precious cargo he carried from many of the accidents that happen when we try to run our trains without instructions, often resulting in wrecking ourselves and others too.
Chapter XII. The Twenty-Second of February
Of course, the young ladies and gentlemen had a ball on the evening of that day, but the boys and girls were full of excitement about their “Scenes from the Life of Washington and other brilliant tableaux,” as the programme announced. The Bird Room was the theatre, being very large, with four doors conveniently placed. Ralph was in his element, putting up a little stage, drilling boys, arranging groups, and uniting in himself carpenter, scene-painter, manager, and gas man. Mrs. Minot permitted the house to be turned topsy-turvy, and Mrs. Pecq flew about, lending a hand everywhere. Jill was costumer, with help from Miss Delano, who did not care for balls, and kindly took charge of the girls. Jack printed tickets, programmes, and placards of the most imposing sort, and the work went gayly on till all was ready.
Of course, the young ladies and gentlemen had a great time that evening, but the boys and girls were buzzing with excitement about their “Scenes from the Life of Washington and other amazing performances,” as the program announced. The Bird Room served as the theater, which was quite large and had four doors conveniently located. Ralph was in his element, setting up a small stage, directing the boys, arranging groups, and handling all the roles of carpenter, scene painter, manager, and lighting technician. Mrs. Minot allowed the house to be turned upside down, while Mrs. Pecq darted around, helping wherever needed. Jill took care of costumes, with support from Miss Delano, who wasn't interested in balls and kindly managed the girls. Jack printed tickets, programs, and impressive-looking posters, and the preparations continued cheerfully until everything was ready.
When the evening came, the Bird Room presented a fine appearance. One end was curtained off with red drapery; and real footlights, with tin shades, gave a truly theatrical air to the little stage. Rows of chairs, filled with mammas and little people, occupied the rest of the space. The hall and Frank's room were full of amused papas, uncles, and old gentlemen whose patriotism brought them out in spite of rheumatism. There was a great rustling of skirts, fluttering of fans, and much lively chat, till a bell rang and the orchestra struck up.
When evening arrived, the Bird Room looked impressive. One end was draped with red curtains, and real footlights with tin shades gave a genuine theatrical vibe to the small stage. Rows of chairs were filled with moms and kids, taking up the rest of the space. The hall and Frank's room were packed with amused dads, uncles, and older gentlemen whose patriotism brought them out despite their rheumatism. There was a lot of rustling skirts, fluttering fans, and vibrant conversation until a bell rang and the orchestra started playing.
Yes, there really was an orchestra, for Ed declared that the national airs must be played, or the whole thing would be a failure. So he had exerted himself to collect all the musical talent he could find, a horn, a fiddle, and a flute, with drum and fife for the martial scenes. Ed looked more beaming than ever, as he waved his baton and led off with Yankee Doodle as a safe beginning, for every one knew that. It was fun to see little Johnny Cooper bang away on a big drum, and old Mr. Munson, who had been a fifer all his days, blow till he was as red as a lobster, while every one kept time to the music which put them all in good spirits for the opening scene.
Yes, there really was an orchestra, because Ed insisted that the national songs had to be played, or everything would fall flat. So he worked hard to gather all the musical talent he could find: a horn, a fiddle, and a flute, along with a drum and fife for the battle scenes. Ed looked happier than ever as he waved his baton and kicked things off with Yankee Doodle, a solid choice since everyone knew it. It was entertaining to watch little Johnny Cooper bang away on a big drum, and old Mr. Munson, who had been a fifer his whole life, blow until he turned as red as a lobster, while everyone kept time to the music that lifted their spirits for the opening scene.
Up went the curtain and several trees in tubs appeared, then a stately gentleman in small clothes, cocked hat, gray wig, and an imposing cane, came slowly walking in. It was Gus, who had been unanimously chosen not only for Washington but for the father of the hero also, that the family traits of long legs and a somewhat massive nose might be preserved.
Up went the curtain and a few potted trees showed up, then a distinguished gentleman dressed in breeches, a tricorne hat, a gray wig, and carrying a fancy cane walked in slowly. It was Gus, who had been unanimously picked not only to portray Washington but also the hero's father, so the family traits of long legs and a somewhat prominent nose could be preserved.
“Ahem! My trees are doing finely,” observed Mr. W., senior, strolling along with his hands behind him, casting satisfied glances at the dwarf orange, oleander, abutilon, and little pine that represented his orchard.
“Ahem! My trees are doing well,” noted Mr. W., senior, walking along with his hands behind him, casting satisfied glances at the dwarf orange, oleander, abutilon, and small pine that made up his orchard.
Suddenly he starts, pauses, frowns, and, after examining the latter shrub, which displayed several hacks in its stem and a broken limb with six red-velvet cherries hanging on it, he gave a thump with his cane that made the little ones jump, and cried out,—
Suddenly, he starts, pauses, frowns, and after looking at the nearby bush, which had several cuts on its trunk and a broken branch with six red-velvet cherries hanging from it, he thumped his cane, making the little ones jump, and shouted,—
“Can it have been my son?”
“Could it have been my son?”
He evidently thought it was, for he called, in tones of thunder,—
He clearly thought it was, because he shouted, in booming tones,—
“George! George Washington, come hither this moment!”
“George! George Washington, come here right now!”
Great suspense on the part of the audience, then a general burst of laughter as Boo trotted in, a perfect miniature of his honored parent, knee breeches, cocked hat, shoe buckles and all. He was so fat that the little tails of his coat stuck out in the drollest way, his chubby legs could hardly carry the big buckles, and the rosy face displayed, when he took his hat off with a dutiful bow, was so solemn, the real George could not have looked more anxious when he gave the immortal answer.
A wave of suspense swept through the audience, followed by a collective burst of laughter when Boo trotted in, a tiny version of his esteemed father, complete with knee breeches, a cocked hat, and shoe buckles. He was so plump that the little tails of his coat stuck out in the funniest way, his chubby legs struggled to support the big buckles, and his rosy face, which he revealed when he took off his hat with a polite bow, looked so serious that the real George couldn't have appeared more anxious when he delivered the legendary response.
“Sirrah, did you cut that tree?” demanded the papa, with another rap of the cane, and such a frown that poor Boo looked dismayed, till Molly whispered, “Put your hand up, dear.” Then he remembered his part, and, putting one finger in his mouth, looked down at his square-toed shoes, the image of a shame-stricken boy.
“Hey, did you cut that tree?” the dad asked, tapping his cane again and frowning so much that poor Boo looked worried, until Molly whispered, “Put your hand up, sweetie.” Then he remembered what he was supposed to do, and, sticking one finger in his mouth, he looked down at his square-toed shoes, like a boy who was ashamed.
“My son, do not deceive me. If you have done this deed I shall chastise you, for it is my duty not to spare the rod, lest I spoil the child. But if you lie about it you disgrace the name of Washington forever.”
“My son, don’t lie to me. If you did this, I will punish you because it’s my responsibility not to hold back discipline, or else you’ll end up spoiled. But if you’re lying about it, you’ll ruin the Washington name forever.”
This appeal seemed to convulse George with inward agony, for he squirmed most effectively as he drew from his pocket a toy hatchet, which would not have cut a straw, then looking straight up into the awe-inspiring countenance of his parent, he bravely lisped,—
This appeal seemed to cause George deep inner turmoil, as he squirmed uncomfortably while pulling a toy hatchet from his pocket, one that couldn't even cut a straw. Then, looking directly into the impressive face of his parent, he bravely stammered, —
“Papa, I tannot tell a lie. I did tut it with my little hanchet.”
“Dad, I can’t tell a lie. I did it with my little hand.”
“Noble boy—come to my arms! I had rather you spoilt all my cherry trees than tell one lie!” cried the delighted gentleman, catching his son in an embrace so close that the fat legs kicked convulsively, and the little coat-tails waved in the breeze, while cane and hatchet fell with a dramatic bang.
“Noble boy—come here and hug me! I would prefer you to ruin all my cherry trees than to tell a single lie!” exclaimed the delighted man, pulling his son into a tight embrace that made his chubby legs kick wildly and his little coat-tails flutter in the wind, while his cane and hatchet dropped with a dramatic thud.
The curtain descended on this affecting tableau; but the audience called out both Washingtons, and they came, hand in hand, bowing with the cocked hats pressed to their breasts, the elder smiling blandly, while the younger, still flushed by his exertions, nodded to his friends, asking, with engaging frankness, “Wasn't it nice?”
The curtain fell on this touching scene; but the audience shouted for both Washingtons, and they appeared, hand in hand, bowing with their hats held to their hearts. The older one smiled pleasantly, while the younger, still a bit flushed from his efforts, nodded to his friends, genuinely asking, “Wasn't it nice?”
The next was a marine piece, for a boat was seen, surrounded by tumultuous waves of blue cambric, and rowed by a party of stalwart men in regimentals, who with difficulty kept their seats, for the boat was only a painted board, and they sat on boxes or stools behind it. But few marked the rowers, for in their midst, tall, straight, and steadfast as a mast, stood one figure in a cloak, with folded arms, high boots, and, under the turned-up hat, a noble countenance, stern with indomitable courage. A sword glittered at his side, and a banner waved over him, but his eye was fixed on the distant shore, and he was evidently unconscious of the roaring billows, the blocks of ice, the discouragement of his men, or the danger and death that might await him. Napoleon crossing the Alps was not half so sublime, and with one voice the audience cried, “Washington crossing the Delaware!” while the band burst forth with, “See, the conquering hero comes!” all out of tune, but bound to play it or die in the attempt.
The next scene depicted a marine setting, with a boat surrounded by wild waves of blue fabric, rowed by a group of strong men in uniforms who struggled to stay seated, as the boat was just a painted board and they were sitting on boxes or stools behind it. Few noticed the rowers, because in their center stood a tall, straight figure in a cloak, with arms crossed, wearing high boots, and beneath his turned-up hat was a noble face, serious with unwavering courage. A sword shimmered at his side, and a flag fluttered above him, but his gaze was locked on the distant shore, seemingly unaware of the crashing waves, the ice blocks, his men's discouragement, or the danger and death that could lie ahead. Napoleon crossing the Alps wasn’t even close to this level of greatness, and the audience shouted in unison, “Washington crossing the Delaware!” as the band blared out, “See, the conquering hero comes!” all out of tune, but determined to play it or die trying.
It would have been very successful if, all of a sudden, one of the rowers had not “caught a crab” with disastrous consequences. The oars were not moving, but a veteran, who looked very much like Joe, dropped the one he held, and in trying to turn and pummel the black-eyed warrior behind him, he tumbled off his seat, upsetting two other men, and pulling the painted boat upon them as they lay kicking in the cambric deep. Shouts of laughter greeted this mishap, but George Washington never stirred. Grasping the banner, he stood firm when all else went down in the general wreck, and the icy waves engulfed his gallant crew, leaving him erect amid a chaos of wildly tossing boots, entangled oars, and red-faced victims. Such god-like dignity could not fail to impress the frivolous crowd of laughers, and the curtain fell amid a round of applause for him alone.
It would have been very successful if, all of a sudden, one of the rowers hadn't “caught a crab” with disastrous results. The oars weren't moving, but a veteran who looked a lot like Joe dropped the one he was holding, and while trying to turn and hit the black-eyed warrior behind him, he fell off his seat, knocking over two other guys and pulling the painted boat down on them as they lay kicking in the shallow water. Shouts of laughter followed this mishap, but George Washington never budged. Holding the flag, he stood tall while everything else fell apart in the chaos, and the icy waves swallowed his brave crew, leaving him standing amid a mess of wildly flailing boots, tangled oars, and red-faced victims. Such god-like dignity couldn't help but impress the playful crowd of laughers, and the curtain fell amid a round of applause just for him.
“Quite exciting, wasn't it? Didn't know Gus had so much presence of mind,” said Mr. Burton, well pleased with his boy.
“Pretty exciting, right? I didn’t realize Gus had such quick thinking,” said Mr. Burton, really happy with his son.
“If we did not know that Washington died in his bed, December 14, 1799, I should fear that we'd seen the last of him in that shipwreck,” laughed an old gentleman, proud of his memory for dates.
“If we didn’t know that Washington died in his bed on December 14, 1799, I’d be worried we’d seen the last of him in that shipwreck,” laughed an old man, proud of his ability to remember dates.
Much confusion reigned behind the scenes; Ralph was heard scolding, and Joe set every one off again by explaining, audibly, that Grif tickled him, and he couldn't stand it. A pretty, old-fashioned picture of the “Daughters of Liberty” followed, for the girls were determined to do honor to the brave and patient women who so nobly bore their part in the struggle, yet are usually forgotten when those days are celebrated. The damsels were charming in the big caps, flowered gowns, and high-heeled shoes of their great-grandmothers, as they sat about a spider-legged table talking over the tax, and pledging themselves to drink no more tea till it was taken off. Molly was on her feet proposing, “Liberty forever, and down with all tyrants,” to judge from her flashing eyes as she held her egg-shell cup aloft, while the others lifted theirs to drink the toast, and Merry, as hostess, sat with her hand on an antique teapot, labelled “Sage,” ready to fill again when the patriotic ladies were ready for a second “dish.”
Much confusion reigned behind the scenes; Ralph was heard scolding, and Joe got everyone fired up again by explaining loudly that Grif tickled him, and he couldn’t handle it. A lovely, old-fashioned scene of the “Daughters of Liberty” followed, as the girls were determined to honor the brave and patient women who nobly played their part in the struggle but are usually forgotten during those celebrations. The young women looked charming in the large caps, floral dresses, and high-heeled shoes of their great-grandmothers as they gathered around a spider-legged table discussing the tax and pledging not to drink any more tea until it was lifted. Molly stood up proposing, “Liberty forever, and down with all tyrants,” judging by her sparkling eyes as she held her egg-shell cup high, while the others raised theirs to toast. Merry, as the hostess, sat with her hand on an antique teapot labeled “Sage,” ready to refill when the patriotic ladies were ready for a second serving.
This was much applauded, and the curtain went up again, for the proud parents enjoyed seeing their pretty girls in the faded finery of a hundred years ago. The band played “Auld Lang Syne,” as a gentle hint that our fore-mothers should be remembered as well as the fore-fathers.
This received a lot of applause, and the curtain went up again, as the proud parents loved seeing their lovely daughters in the old-fashioned dresses from a century ago. The band played “Auld Lang Syne,” subtly reminding everyone to honor our foremothers just like we do our forefathers.
It was evident that something very martial was to follow, for a great tramping, clashing, and flying about took place behind the scenes while the tea-party was going on. After some delay, “The Surrender of Cornwallis” was presented in the most superb manner, as you can believe when I tell you that the stage was actually lined with a glittering array of Washington and his generals, Lafayette, Kosciusko, Rochambeau and the rest, all in astonishing uniforms, with swords which were evidently the pride of their lives. Fife and drum struck up a march, and in came Cornwallis, much cast down but full of manly resignation, as he surrendered his sword, and stood aside with averted eyes while his army marched past, piling their arms at the hero's feet.
It was clear that something very military was about to happen, as there was a lot of stomping, clashing, and rushing around behind the scenes while the tea party was going on. After a bit of a wait, “The Surrender of Cornwallis” was performed in a truly impressive way. You can believe it when I say the stage was actually filled with a shining lineup of Washington and his generals—Lafayette, Kosciusko, Rochambeau, and the others—all in incredible uniforms, with swords that clearly meant the world to them. A fife and drum started playing a march, and in walked Cornwallis, looking quite defeated but accepting it with dignity as he surrendered his sword. He stood to the side, looking away, while his army marched past, laying down their weapons at the hero's feet.
This scene was the delight of the boys, for the rifles of Company F had been secured, and at least a dozen soldiers kept filing in and out in British uniform till Washington's august legs were hidden by the heaps of arms rattled down before him. The martial music, the steady tramp, and the patriotic memories awakened, caused this scene to be enthusiastically encored, and the boys would have gone on marching till midnight if Ralph had not peremptorily ordered down the curtain and cleared the stage for the next tableau.
This scene thrilled the boys because the rifles of Company F had been secured, and at least a dozen soldiers kept coming in and out in British uniforms until Washington’s impressive legs were buried under piles of weapons laid out before him. The martial music, the steady marching, and the patriotic memories stirred up made this scene enthusiastically called back for more, and the boys would have kept marching until midnight if Ralph hadn’t firmly pulled down the curtain and cleared the stage for the next tableau.
This had been artfully slipped in between two brilliant ones, to show that the Father of his Country had to pay a high price for his glory. The darkened stage represented what seemed to be a camp in a snow-storm, and a very forlorn camp, too; for on “the cold, cold ground” (a reckless display of cotton batting) lay ragged soldiers, sleeping without blankets, their worn-out boots turned up pathetically, and no sign of food or fire to be seen. A very shabby sentinel, with feet bound in bloody cloths, and his face as pale as chalk could make it, gnawed a dry crust as he kept his watch in the wintry night.
This had been cleverly placed between two impressive ones, to emphasize that the Father of His Country had to pay a steep price for his glory. The dimly lit stage portrayed what looked like a camp in a snowstorm, and it was a pretty miserable camp, too; for on “the cold, cold ground” (a bold use of cotton batting) lay ragged soldiers, sleeping without blankets, their worn-out boots pointed up sadly, and no sign of food or fire in sight. A very shabby sentinel, with his feet wrapped in bloody cloths and his face as pale as chalk could make it, nibbled on a dry crust while keeping watch on the wintry night.
A tent at the back of the stage showed a solitary figure sitting on a log of wood, poring over the map spread upon his knee, by the light of one candle stuck in a bottle. There could be no doubt who this was, for the buff-and-blue coat, the legs, the nose, the attitude, all betrayed the great George laboring to save his country, in spite of privations, discouragements, and dangers which would have daunted any other man.
A tent at the back of the stage displayed a lone figure sitting on a log, examining the map laid out on his knee, illuminated by a candle stuck in a bottle. There was no question about who this was, as the buff-and-blue coat, the legs, the nose, and the stance all revealed the great George working hard to save his country, despite the hardships, discouragements, and dangers that would have intimidated anyone else.
“Valley Forge,” said someone, and the room was very still as old and young looked silently at this little picture of a great and noble struggle in one of its dark hours. The crust, the wounded feet, the rags, the snow, the loneliness, the indomitable courage and endurance of these men touched the hearts of all, for the mimic scene grew real for a moment; and, when a child's voice broke the silence, asking pitifully, “Oh, mamma, was it truly as dreadful as that?” a general outburst answered, as if every one wanted to cheer up the brave fellows and bid them fight on, for victory was surely coming.
“Valley Forge,” someone said, and the room fell silent as both old and young stared quietly at this small depiction of a great and noble struggle during one of its darkest moments. The frost, the injured feet, the tattered clothes, the snow, the isolation, the unyielding courage and perseverance of these men moved everyone’s hearts, making the scene feel real for a moment; and when a child's voice broke the silence, asking sadly, “Oh, mom, was it really as awful as that?” a collective response erupted, as if everyone wanted to encourage the brave men and tell them to keep fighting, for victory was surely on the way.
In the next scene it did come, and “Washington at Trenton” was prettily done. An arch of flowers crossed the stage, with the motto, “The Defender of the Mothers will be the Preserver of the Daughters;” and, as the hero with his generals advanced on one side, a troop of girls, in old-fashioned muslin frocks, came to scatter flowers before him, singing the song of long ago:—
In the next scene it did come, and “Washington at Trenton” was beautifully done. A floral arch spanned the stage, displaying the motto, “The Defender of the Mothers will be the Preserver of the Daughters.” As the hero with his generals advanced from one side, a group of girls in old-fashioned muslin dresses appeared to scatter flowers before him, singing a song from long ago:—
“Welcome, mighty chief, once more Welcome to this grateful shore; Now no mercenary foe Aims again the fatal blow,— Aims at thee the fatal blow. “Virgins fair and matrons grave, Those thy conquering arm did save, Build for thee triumphal bowers; Strew, ye fair, his way with flowers,— Strew your hero's way with flowers.”
“Welcome back, great leader, Welcome to this thankful land; Now no hired enemy Aims again to deliver a deadly strike,— Aims at you the deadly strike. “Beautiful maidens and wise mothers, Those saved by your victorious strength, Build for you triumphant arches; Scatter, you lovely ladies, flowers along his path,— Scatter your hero's path with flowers.”
And they did, singing with all their hearts as they flung artificial roses and lilies at the feet of the great men, who bowed with benign grace. Jack, who did Lafayette with a limp, covered himself with glory by picking up one of the bouquets and pressing it to his heart with all the gallantry of a Frenchman; and when Washington lifted the smallest of the maids and kissed her, the audience cheered. Couldn't help it, you know, it was so pretty and inspiring.
And they did, singing with all their hearts as they tossed fake roses and lilies at the feet of the great men, who bowed graciously. Jack, who portrayed Lafayette with a limp, made himself proud by picking up one of the bouquets and pressing it to his heart with all the charm of a Frenchman; and when Washington lifted the youngest of the maids and kissed her, the audience cheered. They couldn't help it, you know, it was just so beautiful and uplifting.
The Washington Family, after the famous picture, came next, with Annette as the serene and sensible Martha, in a very becoming cap. The General was in uniform, there being no time to change, but his attitude was quite correct, and the Custis boy and girl displayed the wide sash and ruffled collar with historic fidelity. The band played “Home,” and every one agreed that it was “Sweet!”
The Washington Family, after the famous picture, came next, with Annette as the calm and sensible Martha, wearing a very flattering cap. The General was in uniform since there was no time to change, but he looked perfectly fine, and the Custis kids showed off the wide sash and ruffled collar with historical accuracy. The band played “Home,” and everyone agreed that it was “Sweet!”
“Now I don't see what more they can have except the death-bed, and that would be rather out of place in this gay company,” said the old gentleman to Mr. Burton, as he mopped his heated face after pounding so heartily he nearly knocked the ferule off his cane.
“Now I don't see what else they can have except the deathbed, and that would be a bit inappropriate in this lively crowd,” said the old gentleman to Mr. Burton, as he wiped his sweaty face after hitting the floor so hard he nearly knocked the tip off his cane.
“No; they gave that up, for my boy wouldn't wear a night-gown in public. I can't tell secrets, but I think they have got a very clever little finale for the first part—a pretty compliment to one person and a pleasant surprise to all,” answered Mr. Burton, who was in great spirits, being fond of theatricals and very justly proud of his children, for the little girls had been among the Trenton maids, and the mimic General had kissed his own small sister, Nelly, very tenderly.
“No; they gave that up because my boy wouldn’t wear a nightgown in public. I can’t share any secrets, but I think they’ve got a really clever little ending for the first part—a nice compliment to one person and a fun surprise for everyone,” replied Mr. Burton, who was in high spirits, being fond of theater and justly proud of his children, since the little girls had performed among the Trenton maids, and the pretend General had kissed his own little sister, Nelly, very affectionately.
A great deal of interest was felt as to what this surprise was to be, and a general “Oh!” greeted the “Minute Man,” standing motionless upon his pedestal. It was Frank, and Ralph had done his best to have the figure as perfect as possible, for the maker of the original had been a good friend to him; and, while the young sculptor was dancing gayly at the ball, this copy of his work was doing him honor among the children. Frank looked it very well, for his firm-set mouth was full of resolution, his eyes shone keen and courageous under the three-cornered hat, and the muscles stood out upon the bare arm that clutched the old gun. Even the buttons on the gaiters seemed to flash defiance, as the sturdy legs took the first step from the furrow toward the bridge where the young farmer became a hero when he “fired the shot heard 'round the world.”
There was a lot of curiosity about what this surprise would be, and a collective "Oh!" welcomed the "Minute Man," standing still on his pedestal. It was Frank, and Ralph had worked hard to make the figure as perfect as possible, since the creator of the original was a good friend of his; while the young sculptor was happily dancing at the ball, this replica of his work was honoring him among the children. Frank looked impressive, with his determined mouth showing resolve, his eyes shining brightly and bravely under the three-cornered hat, and the muscles on his bare arm bulging as he held the old gun. Even the buttons on the gaiters seemed to spark defiance as the strong legs took the first step from the furrow toward the bridge where the young farmer became a hero when he "fired the shot heard 'round the world."
“That is splendid!” “As like to the original as flesh can be to bronze.” “How still he stands!” “He'll fight when the time comes, and die hard, won't he?” “Hush! You make the statue blush!” These very audible remarks certainly did, for the color rose visibly as the modest lad heard himself praised, though he saw but one face in all the crowd, his mother's, far back, but full of love and pride, as she looked up at her young minute man waiting for the battle which often calls us when we least expect it, and for which she had done her best to make him ready.
“That is amazing!” “Just as true to the original as flesh is to bronze.” “Look how still he stands!” “He’ll fight when the time comes, and he’ll be tough, right?” “Shh! You’re making the statue blush!” Those remarks were definitely heard, as the color rose noticeably in the modest young man as he heard himself praised, even though he could only see one face in the crowd—his mother’s, far back but full of love and pride as she looked up at her young minute man waiting for the battle that often catches us off guard, and for which she had done her best to prepare him.
If there had been any danger of Frank being puffed up by the success of his statue, it was counteracted by irrepressible Grif, who, just at the most interesting moment, when all were gazing silently, gave a whistle, followed by a “Choo, choo, choo!” and “All aboard!” so naturally that no one could mistake the joke, especially as another laughing voice added, “Now, then, No. 11!” which brought down the house and the curtain too.
If there had been any risk of Frank getting carried away by the success of his statue, it was quickly neutralized by irrepressible Grif, who, right at the most engaging moment when everyone was staring silently, let out a whistle, followed by a “Choo, choo, choo!” and “All aboard!” so effortlessly that no one could miss the joke, especially since another laughing voice chimed in with, “Now, then, No. 11!” which brought down the house and the curtain too.
Frank was so angry, it was very difficult to keep him on his perch for the last scene of all. He submitted, however, rather than spoil the grand finale, hoping that its beauty would efface that ill-timed pleasantry from the public mind. So, when the agreeable clamor of hands and voices called for a repetition, the Minute Man reappeared, grimmer than before. But not alone, for grouped all about his pedestal were Washington and his generals, the matrons and maids, with a background of troops shouldering arms, Grif and Joe doing such rash things with their muskets, that more than one hero received a poke in his august back. Before the full richness of this picture had been taken in, Ed gave a rap, and all burst out with “Hail Columbia,” in such an inspiring style that it was impossible for the audience to refrain from joining, which they did, all standing and all singing with a heartiness that made the walls ring. The fife shrilled, the horn blew sweet and clear, the fiddle was nearly drowned by the energetic boom of the drum, and out into the starry night, through open windows, rolled the song that stirs the coldest heart with patriotic warmth and tunes every voice to music.
Frank was so angry that it was really tough to keep him in his spot for the final scene. However, he went along with it instead of ruining the big moment, hoping its beauty would erase that poorly timed joke from everyone’s memory. So, when the cheerful cheers of hands and voices called for an encore, the Minute Man came back, looking even more serious than before. But he wasn’t alone; surrounding his pedestal were Washington and his generals, the ladies and young women, with a backdrop of troops standing at attention, Grif and Joe doing such reckless things with their muskets that more than one hero got poked in his important back. Before everyone could fully take in this scene, Ed gave a signal, and everyone broke out into “Hail Columbia” in such an inspiring way that the audience couldn’t help but join in, standing and singing with such enthusiasm that it made the walls shake. The fife shrieked, the horn played sweet and clear, the fiddle was nearly drowned out by the powerful boom of the drum, and out into the starry night, through open windows, rolled the song that warms even the coldest heart with patriotic spirit and brings everyone’s voice together in song.
“'America!' We must have 'America!' Pipe up, Ed, this is too good to end without one song more,” cried Mr. Burton, who had been singing like a trumpet; and, hardly waiting to get their breath, off they all went again with the national hymn, singing as they never had sung it before, for somehow the little scenes they had just acted or beheld seemed to show how much this dear America of ours had cost in more than one revolution, how full of courage, energy, and virtue it was in spite of all its faults, and what a privilege, as well as duty, it was for each to do his part toward its safety and its honor in the present, as did those brave men and women in the past.
“'America!' We need to sing 'America!' Come on, Ed, we can’t end this without one more song,” shouted Mr. Burton, who had been singing loudly; and, barely taking a breath, they all jumped in again with the national anthem, singing it like never before. The little scenes they had just acted out or witnessed somehow highlighted how much our beloved America cost us in more than one revolution, how full of courage, energy, and virtue it was despite all its flaws, and what a privilege—and a responsibility—it was for each person to do their part for its safety and honor today, just as those brave men and women did in the past.
So the “Scenes from the Life of Washington” were a great success, and, when the songs were over, people were glad of a brief recess while they had raptures, and refreshed themselves with lemonade.
So the “Scenes from the Life of Washington” were a big hit, and, when the songs ended, everyone appreciated a short break to enjoy themselves and cool off with some lemonade.
The girls had kept the secret of who the “Princess” was to be, and, when the curtain rose, a hum of surprise and pleasure greeted the pretty group. Jill lay asleep in all her splendor, the bonny “Prince” just lifting the veil to wake her with a kiss, and all about them the court in its nap of a hundred years. The “King” and “Queen” dozing comfortably on the throne; the maids of honor, like a garland of nodding flowers, about the couch; the little page, unconscious of the blow about to fall, and the fool dreaming, with his mouth wide open.
The girls had kept the secret of who the “Princess” would be, and when the curtain rose, a buzz of surprise and delight surrounded the beautiful group. Jill lay asleep in all her glory, the handsome “Prince” just lifting the veil to wake her with a kiss, while all around them the court slumbered for a hundred years. The “King” and “Queen” were dozing comfortably on the throne; the maids of honor, like a wreath of nodding flowers, surrounded the couch; the little page, unaware of the impending surprise, and the fool dreaming with his mouth wide open.
It was so pretty, people did not tire of looking, till Jack's lame leg began to tremble, and he whispered: “Drop her or I shall pitch.” Down went the curtain; but it rose in a moment, and there was the court after the awakening: the “King” and “Queen” looking about them with sleepy dignity, the maids in various attitudes of surprise, the fool grinning from ear to ear, and the “Princess” holding out her hand to the “Prince,” as if glad to welcome the right lover when he came at last.
It was so beautiful that people couldn't stop looking until Jack's lame leg started to shake, and he whispered, “Let her go or I'm going to fall.” The curtain dropped, but it went up again right away, revealing the court after they woke up: the “King” and “Queen” looking around with sleepy dignity, the maids in different poses of surprise, the fool grinning from ear to ear, and the “Princess” extending her hand to the “Prince,” as if she was happy to finally welcome the right lover.
Molly got the laugh this time, for she could not resist giving poor Boo the cuff which had been hanging over him so long. She gave it with unconscious energy, and Boo cried “Ow!” so naturally that all the children were delighted and wanted it repeated. But Boo declined, and the scenes which followed were found quite as much to their taste, having been expressly prepared for the little people.
Molly got the laugh this time because she couldn't help but give poor Boo the smack that had been looming over him for so long. She did it with unexpected energy, and Boo yelled "Ow!" so authentically that all the kids loved it and wanted to see it happen again. But Boo refused, and the antics that followed were just as enjoyable for them, having been specifically designed for the little ones.
Mother Goose's Reception was really very funny, for Ralph was the old lady, and had hired a representation of the immortal bird from a real theatre for this occasion. There they stood, the dame in her pointed hat, red petticoat, cap, and cane, with the noble fowl, a good deal larger than life, beside her, and Grif inside, enjoying himself immensely as he flapped the wings, moved the yellow legs, and waved the long neck about, while unearthly quacks issued from the bill. That was a great surprise for the children, and they got up in their seats to gaze their fill, many of them firmly believing that they actually beheld the blessed old woman who wrote the nursery songs they loved so well.
Mother Goose's Reception was really hilarious because Ralph was the old lady and had hired a life-sized representation of the famous bird from a real theater for the event. There they stood, the lady in her pointed hat, red petticoat, cap, and cane, with the impressive bird, much larger than life, next to her. Inside, Grif was having a blast as he flapped the wings, moved the yellow legs, and waved the long neck around, making bizarre quacking sounds from the beak. That was a big surprise for the kids, and they all got up in their seats to gaze in amazement, many of them truly believing they were seeing the beloved old woman who wrote the nursery songs they cherished.
Then in came, one after another, the best of the characters she has made famous, while a voice behind the scenes sang the proper rhyme as each made their manners to the interesting pair. “Mistress Mary,” and her “pretty maids all in a row,” passed by to their places in the background; “King Cole” and his “fiddlers three” made a goodly show; so did the royal couple, who followed the great pie borne before them, with the “four-and-twenty blackbirds” popping their heads out in the most delightful way. Little “Bo-Peep” led a woolly lamb and wept over its lost tail, for not a sign of one appeared on the poor thing. “Simple Simon” followed the pie-man, gloating over his wares with the drollest antics. The little wife came trundling by in a wheelbarrow and was not upset; neither was the lady with “rings on her fingers and bells on her toes,” as she cantered along on a rocking-horse. “Bobby Shafto's” yellow hair shone finely as he led in the maid whom he came back from sea to marry. “Miss Muffet,” bowl in hand, ran away from an immense black spider, which waggled its long legs in a way so life-like that some of the children shook in their little shoes. The beggars who came to town were out in full force, “rags, tags, and velvet gowns,” quite true to life. “Boy Blue” rubbed his eyes, with hay sticking in his hair, and tooted on a tin horn as if bound to get the cows out of the corn. Molly, with a long-handled frying-pan, made a capital “Queen,” in a tucked-up gown, checked apron, and high crown, to good “King Arthur,” who, very properly, did not appear after stealing the barley-meal, which might be seen in the pan tied up in a pudding, like a cannon-ball, ready to fry.
In came, one after another, the best of the characters she made famous, while a voice offstage sang the right rhyme as each one greeted the interesting pair. “Mistress Mary,” along with her “pretty maids all in a row,” moved to their spots in the background; “King Cole” and his “fiddlers three” made quite the show; so did the royal couple, who followed the giant pie carried before them, with the “four-and-twenty blackbirds” poking their heads out in the most delightful way. Little “Bo-Peep” led a fluffy lamb and cried over its lost tail, since not a trace of one could be found on the poor thing. “Simple Simon” followed the pie-man, marveling at his goods with the funniest antics. The little wife came rolling by in a wheelbarrow and didn't fall out; neither did the lady with “rings on her fingers and bells on her toes,” as she trotted along on a rocking horse. “Bobby Shafto's” golden hair shined brightly as he brought in the girl he returned from the sea to marry. “Miss Muffet,” bowl in hand, ran away from a huge black spider, which wiggled its long legs in such a lifelike way that some of the kids trembled in their little shoes. The beggars who came to town were out in full force, “rags, tags, and velvet gowns,” just like real life. “Boy Blue” rubbed his eyes, with hay sticking in his hair, and blew on a tin horn as if he were trying to get the cows out of the corn. Molly, with a long-handled frying pan, made a great “Queen,” in a tucked-up gown, checkered apron, and tall crown, for good “King Arthur,” who, very properly, did not show up after stealing the barley-meal, which could be seen in the pan tied up in a pudding, like a cannonball, ready to fry.
But Tobias, Molly's black cat, covered himself with glory by the spirit with which he acted his part in,
But Tobias, Molly's black cat, really shined with the enthusiasm he showed in
“Sing, sing, what shall I sing? The cat's run away with the pudding-bag string.”
“Sing, sing, what should I sing? The cat's run off with the pudding-bag string.”
First he was led across the stage on his hind legs, looking very fierce and indignant, with a long tape trailing behind him; and, being set free at the proper moment, he gave one bound over the four-and-twenty blackbirds who happened to be in the way, and dashed off as if an enraged cook had actually been after him, straight downstairs to the coal-bin, where he sat glaring in the dark, till the fun was over.
First, he was walked across the stage on his back legs, looking very fierce and offended, with a long ribbon trailing behind him. When he was finally let go, he leaped over the twenty-four blackbirds that were in his path and ran off as if an angry cook was really chasing him, straight down to the coal-bin, where he sat glaring in the dark until the fun was over.
When all the characters had filed in and stood in two long rows, music struck up and they danced, “All the way to Boston,” a simple but lively affair, which gave each a chance to show his or her costume as they pranced down the middle and up outside.
When all the characters had lined up and stood in two long rows, music started playing and they danced, “All the way to Boston,” a simple but lively tune that gave everyone a chance to showcase their costume as they skipped down the middle and back outside.
Such a funny medley as it was, for there went fat “King Cole” with the most ragged of the beggar-maids. “Mistress Mary,” in her pretty blue dress, tripped along with “Simple Simon” staring about him like a blockhead. The fine lady left her horse to dance with “Bobby Shafto” till every bell on her slippers tinkled its tongue out. “Bo-Peep” and a jolly fiddler skipped gayly up and down. “Miss Muffet” took the big spider for her partner, and made his many legs fly about in the wildest way. The little wife got out of the wheelbarrow to help “Boy Blue” along, and Molly, with the frying-pan over her shoulder, led off splendidly when it was “Grand right and left.”
What a funny mix it was, with the chubby “King Cole” dancing alongside the ragged beggar girl. “Mistress Mary,” in her pretty blue dress, skipped along with “Simple Simon” who stared around like a fool. The elegant lady left her horse to dance with “Bobby Shafto” until every bell on her slippers jingled. “Bo-Peep” and a cheerful fiddler bounced up and down happily. “Miss Muffet” took the big spider as her dance partner, making his many legs flail around wildly. The little wife jumped out of the wheelbarrow to help “Boy Blue” and Molly, with a frying pan over her shoulder, kicked things off brilliantly when it was time for the “Grand right and left.”
But the old lady and her goose were the best of all, for the dame's shoe-buckles cut the most astonishing pigeon-wings, and to see that mammoth bird waddle down the middle with its wings half open, its long neck bridling, and its yellow legs in the first position as it curtsied to its partner, was a sight to remember, it was so intensely funny.
But the old lady and her goose were the best of all, because the woman's shoe buckles created the most amazing pigeon wings. Watching that enormous bird waddle down the middle with its wings half open, its long neck held high, and its yellow legs in the first position as it curtsied to its partner was a sight to remember; it was incredibly amusing.
The merry old gentleman laughed till he cried; Mr. Burton split his gloves, he applauded so enthusiastically; while the children beat the dust out of the carpet hopping up and down, as they cried: “Do it again!” “We want it all over!” when the curtain went down at last on the flushed and panting party, Mother G—— bowing, with her hat all awry, and the goose doing a double shuffle as if it did not know how to leave off.
The cheerful old man laughed until he cried; Mr. Burton ripped his gloves from clapping so hard; while the kids were bouncing up and down, hitting the dust out of the carpet, shouting, "Do it again!" "We want it all over!" When the curtain finally came down on the flushed and breathless group, Mother G—— bowed, her hat askew, and the goose did a funny little dance like it couldn’t figure out how to stop.
But they could not “do it all over again,” for it was growing late, and the people felt that they certainly had received their money's worth that evening.
But they couldn't "do it all over again," because it was getting late, and the people felt they had definitely gotten their money's worth that evening.
So it all ended merrily, and when the guests departed the boys cleared the room like magic, and the promised supper to the actors was served in handsome style. Jack and Jill were at one end, Mrs. Goose and her bird at the other, and all between was a comical collection of military heroes, fairy characters, and nursery celebrities. All felt the need of refreshment after their labors, and swept over the table like a flight of locusts, leaving devastation behind. But they had earned their fun: and much innocent jollity prevailed, while a few lingering papas and mammas watched the revel from afar, and had not the heart to order these noble beings home till even the Father of his Country declared “that he'd had a perfectly splendid time, but couldn't keep his eyes open another minute,” and very wisely retired to replace the immortal cocked hat with a night-cap.
So it all ended happily, and when the guests left, the boys cleaned up the room like it was nothing, and the promised dinner for the actors was served in style. Jack and Jill were at one end, Mrs. Goose and her bird at the other, and in between was a funny mix of military heroes, fairy characters, and popular nursery figures. Everyone was ready for a snack after their efforts and descended on the table like a swarm of locusts, leaving a mess behind. But they had earned their fun; there was plenty of innocent laughter, while a few lingering parents watched the celebration from a distance, unable to send these great beings home until even the Father of His Country declared “that he’d had a wonderful time, but couldn’t keep his eyes open another minute,” and wisely went to change from his iconic hat to a nightcap.
Chapter XIII. Jack Has a Mystery
“What is the matter? Does your head ache?” asked Jill, one evening in March, observing that Jack sat with his head in his hands, an attitude which, with him, meant either pain or perplexity.
“What’s wrong? Is your head hurting?” asked Jill one evening in March, noticing that Jack sat with his head in his hands, a position that, for him, indicated either pain or confusion.
“No; but I'm bothered. I want some money, and I don't see how I can earn it,” he answered, tumbling his hair about, and frowning darkly at the fire.
“No; but I'm frustrated. I need some money, and I don't know how I can make it,” he replied, messing up his hair and scowling at the fire.
“How much?” and Jill's ready hand went to the pocket where her little purse lay, for she felt rich with several presents lately made her.
“How much?” Jill asked, quickly reaching into the pocket where her small purse rested, feeling wealthy from the several gifts she had recently received.
“Two seventy-five. No, thank you, I won't borrow.”
“Two seventy-five. No, thanks, I won’t borrow.”
“What is it for?”
“What’s it for?”
“Can't tell.”
"Can't say."
“Why, I thought you told me everything.”
“Why, I thought you shared everything with me.”
“Sorry, but I can't this time. Don't you worry; I shall think of something.”
“Sorry, but I can't this time. Don't worry; I'll think of something.”
“Couldn't your mother help?”
"Can't your mom help?"
“Don't wish to ask her.”
“Don't want to ask her.”
“Why! can't she know?”
“Why can’t she know?”
“Nobody can.”
"Nobody can."
“How queer! Is it a scrape, Jack?” asked Jill, looking as curious as a magpie.
“How strange! Is it a mess, Jack?” asked Jill, looking as curious as a magpie.
“It is likely to be, if I can't get out of it this week, somehow.”
“It’s probably going to happen, if I can’t get out of it this week, somehow.”
“Well, I don't see how I can help if I'm not to know anything;” and Jill seemed rather hurt.
“Well, I don't see how I can help if I'm not supposed to know anything,” Jill said, sounding a bit hurt.
“You can just stop asking questions, and tell me how a fellow can earn some money. That would help. I've got one dollar, but I must have some more;” and Jack looked worried as he fingered the little gold dollar on his watch-guard.
“You can stop asking questions and just tell me how a guy can make some money. That would really help. I have one dollar, but I need to get more,” Jack said, looking worried as he played with the little gold dollar on his watch chain.
“Oh, do you mean to use that?”
“Oh, are you planning to use that?”
“Yes, I do; a man must pay his debts if he sells all he has to do it,” said Jack sternly.
“Yes, I do; a man must pay his debts even if he has to sell everything he owns to do it,” said Jack sternly.
“Dear me; it must be something very serious.” And Jill lay quite still for five minutes, thinking over all the ways in which Jack ever did earn money, for Mrs. Minot liked to have her boys work, and paid them in some way for all they did.
“Wow, it has to be something really important.” And Jill stayed completely still for five minutes, considering all the ways Jack made money because Mrs. Minot preferred her boys to work and paid them for everything they did.
“Is there any wood to saw?” she asked presently, being very anxious to help.
“Is there any wood to cut?” she asked soon, eager to help.
“All done.”
"All set."
“Paths to shovel?”
"Paths to clear?"
“No snow.”
“No snow this year.”
“Lawn to rake, then?”
"Should we rake the lawn?"
“Not time for that yet.”
"Not time for that now."
“Catalogue of books?”
“Book catalog?”
“Frank got that job.”
"Frank got the job."
“Copy those letters for your mother?”
“Did you copy those letters for your mom?”
“Take me too long. Must have my money Friday, if possible.”
“Take too long. I need my money by Friday, if possible.”
“I don't see what we can do, then. It is too early or too late for everything, and you won't borrow.”
“I don’t know what we can do then. It’s too early or too late for anything, and you won’t borrow.”
“Not of you. No, nor of any one else, if I can possibly help it. I've promised to do this myself, and I will;” and Jack wagged his head resolutely.
“Not from you. No, and not from anyone else, if I can help it. I've promised to handle this myself, and I will;” and Jack nodded his head firmly.
“Couldn't you do something with the printing-press? Do me some cards, and then, perhaps, the other girls will want some,” said Jill, as a forlorn hope.
“Couldn’t you use the printing press to make some cards? If you do, maybe the other girls will want some too,” Jill said, holding onto a slim hope.
“Just the thing! What a goose I was not to think of it. I'll rig the old machine up at once.” And, starting from his seat, Jack dived into the big closet, dragged out the little press, and fell to oiling, dusting, and putting it in order, like one relieved of a great anxiety.
“Exactly what I needed! What a fool I was not to think of it. I'll set up the old machine right away.” With that, Jack jumped up from his seat, dove into the big closet, pulled out the little press, and started oiling, dusting, and organizing it, like someone who finally felt a weight lifted off their shoulders.
“Give me the types; I'll sort them and set up my name, so you can begin as soon as you are ready. You know what a help I was when we did the programmes. I'm almost sure the girls will want cards, and I know your mother would like some more tags,” said Jill, briskly rattling the letters into the different compartments, while Jack inked the rollers and hunted up his big apron, whistling the while with recovered spirits.
“Give me the types; I'll organize them and put my name on it, so you can start as soon as you're ready. You know how helpful I was when we worked on the programs. I'm pretty sure the girls will want cards, and I know your mom would like some more tags,” said Jill, quickly sorting the letters into the different sections, while Jack inked the rollers and searched for his big apron, whistling cheerfully as he did so.
A dozen neat cards were soon printed, and Jill insisted on paying six cents for them, as earning was not borrowing. A few odd tags were found and done for Mamma, who immediately ordered four dozen at six cents a dozen, though she was not told why there was such a pressing call for money.
Twelve neat cards were printed quickly, and Jill insisted on paying six cents for them since earning was not the same as borrowing. A few random tags were found and made for Mom, who promptly ordered four dozen at six cents a dozen, even though she wasn't told why there was such an urgent need for money.
Jack's monthly half-dollar had been spent the first week,—twenty-five cents for a concert, ten paid a fine for keeping a book too long from the library, ten more to have his knife ground, and five in candy, for he dearly loved sweeties, and was under bonds to Mamma not to spend more than five cents a month on these unwholesome temptations. She never asked the boys what they did with their money, but expected them to keep account in the little books she gave them; and, now and then, they showed the neat pages with pardonable pride, though she often laughed at the queer items.
Jack had spent his monthly fifty cents in the first week—twenty-five cents for a concert, ten cents for a fine for keeping a book too long from the library, ten more to get his knife sharpened, and five cents on candy, because he had a sweet tooth and was under strict orders from Mom not to spend more than five cents a month on these unhealthy treats. She never asked the boys what they did with their money but expected them to keep track in the little notebooks she gave them; occasionally, they would proudly show off the neat pages, even though she often chuckled at the funny entries.
All that evening Jack & Co. worked busily, for when Frank came in he good-naturedly ordered some pale-pink cards for Annette, and ran to the store to choose the right shade, and buy some packages for the young printer also.
All that evening, Jack & Co. worked hard because when Frank came in, he kindly ordered some pale pink cards for Annette and ran to the store to pick the right shade and buy some supplies for the young printer too.
“What do you suppose he is in such a pucker for?” whispered Jill, as she set up the new name, to Frank, who sat close by, with one eye on his book and one on her.
“What do you think he’s so worked up about?” whispered Jill, as she set up the new name, to Frank, who sat nearby, keeping one eye on his book and the other on her.
“Oh, some notion. He's a queer chap; but I guess it isn't much of a scrape, or I should know it. He's so good-natured he's always promising to do things for people, and has too much pluck to give up when he finds he can't. Let him alone, and it will all come out soon enough,” answered Frank, who laughed at his brother, but loved him none the less for the tender heart that often got the better of his young head.
“Oh, what a thought. He's a strange guy; but I guess it isn't really a big deal, or I would have heard about it. He's so easygoing, always promising to help people, and he's got too much courage to back down when he can't. Just leave him be, and it'll all come out soon enough,” replied Frank, who laughed at his brother but loved him just the same for the kind heart that often overpowered his youthful mind.
But for once Frank was mistaken; the mystery did not come out, and Jack worked like a beaver all that week, as orders poured in when Jill and Annette showed their elegant cards; for, as everybody knows, if one girl has a new thing all the rest must, whether it is a bow on the top of her head, a peculiar sort of pencil, or the latest kind of chewing-gum. Little play did the poor fellow get, for every spare minute was spent at the press, and no invitation could tempt him away, so much in earnest was our honest little Franklin about paying his debt. Jill helped all she could, and cheered his labors with her encouragement, remembering how he stayed at home for her.
But for once, Frank was wrong; the mystery didn’t come out, and Jack worked tirelessly all week as orders flooded in when Jill and Annette showed off their stylish cards. As everyone knows, if one girl has something new, all the others want it, whether it’s a bow in her hair, a unique kind of pencil, or the latest chewing gum. The poor guy hardly got any downtime, as every spare moment was spent at the press, and no invitation could lure him away—Franklin was genuinely focused on paying off his debt. Jill did everything she could to help and boosted his spirits with her encouragement, remembering how he stayed home for her.
“It is real good of you to lend a hand, and I'm ever so much obliged,” said Jack, as the last order was struck off, and the drawer of the type-box held a pile of shining five and ten cent pieces, with two or three quarters.
“It’s really nice of you to help out, and I’m really grateful,” said Jack, as the last order was completed, and the drawer of the type-box contained a pile of shiny five and ten cent coins, along with two or three quarters.
“I love to; only it would be nicer if I knew what we were working for,” she said demurely, as she scattered type for the last time; and seeing that Jack was both tired and grateful, hoped to get a hint of the secret.
“I love to; it would just be better if I knew what we were working toward,” she said shyly, as she arranged the type for the last time; and noticing that Jack was both exhausted and thankful, she hoped to get a clue about the secret.
“I want to tell you, dreadfully; but I can't, because I've promised.”
“I really want to tell you, but I can't because I made a promise.”
“What, never?”
“What, never?”
“Never!” and Jack looked as firm as a rock.
“Never!” Jack exclaimed, looking as solid as a rock.
“Then I shall find out, for I haven't promised.”
“Then I’ll find out, because I haven’t promised.”
“You can't.”
"You can't."
“See if I don't!”
"Watch me!"
“You are sharp, but you won't guess this. It's a tremendous secret, and nobody will tell it.”
“You're clever, but you won't figure this out. It's a huge secret, and no one will share it.”
“You'll tell it yourself. You always do.”
“You’ll share it yourself. You always do.”
“I won't tell this. It would be mean.”
“I won't share this. That would be unkind.”
“Wait and see; I can get anything out of you if I try;” and Jill laughed, knowing her power well, for Jack found it very hard to keep a secret from her.
“Just wait; I can get anything out of you if I really want to,” Jill said with a laugh, fully aware of her influence, because Jack struggled to keep a secret from her.
“Don't try; please don't! It wouldn't be right, and you don't want to make me do a dishonorable thing for your sake, I know.”
“Please don’t try! It wouldn’t be right, and you don’t want to make me do something dishonorable for you, I know.”
Jack looked so distressed that Jill promised not to make him tell, though she held herself free to find out in other ways, if she could.
Jack looked so upset that Jill promised not to force him to share, though she felt free to find out other ways, if she could.
Thus relieved, Jack trudged off to school on Friday with the two dollars and seventy-five cents jingling in his pocket, though the dear gold coin had to be sacrificed to make up the sum. He did his lessons badly that day, was late at recess in the afternoon, and, as soon as school was over, departed in his rubber boots “to take a walk,” he said, though the roads were in a bad state with a spring thaw. Nothing was seen of him till after tea-time, when he came limping in, very dirty and tired, but with a reposeful expression, which betrayed that a load was off his mind. Frank was busy about his own affairs and paid little attention to him, but Jill was on tenter-hooks to know where he had been, yet dared not ask the question.
Feeling relieved, Jack trudged off to school on Friday with two dollars and seventy-five cents jingling in his pocket, even though he had to sacrifice the precious gold coin to make up the total. He struggled with his lessons that day, was late for recess in the afternoon, and, as soon as school was over, left in his rubber boots “to take a walk,” he said, even though the roads were muddy from the spring thaw. He wasn’t seen again until after dinner, when he came limping in, dirty and tired, but with a calm expression that showed a weight had been lifted off his shoulders. Frank was busy with his own stuff and barely noticed him, but Jill was on edge to know where he had been, yet didn’t dare to ask.
“Merry's brother wants some cards. He liked hers so much he wishes to make his lady-love a present. Here's the name;” and Jill held up the order from Harry Grant, who was to be married in the autumn.
“Merry's brother wants some cards. He liked hers so much that he wants to get his girlfriend a gift. Here’s the name;” and Jill held up the order from Harry Grant, who was getting married in the fall.
“Must wait till next week. I'm too tired to do a thing to-night, and I hate the sight of that old press,” answered Jack, laying himself down upon the rug as if every joint ached.
“Must wait until next week. I'm too tired to do anything tonight, and I can't stand the sight of that old press,” replied Jack, laying down on the rug as if every joint hurt.
“What made you take such a long walk? You look as tired as if you'd been ten miles,” said Jill, hoping to discover the length of the trip.
“What made you go on such a long walk? You look as tired as if you’ve walked ten miles,” said Jill, trying to find out how far you actually went.
“Had to. Four or five miles isn't much, only my leg bothered me;” and Jack gave the ailing member a slap, as if he had found it much in his way that day; for, though he had given up the crutches long ago, he rather missed their support sometimes. Then, with a great yawn, he stretched himself out to bask in the blaze, pillowing his head on his arms.
“Had to. Four or five miles isn't that far, just my leg was bothering me;” and Jack gave the aching leg a slap, as if it had really gotten in his way that day; for, even though he had stopped using the crutches a while back, he sometimes missed their support. Then, with a big yawn, he stretched out to soak up the warmth, resting his head on his arms.
“Dear old thing, he looks all used up; I won't plague him with talking;” and Jill began to sing, as she often did in the twilight.
“Poor guy, he looks worn out; I won't bother him with conversation;” and Jill started to sing, as she often did in the evening.
By the time the first song ended a gentle snore was heard, and Jack lay fast asleep, worn out with the busy week and the walk, which had been longer and harder than any one guessed. Jill took up her knitting and worked quietly by firelight, still wondering and guessing what the secret could be; for she had not much to amuse her, and little things were very interesting if connected with her friends. Presently Jack rolled over and began to mutter in his sleep, as he often did when too weary for sound slumber. Jill paid no attention till he uttered a name which made her prick up her ears and listen to the broken sentences which followed. Only a few words, but she dropped her work, saying to herself,—
By the time the first song ended, a gentle snore was heard, and Jack was fast asleep, exhausted from the busy week and the walk, which had been longer and harder than anyone realized. Jill picked up her knitting and worked quietly by the firelight, still wondering and speculating about what the secret could be; since she didn't have much to keep her entertained, even small things became very interesting if they were related to her friends. Soon, Jack rolled over and started to mumble in his sleep, as he often did when too tired to sleep deeply. Jill didn’t pay much attention until he mentioned a name that made her perk up and listen to the jumbled sentences that followed. Just a few words, but she dropped her work, saying to herself,—
“I do believe he is talking about the secret. Now I shall find out, and he will tell me himself, as I said he would.”
“I really think he’s talking about the secret. Now I’m going to find out, and he will tell me himself, just like I said he would.”
Much pleased, she leaned and listened, but could make no sense of the confused babble about “heavy boots;” “All right, old fellow;” “Jerry's off;” and “The ink is too thick.”
Much pleased, she leaned in and listened, but couldn’t make sense of the confused chatter about “heavy boots,” “All right, old buddy,” “Jerry's gone,” and “The ink is too thick.”
The slam of the front door woke Jack, and he pulled himself up, declaring that he believed he had been having a nap.
The slam of the front door woke Jack, and he sat up, saying that he thought he had been taking a nap.
“I wish you'd have another,” said Jill, greatly disappointed at the loss of the intelligence she seemed to be so near getting.
“I wish you'd have another,” said Jill, feeling really disappointed about losing the understanding she thought she was so close to getting.
“Floor is too hard for tired bones. Guess I'll go to bed and get rested up for Monday. I've worked like fury this week, so next I'm going in for fun;” and, little dreaming what hard times were in store for him, Jack went off to enjoy his warm bath and welcome bed, where he was soon sleeping with the serene look of one whose dreams were happy, whose conscience was at rest.
“Floor is too hard for tired bones. I guess I'll go to bed and rest up for Monday. I've worked really hard this week, so next week I'm going to have some fun;” and, not realizing what tough times were ahead for him, Jack went off to enjoy his warm bath and comfortable bed, where he soon fell asleep with the peaceful expression of someone whose dreams were happy and whose conscience was clear.
“I have a few words to say to you before you go,” said Mr. Acton, pausing with his hand on the bell, Monday afternoon, when the hour came for dismissing school.
“I have a few things to tell you before you leave,” Mr. Acton said, pausing with his hand on the bell, Monday afternoon, when it was time to let the students go.
The bustle of putting away books and preparing for as rapid a departure as propriety allowed, subsided suddenly, and the boys and girls sat as still as mice, while the hearts of such as had been guilty of any small sins began to beat fast.
The hustle of putting books away and getting ready for a quick departure, as politely as possible, came to an abrupt stop, and the boys and girls sat as still as mice, while the hearts of those who had committed any minor misdeeds started to race.
“You remember that we had some trouble last winter about keeping the boys away from the saloon, and that a rule was made forbidding any pupil to go to town during recess?” began Mr. Acton, who, being a conscientious man as well as an excellent teacher, felt that he was responsible for the children in school hours, and did his best to aid parents in guarding them from the few temptations which beset them in a country town. A certain attractive little shop, where confectionery, baseballs, stationery, and picture papers were sold, was a favorite loafing place for some of the boys till the rule forbidding it was made, because in the rear of the shop was a beer and billiard saloon. A wise rule, for the picture papers were not always of the best sort; cigars were to be had; idle fellows hung about there, and some of the lads, who wanted to be thought manly, ventured to pass the green baize door “just to look on.”
“You remember that we had some trouble last winter keeping the boys away from the saloon, and that a rule was made forbidding any student from going to town during recess?” began Mr. Acton, who, being a responsible person as well as a great teacher, felt accountable for the children during school hours and did his best to help parents keep them safe from the few temptations present in a small town. A certain appealing little shop, where candy, baseballs, stationery, and picture magazines were sold, was a popular hangout for some of the boys until the rule was put in place because behind the shop was a beer and billiard saloon. It was a smart rule since the picture magazines weren’t always appropriate; cigars were available; idlers loitered around, and some of the boys, wanting to appear tough, dared to go past the green baize door “just to take a peek.”
A murmur answered the teacher's question, and he continued, “You all know that the rule was broken several times, and I told you the next offender would be publicly reprimanded, as private punishments had no effect. I am sorry to say that the time has come, and the offender is a boy whom I trusted entirely. It grieves me to do this, but I must keep my promise, and hope the example will have a good effect.”
A low murmur responded to the teacher's question, and he went on, “You all know that the rule has been broken several times, and I told you that the next person to do so would be publicly reprimanded since private punishments didn’t seem to work. I regret to say that the time has come, and the offender is a boy I completely trusted. It pains me to do this, but I have to keep my promise and hope this sets a good example.”
Mr. Acton paused, as if he found it hard to go on, and the boys looked at one another with inquiring eyes, for their teacher seldom punished, and when he did, it was a very solemn thing. Several of these anxious glances fell upon Joe, who was very red and sat whittling a pencil as if he dared not lift his eyes.
Mr. Acton paused, seeming to struggle to continue, and the boys exchanged curious looks, since their teacher rarely punished anyone, and when he did, it was a serious matter. Many of those worried looks landed on Joe, who was really red and sat carving a pencil as if he didn’t dare to look up.
“He's the chap. Won't he catch it?” whispered Gus to Frank, for both owed him a grudge.
"He's the guy. Won't he get it?" whispered Gus to Frank, since they both held a grudge against him.
“The boy who broke the rule last Friday, at afternoon recess, will come to the desk,” said Mr. Acton in his most impressive manner.
“The kid who broke the rule last Friday during afternoon recess will come to the desk,” said Mr. Acton in his most serious tone.
If a thunderbolt had fallen through the roof it would hardly have caused a greater surprise than the sight of Jack Minot walking slowly down the aisle, with a wrathful flash in the eyes he turned on Joe as he passed him.
If a lightning bolt had struck the roof, it wouldn't have surprised anyone more than seeing Jack Minot walking slowly down the aisle, with a furious look in his eyes as he glared at Joe while passing by.
“Now, Minot, let us have this over as soon as possible, for I do not like it any better than you do, and I am sure there is some mistake. I'm told you went to the shop on Friday. Is it true?” asked Mr. Acton very gently, for he liked Jack and seldom had to correct him in any way.
“Now, Minot, let’s get this sorted out quickly, because I don't like it any more than you do, and I'm sure there's been some mistake. I heard you went to the shop on Friday. Is that true?” Mr. Acton asked gently, since he liked Jack and rarely had to correct him.
“Yes, sir;” and Jack looked up as if proud to show that he was not afraid to tell the truth as far as he could.
“Yes, sir;” Jack responded, looking up as if he were proud to show that he wasn’t afraid to tell the truth as much as he could.
“To buy something?”
"Want to buy something?"
“No, sir.”
“No, thanks.”
“To meet someone?”
"To meet someone?"
“Yes, sir.”
“Sure thing, sir.”
“Was it Jerry Shannon?”
“Was it Jerry Shannon?”
No answer, but Jack's fists doubled up of themselves as he shot another fiery glance at Joe, whose face burned as if it scorched him.
No answer, but Jack's fists clenched on their own as he shot another angry look at Joe, whose face turned red as if it was burning.
“I am told it was; also that you were seen to go into the saloon with him. Did you?” and Mr. Acton looked so sure that it was a mistake that it cost Jack a great effort to say, slowly,—
“I’ve heard it was; and that you were seen going into the bar with him. Did you?” Mr. Acton looked so confidently that it was a mistake that Jack had to make a significant effort to reply, slowly,—
“Yes, sir.”
"Yes, sir."
Quite a thrill pervaded the school at this confession, for Jerry was one of the wild fellows the boys all shunned, and to have any dealings with him was considered a very disgraceful thing.
A strong excitement filled the school at this admission, because Jerry was one of those wild kids that everyone avoided, and getting involved with him was seen as really shameful.
“Did you play?”
“Did you play?”
“No, sir. I can't.”
“No, I can’t.”
“Drink beer?”
"Want a beer?"
“I belong to the Lodge;” and Jack stood as erect as any little soldier who ever marched under a temperance banner, and fought for the cause none are too young nor too old to help along.
“I belong to the Lodge;” and Jack stood as straight as any young soldier who ever marched under a temperance banner, fighting for a cause that neither the young nor the old are too young or too old to support.
“I was sure of that. Then what took you there, my boy?”
“I was sure of that. So what brought you there, my boy?”
The question was so kindly put that Jack forgot himself an instant, and blurted out,—
The question was asked so nicely that Jack briefly lost his composure and blurted out,—
“I only went to pay him some money, sir.”
“I just went to give him some money, sir.”
“Ah, how much?”
"Wow, how much?"
“Two seventy-five,” muttered Jack, as red as a cherry at not being able to keep a secret better.
“Two seventy-five,” Jack muttered, as red as a cherry for not being able to keep a secret better.
“Too much for a lad like you to owe such a fellow as Jerry. How came it?” And Mr. Acton looked disturbed.
“It's too much for a guy like you to owe someone like Jerry. How did that happen?” And Mr. Acton looked upset.
Jack opened his lips to speak, but shut them again, and stood looking down with a little quiver about the mouth that showed how much it cost him to be silent.
Jack opened his mouth to say something, but then closed it again and stood there, looking down with a slight tremble at his lips that showed how hard it was for him to stay silent.
“Does any one beside Jerry know of this?”
“Does anyone besides Jerry know about this?”
“One other fellow,” after a pause.
“One other guy,” after a pause.
“Yes, I understand;” and Mr. Acton's eye glanced at Joe with a look that seemed to say, “I wish he'd held his tongue.”
“Yes, I get it;” and Mr. Acton's gaze flicked to Joe with a look that seemed to say, “I wish he’d kept quiet.”
A queer smile flitted over Jack's face, for Joe was not the “other fellow,” and knew very little about it, excepting what he had seen when he was sent on an errand by Mr. Acton on Friday.
A queer smile crossed Jack's face, because Joe wasn't the “other guy” and didn't know much about it, apart from what he had witnessed when Mr. Acton had sent him on an errand on Friday.
“I wish you would explain the matter, John, for I am sure it is better than it seems, and it would be very hard to punish you when you don't deserve it.”
“I wish you would explain it, John, because I’m sure it’s better than it seems, and it would be really hard to punish you when you don’t deserve it.”
“But I do deserve it; I've broken the rule, and I ought to be punished,” said Jack, as if a good whipping would be easier to bear than this public cross-examination.
“But I do deserve it; I've broken the rule, and I should be punished,” said Jack, as if a good whipping would be easier to handle than this public interrogation.
“And you can't explain, or even say you are sorry or ashamed?” asked Mr. Acton, hoping to surprise another fact out of the boy.
“And you can't explain, or even say you're sorry or ashamed?” Mr. Acton asked, hoping to get another surprising fact out of the boy.
“No, sir; I can't; I'm not ashamed; I'm not sorry, and I'd do it again to-morrow if I had to,” cried Jack, losing patience, and looking as if he would not bear much more.
“No, sir; I can’t; I’m not ashamed; I’m not sorry, and I’d do it again tomorrow if I had to,” Jack shouted, losing patience and looking like he wouldn’t take much more.
A groan from the boys greeted this bare-faced declaration, and Susy quite shivered at the idea of having taken two bites out of the apple of such a hardened desperado.
A groan from the guys responded to this bold statement, and Susy shuddered at the thought of having taken two bites out of the apple of such a tough rebel.
“Think it over till to-morrow, and perhaps you will change your mind. Remember that this is the last week of the month, and reports are given out next Friday,” said Mr. Acton, knowing how much the boy prided himself on always having good ones to show his mother.
“Think about it until tomorrow, and maybe you’ll change your mind. Keep in mind that this is the last week of the month, and reports will be given out next Friday,” said Mr. Acton, aware of how much the boy took pride in always having good ones to show his mother.
Poor Jack turned scarlet and bit his lips to keep them still, for he had forgotten this when he plunged into the affair which was likely to cost him dear. Then the color faded away, the boyish face grew steady, and the honest eyes looked up at his teacher as he said very low, but all heard him, the room was so still,—
Poor Jack turned bright red and bit his lips to keep them still, since he had forgotten this when he got into the situation that was likely to cost him a lot. Then the color faded away, his boyish face became calm, and his honest eyes looked up at his teacher as he said very quietly, but everyone heard him, the room was so still,—
“It isn't as bad as it looks, sir, but I can't say any more. No one is to blame but me; and I couldn't help breaking the rule, for Jerry was going away, I had only that time, and I'd promised to pay up, so I did.”
“It’s not as bad as it seems, sir, but I can’t say more. No one is to blame but me; and I couldn’t help breaking the rule, because Jerry was leaving, I only had that time, and I had promised to settle up, so I did.”
Mr. Acton believed every word he said, and regretted that they had not been able to have it out privately, but he, too, must keep his promise and punish the offender, whoever he was.
Mr. Acton believed every word he said and wished they could have resolved it privately, but he too had to keep his promise and punish the offender, no matter who it was.
“Very well, you will lose your recess for a week, and this month's report will be the first one in which behavior does not get the highest mark. You may go; and I wish it understood that Master Minot is not to be troubled with questions till he chooses to set this matter right.”
“Alright, you’ll miss your recess for a week, and this month’s report will be the first one where your behavior doesn’t get the highest mark. You may go now; and I want it to be clear that Master Minot should not be bothered with questions until he decides to fix this issue.”
Then the bell rang, the children trooped out, Mr. Acton went off without another word, and Jack was left alone to put up his books and hide a few tears that would come because Frank turned his eyes away from the imploring look cast upon him as the culprit came down from the platform, a disgraced boy.
Then the bell rang, the kids filed out, Mr. Acton walked away without another word, and Jack was left alone to put away his books and wipe away a few tears that came because Frank looked away from the pleading look aimed at him as the guilty boy came down from the platform, feeling ashamed.
Elder brothers are apt to be a little hard on younger ones, so it is not surprising that Frank, who was an eminently proper boy, was much cut up when Jack publicly confessed to dealings with Jerry, leaving it to be supposed that the worst half of the story remained untold. He felt it his duty, therefore, to collar poor Jack when he came out, and talk to him all the way home, like a judge bent on getting at the truth by main force. A kind word would have been very comforting, but the scolding was too much for Jack's temper, so he turned dogged and would not say a word, though Frank threatened not to speak to him for a week.
Older brothers tend to be a bit tough on their younger siblings, so it’s no surprise that Frank, who was a very proper boy, was really upset when Jack openly admitted to hanging out with Jerry, implying that there was more to the story. Feeling it was his responsibility, he decided to confront Jack when they left and talked to him all the way home, like a judge determined to get to the bottom of things. A kind word would have been really comforting, but the scolding was too much for Jack’s temper, so he became stubborn and didn't say a word, even though Frank threatened to not speak to him for a week.
At tea-time both boys were very silent, one looking grim, the other excited. Frank stared sternly at his brother across the table, and no amount of marmalade sweetened or softened that reproachful look. Jack defiantly crunched his toast, with occasional slashes at the butter, as if he must vent the pent-up emotions which half distracted him. Of course, their mother saw that something was amiss, but did not allude to it, hoping that the cloud would blow over as so many did if left alone. But this one did not, and when both refused cake, this sure sign of unusual perturbation made her anxious to know the cause. As soon as tea was over, Jack retired with gloomy dignity to his own room, and Frank, casting away the paper he had been pretending to read, burst out with the whole story. Mrs. Minot was as much surprised as he, but not angry, because, like most mothers, she was sure that her sons could not do anything very bad.
At tea time, both boys were really quiet: one looked serious, and the other was full of energy. Frank stared fiercely at his brother across the table, and no amount of marmalade could soften that reproachful look. Jack defiantly crunched his toast, occasionally slashing at the butter, as if he had to let out the emotions that were distracting him. Their mother noticed that something was off but didn’t mention it, hoping the tension would pass if she ignored it, like so many other issues. But this one didn’t, and when both boys refused cake—a sure sign something was wrong—it made her anxious to figure out what was going on. Once tea was over, Jack left with a serious air to his room, and Frank, tossing aside the paper he had been pretending to read, spilled the whole story. Mrs. Minot was as surprised as he was but not angry because, like most mothers, she believed her sons couldn’t do anything too terrible.
“I will speak to him; my boy won't refuse to give me some explanation,” she said, when Frank had freed his mind with as much warmth as if Jack had broken all the ten commandments.
“I will talk to him; my boy won’t refuse to give me some explanation,” she said, when Frank had expressed his feelings as if Jack had violated all ten commandments.
“He will. You often call me obstinate, but he is as pig-headed as a mule; Joe only knows what he saw, old tell-tale! and Jerry has left town, or I'd have it out of him. Make Jack own up, whether he can or not. Little donkey!” stormed Frank, who hated rowdies and could not forgive his brother for being seen with one.
“He will. You often call me stubborn, but he’s as hard-headed as a mule; Joe only knows what he saw, old gossip! and Jerry has left town, or I’d get it out of him. Make Jack admit it, whether he can or not. Little fool!” stormed Frank, who hated troublemakers and couldn't forgive his brother for being seen with one.
“My dear, all boys do foolish things sometimes, even the wisest and best behaved, so don't be hard on the poor child. He has got into trouble, I've no doubt, but it cannot be very bad, and he earned the money to pay for his prank, whatever it was.”
“My dear, all boys do silly things sometimes, even the smartest and best-behaved ones, so don’t be too tough on the poor kid. He’s gotten himself into trouble, I’m sure, but it can’t be that serious, and he earned the money to cover whatever prank he pulled, no matter what it was.”
Mrs. Minot left the room as she spoke, and Frank cooled down as if her words had been a shower-bath, for he remembered his own costly escapade, and how kindly both his mother and Jack had stood by him on that trying occasion. So, feeling rather remorseful, he went off to talk it over with Gus, leaving Jill in a fever of curiosity, for Merry and Molly had dropped in on their way home to break the blow to her, and Frank declined to discuss it with her, after mildly stating that Jack was “a ninny,” in his opinion.
Mrs. Minot left the room as she spoke, and Frank calmed down as if her words had been a cold shower, because he remembered his own expensive mistake and how supportive both his mom and Jack had been during that tough time. Feeling a bit guilty, he went to talk it over with Gus, leaving Jill in a state of curiosity, as Merry and Molly had stopped by on their way home to soften the news for her, and Frank refused to discuss it with her after lightly saying that Jack was “a fool,” in his opinion.
“Well, I know one thing,” said Jill confidentially to Snow-ball, when they were left alone together, “if every one else is scolding him I won't say a word. It's so mean to crow over people when they are down, and I'm sure he hasn't done anything to be ashamed of, though he won't tell.”
“Well, I know one thing,” Jill said privately to Snow-ball when they were alone together, “if everyone else is criticizing him, I won’t say a word. It’s so petty to gloat over people when they’re down, and I’m sure he hasn’t done anything to be ashamed of, even if he won’t share.”
Snow-ball seemed to agree to this, for he went and sat down by Jack's slippers waiting for him on the hearth, and Jill thought that a very touching proof of affectionate fidelity to the little master who ruled them both.
Snow-ball appeared to agree with this, as he went and sat by Jack's slippers waiting for him on the hearth, and Jill thought it was a very heartfelt display of loyalty to the little master who ruled them both.
When he came, it was evident that he had found it harder to refuse his mother than all the rest. But she trusted him in spite of appearances, and that was such a comfort! For poor Jack's heart was very full, and he longed to tell the whole story, but he would not break his promise, and so kept silence bravely. Jill asked no questions, affecting to be anxious for the games they always played together in the evening, but while they played, though the lips were sealed, the bright eyes said as plainly as words, “I trust you,” and Jack was very grateful.
When he arrived, it was clear that he found it harder to say no to his mother than anyone else. But she believed in him despite appearances, and that was such a relief! Poor Jack's heart was heavy, and he wanted to share everything, but he wouldn't break his promise, so he stayed silent with courage. Jill didn't ask any questions, pretending to be eager for the games they always played together in the evening, but while they played, even though they didn’t speak, their bright eyes said just as clearly as words, "I trust you," and Jack felt very thankful.
It was well he had something to cheer him up at home, for he got little peace at school. He bore the grave looks of Mr. Acton meekly, took the boys' jokes good-naturedly, and withstood the artful teasing of the girls with patient silence. But it was very hard for the social, affectionate fellow to bear the general distrust, for he had been such a favorite he felt the change keenly.
It was a good thing he had something to lift his spirits at home because he found little peace at school. He dealt with Mr. Acton's serious expressions calmly, took the boys' jokes in stride, and endured the clever teasing from the girls with patient silence. But it was really tough for the sociable, friendly guy to handle the overall suspicion because he had been such a favorite, and he felt the shift deeply.
But the thing that tried him most was the knowledge that his report would not be what it usually was. It was always a happy moment when he showed it to his mother, and saw her eye brighten as it fell on the 99 or 100, for she cared more for good behavior than for perfect lessons. Mr. Acton once said that Frank Minot's moral influence in the school was unusual, and Jack never forgot her pride and delight as she told them what Frank himself had not known till then. It was Jack's ambition to have the same said of him, for he was not much of a scholar, and he had tried hard since he went back to school to get good records in that respect at least. Now here was a dreadful downfall, tardy marks, bad company, broken rules, and something too wrong to tell, apparently.
But what troubled him the most was knowing that his report wouldn’t be as good as usual. It was always a happy moment when he showed it to his mom and saw her face light up when she saw the 99 or 100, because she cared more about good behavior than perfect grades. Mr. Acton once said that Frank Minot's positive influence in the school was remarkable, and Jack never forgot how proud and pleased she was when she shared something Frank hadn’t realized until then. Jack desperately wanted the same acknowledgment, as he wasn’t a strong student and had been working hard since returning to school to improve his grades. Now, he faced a terrible setback with tardy marks, bad company, broken rules, and something so wrong it felt too shameful to reveal.
“Well, I deserve a good report, and that's a comfort, though nobody believes it,” he said to himself, trying to keep up his spirits, as the slow week went by, and no word from him had cleared up the mystery.
“Well, I deserve a good report, and that’s reassuring, even if no one believes it,” he said to himself, trying to stay positive as the long week dragged on, and no news from him had solved the mystery.
Chapter XIV. And Jill Finds It Out
Jill worried about it more than he did, for she was a faithful little friend, and it was a great trial to have Jack even suspected of doing anything wrong. School is a child's world while he is there, and its small affairs are very important to him, so Jill felt that the one thing to be done was to clear away the cloud about her dear boy, and restore him to public favor.
Jill worried about it more than he did, as she was a loyal friend, and it was a huge burden to have Jack even suspected of doing something wrong. School is a child's world while he’s there, and its little issues are very significant to him, so Jill felt that the most important thing to do was to remove the cloud hanging over her dear boy and get him back in everyone’s good graces.
“Ed will be here Saturday night and may be he will find out, for Jack tells him everything. I do hate to have him hectored so, for I know he is, though he's too proud to complain,” she said, on Thursday evening, when Frank told her some joke played upon his brother that day.
“Ed will be here Saturday night and he might find out, since Jack tells him everything. I really hate to see him bullied like that, because I know he is, even though he's too proud to say anything,” she said on Thursday evening when Frank told her about a joke that had been played on his brother that day.
“I let him alone, but I see that he isn't badgered too much. That's all I can do. If Ed had only come home last Saturday it might have done some good, but now it will be too late; for the reports are given out to-morrow, you know,” answered Frank, feeling a little jealous of Ed's influence over Jack, though his own would have been as great if he had been as gentle.
“I left him alone, but I can see that he isn't being bugged too much. That's all I can do. If Ed had just come home last Saturday, it might have made a difference, but now it’s too late; the reports are coming out tomorrow, you know,” Frank replied, feeling a bit envious of Ed's influence over Jack, even though his own would have been just as strong if he had been gentler.
“Has Jerry come back?” asked Jill, who kept all her questions for Frank, because she seldom alluded to the tender subject when with Jack.
“Has Jerry come back?” Jill asked, saving all her questions for Frank, since she rarely brought up the sensitive topic when she was with Jack.
“No, he's off for the summer. Got a place somewhere. Hope he'll stay there and let Bob alone.”
“No, he’s gone for the summer. He found a place somewhere. I hope he stays there and leaves Bob alone.”
“Where is Bob now? I don't hear much about him lately,” said Jill, who was constantly on the lookout for “the other fellow,” since it was not Joe.
“Where's Bob now? I haven't heard much about him lately,” said Jill, who was always on the lookout for “the other guy,” since it wasn’t Joe.
“Oh, he went to Captain Skinner's the first of March, chores round, and goes to school up there. Captain is strict, and won't let Bob come to town, except Sundays; but he don't mind it much, for he likes horses, has nice grub, and the Hill fellows are good chaps for him to be with. So he's all right, if he only behaves.”
“Oh, he went to Captain Skinner's at the beginning of March, does his chores there, and goes to school up there. Captain is strict and won't let Bob come to town except on Sundays; but he doesn't mind it much because he likes horses, has good food, and the guys in the Hills are great company for him. So he's doing fine, as long as he behaves.”
“How far is it to Captain Skinner's?” asked Jill suddenly, having listened, with her sharp eyes on Frank, as he tinkered away at his model, since he was forbidden all other indulgence in his beloved pastime.
“How far is it to Captain Skinner's?” Jill suddenly asked, keeping her sharp eyes on Frank as he fiddled with his model, since he wasn't allowed to enjoy any other distractions from his favorite hobby.
“It's four miles to Hill District, but the Captain lives this side of the school-house. About three from here, I should say.”
“It's four miles to Hill District, but the Captain lives on this side of the schoolhouse. I’d say it's about three miles from here.”
“How long would it take a boy to walk up there?” went on the questioner, with a new idea in her head.
“How long would it take a boy to walk up there?” the questioner continued, with a new idea in her mind.
“Depends on how much of a walkist he is.”
“Depends on how much of a walker he is.”
“Suppose he was lame and it was sloshy, and he made a call and came back. How long would that take?” asked Jill impatiently.
“Suppose he was hurt and it was muddy, and he made a call and came back. How long would that take?” asked Jill impatiently.
“Well, in that case, I should say two or three hours. But it's impossible to tell exactly, unless you know how lame the fellow was, and how long a call he made,” said Frank, who liked to be accurate.
“Well, in that case, I’d say two or three hours. But it’s impossible to know for sure unless you know how injured the guy was and how long his visit lasted,” said Frank, who preferred to be precise.
“Jack couldn't do it in less, could he?”
“Jack couldn't do it in less time, could he?”
“He used to run up that hilly road for a breather, and think nothing of it. It would be a long job for him now, poor little chap, for his leg often troubles him, though he hates to own it.”
“He used to jog up that steep road for a break, and it was no big deal. It would be a long struggle for him now, poor guy, because his leg often bothers him, even though he hates to admit it.”
Jill lay back and laughed, a happy little laugh, as if she was pleased about something, and Frank looked over his shoulder to ask questions in his turn.
Jill lay back and laughed, a cheerful little laugh, as if she was pleased about something, and Frank looked over his shoulder to ask questions in his turn.
“What are you laughing at?”
“What’s so funny?”
“Can't tell.”
"Can't say."
“Why do you want to know about Hill District? Are you going there?”
“Why do you want to know about Hill District? Are you planning to go there?”
“Wish I could! I'd soon have it out of him.”
“Wish I could! I’d have it out of him in no time.”
“Who?”
"Who is it?"
“Never mind. Please push up my table. I must write a letter, and I want you to post it for me to-night, and never say a word till I give you leave.”
“Never mind. Please move my table up. I need to write a letter, and I want you to mail it for me tonight, and don’t say a word until I let you.”
“Oh, now you are going to have secrets and be mysterious, and get into a mess, are you?” and Frank looked down at her with a suspicious air, though he was intensely curious to know what she was about.
“Oh, so now you have secrets and want to be mysterious, and get into trouble, huh?” Frank said, looking down at her with a skeptical expression, even though he was really curious to find out what she was up to.
“Go away till I'm done. You will have to see the outside, but you can't know the inside till the answer comes;” and propping herself up, Jill wrote the following note, with some hesitation at the beginning and end, for she did not know the gentleman she was addressing, except by sight, and it was rather awkward:—
“Please leave until I’m finished. You can look outside, but you won’t understand what’s inside until the answer arrives;” and propping herself up, Jill wrote the following note, hesitating a bit at the start and end, since she didn’t really know the man she was writing to, except by sight, and it felt a bit uncomfortable:—
“Robert Walker.
Robert Walker.
“Dear Sir, I want to ask if Jack Minot came to see you last Friday afternoon. He got into trouble being seen with Jerry Shannon. He paid him some money. Jack won't tell, and Mr. Acton talked to him about it before all the school. We feel bad, because we think Jack did not do wrong. I don't know as you have anything to do with it, but I thought I'd ask. Please answer quick. Respectfully yours,
“Dear Sir, I want to know if Jack Minot came to see you last Friday afternoon. He got into trouble for being seen with Jerry Shannon. He gave him some money. Jack won’t say anything, and Mr. Acton talked to him about it in front of the whole school. We feel bad because we think Jack didn’t do anything wrong. I’m not sure if this is your concern, but I thought I’d ask. Please respond quickly. Respectfully yours,
“Jane Pecq”
“Jane Peck”
To make sure that her despatch was not tampered with, Jill put a great splash of red sealing-wax on it, which gave it a very official look, and much impressed Bob when he received it.
To ensure that her package wasn't messed with, Jill added a big blob of red sealing wax to it, which made it look very official and really impressed Bob when he got it.
“There! Go and post it, and don't let any one see or know about it,” she said, handing it over to Frank, who left his work with unusual alacrity to do her errand. When his eye fell on the address, he laughed, and said in a teasing way,—
“There! Go and post it, and don’t let anyone see or know about it,” she said, handing it to Frank, who dropped his work with unusual eagerness to run her errand. When he saw the address, he laughed and said teasingly,—
“Are you and Bob such good friends that you correspond? What will Jack say?”
“Are you and Bob such good friends that you write to each other? What will Jack say?”
“Don't know, and don't care! Be good, now, and let's have a little secret as well as other folks. I'll tell you all about it when he answers,” said Jill in her most coaxing tone.
“Don’t know, and don’t care! Be good now, and let’s have a little secret just like everyone else. I’ll tell you all about it when he responds,” Jill said in her most persuasive tone.
“Suppose he doesn't?”
"What if he doesn't?"
“Then I shall send you up to see him. I must know something, and I want to do it myself, if I can.”
“Then I'll send you up to see him. I have to know something, and I want to do it myself, if I can.”
“Look here; what are you after? I do believe you think——” Frank got no farther, for Jill gave a little scream, and stopped him by crying eagerly, “Don't say it out loud! I really do believe it may be, and I'm going to find out.”
“Hey, what do you want? I really think you believe——” Frank didn’t get any further because Jill let out a small scream and interrupted him by saying eagerly, “Don’t say it out loud! I really do believe it might be true, and I'm going to find out.”
“What made you think of him?” and Frank looked thoughtfully at the letter, as if turning carefully over in his mind the idea that Jill's quick wits had jumped at.
“What made you think of him?” Frank asked, looking thoughtfully at the letter, as if he was carefully considering the idea that Jill's sharp instincts had caught onto.
“Come here and I'll tell you.”
“Come here and I’ll tell you.”
Holding him by one button, she whispered something in his ear that made him exclaim, with a look at the rug,—
Holding him by one button, she whispered something in his ear that made him exclaim, looking at the rug,—
“No! did he? I declare I shouldn't wonder! It would be just like the dear old blunder-head.”
“No! Did he? I can’t say I’m surprised! That would be just like the dear old scatterbrain.”
“I never thought of it till you told me where Bob was, and then it all sort of burst upon me in one minute!” cried Jill, waving her arms about to express the intellectual explosion which had thrown light upon the mystery, like sky-rockets in a dark night.
“I never thought of it until you told me where Bob was, and then it all just suddenly hit me!” Jill exclaimed, waving her arms to show the intellectual breakthrough that illuminated the mystery, like fireworks in a dark sky.
“You are as bright as a button. No time to lose; I'm off;” and off he was, splashing through the mud to post the letter, on the back of which he added, to make the thing sure, “Hurry up. F.M.”
“You're as bright as a button. No time to waste; I’m heading out;” and off he went, splashing through the mud to mail the letter, on the back of which he added, to make sure it got there, “Hurry up. F.M.”
Both felt rather guilty next day, but enjoyed themselves very much nevertheless, and kept chuckling over the mine they were making under Jack's unconscious feet. They hardly expected an answer at noon, as the Hill people were not very eager for their mail, but at night Jill was sure of a letter, and to her great delight it came. Jack brought it himself, which added to the fun, and while she eagerly read it he sat calmly poring over the latest number of his own private and particular “Youth's Companion.”
Both felt a bit guilty the next day, but they had a great time anyway, laughing about the trouble they were getting into under Jack's unsuspecting feet. They didn't really expect a response by noon since the Hill people weren't too keen on their mail, but by night, Jill was certain a letter would arrive, and to her delight, it did. Jack delivered it himself, which only made it more enjoyable, and while she eagerly read the letter, he sat calmly reading the latest issue of his own personal “Youth's Companion.”
Bob was not a “complete letter-writer” by any means, and with great labor and much ink had produced the following brief but highly satisfactory epistle. Not knowing how to address his fair correspondent he let it alone, and went at once to the point in the frankest possible way:—
Bob was not exactly a "master of letter-writing," and with a lot of effort and plenty of ink, he managed to create the following short but very pleasing message. Unsure of how to greet his lovely correspondent, he skipped that part and got straight to the point in the most straightforward way possible:—
“Jack did come up Friday. Sorry he got into a mess. It was real kind of him, and I shall pay him back soon. Jack paid Jerry for me and I made him promise not to tell. Jerry said he'd come here and make a row if I didn't cash up. I was afraid I'd lose the place if he did, for the Capt. is awful strict. If Jack don't tell now, I will. I ain't mean. Glad you wrote.
“Jack did come by on Friday. Sorry he got into a mess. That was really nice of him, and I’ll pay him back soon. Jack paid Jerry for me, and I made him promise not to say anything. Jerry said he’d come here and cause a scene if I didn’t settle up. I was worried I’d lose the place if he did, because the Captain is really strict. If Jack doesn’t say anything now, I will. I’m not mean. Glad you wrote.”
“R.O.W.”
“Right of Way”
“Hurrah!” cried Jill, waving the letter over her head in great triumph. “Call everybody and read it out,” she added, as Frank snatched it, and ran for his mother, seeing at a glance that the news was good. Jill was so afraid she should tell before the others came that she burst out singing “Pretty Bobby Shafto” at the top of her voice, to Jack's great disgust, for he considered the song very personal, as he was rather fond of “combing down his yellow hair,” and Jill often plagued him by singing it when he came in with the golden quirls very smooth and nice to hide the scar on his forehead.
“Yay!” shouted Jill, waving the letter over her head in excitement. “Get everyone and read it out loud,” she added, as Frank grabbed it and ran for his mom, quickly realizing the news was good. Jill was so worried she would spill the beans before the others arrived that she started singing “Pretty Bobby Shafto” at the top of her lungs, much to Jack's annoyance, since he thought the song was pretty personal, as he was quite fond of “combing down his yellow hair,” and Jill often teased him by singing it when he came in with his golden curls all smoothed down nicely to hide the scar on his forehead.
In about five minutes the door flew open and in came Mamma, making straight for bewildered Jack, who thought the family had gone crazy when his parent caught him in her arms, saying tenderly,—
In about five minutes, the door swung open and in came Mom, heading straight for confused Jack, who thought the family had lost it when his parent scooped him up in her arms, saying gently,—
“My good, generous boy! I knew he was right all the time!” while Frank worked his hand up and down like a pump-handle, exclaiming heartily,—
“My good, generous boy! I knew he was right all along!” while Frank worked his hand up and down like a pump handle, exclaiming enthusiastically,—
“You're a trump, sir, and I'm proud of you!” Jill meantime calling out, in wild delight,—
“You're amazing, sir, and I'm really proud of you!” Jill shouted out, in wild delight,—
“I told you so! I told you so! I did find out; ha, ha, I did!”
"I told you! I told you! I found out; haha, I did!"
“Come, I say! What's the matter? I'm all right. Don't squeeze the breath out of me, please,” expostulated Jack, looking so startled and innocent, as he struggled feebly, that they all laughed, and this plaintive protest caused him to be released. But the next proceeding did not enlighten him much, for Frank kept waving a very inky paper before him and ordering him to read it, while Mamma made a charge at Jill, as if it was absolutely necessary to hug somebody.
“Come on! What’s going on? I’m fine. Please don’t squeeze the life out of me,” Jack protested, looking so surprised and innocent as he struggled weakly that everyone laughed, and this sad plea led to his release. But the next situation didn’t help him much, as Frank continued to wave a very inky piece of paper in front of him, insisting that he read it, while Mom went after Jill as if it was totally essential to hug someone.
“Hullo!” said Jack, when he got the letter into his own hand and read it. “Now who put Bob up to this? Nobody had any business to interfere—but it's mighty good of him, anyway,” he added, as the anxious lines in his round face smoothed themselves away, while a smile of relief told how hard it had been for him to keep his word.
“Hey!” said Jack, when he finally had the letter in his hands and read it. “Now who got Bob involved in this? No one should have interfered—but it’s really nice of him, anyway,” he added, as the worried lines on his round face relaxed, and a relieved smile showed how difficult it had been for him to stick to his promise.
“I did!” cried Jill, clapping her hands, and looking so happy that he could not have scolded her if he had wanted to.
“I did!” shouted Jill, clapping her hands and looking so happy that he couldn't have scolded her even if he wanted to.
“Who told you he was in the scrape?” demanded Jack, in a hurry to know all about it now the seal was taken off his own lips.
“Who told you he was in trouble?” Jack asked, eager to learn everything now that he was free to speak.
“You did;” and Jill's face twinkled with naughty satisfaction, for this was the best fun of all.
“You did,” and Jill's face sparkled with mischievous delight, because this was the most fun of all.
“I didn't! When? Where? It's a joke!”
"I didn't! When? Where? It's just a joke!"
“You did,” cried Jill, pointing to the rug. “You went to sleep there after the long walk, and talked in your sleep about 'Bob' and 'All right, old boy,' and ever so much gibberish. I didn't think about it then, but when I heard that Bob was up there I thought may be he knew something about it, and last night I wrote and asked him, and that's the answer, and now it is all right, and you are the best boy that ever was, and I'm so glad!”
“You did,” Jill exclaimed, pointing to the rug. “You fell asleep there after the long walk and were talking in your sleep about 'Bob' and 'All right, old boy,' and a bunch of nonsense. I didn’t think much of it at the time, but when I heard that Bob was up there, I wondered if he knew something about it. Last night, I wrote to him and asked, and that’s his response. Now everything is fine, and you’re the best boy ever, and I’m so happy!”
Here Jill paused, all out of breath, and Frank said, with an approving pat on the head,—
Here Jill paused, out of breath, and Frank said, with an approving pat on the head,—
“It won't do to have such a sharp young person round if we are going to have secrets. You'd make a good detective, miss.”
“It wouldn't be wise to have such a sharp young person around if we’re going to have secrets. You’d make a good detective, miss.”
“Catch me taking naps before people again;” and Jack looked rather crestfallen that his own words had set “Fine Ear” on the track. “Never mind, I didn't mean to tell, though I just ached to do it all the time, so I haven't broken my word. I'm glad you all know, but you needn't let it get out, for Bob is a good fellow, and it might make trouble for him,” added Jack, anxious lest his gain should be the other's loss.
“Catch me taking naps before people again;” and Jack looked pretty downcast that his own words had put “Fine Ear” on the case. “Never mind, I didn't mean to spill the beans, though I've wanted to do it all the time, so I haven't broken my word. I'm glad you all know, but please don't let it get out, because Bob is a good guy, and it could cause trouble for him,” Jack added, worried that his gain might come at someone else's expense.
“I shall tell Mr. Acton myself, and the Captain, also, for I'm not going to have my son suspected of wrong-doing when he has only tried to help a friend, and borne enough for his sake,” said Mamma, much excited by this discovery of generous fidelity in her boy; though when one came to look at it calmly, one saw that it might have been done in a wiser way.
“I'll talk to Mr. Acton myself, and the Captain too, because I won’t let anyone think my son has done anything wrong when he just tried to help a friend and has already endured a lot for him,” said Mom, really worked up about this revelation of her son's loyalty; although, when you think about it calmly, it might have been handled in a smarter way.
“Now, please, don't make a fuss about it; that would be most as bad as having every one down on me. I can stand your praising me, but I won't be patted on the head by anybody else;” and Jack assumed a manly air, though his face was full of genuine boyish pleasure at being set right in the eyes of those he loved.
“Now, please, don’t make a big deal out of it; that would be just as bad as having everyone against me. I can handle your compliments, but I won’t be treated like a kid by anyone else;” and Jack put on a tough front, even though his face was showing authentic boyish happiness at being supported by the people he cared about.
“I'll be discreet, dear, but you owe it to yourself, as well as Bob, to have the truth known. Both have behaved well, and no harm will come to him, I am sure. I'll see to that myself,” said Mrs. Minot, in a tone that set Jack's mind at rest on that point.
“I'll be discreet, dear, but you owe it to yourself, as well as Bob, to know the truth. Both of you have behaved well, and I’m sure no harm will come to him. I'll make sure of that myself,” said Mrs. Minot, in a tone that eased Jack's mind about that point.
“Now do tell all about it,” cried Jill, who was pining to know the whole story, and felt as if she had earned the right to hear it.
“Now go on and tell me everything,” urged Jill, eager to know the whole story, feeling like she had earned the right to hear it.
“Oh, it wasn't much. We promised Ed to stand by Bob, so I did as well as I knew how;” and Jack seemed to think that was about all there was to say.
“Oh, it wasn't a big deal. We promised Ed to support Bob, so I did my best;” and Jack seemed to think that was pretty much all there was to it.
“I never saw such a fellow for keeping a promise! You stick to it through thick and thin, no matter how silly or hard it is. You remember, mother, last summer, how you told him not to go in a boat and he promised, the day we went on the picnic. We rode up, but the horse ran off home, so we had to come back by way of the river, all but Jack, and he walked every step of five miles because he wouldn't go near a boat, though Mr. Burton was there to take care of him. I call that rather overdoing the matter;” and Frank looked as if he thought moderation even in virtue a good thing.
“I’ve never seen someone so good at keeping a promise! You stick to it through thick and thin, no matter how foolish or difficult it is. Remember, Mom, last summer when you told him not to go in a boat and he promised the day we went on the picnic? We rode up, but the horse ran off home, so we had to come back by the river, except for Jack, who walked every single step of five miles because he wouldn’t go near a boat, even though Mr. Burton was there to look after him. I think that’s going a bit too far;” and Frank looked like he believed that moderation, even in virtue, is a good thing.
“And I call it a fine sample of entire obedience. He obeyed orders, and that is what we all must do, without always seeing why, or daring to use our own judgment. It is a great safeguard to Jack, and a very great comfort to me; for I know that if he promises he will keep his word, no matter what it costs him,” said Mamma warmly, as she tumbled up the quirls with an irrepressible caress, remembering how the boy came wearily in after all the others, without seeming for a moment to think that he could have done anything else.
“And I consider it a great example of total obedience. He followed orders, and that’s what we all need to do, even when we don’t understand why or feel the need to make our own decisions. It’s a huge reassurance for Jack and a great comfort to me because I know that if he promises something, he’ll stick to it, no matter the cost,” Mamma said warmly, as she playfully ruffled his hair, remembering how the boy had come in tired after everyone else, without even seeming to think he could have done anything differently.
“Like Casabianca!” cried Jill, much impressed, for obedience was her hardest trial.
“Like Casabianca!” yelled Jill, really impressed, because following orders was her biggest challenge.
“I think he was a fool to burn up,” said Frank, bound not to give in.
“I think he was an idiot to burn out,” said Frank, determined not to back down.
“I don't. It's a splendid piece, and every one likes to speak it, and it was true, and it wouldn't be in all the books if he was a fool. Grown people know what is good,” declared Jill, who liked heroic actions, and was always hoping for a chance to distinguish herself in that way.
“I don’t. It’s a wonderful piece, and everyone loves to recite it, and it was true, and it wouldn’t be in all the books if he were a fool. Adults understand what’s good,” said Jill, who admired heroic deeds and was always hoping for a chance to stand out in that way.
“You admire 'The Charge of the Light Brigade,' and glow all over as you thunder it out. Yet they went gallantly to their death rather than disobey orders. A mistake, perhaps, but it makes us thrill to hear of it; and the same spirit keeps my Jack true as steel when once his word is passed, or he thinks it is his duty. Don't be laughed out of it, my son, for faithfulness in little things fits one for heroism when the great trials come. One's conscience can hardly be too tender when honor and honesty are concerned.”
“You admire 'The Charge of the Light Brigade' and feel a rush of excitement as you recite it. Yet those soldiers went bravely to their deaths instead of ignoring orders. A mistake, maybe, but it gives us chills to hear about it; and that same spirit keeps my Jack as loyal as ever once he gives his word or believes it’s his duty. Don’t let anyone make you feel silly for this, my son, because being faithful in small things prepares you for heroism when the tough challenges arise. One's conscience can hardly be too sensitive when it comes to honor and honesty.”
“You are right, mother, and I am wrong. I beg your pardon, Jack, and you sha'n't get ahead of me next time.”
"You’re right, Mom, and I was wrong. I'm sorry, Jack, and you won’t get ahead of me next time."
Frank made his mother a little bow, gave his brother a shake of the hand, and nodded to Jill, as if anxious to show that he was not too proud to own up when he made a mistake.
Frank gave his mother a slight bow, shook hands with his brother, and nodded to Jill, eager to show that he wasn't too proud to admit when he was wrong.
“Please tell on, Jack. This is very nice, but I do want to know all about the other,” said Jill, after a short pause.
“Please go on, Jack. This is really nice, but I want to know all about the other,” said Jill, after a brief pause.
“Let me see. Oh, I saw Bob at church, and he looked rather blue; so, after Sunday School, I asked what the matter was. He said Jerry bothered him for some money he lent him at different times when they were loafing round together, before we took him up. He wouldn't get any wages for some time. The Captain keeps him short on purpose, I guess, and won't let him come down town except on Sundays. He didn't want any one to know about it, for fear he'd lose his place. So I promised I wouldn't tell. Then I was afraid Jerry would go and make a fuss, and Bob would run off, or do something desperate, being worried, and I said I'd pay it for him, if I could. So he went home pretty jolly, and I scratched 'round for the money. Got it, too, and wasn't I glad?”
“Let me think. Oh, I saw Bob at church, and he looked pretty down; so after Sunday School, I asked him what was wrong. He said Jerry was bothering him about some money he lent him over time when they were hanging out together, before we helped him out. He wouldn’t be getting paid for a while. I guess the Captain keeps him short on purpose and won’t let him come into town except on Sundays. He didn’t want anyone to find out because he was afraid he’d lose his job. So I promised I wouldn’t say anything. Then I got worried that Jerry would make a scene, and Bob might run off or do something rash out of stress, so I said I’d pay it for him if I could. He went home feeling much better, and I managed to get the money. I was so glad!”
Jack paused to rub his hands, and Frank said, with more than usual respect,
Jack stopped to rub his hands, and Frank said, with more than his usual respect,
“Couldn't you get hold of Jerry in any other place, and out of school time? That did the mischief, thanks to Joe. I thrashed him, Jill—did I mention it?”
“Couldn't you find Jerry anywhere else, and outside of school hours? That caused the trouble, all because of Joe. I beat him up, Jill—did I mention that?”
“I couldn't get all my money till Friday morning, and I knew Jerry was off at night. I looked for him before school, and at noon, but couldn't find him, so afternoon recess was my last chance. I was bound to do it and I didn't mean to break the rule, but Jerry was just going into the shop, so I pelted after him, and as it was private business we went to the billiard-room. I declare I never was so relieved as when I handed over that money, and made him say it was all right, and he wouldn't go near Bob. He's off, so my mind is easy, and Bob will be so grateful I can keep him steady, perhaps. That will be worth two seventy-five, I think,” said Jack heartily.
“I couldn't get all my money until Friday morning, and I knew Jerry was off at night. I searched for him before school and at lunchtime, but I couldn't find him, so afternoon recess was my last chance. I felt I had to do it, and I didn’t mean to break the rule, but Jerry was just going into the shop, so I ran after him, and since it was private business, we went to the billiard room. I’ve never felt so relieved as when I handed over that money, and made him say it was all right, and that he wouldn't go near Bob. He's off, so I feel at ease, and Bob will be so grateful I can keep him steady, maybe. That should be worth two seventy-five, I think,” said Jack cheerfully.
“You should have come to me,” began Frank.
"You should have come to me," Frank said.
“And got laughed at—no, thank you,” interrupted Jack, recollecting several philanthropic little enterprises which were nipped in the bud for want of co-operation.
“And got laughed at—no, thanks,” interrupted Jack, remembering several charitable little projects that were shut down because they didn’t have support.
“To me, then,” said his mother. “It would have saved so much trouble.”
“To me, then,” said his mother. “It would have saved so much hassle.”
“I thought of it, but Bob didn't want the big fellows to know for fear they'd be down on him, so I thought he might not like me to tell grown people. I don't mind the fuss now, and Bob is as kind as he can be. Wanted to give me his big knife, but I wouldn't take it. I'd rather have this,” and Jack put the letter in his pocket with a slap outside, as if it warmed the cockles of his heart to have it there.
"I thought about it, but Bob didn't want the big guys to find out because he was worried they'd turn against him. So, I figured he wouldn’t want me telling adults. I don’t mind the fuss anymore, and Bob is really nice. He wanted to give me his big knife, but I refused it. I’d rather have this,” and Jack tucked the letter into his pocket with a slap on the outside, as if having it there warmed his heart.
“Well, it seems rather like a tempest in a teapot, now it is all over, but I do admire your pluck, little boy, in holding out so well when every one was scolding at you, and you in the right all the time,” said Frank, glad to praise, now that he honestly could, after his wholesale condemnation.
"Well, it seems like a storm in a teacup now that it’s all over, but I really admire your courage, little guy, for standing strong when everyone was criticizing you, and you were right the whole time," said Frank, happy to give praise now that he could do so honestly after his earlier harsh judgment.
“That is what pulled me through, I suppose. I used to think if I had done anything wrong, that I couldn't stand the snubbing a day. I should have told right off, and had it over. Now, I guess I'll have a good report if you do tell Mr. Acton,” said Jack, looking at his mother so wistfully, that she resolved to slip away that very evening, and make sure that the thing was done.
“That’s what got me through, I guess. I used to think if I did anything wrong, I couldn’t handle being ignored for a day. I should have just spoken up right away and gotten it over with. Now, I think I’ll get a good report if you tell Mr. Acton,” said Jack, looking at his mother so earnestly that she decided to sneak away that very evening and make sure it got done.
“That will make you happier than anything else, won't it?” asked Jill, eager to have him rewarded after his trials.
“That will make you happier than anything else, right?” asked Jill, eager to see him rewarded after everything he went through.
“There's one thing I like better, though I'd be very sorry to lose my report. It's the fun of telling Ed I tried to do as he wanted us to, and seeing how pleased he'll be,” added Jack, rather bashfully, for the boys laughed at him sometimes for his love of this friend.
“There's one thing I like even more, though I'd be really sorry to lose my report. It's the fun of telling Ed I tried to do what he wanted us to, and seeing how happy he'll be,” added Jack, a bit shyly, since the boys sometimes teased him for his affection for this friend.
“I know he won't be any happier about it than someone else, who stood by you all through, and set her bright wits to work till the trouble was all cleared away,” said Mrs. Minot, looking at Jill's contented face, as she lay smiling on them all.
“I know he won’t be any happier about it than someone else who stood by you the whole time and used her sharp mind to help until everything was sorted out,” said Mrs. Minot, looking at Jill's satisfied face as she lay there smiling at them all.
Jack understood, and, hopping across the room, gave both the thin hands a hearty shake; then, not finding any words quite cordial enough in which to thank this faithful little sister, he stooped down and kissed her gratefully.
Jack got it, and, jumping across the room, gave both her slender hands a warm shake; then, unable to find words that felt friendly enough to thank this devoted little sister, he bent down and kissed her warmly.
Chapter XV. Saint Lucy
Saturday was a busy and a happy time to Jack, for in the morning Mr. Acton came to see him, having heard the story overnight, and promised to keep Bob's secret while giving Jack an acquittal as public as the reprimand had been. Then he asked for the report which Jack had bravely received the day before and put away without showing to anybody.
Saturday was a busy and happy day for Jack, because in the morning Mr. Acton came to see him after hearing the story overnight. He promised to keep Bob's secret and gave Jack a public approval as clear as the reprimand had been. Then he asked for the report that Jack had received bravely the day before and had tucked away without showing to anyone.
“There is one mistake here which we must rectify,” said Mr. Acton, as he crossed out the low figures under the word “Behavior,” and put the much-desired 100 there.
“There’s one mistake here that we need to fix,” said Mr. Acton, as he crossed out the low numbers under the word “Behavior” and wrote the much-desired 100 in its place.
“But I did break the rule, sir,” said Jack, though his face glowed with pleasure, for Mamma was looking on.
“But I did break the rule, sir,” Jack said, though his face lit up with joy because Mom was watching.
“I overlook that as I should your breaking into my house if you saw it was on fire. You ran to save a friend, and I wish I could tell those fellows why you were there. It would do them good. I am not going to praise you, John, but I did believe you in spite of appearances, and I am glad to have for a pupil a boy who loves his neighbor better than himself.”
“I can forgive your breaking into my house if you saw it was on fire. You ran to help a friend, and I wish I could explain to those guys why you were there. It would make a difference for them. I’m not going to praise you, John, but I believed you even with all the evidence to the contrary, and I’m glad to have a student who cares for his neighbor more than for himself.”
Then, having shaken hands heartily, Mr. Acton went away, and Jack flew off to have rejoicings with Jill, who sat up on her sofa, without knowing it, so eager was she to hear all about the call.
Then, after a hearty handshake, Mr. Acton left, and Jack rushed off to celebrate with Jill, who was sitting on her sofa, completely unaware of it, so excited was she to hear all about the visit.
In the afternoon Jack drove his mother to the Captain's, confiding to her on the way what a hard time he had when he went before, and how nothing but the thought of cheering Bob kept him up when he slipped and hurt his knee, and his boot sprung a leak, and the wind came up very cold, and the hill seemed an endless mountain of mud and snow.
In the afternoon, Jack drove his mom to the Captain's, sharing with her along the way what a tough time he had when he went before, and how the thought of cheering Bob was the only thing that kept him going when he slipped and hurt his knee, his boot started leaking, the cold wind picked up, and the hill felt like an endless mountain of mud and snow.
Mrs. Minot had such a gentle way of putting things that she would have won over a much harder man than the strict old Captain, who heard the story with interest, and was much pleased with the boys' efforts to keep Bob straight. That young person dodged away into the barn with Jack, and only appeared at the last minute to shove a bag of chestnuts into the chaise. But he got a few kind words that did him good, from Mrs. Minot and the Captain, and from that day felt himself under bonds to behave well if he would keep their confidence.
Mrs. Minot had such a gentle way of expressing herself that she could have won over a much tougher guy than the strict old Captain, who listened to the story with interest and was really pleased with the boys' efforts to keep Bob in line. That young kid ran off to the barn with Jack and only showed up at the last minute to toss a bag of chestnuts into the carriage. But he received a few kind words that lifted his spirits from both Mrs. Minot and the Captain, and from that day on, he felt a commitment to behave well if he wanted to maintain their trust.
“I shall give Jill the nuts; and I wish I had something she wanted very, very much, for I do think she ought to be rewarded for getting me out of the mess,” said Jack, as they drove happily home again.
“I'll give Jill the nuts, and I wish I had something she really wanted because I think she deserves a reward for helping me out of that mess,” said Jack as they drove happily home again.
“I hope to have something in a day or two that will delight her very much. I will say no more now, but keep my little secret and let it be a surprise to all by and by,” answered his mother, looking as if she had not much doubt about the matter.
“I hope to have something in a day or two that will really delight her. I won't say anything more right now, but I'll keep my little secret and let it be a surprise for everyone later,” his mother replied, looking confident about it.
“That will be jolly. You are welcome to your secret, Mamma. I've had enough of them for one while;” and Jack shrugged his broad shoulders as if a burden had been taken off.
"That'll be fun. You're free to keep your secret, Mom. I've had enough of them for a while," and Jack shrugged his broad shoulders as if a weight had been lifted.
In the evening Ed came, and Jack was quite satisfied when he saw how pleased his friend was at what he had done.
In the evening, Ed arrived, and Jack felt really happy when he saw how pleased his friend was with what he had done.
“I never meant you should take so much trouble, only be kind to Bob,” said Ed, who did not know how strong his influence was, nor what a sweet example of quiet well-doing his own life was to all his mates.
“I never meant for you to go through so much trouble, just be nice to Bob,” said Ed, who didn’t realize how powerful his influence was or how much of a positive role model his own life was to all his friends.
“I wished to be really useful; not just to talk about it and do nothing. That isn't your way, and I want to be like you,” answered Jack, with such affectionate sincerity that Ed could not help believing him, though he modestly declined the compliment by saying, as he began to play softly, “Better than I am, I hope. I don't amount to much.”
“I wanted to be genuinely helpful; not just to chat about it and take no action. That’s not your style, and I want to be like you,” Jack replied, with such heartfelt honesty that Ed couldn’t help but believe him, even though he humbly brushed off the compliment by saying, as he started to play softly, “I hope I’m better than I am. I don’t really do much.”
“Yes, you do! and if any one says you don't I'll shake him. I can't tell what it is, only you always look so happy and contented—sort of sweet and shiny,” said Jack, as he stroked the smooth brown head, rather at a loss to describe the unusually fresh and sunny expression of Ed's face, which was always cheerful, yet had a certain thoughtfulness that made it very attractive to both young and old.
“Yes, you do! And if anyone says you don't, I’ll shake them. I can’t explain it, only that you always look so happy and content—kind of sweet and shiny,” said Jack, as he stroked the smooth brown head, somewhat unsure how to describe the unusually fresh and sunny expression on Ed's face. It was always cheerful, yet had a certain thoughtfulness that made it really appealing to both young and old.
“Soap makes him shiny; I never saw such a fellow to wash and brush,” put in Frank, as he came up with one of the pieces of music he and Ed were fond of practising together.
“Soap makes him shiny; I've never seen anyone wash and groom like that,” Frank said, as he arrived with one of the pieces of music he and Ed loved to practice together.
“I don't mean that!” said Jack indignantly. “I wash and brush till you call me a dandy, but I don't have the same look—it seems to come from the inside, somehow, as if he was always jolly and clean and good in his mind, you know.”
“I don’t mean that!” Jack said, irritated. “I wash and groom myself until you’d call me a dandy, but I still don’t have the same vibe—it feels like it comes from within, as if he’s always cheerful and tidy and good at heart, you know.”
“Born so,” said Frank, rumbling away in the bass with a pair of hands that would have been the better for some of the above-mentioned soap, for he did not love to do much in the washing and brushing line.
“Born this way,” said Frank, speaking in a deep voice with hands that could have used some of that soap mentioned earlier, since he wasn't really into washing and grooming.
“I suppose that's it. Well, I like it, and I shall keep on trying, for being loved by every one is about the nicest thing in the world. Isn't it, Ed?” asked Jack, with a gentle tweak of the ear as he put a question which he knew would get no answer, for Ed was so modest he could not see wherein he differed from other boys, nor believe that the sunshine he saw in other faces was only the reflection from his own.
“I guess that’s it. Well, I like it, and I’ll keep trying because being loved by everyone is one of the best things in the world. Don’t you think so, Ed?” asked Jack, giving him a gentle tug on the ear as he posed a question he knew wouldn’t receive a reply, since Ed was so humble that he couldn’t see what made him different from other boys, nor could he believe that the happiness he saw on other people’s faces was just a reflection of his own.
Sunday evening Mrs. Minot sat by the fire, planning how she should tell some good news she had been saving up all day. Mrs. Pecq knew it, and seemed so delighted that she went about smiling as if she did not know what trouble meant, and could not do enough for the family. She was downstairs now, seeing that the clothes were properly prepared for the wash, so there was no one in the Bird Room but Mamma and the children. Frank was reading up all he could find about some Biblical hero mentioned in the day's sermon; Jill lay where she had lain for nearly four long months, and though her face was pale and thin with the confinement, there was an expression on it now sweeter even than health. Jack sat on the rug beside her, looking at a white carnation through the magnifying glass, while she was enjoying the perfume of a red one as she talked to him.
Sunday evening, Mrs. Minot sat by the fire, thinking about how to share some good news she had been holding onto all day. Mrs. Pecq knew it and seemed so happy that she went around smiling as if she didn’t know what trouble was, trying to do everything she could for the family. She was downstairs now, making sure the clothes were ready for washing, so only Mom and the kids were in the Bird Room. Frank was reading everything he could find about a Biblical hero mentioned in that day's sermon; Jill lay where she had been for nearly four long months, and even though her face was pale and thin from being confined, there was now a look on it that was even sweeter than health. Jack sat on the rug next to her, examining a white carnation through a magnifying glass, while she enjoyed the scent of a red one as she chatted with him.
“If you look at the white petals you'll see that they sparkle like marble, and go winding a long way down to the middle of the flower where it grows sort of rosy; and in among the small, curly leaves, like fringed curtains, you can see the little green fairy sitting all alone. Your mother showed me that, and I think it is very pretty. I call it a 'fairy,' but it is really where the seeds are hidden and the sweet smell comes from.”
“If you look at the white petals, you'll see they shimmer like marble, winding a long way down to the middle of the flower where it turns a bit rosy. Among the small, curly leaves, like fringed curtains, you can spot the little green fairy sitting there all alone. Your mom showed me that, and I think it's really pretty. I call it a 'fairy,' but it's actually where the seeds are hidden and where the sweet smell comes from.”
Jill spoke softly lest she should disturb the others, and, as she turned to push up her pillow, she saw Mrs. Minot looking at her with a smile she did not understand.
Jill spoke softly so she wouldn’t wake the others, and as she turned to adjust her pillow, she noticed Mrs. Minot looking at her with a smile that she didn’t understand.
“Did you speak, 'm?” she asked, smiling back again, without in the least knowing why.
“Did you say something, ma'am?” she asked, smiling back again, without really knowing why.
“No, dear. I was listening and thinking what a pretty little story one could make out of your fairy living alone down there, and only known by her perfume.”
“No, dear. I was listening and thinking about what a lovely little story could be made from your fairy living alone down there, only recognized by her scent.”
“Tell it, Mamma. It is time for our story, and that would be a nice one, I guess,” said Jack, who was as fond of stories as when he sat in his mother's lap and chuckled over the hero of the beanstalk.
“Tell it, Mom. It’s time for our story, and I bet it’ll be a good one,” said Jack, who loved stories just as much as when he sat in his mother's lap and laughed at the hero of the beanstalk.
“We don't have fairy tales on Sunday, you know,” began Jill regretfully.
“We don’t have fairy tales on Sundays, you know,” Jill started, feeling a bit sad.
“Call it a parable, and have a moral to it, then it will be all right,” put in Frank, as he shut his big book, having found what he wanted.
“Call it a parable and give it a moral, and then it’ll be fine,” Frank added as he closed his big book, having found what he was looking for.
“I like stories about saints, and the good and wonderful things they did,” said Jill, who enjoyed the wise and interesting bits Mrs. Minot often found for her in grown-up books, for Jill had thoughtful times, and asked questions which showed that she was growing fast in mind if not in body.
“I like stories about saints and the amazing things they did,” said Jill, who loved the wise and interesting bits that Mrs. Minot often selected for her from adult books, because Jill had reflective moments and asked questions that showed she was maturing quickly in her mind, even if not in her body.
“This is a true story; but I will disguise it a little, and call it 'The Miracle of Saint Lucy,'” began Mrs. Minot, seeing a way to tell her good news and amuse the children likewise.
“This is a true story, but I'm going to change it a bit and call it 'The Miracle of Saint Lucy,'” started Mrs. Minot, finding a way to share her good news and entertain the kids at the same time.
Frank retired to the easy-chair, that he might sleep if the tale should prove too childish for him. Jill settled herself among her cushions, and Jack lay flat upon the rug, with his feet up, so that he could admire his red slippers and rest his knee, which ached.
Frank settled into the comfy chair, ready to doze off if the story turned out to be too silly for him. Jill made herself comfortable among her cushions, while Jack sprawled out on the rug, propping his feet up to admire his red slippers and ease the ache in his knee.
“Once upon a time there was a queen who had two princes.”
“Once upon a time, there was a queen who had two princes.”
“Wasn't there a princess?” asked Jack, interested at once.
“Wasn't there a princess?” Jack asked, instantly intrigued.
“No; and it was a great sorrow to the queen that she had no little daughter, for the sons were growing up, and she was often very lonely.
“No; and it was a great sadness for the queen that she had no little daughter, because the sons were growing up, and she often felt very lonely.
“Like Snowdrop's mother,” whispered Jill.
“Like Snowdrop's mom,” whispered Jill.
“Now, don't keep interrupting, children, or we never shall get on,” said Frank, more anxious to hear about the boys that were than the girl that was not.
“Now, don’t keep interrupting, kids, or we’ll never move on,” said Frank, more eager to hear about the boys who were than the girl who wasn’t.
“One day, when the princes were out—ahem! we'll say hunting—they found a little damsel lying on the snow, half dead with cold, they thought. She was the child of a poor woman who lived in the forest—a wild little thing, always dancing and singing about; as hard to catch as a squirrel, and so fearless she would climb the highest trees, leap broad brooks, or jump off the steep rocks to show her courage. The boys carried her home to the palace, and the queen was glad to have her. She had fallen and hurt herself, so she lay in bed week after week, with her mother to take care of her—”
“One day, when the princes were out—let’s say hunting—they found a little girl lying in the snow, thought to be half dead from the cold. She was the daughter of a poor woman living in the forest—a wild little thing, always dancing and singing around; as tricky to catch as a squirrel, and so fearless that she would climb the tallest trees, leap over wide streams, or jump off steep rocks to show her bravery. The boys brought her back to the palace, and the queen was happy to have her. She had fallen and hurt herself, so she stayed in bed week after week, with her mother taking care of her—”
“That's you,” whispered Jack, throwing the white carnation at Jill, and she threw back the red one, with her finger on her lips, for the tale was very interesting now.
“That's you,” whispered Jack, tossing the white carnation at Jill, and she tossed back the red one, placing a finger on her lips, because the story was really interesting now.
“She did not suffer much after a time, but she scolded and cried, and could not be resigned, because she was a prisoner. The queen tried to help her, but she could not do much; the princes were kind, but they had their books and plays, and were away a good deal. Some friends she had came often to see her, but still she beat her wings against the bars, like a wild bird in a cage, and soon her spirits were all gone, and it was sad to see her.”
“She didn’t suffer much after a while, but she would scold and cry, unable to accept her situation because she was a prisoner. The queen tried to help her, but there wasn't much she could do; the princes were nice, but they spent a lot of time with their books and games. Some friends visited her often, but still, she fluttered her wings against the bars like a wild bird in a cage, and soon her spirit was completely gone, which made it sad to see her.”
“Where was your Saint Lucy? I thought it was about her,” asked Jack, who did not like to have Jill's past troubles dwelt upon, since his were not.
“Where was your Saint Lucy? I thought it was about her,” Jack asked, who didn’t like it when Jill's past troubles were brought up, especially since he had none of his own.
“She is coming. Saints are not born—they are made after many trials and tribulations,” answered his mother, looking at the fire as if it helped her to spin her little story. “Well, the poor child used to sing sometimes to while away the long hours—sad songs mostly, and one among them which the queen taught her was 'Sweet Patience, Come.'
“She is coming. Saints aren’t born—they’re made after a lot of trials and challenges,” replied his mother, staring at the fire as if it were helping her weave her little story. “Well, the poor girl used to sing sometimes to pass the long hours—mostly sad songs, and one of them that the queen taught her was 'Sweet Patience, Come.'
“This she used to sing a great deal after a while, never dreaming that Patience was an angel who could hear and obey. But it was so; and one night, when the girl had lulled herself to sleep with that song, the angel came. Nobody saw the lovely spirit with tender eyes, and a voice that was like balm. No one heard the rustle of wings as she hovered over the little bed and touched the lips, the eyes, the hands of the sleeper, and then flew away, leaving three gifts behind. The girl did not know why, but after that night the songs grew gayer, there seemed to be more sunshine everywhere her eyes looked, and her hands were never tired of helping others in various pretty, useful, or pleasant ways. Slowly the wild bird ceased to beat against the bars, but sat in its cage and made music for all in the palace, till the queen could not do without it, the poor mother cheered up, and the princes called the girl their nightingale.”
“She sang this a lot after a while, never realizing that Patience was an angel who could hear and respond. But it was true; one night, when the girl had lulled herself to sleep with that song, the angel came. Nobody saw the beautiful spirit with gentle eyes and a voice that was soothing. No one heard the sound of wings as she hovered over the little bed and touched the lips, the eyes, and the hands of the sleeper, and then flew away, leaving three gifts behind. The girl didn’t understand why, but after that night, her songs became happier, there seemed to be more sunshine wherever she looked, and her hands were always eager to help others in various lovely, useful, or enjoyable ways. Gradually, the wild bird stopped beating against the bars and sat in its cage, singing for everyone in the palace, until the queen couldn’t bear to be without it, the poor mother felt uplifted, and the princes called the girl their nightingale.”
“Was that the miracle?” asked Jack, forgetting all about his slippers, as he watched Jill's eyes brighten and the color come up in her white cheeks.
“Was that the miracle?” Jack asked, completely forgetting about his slippers as he watched Jill's eyes light up and color return to her pale cheeks.
“That was the miracle, and Patience can work far greater ones if you will let her.”
“That was the miracle, and Patience can accomplish even greater ones if you allow her.”
“And the girl's name was Lucy?”
“And the girl's name was Lucy?”
“Yes; they did not call her a saint then, but she was trying to be as cheerful as a certain good woman she had heard of, and so the queen had that name for her, though she did not let her know it for a long time.”
“Yes; they didn’t call her a saint back then, but she was trying to be as cheerful as a certain good woman she had heard about, and so the queen referred to her by that name, although she didn’t let her know for a long time.”
“That's not bad for a Sunday story, but there might have been more about the princes, seems to me,” was Frank's criticism, as Jill lay very still, trying to hide her face behind the carnation, for she had no words to tell how touched and pleased she was to find that her little efforts to be good had been seen, remembered, and now rewarded in this way.
"That's not bad for a Sunday story, but I feel like there could have been more about the princes," Frank said, while Jill lay very still, trying to hide her face behind the carnation. She had no words to express how touched and pleased she was to realize that her small efforts to be good had been noticed, remembered, and now rewarded in this way.
“There is more.”
"There's more."
“Then the story isn't done?” cried Jack.
“Then the story isn't finished?” yelled Jack.
“Oh dear, no; the most interesting things are to come, if you can wait for them.”
“Oh no, the most exciting things are still ahead, if you can just hang on for them.”
“Yes, I see, this is the moral part. Now keep still, and let us have the rest,” commanded Frank, while the others composed themselves for the sequel, suspecting that it was rather nice, because Mamma's sober face changed, and her eyes laughed as they looked at the fire.
“Yes, I get it, this is the serious part. Now be quiet and let’s hear the rest,” Frank ordered, while the others settled down for what came next, sensing that it was going to be good, since Mom’s serious expression softened and her eyes sparkled as she gazed at the fire.
“The elder prince was very fond of driving dragons, for the people of that country used these fiery monsters as horses.”
“The older prince loved riding dragons, because the people in that country used these fire-breathing creatures like horses.”
“And got run away with, didn't he?” laughed Jack, adding, with great interest, “What did the other fellow do?”
“And he got away, didn’t he?” laughed Jack, adding with excitement, “What did the other guy do?”
“He went about fighting other people's battles, helping the poor, and trying to do good. But he lacked judgment, so he often got into trouble, and was in such a hurry that he did not always stop to find out the wisest way. As when he gave away his best coat to a beggar boy, instead of the old one which he intended to give.”
“He went around fighting other people's battles, helping the needy, and trying to do good. But he lacked good judgment, so he often got into trouble, and he was in such a rush that he didn't always take the time to figure out the best way to help. Like the time he gave his best coat to a beggar boy instead of the old one he meant to give.”
“I say, that isn't fair, mother! Neither of them was new, and the boy needed the best more than I did, and I wore the old one all winter, didn't I?” asked Jack, who had rather exulted over Frank, and was now taken down himself.
“I say, that’s not fair, mom! Neither of them was new, and the boy needed the best more than I did, and I wore the old one all winter, didn’t I?” asked Jack, who had been feeling pretty proud of himself over Frank, and was now brought down a notch.
“Yes, you did, my dear; and it was not an easy thing for my dandiprat to do. Now listen, and I'll tell you how they both learned to be wiser. The elder prince soon found that the big dragons were too much for him, and set about training his own little one, who now and then ran away with him. Its name was Will, a good servant, but a bad master; so he learned to control it, and in time this gave him great power over himself, and fitted him to be a king over others.”
“Yes, you did, my dear; and it wasn’t an easy thing for my little trickster to do. Now listen, and I’ll tell you how they both learned to be wiser. The older prince quickly realized that the big dragons were too much for him, so he started training his own little one, who would occasionally run away with him. Its name was Will, a good servant but a bad master; so he learned to control it, and in time this gave him great power over himself and prepared him to be a king over others.”
“Thank you, mother; I'll remember my part of the moral. Now give Jack his,” said Frank, who liked the dragon episode, as he had been wrestling with his own of late, and found it hard to manage.
“Thanks, Mom; I'll keep my part of the lesson in mind. Now give Jack his,” said Frank, who enjoyed the dragon story, as he had been dealing with his own challenges lately and found it difficult to handle.
“He had a fine example before him in a friend, and he followed it more reasonably till he grew able to use wisely one of the best and noblest gifts of God—benevolence.”
"He had a great role model in a friend, and he followed that example more thoughtfully until he was able to wisely use one of God's greatest and most noble gifts—kindness."
“Now tell about the girl. Was there more to that part of the story?” asked Jack, well pleased with his moral, as it took Ed in likewise.
“Now tell me about the girl. Was there more to that part of the story?” asked Jack, feeling good about his lesson, since it also interested Ed.
“That is the best of all, but it seems as if I never should get to it. After Patience made Lucy sweet and cheerful, she began to have a curious power over those about her, and to work little miracles herself, though she did not know it. The queen learned to love her so dearly she could not let her go; she cheered up all her friends when they came with their small troubles; the princes found bright eyes, willing hands, and a kind heart always at their service, and felt, without quite knowing why, that it was good for them to have a gentle little creature to care for; so they softened their rough manners, loud voices, and careless ways, for her sake, and when it was proposed to take her away to her own home they could not give her up, but said she must stay longer, didn't they?”
“That is the best of all, but it feels like I’ll never get there. After Patience made Lucy sweet and cheerful, she started having a strange influence over the people around her and performing little miracles herself, even though she didn't realize it. The queen grew to love her so much that she couldn't bear to let her go; she lifted the spirits of all her friends when they came with their minor troubles; the princes found bright eyes, eager hands, and a kind heart always ready to help them, and they felt, without really understanding why, that it was good for them to have a gentle little person to care for; so they toned down their rough manners, loud voices, and careless attitudes for her sake, and when it was suggested that she should return to her own home, they couldn’t bear to lose her and insisted she should stay longer, right?”
“I'd like to see them saying anything else,” said Frank, while Jack sat up to demand fiercely,—
“I'd like to see them say anything else,” Frank said, while Jack sat up to fiercely demand,—
“Who talks about taking Jill away?”
“Who is talking about taking Jill away?”
“Lucy's mother thought she ought to go, and said so, but the queen told her how much good it did them all to have her there, and begged the dear woman to let her little cottage and come and be housekeeper in the palace, for the queen was getting lazy, and liked to sit and read, and talk and sew with Lucy, better than to look after things.”
“Lucy's mom thought she should go, and said so, but the queen told her how much it helped everyone to have her there, and begged the sweet woman to leave her little cottage and come be the housekeeper in the palace, because the queen was getting lazy and preferred sitting and reading, talking, and sewing with Lucy over managing everything.”
“And she said she would?” cried Jill, clasping her hands in her anxiety, for she had learned to love her cage now.
“And she actually said that?” cried Jill, clasping her hands in worry, for she had come to love her cage now.
“Yes.” Mrs. Minot had no time to say more, for one of the red slippers flew up in the air, and Jack had to clap both hands over his mouth to suppress the “hurrah!” that nearly escaped. Frank said, “That's good!” and nodded with his most cordial smile at Jill who pulled herself up with cheeks now as rosy as the red carnation, and a little catch in her breath as she said to herself,—
“Yes.” Mrs. Minot didn’t have time to say more because one of the red slippers soared into the air, and Jack had to cover his mouth with both hands to hold back the “hurrah!” that almost slipped out. Frank said, “That’s great!” and flashed his warmest smile at Jill, who pulled herself up with cheeks now as rosy as the red carnation, and a slight hitch in her breath as she said to herself,—
“It's too lovely to be true.”
“It's too beautiful to be real.”
“That's a first-rate end to a very good story,” began Jack, with grave decision, as he put on his slipper and sat up to pat Jill's hand, wishing it was not quite so like a little claw.
“That's a great ending to a really good story,” Jack started, seriously, as he put on his slipper and sat up to pat Jill's hand, wishing it didn’t feel so much like a little claw.
“That's not the end;” and Mamma's eyes laughed more than ever as three astonished faces turned to her, and three voices cried out,—
“That's not the end;" and Mom's eyes sparkled with laughter as three surprised faces turned to her, and three voices exclaimed,—
“Still more?”
"More?"
“The very best of all. You must know that, while Lucy was busy for others, she was not forgotten, and when she was expecting to lie on her bed through the summer, plans were being made for all sorts of pleasant changes. First of all, she was to have a nice little brace to support the back which was growing better every day; then, as the warm weather came on, she was to go out, or lie on the piazza; and by and by, when school was done, she was to go with the queen and the princes for a month or two down to the sea-side, where fresh air and salt water were to build her up in the most delightful way. There, now! isn't that the best ending of all?” and Mamma paused to read her answer in the bright faces of two of the listeners, for Jill hid hers in the pillow, and lay quite still, as if it was too much for her.
“The very best of all. You should know that, while Lucy was busy looking after others, she wasn’t forgotten, and while she expected to spend the summer resting in bed, plans were being made for all kinds of pleasant changes. First, she was going to get a nice little brace to support her back, which was getting better every day; then, as the weather warmed up, she was going to go outside or relax on the porch; and eventually, when school was over, she was going to go with the queen and the princes for a month or two to the seaside, where fresh air and saltwater would help her feel amazing. There, isn’t that the best ending of all?” Mamma paused to read the reactions on the bright faces of two of the listeners, while Jill hid hers in the pillow and lay completely still, as if it was too much for her.
“That will be regularly splendid! I'll row you all about—boating is so much easier than riding, and I like it on salt water,” said Frank, going to sit on the arm of the sofa, quite excited by the charms of the new plan.
"That sounds amazing! I'll take you everywhere—boating is way easier than riding, and I love it on the ocean," said Frank, as he sat on the arm of the sofa, clearly excited about the new plan.
“And I'll teach you to swim, and roll you over the beach, and get sea-weed and shells, and no end of nice things, and we'll all come home as strong as lions,” added Jack, scrambling up as if about to set off at once.
“And I'll teach you to swim, roll you over the beach, collect seaweed and shells, and all sorts of cool things, and we'll all come home as strong as lions,” Jack added, getting up as if he was ready to leave immediately.
“The doctor says you have been doing finely of late, and the brace will come to-morrow, and the first really mild day you are to have a breath of fresh air. Won't that be good?” asked Mrs. Minot, hoping her story had not been too interesting.
“The doctor says you’ve been doing well lately, and the brace will arrive tomorrow. On the first nice day, you’ll get to enjoy some fresh air. Won’t that be great?” asked Mrs. Minot, wishing her story hadn’t been too engaging.
“Is she crying?” said Jack, much concerned as he patted the pillow in his most soothing way, while Frank lifted one curl after another to see what was hidden underneath.
“Is she crying?” Jack asked, clearly worried as he patted the pillow in the gentlest way, while Frank lifted one curl after another to see what was hiding underneath.
Not tears, for two eyes sparkled behind the fingers, then the hands came down like clouds from before the sun, and Jill's face shone out so bright and happy it did one's heart good to see it.
Not tears, because two eyes sparkled behind her fingers, then the hands dropped like clouds before the sun, and Jill's face shone so brightly and happily that it warmed your heart to see it.
“I'm not crying,” she said with a laugh which was fuller of blithe music than any song she sung. “But it was so splendid, it sort of took my breath away for a minute. I thought I wasn't any better, and never should be, and I made up my mind I wouldn't ask, it would be so hard for any one to tell me so. Now I see why the doctor made me stand up, and told me to get my baskets ready to go a-Maying. I thought he was in fun; did he really mean I could go?” asked Jill, expecting too much, for a word of encouragement made her as hopeful as she had been despondent before.
“I'm not crying,” she said with a laugh that was livelier than any song she sang. “But it was so amazing, it kind of took my breath away for a moment. I thought I wasn't getting any better, and I never would, and I decided I wouldn't ask because it would be too hard for anyone to tell me the truth. Now I understand why the doctor had me stand up and told me to get my baskets ready for May. I thought he was joking; did he really mean I could go?” asked Jill, feeling too optimistic, as a word of encouragement made her as hopeful as she had been down before.
“No, dear, not so soon as that. It will be months, probably, before you can walk and run, as you used to; but they will soon pass. You needn't mind about May-day; it is always too cold for flowers, and you will find more here among your own plants, than on the hills, to fill your baskets,” answered Mrs. Minot, hastening to suggest something pleasant to beguile the time of probation.
“No, dear, not that soon. It’s going to be months, probably, before you can walk and run like you used to; but time will fly by. Don't worry about May Day; it’s usually too cold for flowers, and you’ll find more among your own plants than on the hills to fill your baskets,” Mrs. Minot replied, quickly trying to suggest something nice to pass the waiting time.
“I can wait. Months are not years, and if I'm truly getting well, everything will seem beautiful and easy to me,” said Jill, laying herself down again, with the patient look she had learned to wear, and gathering up the scattered carnations to enjoy their spicy breath, as if the fairies hidden there had taught her some of their sweet secrets.
“I can wait. Months aren’t years, and if I’m really getting better, everything will feel beautiful and easy to me,” said Jill, lying down again with the calm expression she had learned to adopt, collecting the scattered carnations to enjoy their fragrant scent, as if the fairies hidden among them had shared some of their sweet secrets.
“Dear little girl, it has been a long, hard trial for you, but it is coming to an end, and I think you will find that it has not been time wasted, I don't want you to be a saint quite yet, but I am sure a gentler Jill will rise up from that sofa than the one who lay down there in December.”
“Dear little girl, you’ve been through a long, tough experience, but it’s coming to an end, and I believe you’ll see that it hasn’t been time wasted. I don’t want you to be a saint just yet, but I’m certain a kinder Jill will emerge from that sofa than the one who lay there in December.”
“How could I help growing better, when you were so good to me?” cried Jill, putting up both arms, as Mrs. Minot went to take Frank's place, and he retired to the fire, there to stand surveying the scene with calm approval.
“How can I improve when you’ve been so kind to me?” cried Jill, raising both arms as Mrs. Minot stepped in to take Frank’s place, while he moved to the fireplace to stand there, quietly observing the scene with satisfaction.
“You have done quite as much for us; so we are even. I proved that to your mother, and she is going to let the little house and take care of the big one for me, while I borrow you to keep me happy and make the boys gentle and kind. That is the bargain, and we get the best of it,” said Mrs. Minot, looking well pleased, while Jack added, “That's so!” and Frank observed with an air of conviction, “We couldn't get on without Jill, possibly.”
“You’ve done just as much for us, so we’re even. I convinced your mom, and she’s going to rent out the small house and take care of the big one for me while I borrow you to keep me happy and make the boys nice and kind. That’s the deal, and we’re coming out ahead,” said Mrs. Minot, looking very pleased, while Jack added, “That’s right!” and Frank remarked with conviction, “We couldn’t manage without Jill, absolutely.”
“Can I do all that? I didn't know I was of any use. I only tried to be good and grateful, for there didn't seem to be anything else I could do,” said Jill, wondering why they were all so fond of her.
“Can I really do all that? I had no idea I was useful. I just tried to be good and thankful because it didn’t seem like there was anything else I could do,” said Jill, curious about why they all liked her so much.
“No real trying is ever in vain. It is like the spring rain, and flowers are sure to follow in good time. The three gifts Patience gave Saint Lucy were courage, cheerfulness, and love, and with these one can work the sweetest miracles in the world, as you see,” and Mrs. Minot pointed to the pretty room and its happy inmates.
“No effort is ever wasted. It's like the spring rain, and flowers are bound to bloom eventually. The three gifts Patience gave to Saint Lucy were courage, cheerfulness, and love, and with these, anyone can create the most beautiful miracles in the world, just as you can see,” Mrs. Minot said, pointing to the lovely room and its joyful occupants.
“Am I really the least bit like that good Lucinda? I tried to be, but I didn't think I was,” asked Jill softly.
“Am I really anything like that nice Lucinda? I tried to be, but I didn’t think I was,” Jill asked softly.
“You are very like her in all ways but one. She did not get well, and you will.”
“You are very much like her in every way except one. She didn’t get better, and you will.”
A short answer, but it satisfied Jill to her heart's core, and that night, when she lay in bed, she thought to herself: “How curious it is that I've been a sort of missionary without knowing it! They all love and thank me, and won't let me go, so I suppose I must have done something, but I don't know what, except trying to be good and pleasant.”
A short answer, but it filled Jill with joy, and that night, when she lay in bed, she thought to herself: “How strange it is that I've been a kind of missionary without realizing it! They all love and thank me, and won’t let me leave, so I guess I must have done something, but I have no idea what, other than trying to be nice and friendly.”
That was the secret, and Jill found it out just when it was most grateful as a reward for past efforts, most helpful as an encouragement toward the constant well-doing which can make even a little girl a joy and comfort to all who know and love her.
That was the secret, and Jill discovered it just when it was most appreciated as a reward for her previous efforts, most encouraging for the ongoing kindness that can make even a little girl a joy and comfort to everyone who knows and loves her.
Chapter XVI. Up at Merry's
“Now fly round, child, and get your sweeping done up smart and early.”
“Now go on, kid, and get your cleaning done quickly and early.”
“Yes, mother.”
"Yes, Mom."
“I shall want you to help me about the baking, by and by.”
“I'll need your help with the baking later.”
“Yes, mother.”
“Yeah, Mom.”
“Roxy is cleaning the cellar-closets, so you'll have to get the vegetables ready for dinner. Father wants a boiled dish, and I shall be so busy I can't see to it.”
“Roxy is cleaning the cellar closets, so you’ll need to prepare the vegetables for dinner. Dad wants a boiled dish, and I’ll be too busy to take care of it.”
“Yes, mother.”
"Yeah, Mom."
A cheerful voice gave the three answers, but it cost Merry an effort to keep it so, for she had certain little plans of her own which made the work before her unusually distasteful. Saturday always was a trying day, for, though she liked to see rooms in order, she hated to sweep, as no speck escaped Mrs. Grant's eye, and only the good old-fashioned broom, wielded by a pair of strong arms, was allowed. Baking was another trial: she loved good bread and delicate pastry, but did not enjoy burning her face over a hot stove, daubing her hands with dough, or spending hours rolling out cookies for the boys; while a “boiled dinner” was her especial horror, as it was not elegant, and the washing of vegetables was a job she always shirked when she could.
A cheerful voice provided the three answers, but Merry had to work hard to keep it that way because she had her own little plans that made the task ahead feel especially unpleasant. Saturdays were always challenging for her; even though she liked seeing tidy rooms, she detested sweeping since Mrs. Grant noticed every speck, and only the old-fashioned broom, handled by strong arms, was allowed. Baking was another struggle: she loved good bread and delicate pastries, but she didn't enjoy burning her face over a hot stove, getting her hands messy with dough, or spending hours rolling out cookies for the boys. Plus, a "boiled dinner" was her absolute nightmare since it wasn't fancy, and she always found a way to avoid the job of washing vegetables when she could.
However, having made up her mind to do her work without complaint, she ran upstairs to put on her dust-cap, trying to look as if sweeping was the joy of her life.
However, having decided to do her work without complaining, she ran upstairs to put on her dust cap, trying to look as if sweeping was the highlight of her life.
“It is such a lovely day, I did want to rake my garden, and have a walk with Molly, and finish my book so I can get another,” she said with a sigh, as she leaned out of the open window for a breath of the unusually mild air.
“It’s such a beautiful day. I wanted to rake my garden, take a walk with Molly, and finish my book so I can start another one,” she said with a sigh, leaning out of the open window to enjoy the unusually mild air.
Down in the ten-acre lot the boys were carting and spreading loam; out in the barn her father was getting his plows ready; over the hill rose the smoke of the distant factory, and the river that turned the wheels was gliding through the meadows, where soon the blackbirds would be singing. Old Bess pawed the ground, eager to be off; the gray hens were scratching busily all about the yard; even the green things in the garden were pushing through the brown earth, softened by April rains, and there was a shimmer of sunshine over the wide landscape that made every familiar object beautiful with hints of spring, and the activity it brings.
Down in the ten-acre lot, the boys were hauling and spreading dirt; out in the barn, her dad was getting his plows ready; over the hill, smoke from the distant factory was rising, and the river that powered the wheels was flowing through the meadows, where soon the blackbirds would start singing. Old Bess was pawing the ground, eager to get going; the gray hens were scratching around the yard; even the plants in the garden were pushing through the brown earth, softened by April rains, and there was a glimmer of sunshine over the wide landscape that made every familiar object look beautiful with signs of spring and the energy it brings.
Something made the old nursery hymn come into Merry's head, and humming to herself,
Something made the old nursery rhyme pop into Merry's head, and she started humming to herself,
“In works of labor or of skill I would be busy too,”
“In jobs that require hard work or talent I would stay busy as well,”
she tied on her cap, shouldered her broom, and fell to work so energetically that she soon swept her way through the chambers, down the front stairs to the parlor door, leaving freshness and order behind her as she went.
She put on her cap, grabbed her broom, and got to work so energetically that she quickly swept through the rooms, down the front stairs to the parlor door, leaving freshness and tidiness in her wake.
She always groaned when she entered that apartment, and got out of it again as soon as possible, for it was, like most country parlors, a prim and chilly place, with little beauty and no comfort. Black horse-hair furniture, very slippery and hard, stood against the wall; the table had its gift books, albums, worsted mat and ugly lamp; the mantel-piece its china vases, pink shells, and clock that never went; the gay carpet was kept distressingly bright by closed shutters six days out of the seven, and a general air of go-to-meeting solemnity pervaded the room. Merry longed to make it pretty and pleasant, but her mother would allow of no change there, so the girl gave up her dreams of rugs and hangings, fine pictures and tasteful ornaments, and dutifully aired, dusted, and shut up this awful apartment once a week, privately resolving that, if she ever had a parlor of her own, it should not be as dismal as a tomb.
She always sighed when she stepped into that apartment and hurried out as soon as she could because it was, like most country living rooms, a stuffy and cold place, with little beauty and no comfort. The black horsehair furniture, which was very slippery and hard, lined the walls; the table had its assortment of gift books, albums, a worse-for-wear mat, and an ugly lamp; the mantelpiece displayed china vases, pink shells, and a clock that never worked; the cheerful carpet was kept unnaturally bright by closed shutters six days a week, and an overall air of somber formality filled the room. Merry longed to make it pretty and inviting, but her mother would allow no changes, so the girl gave up her dreams of rugs and curtains, nice artwork, and tasteful decorations, dutifully airing, dusting, and shutting up this dreadful apartment once a week, privately resolving that if she ever had a living room of her own, it wouldn’t be as depressing as a tomb.
The dining-room was a very different place, for here Merry had been allowed to do as she liked, yet so gradual had been the change, that she would have found it difficult to tell how it came about. It seemed to begin with the flowers, for her father kept his word about the “posy pots,” and got enough to make quite a little conservatory in the bay-window, which was sufficiently large for three rows all round, and hanging-baskets overhead. Being discouraged by her first failure, Merry gave up trying to have things nice everywhere, and contented herself with making that one nook so pretty that the boys called it her “bower.” Even busy Mrs. Grant owned that plants were not so messy as she expected, and the farmer was never tired of watching “little daughter” as she sat at work there, with her low chair and table full of books.
The dining room was a completely different place because Merry had been allowed to do whatever she wanted. The change had happened so gradually that she would have struggled to explain how it came about. It seemed to start with the flowers, as her father kept his promise about the “posy pots” and got enough to create a little conservatory in the bay window, which was large enough for three rows all around, plus hanging baskets overhead. After feeling discouraged by her first attempt, Merry stopped trying to keep everything nice everywhere and focused on making that one corner so beautiful that the boys called it her “bower.” Even busy Mrs. Grant admitted that plants weren’t as messy as she thought they would be, and the farmer never got tired of watching “little daughter” as she worked there with her low chair and a table full of books.
The lamp helped, also, for Merry set up her own, and kept it so well trimmed that it burned clear and bright, shining on the green arch of ivy overhead, and on the nasturtium vines framing the old glass, and peeping at their gay little faces, and at the pretty young girl, so pleasantly that first her father came to read his paper by it, then her mother slipped in to rest on the lounge in the corner, and finally the boys hovered about the door as if the “settin'-room” had grown more attractive than the kitchen.
The lamp was helpful, too, because Merry set up her own and kept it so well trimmed that it burned clear and bright, casting light on the green ivy overhead, the nasturtium vines framing the old window, and peering at their colorful little faces, as well as at the pretty young girl. It was so pleasant that first her dad came to read his paper by it, then her mom slipped in to rest on the couch in the corner, and finally the boys lingered by the door as if the living room had become more appealing than the kitchen.
But the open fire did more than anything else to win and hold them all, as it seldom fails to do when the black demon of an airtight stove is banished from the hearth. After the room was cleaned till it shone, Merry begged to have the brass andirons put in, and offered to keep them as bright as gold if her mother would consent. So the great logs were kindled, and the flames went dancing up the chimney as if glad to be set free from their prison. It changed the whole room like magic, and no one could resist the desire to enjoy its cheery comfort. The farmer's three-cornered leathern chair soon stood on one side, and mother's rocker on the other, as they toasted their feet and dozed or chatted in the pleasant warmth.
But the open fire did more than anything else to win them over and keep them there, as it almost always does when the cold, heavy stove is removed from the hearth. After the room was cleaned until it sparkled, Merry asked to have the brass andirons brought out and promised to keep them shiny like gold if her mom agreed. So, they lit the big logs, and the flames danced up the chimney as if they were happy to be set free from their confinement. It transformed the whole room like magic, and no one could resist the urge to enjoy its cozy comfort. The farmer's three-cornered leather chair soon took its place on one side, and Mom's rocker on the other, as they warmed their feet and either dozed off or chatted in the inviting warmth.
The boys' slippers were always ready on the hearth; and when the big boots were once off, they naturally settled down about the table, where the tall lamp, with its pretty shade of pressed autumn leaves, burned brightly, and the books and papers lay ready to their hands instead of being tucked out of sight in the closet. They were beginning to see that “Merry's notions” had some sense in them, since they were made comfortable, and good-naturedly took some pains to please her in various ways. Tom brushed his hair and washed his hands nicely before he came to table. Dick tried to lower his boisterous laughter, and Harry never smoked in the sitting-room. Even Roxy expressed her pleasure in seeing “things kind of spruced up,” and Merry's gentle treatment of the hard-working drudge won her heart entirely.
The boys' slippers were always waiting by the fireplace, and once they took off their big boots, they naturally settled around the table. The tall lamp, with its lovely shade of pressed autumn leaves, shone brightly, and the books and papers were neatly laid out for them instead of being shoved away in the closet. They were starting to realize that “Merry's ideas” had some merit since they were more comfortable, and they happily made an effort to please her in different ways. Tom combed his hair and washed his hands nicely before joining the table. Dick tried to tone down his loud laughter, and Harry never smoked in the living room. Even Roxy showed her happiness in seeing “things kind of spruced up,” and Merry’s kind treatment of the hard-working housemaid completely won her over.
The girl was thinking of these changes as she watered her flowers, dusted the furniture, and laid the fire ready for kindling; and, when all was done, she stood a minute to enjoy the pleasant room, full of spring sunshine, fresh air, and exquisite order. It seemed to give her heart for more distasteful labors, and she fell to work at the pies as cheerfully as if she liked it.
The girl thought about these changes while she watered her flowers, dusted the furniture, and set up the fire for kindling. Once she finished everything, she took a moment to appreciate the lovely room, filled with spring sunshine, fresh air, and perfect order. It seemed to inspire her for the more tedious tasks ahead, and she started working on the pies as happily as if she actually enjoyed it.
Mrs. Grant was flying about the kitchen, getting the loaves of brown and white bread ready for the big oven. Roxy's voice came up from the cellar singing “Bounding Billows,” with a swashing and scrubbing accompaniment which suggested that she was actually enjoying a “life on the ocean wave.” Merry, in her neat cap and apron, stood smiling over her work as she deftly rolled and clipped, filled and covered, finding a certain sort of pleasure in doing it well, and adding interest to it by crimping the crust, making pretty devices with strips of paste and star-shaped prickings of the fork.
Mrs. Grant was bustling around the kitchen, preparing the loaves of brown and white bread for the big oven. Roxy's voice came up from the cellar singing “Bounding Billows,” with a swishing and scrubbing background that suggested she was genuinely enjoying a “life on the ocean wave.” Merry, in her neat cap and apron, stood smiling over her work as she skillfully rolled and clipped, filled and covered, taking pleasure in doing it well and adding interest by crimping the crust, creating pretty designs with strips of paste and star-shaped pricks from a fork.
“Good-will giveth skill,” says the proverb, and even particular Mrs. Grant was satisfied when she paused to examine the pastry with her experienced eye.
“Goodwill brings skill,” says the proverb, and even Mrs. Grant was pleased when she stopped to look at the pastry with her trained eye.
“You are a handy child and a credit to your bringing up, though I do say it. Those are as pretty pies as I'd wish to eat, if they bake well, and there's no reason why they shouldn't.”
“You’re a skilled kid and a credit to your upbringing, if I do say so myself. Those look like the best pies I’d want to eat, provided they bake well, and there’s no reason they shouldn’t.”
“May I make some tarts or rabbits of these bits? The boys like them, and I enjoy modelling this sort of thing,” said Merry, who was trying to mould a bird, as she had seen Ralph do with clay to amuse Jill while the bust was going on.
“Can I make some tarts or rabbits out of these pieces? The boys like them, and I enjoy shaping this kind of stuff,” said Merry, who was trying to mold a bird, just like she had seen Ralph do with clay to entertain Jill while the bust was happening.
“No, dear; there's no time for knick-knacks to-day. The beets ought to be on this minute. Run and get 'em, and be sure you scrape the carrots well.”
“No, dear; there’s no time for trinkets today. The beets should be ready right now. Go and get them, and make sure you scrub the carrots thoroughly.”
Poor Merry put away the delicate task she was just beginning to like, and taking a pan went down cellar, wishing vegetables could be grown without earth, for she hated to put her hands in dirty water. A word of praise to Roxy made that grateful scrubber leave her work to poke about in the root-cellar, choosing “sech as was pretty much of a muchness, else they wouldn't bile even;” so Merry was spared that part of the job, and went up to scrape and wash without complaint, since it was for father. She was repaid at noon by the relish with which he enjoyed his dinner, for Merry tried to make even a boiled dish pretty by arranging the beets, carrots, turnips, and potatoes in contrasting colors, with the beef hidden under the cabbage leaves.
Poor Merry set aside the delicate task she was just starting to enjoy, and grabbing a pan, went down to the basement, wishing vegetables could grow without soil because she disliked putting her hands in dirty water. A kind word to Roxy made the grateful scrubber leave her work to search through the root cellar, picking out “whatever looked good, otherwise they wouldn’t even cook well;” so Merry was spared that part of the job and went upstairs to scrape and wash without complaint since it was for her dad. She was rewarded at noon by how much he enjoyed his dinner, as Merry tried to make even a boiled dish look nice by arranging the beets, carrots, turnips, and potatoes in contrasting colors, with the beef hidden under the cabbage leaves.
“Now, I'll rest and read for an hour, then I'll rake my garden, or run down town to see Molly and get some seeds,” she thought to herself, as she put away the spoons and glasses, which she liked to wash, that they might always be clear and bright.
“Now, I'll take a break and read for an hour, then I'll rake my garden, or head downtown to see Molly and pick up some seeds,” she thought to herself while putting away the spoons and glasses, which she liked to wash so they would always be clear and bright.
“If you've done all your own mending, there's a heap of socks to be looked over. Then I'll show you about darning the tablecloths. I do hate to have a stitch of work left over till Monday,” said Mrs. Grant, who never took naps, and prided herself on sitting down to her needle at 3 P.M. every day.
“If you've done all your own sewing, there are a ton of socks to go through. Then I'll show you how to darn the tablecloths. I really hate to have any work left for Monday,” said Mrs. Grant, who never took naps and prided herself on sitting down to her needle at 3 P.M. every day.
“Yes, mother;” and Merry went slowly upstairs, feeling that a part of Saturday ought to be a holiday after books and work all the week. As she braided up her hair, her eye fell upon the reflection of her own face in the glass. Not a happy nor a pretty one just then, and Merry was so unaccustomed to seeing any other, that involuntarily the frown smoothed itself out, the eyes lost their weary look, the drooping lips curved into a smile, and, leaning her elbows on the bureau, she shook her head at herself, saying, half aloud, as she glanced at Ivanhoe lying near,—
“Yes, Mom,” and Merry slowly headed upstairs, feeling that part of Saturday should be a break after a week of books and work. As she braided her hair, she caught sight of her own reflection in the mirror. It wasn't a happy or pretty sight at that moment, and she was so used to seeing cheerful ones that her frown relaxed, her eyes brightened, her drooping lips turned into a smile, and leaning her elbows on the dresser, she shook her head at herself, saying, half aloud, as she glanced at Ivanhoe lying nearby,—
“You needn't look so cross and ugly just because you can't have what you want. Sweeping, baking, and darning are not so bad as being plagued with lovers and carried off and burnt at the stake, so I won't envy poor Rebecca her jewels and curls and romantic times, but make the best of my own.”
“You don’t need to look so cranky and unpleasant just because you can’t have what you want. Sweeping, baking, and mending aren’t as bad as being tormented by lovers and ending up burned at the stake, so I won’t be jealous of poor Rebecca and her jewels, curls, and romantic escapades; instead, I’ll make the best of my own situation.”
Then she laughed, and the bright face came back into the mirror, looking like an old friend, and Merry went on dressing with care, for she took pleasure in her own little charms, and felt a sense of comfort in knowing that she could always have one pretty thing to look at if she kept her own face serene and sweet. It certainly looked so as it bent over the pile of big socks half an hour later, and brightened with each that was laid aside. Her mother saw it, and, guessing why such wistful glances went from clock to window, kindly shortened the task of table-cloth darning by doing a good bit herself, before putting it into Merry's hands.
Then she laughed, and the bright face returned to the mirror, looking like an old friend, and Merry continued to dress carefully, enjoying her own little charms and feeling comforted by the fact that she could always have one pretty thing to look at if she kept her face calm and sweet. It definitely looked that way as it leaned over the pile of big socks half an hour later, lighting up with each one that was set aside. Her mother noticed and, understanding why Merry was gazing wistfully from the clock to the window, kindly shortened the task of darning the tablecloth by doing a significant portion herself before handing it over to Merry.
She was a good and loving mother in spite of her strict ways, and knew that it was better for her romantic daughter to be learning all the housewifery lessons she could teach her, than to be reading novels, writing verses, or philandering about with her head full of girlish fancies, quite innocent in themselves, but not the stuff to live on. So she wisely taught the hands that preferred to pick flowers, trim up rooms and mould birds, to work well with needle, broom, and rolling-pin; put a receipt-book before the eyes that loved to laugh and weep over tender tales, and kept the young head and heart safe and happy with wholesome duties, useful studies, and such harmless pleasures as girls should love, instead of letting them waste their freshness in vague longings, idle dreams, and frivolous pastimes.
She was a loving and caring mother despite her strictness, and understood that it was better for her romantic daughter to learn all the household skills she could teach her, rather than reading novels, writing poetry, or daydreaming with her head full of innocent girlish fantasies that weren’t practical for real life. So she wisely guided the hands that preferred picking flowers, decorating rooms, and crafting birds to become skilled with a needle, broom, and rolling pin; placed a cookbook in front of the eyes that loved to laugh and cry over touching stories, and kept the young mind and heart safe and happy with meaningful tasks, practical studies, and the kind of enjoyable activities that girls should cherish, instead of allowing them to waste their youth on vague desires, idle daydreams, and trivial pastimes.
But it was often hard to thwart the docile child, and lately she had seemed to be growing up so fast that her mother began to feel a new sort of tenderness for this sweet daughter, who was almost ready to take upon herself the cares, as well as triumphs and delights, of maidenhood. Something in the droop of the brown head, and the quick motion of the busy hand with a little burn on it, made it difficult for Mrs. Grant to keep Merry at work that day, and her eye watched the clock almost as impatiently as the girl's, for she liked to see the young face brighten when the hour of release came.
But it was often hard to stop the obedient child, and lately she seemed to be growing up so quickly that her mother began to feel a new kind of affection for this sweet daughter, who was almost ready to take on the responsibilities, as well as the successes and joys, of womanhood. Something in the way the brown head hung a little and the quick movements of the busy hand with a small burn on it made it difficult for Mrs. Grant to keep Merry focused on her work that day, and her eye was on the clock almost as anxiously as the girl's, because she loved to see the young face light up when the time to be done finally arrived.
“What next?” asked Merry, as the last stitch was set, and she stifled a sigh on hearing the clock strike four, for the sun was getting low, and the lovely afternoon going fast.
“What’s next?” asked Merry as the last stitch was finished, and she held back a sigh when she heard the clock strike four, since the sun was getting low and the beautiful afternoon was slipping away.
“One more job, if you are not too tired for it. I want the receipt for diet drink Miss Dawes promised me; would you like to run down and get it for me, dear?”
“One more thing, if you’re not too tired. I need the receipt for the diet drink Miss Dawes promised me. Can you go grab it for me, please?”
“Yes, mother!” and that answer was as blithe as a robin's chirp, for that was just where Merry wanted to go.
“Yeah, Mom!” and that response was as cheerful as a robin's song, because that was exactly where Merry wanted to go.
Away went thimble and scissors, and in five minutes away went Merry, skipping down the hill without a care in the world, for a happy heart sat singing within, and everything seemed full of beauty.
Away went the thimble and scissors, and in five minutes, away went Merry, skipping down the hill without a care in the world, for a happy heart was singing inside, and everything looked beautiful.
She had a capital time with Molly, called on Jill, did her shopping in the village, and had just turned to walk up the hill, when Ralph Evans came tramping along behind her, looking so pleased and proud about something that she could not help asking what it was, for they were great friends, and Merry thought that to be an artist was the most glorious career a man could choose.
She had a fantastic time with Molly, visited Jill, did her shopping in the village, and had just turned to walk up the hill when Ralph Evans came stomping along behind her, looking so happy and proud about something that she couldn't help but ask what it was, since they were great friends, and Merry thought being an artist was the most amazing career a guy could choose.
“I know you've got some good news,” she said, looking up at him as he touched his hat and fell into step with her, seeming more contented than before.
“I know you've got some good news,” she said, looking up at him as he touched his hat and walked alongside her, seeming more content than before.
“I have, and was just coming up to tell you, for I was sure you would be glad. It is only a hope, a chance, but it is so splendid I feel as if I must shout and dance, or fly over a fence or two, to let off steam.”
“I’ve got news, and I was just coming to tell you because I knew you’d be happy about it. It’s just a hope, a possibility, but it’s so amazing that I feel like I have to shout and dance, or jump over a fence or two to let off some excitement.”
“Do tell me, quick; have you got an order?” asked Merry, full of interest at once, for artistic vicissitudes were very romantic, and she liked to hear about them.
“Please tell me quickly; do you have an order?” asked Merry, immediately full of interest, because artistic changes were very romantic, and she enjoyed hearing about them.
“I may go abroad in the autumn.”
“I might go overseas in the fall.”
“Oh, how lovely!”
“Oh, how beautiful!”
“Isn't it? David German is going to spend a year in Rome, to finish a statue, and wants me to go along. Grandma is willing, as cousin Maria wants her for a long visit, so everything looks promising and I really think I may go.”
“Isn’t it? David German is going to spend a year in Rome to finish a statue and wants me to come with him. Grandma is okay with it since cousin Maria wants her for a long visit, so everything looks good, and I really think I might go.”
“Won't it cost a great deal?” asked Merry, who, in spite of her little elegancies, had a good deal of her thrifty mother's common sense.
“Isn’t it going to cost a lot?” asked Merry, who, despite her little elegance, had a good amount of her frugal mother’s common sense.
“Yes; and I've got to earn it. But I can—I know I can, for I've saved some, and I shall work like ten beavers all summer. I won't borrow if I can help it, but I know someone who would lend me five hundred if I wanted it;” and Ralph looked as eager and secure as if the earning of twice that sum was a mere trifle when all the longing of his life was put into his daily tasks.
“Yes; and I have to earn it. But I can—I know I can, because I've saved some, and I’ll work like crazy all summer. I won’t borrow unless I really have to, but I know someone who would lend me five hundred if I needed it;” and Ralph looked as eager and confident as if earning double that amount was easy, with all his life’s ambitions fueling his daily efforts.
“I wish I had it to give you. It must be so splendid to feel that you can do great things if you only have the chance. And to travel, and see all the lovely pictures and statues, and people and places in Italy. How happy you must be!” and Merry's eyes had the wistful look they always wore when she dreamed dreams of the world she loved to live in.
“I wish I could give it to you. It must be amazing to feel like you can do great things if you just get the chance. And to travel, see all the beautiful art and statues, and meet all the people and places in Italy. You must be so happy!” Merry's eyes had that longing look they always had when she dreamed of the world she loved to be in.
“I am—so happy that I'm afraid it never will happen. If I do go, I'll write and tell you all about the fine sights, and how I get on. Would you like me to?” asked Ralph, beginning enthusiastically and ending rather bashfully, for he admired Merry very much, and was not quite sure how this proposal would be received.
“I’m really happy, but I’m also worried it won’t happen. If I do go, I’ll write and tell you all about the amazing sights and how things go for me. Would you want that?” Ralph asked, starting off excitedly but finishing a bit shyly, since he admired Merry a lot and wasn’t entirely sure how she would take this suggestion.
“Indeed I should! I'd feel so grand to have letters from Paris and Rome, and you'd have so much to tell it would be almost as good as going myself,” she said, looking off into the daffodil sky, as they paused a minute on the hill-top to get breath, for both had walked as fast as they talked.
“Definitely! I'd feel amazing to get letters from Paris and Rome, and you’d have so much to share it would be almost as good as going myself,” she said, gazing into the daffodil-colored sky, as they paused for a moment on the hilltop to catch their breath, since both had walked as quickly as they talked.
“And will you answer the letters?” asked Ralph, watching the innocent face, which looked unusually kind and beautiful to him in that soft light.
“And will you answer the letters?” Ralph asked, looking at the innocent face, which seemed especially kind and beautiful to him in that soft light.
“Why, yes; I'd love to, only I shall not have anything interesting to say. What can I write about?” and Merry smiled as she thought how dull her letters would sound after the exciting details his would doubtless give.
“Sure, I’d love to, but I won’t have anything interesting to say. What can I write about?” Merry smiled, thinking about how boring her letters would sound compared to the exciting details his would surely include.
“Write about yourself, and all the rest of the people I know. Grandma will be gone, and I shall want to hear how you get on.” Ralph looked very anxious indeed to hear, and Merry promised she would tell all about the other people, adding, as she turned from the evening peace and loveliness to the house, whence came the clatter of milk-pans and the smell of cooking,—
“Write about yourself and everyone else I know. Grandma won't be around anymore, and I’ll want to know how you're doing.” Ralph looked really worried to hear, and Merry promised she would share everything about the other people, adding, as she turned from the evening calm and beauty to the house, where the noise of milk pans and the smell of cooking came from,—
“I never should have anything very nice to tell about myself, for I don't do interesting things as you do, and you wouldn't care to hear about school, and sewing, and messing round at home.”
“I never have anything really great to share about myself because I don’t do exciting things like you do, and you probably wouldn’t want to hear about school, sewing, and just hanging out at home.”
Merry gave a disdainful little sniff at the savory perfume of ham which saluted them, and paused with her hand on the gate, as if she found it pleasanter out there than in the house. Ralph seemed to agree with her, for, leaning on the gate, he lingered to say, with real sympathy in his tone and something else in his face, “Yes, I should; so you write and tell me all about it. I didn't know you had any worries, for you always seemed like one of the happiest people in the world, with so many to pet and care for you, and plenty of money, and nothing very hard or hateful to do. You'd think you were well off if you knew as much about poverty and work and never getting what you want, as I do.”
Merry gave a dismissive little sniff at the delicious smell of ham that greeted them and paused with her hand on the gate, as if she found it nicer out there than inside the house. Ralph seemed to agree with her, because, leaning on the gate, he lingered to say, with genuine sympathy in his tone and something else in his expression, “Yeah, I can see why; so you write and tell me all about it. I didn’t realize you had any worries, since you always seemed like one of the happiest people in the world, with so many people to love and care for you, plenty of money, and nothing particularly hard or awful to deal with. You’d think you were doing well if you knew as much about poverty, work, and never getting what you want as I do.”
“You bear your worries so well that nobody knows you have them. I ought not to complain, and I won't, for I do have all I need. I'm so glad you are going to get what you want at last;” and Merry held out her hand to say good-night, with so much pleasure in her face that Ralph could not make up his mind to go just yet.
“You handle your worries so well that no one even realizes you have them. I shouldn’t complain, and I won’t, because I have everything I need. I’m so happy that you’re finally going to get what you want;” and Merry extended her hand to say goodnight, her face filled with so much joy that Ralph couldn’t bring himself to leave just yet.
“I shall have to scratch round in a lively way before I do get it, for David says a fellow can't live on less than four or five hundred a year, even living as poor artists have to, in garrets and on crusts. I don't mind as long as Grandma is all right. She is away to-night, or I should not be here,” he added, as if some excuse was necessary. Merry needed no hint, for her tender heart was touched by the vision of her friend in a garret, and she suddenly rejoiced that there was ham and eggs for supper, so that he might be well fed once, at least, before he went away to feed on artistic crusts.
“I'll have to hustle pretty hard to make it happen because David says a person can't get by on less than four or five hundred a year, even if they live like struggling artists in tiny rooms and on scraps. I don't mind as long as Grandma is okay. She's away tonight, or I wouldn't be here," he added, as if he needed to explain. Merry didn’t need any hints; her caring nature was stirred by the thought of her friend in a tiny room, and she suddenly felt grateful there was ham and eggs for dinner, so he could at least be well-fed once before heading off to survive on artistic scraps.
“Being here, come in and spend the evening. The boys will like to hear the news, and so will father. Do, now.”
“Come in and spend the evening! The guys will want to hear the news, and so will Dad. Please, do!”
It was impossible to refuse the invitation he had been longing for, and in they went to the great delight of Roxy, who instantly retired to the pantry, smiling significantly, and brought out the most elaborate pie in honor of the occasion. Merry touched up the table, and put a little vase of flowers in the middle to redeem the vulgarity of doughnuts. Of course the boys upset it, but as there was company nothing was said, and Ralph devoured his supper with the appetite of a hungry boy, while watching Merry eat bread and cream out of an old-fashioned silver porringer, and thinking it the sweetest sight he ever beheld.
It was impossible to turn down the invitation he had been hoping for, and in they went to Roxy's great delight. She immediately went to the pantry with a knowing smile and brought out the fanciest pie to celebrate the occasion. Merry set the table and placed a small vase of flowers in the center to counterbalance the plainness of the doughnuts. Naturally, the boys knocked it over, but since there were guests, no one mentioned it. Ralph devoured his dinner with the appetite of a hungry boy while watching Merry eat bread and cream from an old-fashioned silver bowl, thinking it was the sweetest sight he had ever seen.
Then the young people gathered about the table, full of the new plans, and the elders listened as they rested after the week's work. A pleasant evening, for they all liked Ralph, but as the parents watched Merry sitting among the great lads like a little queen among her subjects, half unconscious as yet of the power in her hands, they nodded to one another, and then shook their heads as if they said,—
Then the young people gathered around the table, full of new ideas, and the elders listened as they relaxed after a week’s work. It was a nice evening because they all liked Ralph, but as the parents watched Merry sitting among the older boys like a little queen among her subjects, still somewhat unaware of the power she held, they nodded to each other and then shook their heads as if to say,—
“I'm afraid the time is coming, mother.”
“I'm afraid the time is coming, Mom.”
“No danger as long as she don't know it, father.”
“No danger as long as she doesn't know it, dad.”
At nine the boys went off to the barn, the farmer to wind up the eight-day clock, and the housewife to see how the baked beans and Indian pudding for to-morrow were getting on in the oven. Ralph took up his hat to go, saying as he looked at the shade on the tall student lamp,—
At nine, the boys headed to the barn, the farmer went to wind the eight-day clock, and the housewife checked on the baked beans and Indian pudding for tomorrow in the oven. Ralph picked up his hat to leave, commenting as he looked at the shade on the tall student lamp,—
“What a good light that gives! I can see it as I go home every night, and it burns up here like a beacon. I always look for it, and it hardly ever fails to be burning. Sort of cheers up the way, you know, when I'm tired or low in my mind.”
“What a great light that is! I see it every night as I head home, shining like a beacon up here. I always look for it, and it rarely goes out. It kind of lifts my spirits when I'm tired or feeling down, you know?”
“Then I'm very glad I got it. I liked the shape, but the boys laughed at it as they did at my bulrushes in a ginger-jar over there. I'd been reading about 'household art,' and I thought I'd try a little,” answered Merry, laughing at her own whims.
“Then I'm really glad I got it. I liked the shape, but the boys made fun of it just like they did with my bulrushes in that ginger jar over there. I had been reading about 'household art,' and I thought I'd give it a try,” replied Merry, laughing at her own quirks.
“You've got a better sort of household art, I think, for you make people happy and places pretty, without fussing over it. This room is ever so much improved every time I come, though I hardly see what it is except the flowers,” said Ralph, looking from the girl to the tall calla that bent its white cup above her as if to pour its dew upon her head.
“You have a much nicer way of making a home, I think, because you make people happy and spaces beautiful without making a big deal out of it. This room looks so much better every time I visit, even though I can hardly pinpoint what’s different except for the flowers,” said Ralph, glancing from the girl to the tall calla that leaned over her, as if to sprinkle its dew on her head.
“Isn't that lovely? I tried to draw it—the shape was so graceful I wanted to keep it. But I couldn't. Isn't it a pity such beautiful things won't last forever?” and Merry looked regretfully at the half-faded one that grew beside the fresh blossom.
“Isn't that lovely? I tried to draw it—the shape was so graceful I wanted to hold onto it. But I couldn't. Isn't it a shame that such beautiful things won't last forever?” and Merry looked regretfully at the half-faded one that grew beside the fresh bloom.
“I can keep it for you. It would look well in plaster. May I?” asked Ralph.
“I can hold onto it for you. It would look great in plaster. Can I?” asked Ralph.
“Thank you, I should like that very much. Take the real one as a model—please do; there are more coming, and this will brighten up your room for a day or two.”
“Thank you, I’d love that very much. Please use the real one as a model—do, there are more coming, and this will brighten up your room for a day or two.”
As she spoke, Merry cut the stem, and, adding two or three of the great green leaves, put the handsome flower in his hand with so much good-will that he felt as if he had received a very precious gift. Then he said good-night so gratefully that Merry's hand quite tingled with the grasp of his, and went away, often looking backward through the darkness to where the light burned brightly on the hill-top—the beacon kindled by an unconscious Hero for a young Leander swimming gallantly against wind and tide toward the goal of his ambition.
As she talked, Merry cut the stem and, adding two or three of the big green leaves, handed him the beautiful flower with such warmth that he felt like he had received a truly valuable gift. Then he said good-night with so much gratitude that Merry's hand tingled from the grip of his, and he walked away, frequently looking back through the darkness to where the light shone brightly on the hilltop—the beacon lit by an unknowing Hero for a young Leander bravely swimming against the wind and tide toward his dreams.
Chapter XVII. Down at Molly's
“Now, my dears, I've something very curious to tell you, so listen quietly and then I'll give you your dinners,” said Molly, addressing the nine cats who came trooping after her as she went into the shed-chamber with a bowl of milk and a plate of scraps in her hands. She had taught them to behave well at meals, so, though their eyes glared and their tails quivered with impatience, they obeyed; and when she put the food on a high shelf and retired to the big basket, the four old cats sat demurely down before her, while the five kits scrambled after her and tumbled into her lap, as if hoping to hasten the desired feast by their innocent gambols.
“Now, my dears, I have something really interesting to share with you, so listen up quietly and then I’ll give you your dinners,” said Molly, addressing the nine cats that trailed behind her as she entered the shed-chamber with a bowl of milk and a plate of scraps in her hands. She had trained them to behave well at meal times, so, even though their eyes were wide and their tails flicked with impatience, they followed her lead. When she placed the food on a high shelf and settled into the big basket, the four older cats sat quietly in front of her, while the five kittens scrambled after her and tumbled into her lap, as if trying to speed up the arrival of their much-anticipated feast with their playful antics.
Granny, Tobias, Mortification, and Molasses were the elders. Granny, a gray old puss, was the mother and grandmother of all the rest. Tobias was her eldest son, and Mortification his brother, so named because he had lost his tail, which affliction depressed his spirits and cast a blight over his young life. Molasses was a yellow cat, the mamma of four of the kits, the fifth being Granny's latest darling. Toddlekins, the little aunt, was the image of her mother, and very sedate even at that early age; Miss Muffet, so called from her dread of spiders, was a timid black and white kit; Beauty, a pretty Maltese, with a serene little face and pink nose; Ragbag, a funny thing, every color that a cat could be; and Scamp, who well deserved his name, for he was the plague of Miss Bat's life, and Molly's especial pet.
Granny, Tobias, Mortification, and Molasses were the elders. Granny, a gray old cat, was the mother and grandmother of all the others. Tobias was her oldest son, and Mortification was his brother, named that because he had lost his tail, which made him feel down and affected his young life. Molasses was a yellow cat, the mother of four of the kittens, the fifth being Granny's newest favorite. Toddlekins, the little aunt, looked just like her mother and was very calm even at such a young age; Miss Muffet, named for her fear of spiders, was a shy black and white kitten; Beauty, a pretty Maltese, had a serene little face and a pink nose; Ragbag, a quirky cat, was every color a cat could be; and Scamp, who really lived up to his name, was a constant trouble for Miss Bat and Molly's favorite pet.
He was now perched on her shoulder, and, as she talked, kept peeping into her face or biting her ear in the most impertinent way, while the others sprawled in her lap or promenaded round the basket rim.
He was now sitting on her shoulder, and as she spoke, kept glancing at her face or playfully nibbling her ear in the most annoying way, while the others lounged in her lap or walked around the edge of the basket.
“My friends, something very remarkable has happened: Miss Bat is cleaning house!” and, having made this announcement, Molly leaned back to see how the cats received it, for she insisted that they understood all she said to them.
“My friends, something really amazing has happened: Miss Bat is cleaning house!” And with that announcement, Molly leaned back to see how the cats reacted, as she was sure they understood everything she said to them.
Tobias stared, Mortification lay down as if it was too much for him, Molasses beat her tail on the floor as if whipping a dusty carpet, and Granny began to purr approvingly. The giddy kits paid no attention, as they did not know what house-cleaning meant, happy little dears!
Tobias stared; Mortification flopped down like it was too much for him. Molasses thumped her tail on the floor as if she were beating a dusty rug, and Granny started to purr with approval. The excited kittens ignored everything, as they had no idea what house-cleaning meant, happy little treasures!
“I thought you'd like it, Granny, for you are a decent cat, and know what is proper,” continued Molly, leaning down to stroke the old puss, who blinked affectionately at her. “I can't imagine what put it into Miss Bat's head. I never said a word, and gave up groaning over the clutter, as I couldn't mend it. I just took care of Boo and myself, and left her to be as untidy as she pleased, and she is a regular old——”
“I thought you'd like it, Granny, because you’re a good cat who knows what’s proper,” Molly continued, leaning down to pet the old cat, who blinked affectionately at her. “I don’t understand what got into Miss Bat’s head. I never said anything and stopped complaining about the mess since I couldn’t fix it. I just took care of Boo and myself and let her be as messy as she wanted, and she is a total old——”
Here Scamp put his paw on her lips because he saw them moving, but it seemed as if it was to check the disrespectful word just coming out.
Here Scamp put his paw on her lips because he saw them moving, but it seemed like it was to stop the disrespectful word about to come out.
“Well, I won't call names; but what shall I do when I see everything in confusion, and she won't let me clear up?” asked Molly, looking round at Scamp, who promptly put the little paw on her eyelid, as if the roll of the blue ball underneath amused him.
“Well, I won’t name names; but what am I supposed to do when I see everything in chaos, and she won’t let me fix it?” asked Molly, glancing at Scamp, who immediately placed his little paw on her eyelid, as if the blue ball rolling underneath entertained him.
“Shut my eyes to it, you mean? I do all I can, but it is hard, when I wish to be nice, and do try; don't I?” asked Molly. But Scamp was ready for her, and began to comb her hair with both paws as he stood on his hind legs to work so busily that Molly laughed and pulled him down, saying, as she cuddled the sly kit.
“Are you saying I should just ignore it? I try my best, but it’s tough when I want to be nice and really make an effort; don’t I?” asked Molly. But Scamp was quick to respond, starting to comb her hair with both paws while standing on his hind legs, working so hard that Molly laughed and pulled him down, saying, as she cuddled the mischievous little guy.
“You sharp little thing! I know my hair is not neat now, for I've been chasing Boo round the garden to wash him for school. Then Miss Bat threw the parlor carpet out of the window, and I was so surprised I had to run and tell you. Now, what had we better do about it?”
“You clever little thing! I know my hair is a mess right now because I've been chasing Boo around the garden to give him a bath for school. Then Miss Bat threw the living room carpet out of the window, and I was so shocked that I had to rush and tell you. So, what should we do about it?”
The cats all winked at her, but no one had any advice to offer, except Tobias, who walked to the shelf, and, looking up, uttered a deep, suggestive yowl, which said as plainly as words, “Dinner first and discussion afterward.”
The cats all winked at her, but no one had any advice to give, except Tobias, who walked to the shelf and, looking up, let out a deep, meaningful yowl that clearly said, "Dinner first and we’ll talk later."
“Very well, don't scramble,” said Molly, getting up to feed her pets. First the kits, who rushed at the bowl and thrust their heads in, lapping as if for a wager; then the cats, who each went to one of the four piles of scraps laid round at intervals and placidly ate their meat; while Molly retired to the basket, to ponder over the phenomena taking place in the house.
“Alright, don’t rush,” said Molly, standing up to feed her pets. First the kittens, who dashed to the bowl and shoved their heads in, lapping up the food as if they were competing; then the cats, who each went to one of the four piles of scraps set out around the room and calmly ate their meat; while Molly moved to the basket, thinking about the strange things happening in the house.
She could not imagine what had started the old lady. It was not the example of her neighbors, who had beaten carpets and scrubbed paint every spring for years without exciting her to any greater exertion than cleaning a few windows and having a man to clear away the rubbish displayed when the snow melted. Molly never guessed that her own efforts were at the bottom of the change, or knew that a few words not meant for her ear had shamed Miss Bat into action. Coming home from prayer-meeting one dark night, she trotted along behind two old ladies who were gossiping in loud voices, as one was rather deaf, and Miss Bat was both pleased and troubled to hear herself unduly praised.
She couldn’t figure out what had motivated the old lady. It wasn’t because of her neighbors, who had been beating carpets and scrubbing their paint every spring for years without inspiring her to do much more than clean a few windows and hire someone to take away the junk left behind when the snow melted. Molly never realized that her own actions were the reason for the change, nor did she know that a few words not meant for her had embarrassed Miss Bat into doing something. After coming home from prayer meeting one dark night, she walked behind two old ladies who were chatting loudly because one was a bit hard of hearing, and Miss Bat felt both pleased and uncomfortable hearing herself praised so much.
“I always said Sister Dawes meant well; but she's getting into years, and the care of two children is a good deal for her, with her cooking and her rheumatiz. I don't deny she did neglect 'em for a spell, but she does well by 'em now, and I wouldn't wish to see better-appearing children.”
“I always said Sister Dawes meant well, but she's getting up there in age, and taking care of two kids is a lot for her, along with her cooking and arthritis. I won't deny she neglected them for a bit, but she treats them well now, and I wouldn't want to see better-looking kids.”
“You've no idee how improved Molly is. She came in to see my girls, and brought her sewing-work, shirts for the boy, and done it as neat and capable as you'd wish to see. She always was a smart child, but dreadful careless,” said the other old lady, evidently much impressed by the change in harum-scarum Molly Loo.
"You have no idea how much Molly has improved. She came over to see my girls and brought her sewing projects—shirts for the boy—and finished them as neatly and skillfully as you could hope for. She was always a bright kid, but she was so reckless," said the other old lady, clearly very impressed by the change in wild Molly Loo.
“Being over to Mis Minot's so much has been good for her, and up to Mis Grant's. Girls catch neat ways as quick as they do untidy ones, and them wild little tykes often turn out smart women.”
“Spending time at Miss Minot's has really benefited her, and also at Miss Grant's. Girls pick up polished manners just as quickly as they do messy ones, and those wild little kids often grow up to be smart women.”
“Sister Dawes has done well by them children, and I hope Mr. Bemis sees it. He ought to give her something comfortable to live on when she can't do for him any longer. He can well afford it.”
“Sister Dawes has taken great care of those kids, and I hope Mr. Bemis appreciates it. He should give her something decent to live on when she can’t work for him anymore. He can definitely afford it.”
“I haven't a doubt he will. He's a lavish man when he starts to do a thing, but dreadful unobserving, else he'd have seen to matters long ago. Them children was town-talk last fall, and I used to feel as if it was my bounden duty to speak to Miss Dawes. But I never did, fearing I might speak too plain, and hurt her feelings.”
“I have no doubt he will. He’s an extravagant man when he decides to do something, but he’s really oblivious; otherwise, he would have taken care of things long ago. Those kids were the talk of the town last fall, and I felt it was my responsibility to talk to Miss Dawes. But I never did, worried that I might be too straightforward and hurt her feelings.”
“You've spoken plain enough now, and I'm beholden to you, though you'll never know it,” said Miss Bat to herself, as she slipped into her own gate, while the gossips trudged on quite unconscious of the listener behind them.
“You've been very clear now, and I appreciate it, even though you’ll never know,” said Miss Bat to herself as she slipped into her own gate while the gossips walked on, completely unaware of the listener behind them.
Miss Bat was a worthy old soul in the main, only, like so many of us, she needed rousing up to her duty. She had got the rousing now, and it did her good, for she could not bear to be praised when she had not deserved it. She had watched Molly's efforts with lazy interest, and when the girl gave up meddling with her affairs, as she called the housekeeping, Miss Bat ceased to oppose her, and let her scrub Boo, mend clothes, and brush her hair as much as she liked. So Molly had worked along without any help from her, running in to Mrs. Pecq for advice, to Merry for comfort, or Mrs. Minot for the higher kind of help one often needs so much. Now Miss Bat found that she was getting the credit and the praise belonging to other people, and it stirred her up to try and deserve a part at least.
Miss Bat was mostly a good old soul, but like so many of us, she needed a little push to do her duty. She had finally gotten that push, and it had a positive effect on her because she couldn't stand being praised for things she hadn’t earned. She had watched Molly’s efforts with a laid-back attitude, and when the girl stopped interfering with her chores, as she called the housekeeping, Miss Bat stopped opposing her and allowed her to scrub Boo, fix clothes, and brush her hair as much as she wanted. So, Molly had been managing without any assistance from her, seeking advice from Mrs. Pecq, comfort from Merry, or more serious help from Mrs. Minot, which is often so necessary. Now Miss Bat realized she was getting credit and praise that belonged to others, and it motivated her to at least earn a share of it.
“Molly don't want any help about her work or the boy: it's too late for that; but if this house don't get a spring cleaning that will make it shine, my name ain't Bathsheba Dawes,” said the old lady, as she put away her bonnet that night, and laid energetic plans for a grand revolution, inspired thereto not only by shame, but by the hint that “Mr. Bemis was a lavish man,” as no one knew better than she.
“Molly doesn’t want any help with her work or the boy: it’s too late for that; but if this house doesn’t get a spring cleaning that’ll make it shine, my name isn’t Bathsheba Dawes,” said the old lady, as she put away her bonnet that night and laid out ambitious plans for a major overhaul, motivated not just by embarrassment, but by the suggestion that “Mr. Bemis was a generous man,” which she knew better than anyone.
Molly's amazement next day at seeing carpets fly out of window, ancient cobwebs come down, and long-undisturbed closets routed out to the great dismay of moths and mice, has been already confided to the cats, and as she sat there watching them lap and gnaw, she said to herself,—
Molly's surprise the next day at seeing carpets flying out the window, old cobwebs coming down, and long-neglected closets getting cleaned out, much to the distress of the moths and mice, has already been shared with the cats. As she sat there watching them lick and chew, she said to herself,—
“I don't understand it, but as she never says much to me about my affairs, I won't take any notice till she gets through, then I'll admire everything all I can. It is so pleasant to be praised after you've been trying hard.”
“I don't get it, but since she hardly ever talks to me about my issues, I won't pay any attention until she’s done. Then I’ll appreciate everything as much as I can. It’s really nice to be praised after you’ve been working hard.”
She might well say that, for she got very little herself, and her trials had been many, her efforts not always successful, and her reward seemed a long way off. Poor Boo could have sympathized with her, for he had suffered much persecution from his small schoolmates when he appeared with large gray patches on the little brown trousers, where he had worn them out coasting down those too fascinating steps. As he could not see the patches himself, he fancied them invisible, and came home much afflicted by the jeers of his friends. Then Molly tried to make him a new pair out of a sack of her own; but she cut both sides for the same leg, so one was wrong side out. Fondly hoping no one would observe it, she sewed bright buttons wherever they could be put, and sent confiding Boo away in a pair of blue trousers, which were absurdly hunchy behind and buttony before. He came home heart-broken and muddy, having been accidentally tipped into a mud-puddle by two bad boys who felt that such tailoring was an insult to mankind. That roused Molly's spirit, and she begged her father to take the boy and have him properly fitted out, as he was old enough now to be well-dressed, and she wouldn't have him tormented. His attention being called to the trousers, Mr. Bemis had a good laugh over them, and then got Boo a suit which caused him to be the admired of all observers, and to feel as proud as a little peacock.
She could definitely say that, since she didn't get much herself, and she had been through a lot. Her efforts didn't always pay off, and her reward felt really far away. Poor Boo could relate, as he faced a lot of teasing from his classmates when he showed up with big gray patches on his little brown pants, worn out from sliding down those tempting steps. Since he couldn't see the patches himself, he thought they were invisible and came home feeling down from the taunts of his friends. Then Molly tried to make him a new pair using a sack of her own; however, she cut both sides for the same leg, making one inside out. Hoping no one would notice, she sewed bright buttons wherever she could and sent trusting Boo off in a pair of blue trousers that looked ridiculous—bulging in the back and buttoned in the front. He returned home heartbroken and muddy after two mean boys accidentally pushed him into a mud puddle, thinking that such a shoddy outfit was an insult to everyone. This got Molly fired up, and she asked her dad to take Boo to get a proper outfit, since he was old enough to dress well and she didn't want him to be bullied anymore. When Mr. Bemis noticed the trousers, he had a good laugh, then got Boo a suit that made him the center of attention and feel as proud as a peacock.
Cheered by this success, Molly undertook a set of small shirts, and stitched away bravely, though her own summer clothes were in a sad state, and for the first time in her life she cared about what she should wear.
Cheered by this success, Molly took on a bunch of small shirts and stitched away confidently, even though her own summer clothes were in poor shape, and for the first time in her life, she actually cared about what she should wear.
“I must ask Merry, and may be father will let me go with her and her mother when they do their shopping, instead of leaving it to Miss Bat, who dresses me like an old woman. Merry knows what is pretty and becoming: I don't,” thought Molly, meditating in the bushel basket, with her eyes on her snuff-colored gown and the dark purple bow at the end of the long braid Muffet had been playing with.
“I should ask Merry, and maybe Dad will let me go with her and her mom when they go shopping, instead of leaving it to Miss Bat, who dresses me like an old lady. Merry knows what's pretty and flattering: I don't,” thought Molly, sitting in the bushel basket, looking at her brown dress and the dark purple bow at the end of the long braid Muffet had been playing with.
Molly was beginning to see that even so small a matter as the choice of colors made a difference in one's appearance, and to wonder why Merry always took such pains to have a blue tie for the gray dress, a rosy one for the brown, and gloves that matched her bonnet ribbons. Merry never wore a locket outside her sack, a gay bow in her hair and soiled cuffs, a smart hat and the braid worn off her skirts. She was exquisitely neat and simple, yet always looked well-dressed and pretty; for her love of beauty taught her what all girls should learn as soon as they begin to care for appearances—that neatness and simplicity are their best ornaments, that good habits are better than fine clothes, and the most elegant manners are the kindest.
Molly was starting to realize that even something as small as choosing colors could affect how someone looked. She wondered why Merry always went to the trouble of pairing a blue tie with her gray dress, a rosy one with her brown, and making sure her gloves matched her bonnet ribbons. Merry never wore a locket outside her coat, or a bright bow in her hair with dirty cuffs, or a stylish hat with the braid worn off her skirts. She was incredibly neat and simple but always looked well-dressed and pretty. Her appreciation for beauty taught her what every girl should learn as soon as they start caring about their appearance—that neatness and simplicity are the best accessories, good habits are more important than fancy clothes, and the most elegant manners are also the kindest.
All these thoughts were dancing through Molly's head, and when she left her cats, after a general romp in which even decorous Granny allowed her family to play leap-frog over her respectable back, she had made up her mind not to have yellow ribbons on her summer hat if she got a pink muslin as she had planned, but to finish off Boo's last shirt before she went shopping with Merry.
All these thoughts swirled around in Molly's mind, and when she left her cats after a playful session where even proper Granny let her family jump over her respectable back, she decided that if she got a pink muslin for her summer hat, she wouldn't add yellow ribbons as she'd planned. Instead, she would finish Boo's last shirt before heading out shopping with Merry.
It rained that evening, and Mr. Bemis had a headache, so he threw himself down upon the lounge after tea for a nap, with his silk handkerchief spread over his face. He did get a nap, and when he waked he lay for a time drowsily listening to the patter of the rain, and another sound which was even more soothing. Putting back a corner of the handkerchief to learn what it was, he saw Molly sitting by the fire with Boo in her lap, rocking and humming as she warmed his little bare feet, having learned to guard against croup by attending to the damp shoes and socks before going to bed. Boo lay with his round face turned up to hers, stroking her cheek while the sleepy blue eyes blinked lovingly at her as she sang her lullaby with a motherly patience sweet to see. They made a pretty little picture, and Mr. Bemis looked at it with pleasure, having a leisure moment in which to discover, as all parents do sooner or later, that his children were growing up.
It rained that evening, and Mr. Bemis had a headache, so he collapsed on the couch after dinner for a nap, with his silk handkerchief spread over his face. He did manage to doze off, and when he woke up, he lay there drowsily listening to the sound of the rain and another noise that was even more calming. Pulling back a corner of the handkerchief to see what it was, he noticed Molly sitting by the fire with Boo in her lap, gently rocking and humming as she warmed his little bare feet, having learned to prevent croup by taking care of the damp shoes and socks before bedtime. Boo lay there with his round face turned up to hers, stroking her cheek while his sleepy blue eyes blinked affectionately at her as she sang her lullaby with a motherly patience that was lovely to watch. They created a beautiful little scene, and Mr. Bemis gazed at it with pleasure, having a quiet moment to realize, as all parents do eventually, that his children were growing up.
“Molly is getting to be quite a woman, and very like her mother,” thought papa, wiping the eye that peeped, for he had been fond of the pretty wife who died when Boo was born. “Sad loss to them, poor things! But Miss Bat seems to have done well by them. Molly is much improved, and the boy looks finely. She's a good soul, after all;” and Mr. Bemis began to think he had been hasty when he half made up his mind to get a new housekeeper, feeling that burnt steak, weak coffee, and ragged wristbands were sure signs that Miss Bat's days of usefulness were over.
“Molly is becoming quite a young woman, and she looks a lot like her mom,” thought papa, wiping away a tear, as he had loved the beautiful wife who passed away when Boo was born. “What a sad loss for them, poor things! But Miss Bat seems to have taken good care of them. Molly has improved a lot, and the boy looks great. She's a good person, after all;” and Mr. Bemis started to think he had been too quick to decide to find a new housekeeper, realizing that burnt steak, weak coffee, and frayed wristbands were clear signs that Miss Bat's time of being useful was coming to an end.
Molly was singing the lullaby her mother used to sing to her, and her father listened to it silently till Boo was carried away too sleepy for anything but bed. When she came back she sat down to her work, fancying her father still asleep. She had a crimson bow at her throat and one on the newly braided hair, her cuffs were clean, and a white apron hid the shabbiness of the old dress. She looked like a thrifty little housewife as she sat with her basket beside her full of neat white rolls, her spools set forth, and a new pair of scissors shining on the table. There was a sort of charm in watching the busy needle flash to and fro, the anxious pucker of the forehead as she looked to see if the stitches were even, and the expression of intense relief upon her face as she surveyed the finished button-hole with girlish satisfaction. Her father was wide awake and looking at her, thinking, as he did so,—
Molly was singing the lullaby her mother used to sing to her, and her father listened silently until Boo was taken away, too sleepy for anything but bed. When she returned, she sat down to her work, imagining her father was still asleep. She had a red bow at her throat and one in her newly braided hair, her cuffs were clean, and a white apron covered the worn-out old dress. She looked like a resourceful little housewife as she sat with her basket beside her, filled with neat white rolls, her spools displayed, and a new pair of scissors gleaming on the table. There was a kind of charm in watching the busy needle flash back and forth, the worried furrow on her forehead as she checked if the stitches were even, and the look of intense relief on her face as she inspected the finished buttonhole with girlish satisfaction. Her father was wide awake and watching her, thinking as he did so,—
“Really the old lady has worked well to change my tomboy into that nice little girl: I wonder how she did it.” Then he gave a yawn, pulled off the handkerchief, and said aloud, “What are you making, Molly?” for it struck him that sewing was a new amusement.
“Honestly, the old lady did a great job turning my tomboy into that sweet little girl: I’m curious how she managed it.” Then he yawned, took off the handkerchief, and said out loud, “What are you making, Molly?” because it occurred to him that sewing was a new kind of fun.
“Shirts for Boo, sir. Four, and this is the last,” she answered, with pardonable pride, as she held it up and nodded toward the pile in her basket.
"Shirts for Boo, sir. Four, and this is the last," she replied, with justifiable pride, as she held it up and nodded toward the pile in her basket.
“Isn't that a new notion? I thought Miss Bat did the sewing,” said Mr. Bemis, as he smiled at the funny little garment, it looked so like Boo himself.
“Isn’t that a new idea? I thought Miss Bat did the sewing,” said Mr. Bemis, smiling at the funny little garment; it looked just like Boo himself.
“No, sir; only yours. I do mine and Boo's. At least, I'm learning how, and Mrs. Pecq says I get on nicely,” answered Molly, threading her needle and making a knot in her most capable way.
“No, sir; only yours. I do mine and Boo's. At least, I'm learning how, and Mrs. Pecq says I'm doing well,” answered Molly, threading her needle and making a knot in her most skillful way.
“I suppose it is time you did learn, for you are getting to be a great girl, and all women should know how to make and mend. You must take a stitch for me now and then: Miss Bat's eyes are not what they were, I find;” and Mr. Bemis looked at his frayed wristband, as if he particularly felt the need of a stitch just then.
“I guess it’s time you learned, since you’re growing up to be quite a girl, and every woman should know how to sew and fix things. You’ll have to stitch something for me every now and then: Miss Bat’s eyes aren’t what they used to be, I’ve noticed;” and Mr. Bemis glanced at his worn-out wristband, as if he especially felt the need for a stitch right then.
“I'd love to, and I guess I could. I can mend gloves; Merry taught me, so I'd better begin on them, if you have any,” said Molly, much pleased at being able to do anything for her father, and still more so at being asked.
“I'd love to, and I think I could. I can fix gloves; Merry taught me, so I should start on them, if you have any,” said Molly, really happy to be able to do something for her dad, and even more excited to be asked.
“There's something to start with;” and he threw her a pair, with nearly every finger ripped.
“Here’s something to start with,” he said, tossing her a pair that had nearly every finger torn.
Molly shook her head over them, but got out her gray silk and fell to work, glad to show how well she could sew.
Molly shook her head at them, but pulled out her gray silk and got to work, happy to demonstrate how well she could sew.
“What are you smiling about?” asked her father, after a little pause, for his head felt better, and it amused him to question Molly.
“What are you smiling about?” her father asked after a short pause, feeling better and finding it amusing to question Molly.
“I was thinking about my summer clothes. I must get them before long, and I'd like to go with Mrs. Grant and learn how to shop, if you are willing.”
“I was thinking about my summer clothes. I need to get them soon, and I’d like to go with Mrs. Grant to learn how to shop, if you’re okay with that.”
“I thought Miss Bat did that for you.”
“I thought Miss Bat did that for you.”
“She always has, but she gets ugly, cheap things that I don't like. I think I am old enough to choose myself, if there is someone to tell me about prices and the goodness of the stuff. Merry does; and she is only a few months older than I am.”
“She always does, but she picks ugly, cheap things that I don’t like. I think I’m old enough to choose for myself, as long as someone can inform me about prices and the quality of things. Merry does; and she’s only a few months older than I am.”
“How old are you, child?” asked her father, feeling as if he had lost his reckoning.
“How old are you, kid?” her dad asked, feeling like he had lost track of time.
“Fifteen in August;” and Molly looked very proud of the fact.
"Fifteen in August;" and Molly looked really proud of that fact.
“So you are! Bless my heart, how the time goes! Well, get what you please; if I'm to have a young lady here, I'd like to have her prettily dressed. It won't offend Miss Bat, will it?”
“So you are! Oh my, how time flies! Well, choose whatever you like; if I'm going to have a young lady here, I'd prefer her to be nicely dressed. It won't upset Miss Bat, will it?”
Molly's eyes sparkled, but she gave a little shrug as she answered, “She won't care. She never troubles herself about me if I let her alone.
Molly's eyes sparkled, but she shrugged a little as she replied, “She won't care. She never worries about me as long as I keep to myself."
“Hey? what? Not trouble herself? If she doesn't, who does?” and Mr. Bemis sat up as if this discovery was more surprising than the other.
“Hey? What? Not worry about it? If she doesn't, who will?” and Mr. Bemis sat up as if this realization was more shocking than the previous one.
“I take care of myself and Boo, and she looks after you. The house goes any way.”
“I take care of myself and Boo, and she looks after you. The house is whatever.”
“I should think so! I nearly broke my neck over the parlor sofa in the hall to-night. What is it there for?”
“I think so! I almost broke my neck over the couch in the hall tonight. What’s it doing there?”
Molly laughed. “That's the joke, sir, Miss Bat is cleaning house, and I'm sure it needs cleaning, for it is years since it was properly done. I thought you might have told her to.”
Molly laughed. “That's the joke, sir. Miss Bat is tidying up, and I'm sure it needs it, as it hasn't been done properly in years. I thought you might have told her to.”
“I've said nothing. Don't like house-cleaning well enough to suggest it. I did think the hall was rather dirty when I dropped my coat and took it up covered with lint. Is she going to upset the whole place?” asked Mr. Bemis, looking alarmed at the prospect.
“I haven't said anything. I don't like cleaning the house enough to suggest it. I did think the hall was pretty dirty when I dropped my coat and picked it up covered in lint. Is she going to mess up the whole place?” asked Mr. Bemis, looking worried about the possibility.
“I hope so, for I really am ashamed when people come, to have them see the dust and cobwebs, and old carpets and dirty windows,” said Molly, with a sigh, though she never had cared a bit till lately.
“I hope so, because I really feel embarrassed when people come over and see the dust and cobwebs, the old carpets, and the dirty windows,” said Molly with a sigh, even though she hadn't cared at all until recently.
“Why don't you dust round a little, then? No time to spare from the books and play?”
"Why don't you do a bit of dusting then? Are you too busy with your books and games?"
“I tried, father, but Miss Bat didn't like it, and it was too hard for me alone. If things were once in nice order, I think I could keep them so; for I do want to be neat, and I'm learning as fast as I can.”
“I tried, Dad, but Miss Bat didn't like it, and it was too difficult for me to handle alone. If everything were organized nicely, I think I could maintain it; because I really want to be tidy, and I'm learning as quickly as I can.”
“It is high time someone took hold, if matters are left as you say. I've just been thinking what a clever woman Miss Bat was, to make such a tidy little girl out of what I used to hear called the greatest tomboy in town, and wondering what I could give the old lady. Now I find you are the one to be thanked, and it is a very pleasant surprise to me.”
“It’s about time someone stepped in, considering things are left as you say. I’ve just been thinking about how clever Miss Bat was to turn what I used to hear called the biggest tomboy in town into such a neat little girl, and wondering what I could give the old lady. Now I realize you are the one to thank, and it’s a really nice surprise for me.”
“Give her the present, please; I'm satisfied, if you like what I've done. It isn't much, and I didn't know as you would ever observe any difference. But I did try, and now I guess I'm really getting on,” said Molly, sewing away with a bright color in her cheeks, for she, too, found it a pleasant surprise to be praised after many failures and few successes.
“Please give her the gift; I'm happy if you appreciate what I've done. It's not much, and I didn't think you'd notice any difference. But I did my best, and now I feel like I'm actually making progress,” said Molly, stitching away with a flush on her cheeks, as she too was pleasantly surprised to be praised after so many failures and few wins.
“You certainly are, my dear. I'll wait till the house-cleaning is over, and then, if we are all alive, I'll see about Miss Bat's reward. Meantime, you go with Mrs. Grant and get whatever you and the boy need, and send the bills to me;” and Mr. Bemis lighted a cigar, as if that matter was settled.
“You definitely are, my dear. I'll wait until the house cleaning is done, and then, if we’re all still here, I’ll look into Miss Bat’s reward. In the meantime, you go with Mrs. Grant and get whatever you and the boy need, and send the bills to me;” and Mr. Bemis lit up a cigar, as if that was the end of it.
“Oh, thank you, sir! That will be splendid. Merry always has pretty things, and I know you will like me when I get fixed,” said Molly, smoothing down her apron, with a little air.
“Oh, thank you, sir! That will be great. Merry always has nice things, and I know you’ll like me when I’m all set up,” said Molly, smoothing down her apron with a bit of flair.
“Seems to me you look very well as you are. Isn't that a pretty enough frock?” asked Mr. Bemis, quite unconscious that his own unusual interest in his daughter's affairs made her look so bright and winsome.
“Looks to me like you look great just the way you are. Isn't that a nice enough dress?” asked Mr. Bemis, completely unaware that his own unusual interest in his daughter's life made her seem so cheerful and charming.
“This? Why, father, I've worn it all winter, and it's frightfully ugly, and almost in rags. I asked you for a new one a month ago, and you said you'd 'see about it'; but you didn't, so I patched this up as well as I could;” and Molly showed her elbows, feeling that such masculine blindness as this deserved a mild reproof.
“This? Dad, I've worn it all winter, and it's really ugly and almost in rags. I asked you for a new one a month ago, and you said you'd 'think about it'; but you didn't, so I fixed this up as best as I could;” and Molly showed her elbows, feeling that such masculine obliviousness deserved a gentle reprimand.
“Too bad! Well, go and get half a dozen pretty muslin and gingham things, and be as gay as a butterfly, to make up for it,” laughed her father, really touched by the patches and Molly's resignation to the unreliable “I'll see about it,” which he recognized as a household word.
“Too bad! Well, go pick out half a dozen nice muslin and gingham things, and be as cheerful as a butterfly to make up for it,” her father laughed, genuinely moved by the patches and Molly's acceptance of the unreliable “I'll see about it,” which he knew was just a common phrase in their household.
Molly clapped her hands, old gloves and all, exclaiming, with girlish delight, “How nice it will seem to have a plenty of new, neat dresses all at once, and be like other girls! Miss Bat always talks about economy, and has no more taste than a—caterpillar.” Molly meant to say “cat,” but remembering her pets, spared them the insult.
Molly clapped her hands, old gloves and all, exclaiming with youthful joy, “How lovely it will be to have a bunch of new, neat dresses all at once and feel like other girls! Miss Bat always talks about being frugal and has no more style than a—caterpillar.” Molly intended to say “cat,” but remembering her pets, decided against the insult.
“I think I can afford to dress my girl as well as Grant does his. Get a new hat and coat, child, and any little notions you fancy. Miss Bat's economy isn't the sort I like;” and Mr. Bemis looked at his wristbands again, as if he could sympathize with Molly's elbows.
“I think I can afford to dress my girl as nicely as Grant does his. Get a new hat and coat, kid, and any little things you like. Miss Bat's idea of saving money isn’t my style;” and Mr. Bemis looked at his cuffs again, as if he understood Molly's worn elbows.
“At this rate, I shall have more clothes than I know what to do with, after being a rag-bag,” thought the girl, in great glee, as she bravely stitched away at the worst glove, while her father smoked silently for a while, feeling that several little matters had escaped his eye which he really ought to “see about.”
“At this rate, I’ll have more clothes than I know what to do with, after being a mess,” thought the girl, feeling really happy, as she diligently worked on the worst glove, while her father smoked quietly for a bit, realizing that there were a few little things he had overlooked that he really should take care of.
Presently he went to his desk, but not to bury himself in business papers, as usual, for, after rummaging in several drawers, he took out a small bunch of keys, and sat looking at them with an expression only seen on his face when he looked up at the portrait of a dark-eyed woman hanging in his room. He was a very busy man, but he had a tender place in his heart for his children; and when a look, a few words, a moment's reflection, called his attention to the fact that his little girl was growing up, he found both pride and pleasure in the thought that this young daughter was trying to fill her mother's place, and be a comfort to him, if he would let her.
He went to his desk, but not to dive into business papers like usual. After searching through several drawers, he pulled out a small bunch of keys and stared at them with an expression that only appeared when he looked up at the portrait of a dark-eyed woman hanging in his room. He was a very busy man, but he had a soft spot for his children. When a look, a few words, or a moment of reflection reminded him that his little girl was growing up, he felt both pride and joy in the fact that she was trying to take her mother’s place and be a comfort to him, if he would allow it.
“Molly, my dear, here is something for you,” he said; and when she stood beside him, added, as he put the keys into her hand, keeping both in his own for a minute,—
“Molly, my dear, I have something for you,” he said; and when she stood next to him, he added, while putting the keys into her hand and holding onto both for a moment, —
“Those are the keys to your mother's things. I always meant you to have them, when you were old enough to use or care for them. I think you'll fancy this better than any other present, for you are a good child, and very like her.”
“Here are the keys to your mom's things. I always intended for you to have them when you were old enough to use or appreciate them. I think you’ll like this more than any other gift, because you’re a great kid and really remind me of her.”
Something seemed to get into his throat there, and Molly put her arm round his neck, saying, with a little choke in her own voice, “Thank you, father, I'd rather have this than anything else in the world, and I'll try to be more like her every day, for your sake.”
Something seemed to get stuck in his throat, and Molly wrapped her arm around his neck, saying, with a slight choke in her own voice, “Thank you, Dad, I’d rather have this than anything else in the world, and I’ll try to be more like her every day, for you.”
He kissed her, then said, as he began to stir his papers about, “I must write some letters. Run off to bed, child. Good-night, my dear, good-night.”
He kissed her, then said, as he started to shuffle his papers, “I need to write some letters. Head off to bed, kid. Good night, my dear, good night.”
Seeing that he wanted to be alone, Molly slipped away, feeling that she had received a very precious gift; for she remembered the dear, dead mother, and had often longed to possess the relics laid away in the one room where order reigned and Miss Bat had no power to meddle. As she slowly undressed, she was not thinking of the pretty new gowns in which she was to be “as gay as a butterfly,” but of the half-worn garments waiting for her hands to unfold with a tender touch; and when she fell asleep, with the keys under her pillow and her arms round Boo, a few happy tears on her cheeks seemed to show that, in trying to do the duty which lay nearest her, she had earned a very sweet reward.
Seeing that he wanted to be alone, Molly quietly left, feeling like she had received a very special gift; she remembered her beloved, deceased mother and had often wished to have the keepsakes stored away in the one room where everything was organized and Miss Bat couldn’t interfere. As she slowly got undressed, she wasn’t thinking about the pretty new dresses she would wear to be “as happy as a butterfly,” but about the well-loved clothes waiting for her to handle them gently; and when she fell asleep, with the keys under her pillow and her arms around Boo, a few happy tears on her cheeks seemed to show that by trying to fulfill the duty that was closest to her heart, she had earned a lovely reward.
So the little missionaries succeeded better in their second attempt than in their first; for, though still very far from being perfect girls, each was slowly learning, in her own way, one of the three lessons all are the better for knowing—that cheerfulness can change misfortune into love and friends; that in ordering one's self aright one helps others to do the same; and that the power of finding beauty in the humblest things makes home happy and life lovely.
So the little missionaries did better in their second try than in their first; for, although they were still far from being perfect girls, each was slowly learning, in her own way, one of the three lessons everyone benefits from knowing—that cheerfulness can turn misfortune into love and friendships; that when you set yourself right, you help others do the same; and that the ability to find beauty in the simplest things makes home joyful and life wonderful.
Chapter XVIII. May Baskets
Spring was late that year, but to Jill it seemed the loveliest she had ever known, for hope was growing green and strong in her own little heart, and all the world looked beautiful. With the help of the brace she could sit up for a short time every day, and when the air was mild enough she was warmly wrapped and allowed to look out at the open window into the garden, where the gold and purple crocuses were coming bravely up, and the snowdrops nodded their delicate heads as if calling to her,—
Spring was late that year, but to Jill, it felt like the most beautiful one she had ever experienced, because hope was blooming strong in her little heart, and the whole world appeared gorgeous. With the help of the brace, she could sit up for a little while each day, and when the weather was warm enough, she was wrapped up snugly and allowed to gaze out the open window into the garden, where the gold and purple crocuses were bravely pushing through the ground, and the snowdrops gently swayed their delicate heads as if inviting her.
“Good day, little sister, come out and play with us, for winter is over and spring is here.”
“Hey there, little sister, come out and join us, because winter is over and spring has arrived.”
“I wish I could!” thought Jill, as the soft wind kissed a tinge of color into her pale cheeks. “Never mind, they have been shut up in a darker place than I for months, and had no fun at all; I won't fret, but think about July and the seashore while I work.”
“I wish I could!” thought Jill, as the gentle wind brought some color to her pale cheeks. “But it's okay, they’ve been stuck in a darker place than I have for months and haven’t had any fun at all; I won’t stress about it, but instead, I’ll think about July and the beach while I work.”
The job now in hand was May baskets, for it was the custom of the children to hang them on the doors of their friends the night before May-day; and the girls had agreed to supply baskets if the boys would hunt for flowers, much the harder task of the two. Jill had more leisure as well as taste and skill than the other girls, so she amused herself with making a goodly store of pretty baskets of all shapes, sizes, and colors, quite confident that they would be filled, though not a flower had shown its head except a few hardy dandelions, and here and there a small cluster of saxifrage.
The task at hand was making May baskets, as it was the tradition for kids to hang them on their friends' doors the night before May Day. The girls had agreed to make the baskets if the boys would find the flowers, which was definitely the harder job. Jill had more free time, as well as the taste and skill to create beautiful baskets in all shapes, sizes, and colors. She was confident they would be filled, even though not a single flower had bloomed yet, except for a few tough dandelions and a small group of saxifrage.
The violets would not open their blue eyes till the sunshine was warmer, the columbines refused to dance with the boisterous east wind, the ferns kept themselves rolled up in their brown flannel jackets, and little Hepatica, with many another spring beauty, hid away in the woods, afraid to venture out, in spite of the eager welcome awaiting them. But the birds had come, punctual as ever, and the bluejays were screaming in the orchard, robins were perking up their heads and tails as they went house-hunting, purple finches in their little red hoods were feasting on the spruce buds, and the faithful chip birds chirped gayly on the grapevine trellis where they had lived all winter, warming their little gray breasts against the southern side of the house when the sun shone, and hiding under the evergreen boughs when the snow fell.
The violets wouldn’t open their blue eyes until the sunshine got warmer, the columbines wouldn’t dance with the brash east wind, the ferns stayed curled up in their brown flannel jackets, and little Hepatica, along with many other spring beauties, hid away in the woods, scared to come out despite the eager welcome waiting for them. But the birds had arrived, as punctual as ever, with bluejays screeching in the orchard, robins lifting their heads and tails while searching for new homes, purple finches in their little red hoods enjoying the spruce buds, and the trusty chip birds chirping happily on the grapevine trellis where they had lived all winter, warming their little gray breasts against the sunny side of the house when it shone and hiding under the evergreen branches when the snow fell.
“That tree is a sort of bird's hotel,” said Jill, looking out at the tall spruce before her window, every spray now tipped with a soft green. “They all go there to sleep and eat, and it has room for every one. It is green when other trees die, the wind can't break it, and the snow only makes it look prettier. It sings to me, and nods as if it knew I loved it.”
“That tree is like a bird's hotel,” Jill said, gazing out at the tall spruce outside her window, every branch now tipped with a soft green. “They all go there to sleep and eat, and there’s space for everyone. It stays green when other trees die, the wind can't break it, and the snow just makes it look even prettier. It sings to me and sways as if it knows I love it.”
“We might call it 'The Holly Tree Inn,' as some of the cheap eating-houses for poor people are called in the city, as my holly bush grows at its foot for a sign. You can be the landlady, and feed your feathery customers every day, till the hard times are over,” said Mrs. Minot, glad to see the child's enjoyment of the outer world from which she had been shut so long.
“We could name it 'The Holly Tree Inn,' like some of the affordable restaurants for people in need around the city, with my holly bush growing at its base as a sign. You can be the landlady and feed your feathered guests every day until the tough times are behind us,” said Mrs. Minot, pleased to see the child enjoying the outside world she had been away from for so long.
Jill liked the fancy, and gladly strewed crumbs on the window ledge for the chippies, who came confidingly to eat almost from her hand. She threw out grain for the handsome jays, the jaunty robins, and the neighbors' doves, who came with soft flight to trip about on their pink feet, arching their shining necks as they cooed and pecked. Carrots and cabbage-leaves also flew out of the window for the marauding gray rabbit, last of all Jack's half-dozen, who led him a weary life of it because they would not stay in the Bunny-house, but undermined the garden with their burrows, ate the neighbors' plants, and refused to be caught till all but one ran away, to Jack's great relief. This old fellow camped out for the winter, and seemed to get on very well among the cats and the hens, who shared their stores with him, and he might be seen at all hours of the day and night scampering about the place, or kicking up his heels by moonlight, for he was a desperate poacher.
Jill loved the fancy things and happily tossed crumbs on the window ledge for the little birds, who would eat almost from her hand. She threw out seeds for the beautiful jays, the lively robins, and the neighbors' doves, which arrived softly, walking on their pink feet, arching their shiny necks as they cooed and pecked. She also tossed out carrots and cabbage leaves for the sneaky gray rabbit, the last of Jack's six, who gave him a tough time since they wouldn’t stay in the Bunny-house but dug up the garden with their burrows, ate the neighbors' plants, and refused to be caught until all but one ran away, much to Jack's relief. This old guy stayed out for the winter and seemed to get along fine with the cats and hens, who shared their food with him. He could be seen at all hours of day and night darting around the place or kicking up his heels by moonlight, since he was quite the poacher.
Jill took great delight in her pretty pensioners, who soon learned to love “The Holly Tree Inn,” and to feel that the Bird Room held a caged comrade; for, when it was too cold or wet to open the windows, the doves came and tapped at the pane, the chippies sat on the ledge in plump little bunches as if she were their sunshine, the jays called her in their shrill voices to ring the dinner-bell, and the robins tilted on the spruce boughs where lunch was always to be had.
Jill really enjoyed her charming guests, who quickly grew fond of “The Holly Tree Inn” and felt that the Bird Room had a fellow companion; because, when it was too cold or rainy to open the windows, the doves would come and tap on the glass, the sparrows would perch on the ledge in adorable little groups as if she were their sunshine, the jays would call out to her in their loud voices to ring the dinner bell, and the robins would tilt on the spruce branches where lunch was always available.
The first of May came on Sunday, so all the celebrating must be done on Saturday, which happily proved fair, though too chilly for muslin gowns, paper garlands, and picnics on damp grass. Being a holiday, the boys decided to devote the morning to ball and the afternoon to the flower hunt, while the girls finished the baskets; and in the evening our particular seven were to meet at the Minots to fill them, ready for the closing frolic of hanging on door-handles, ringing bells, and running away.
May 1st fell on a Sunday, so all the celebrations had to happen on Saturday, which luckily turned out nice, although it was too cold for muslin dresses, paper decorations, and picnics on the wet grass. Since it was a holiday, the boys decided to spend the morning playing ball and the afternoon searching for flowers, while the girls completed the baskets. In the evening, our special group of seven would gather at the Minots to fill them up, getting ready for the final fun of hanging them on door handles, ringing bells, and then running away.
“Now I must do my Maying, for there will be no more sunshine, and I want to pick my flowers before it is dark. Come, Mammy, you go too,” said Jill, as the last sunbeams shone in at the western window where her hyacinths stood that no fostering ray might be lost.
“Now I need to do my Maying, because there will be no more sunshine, and I want to pick my flowers before it gets dark. Come on, Mammy, you should come too,” said Jill, as the last sunbeams shone through the western window where her hyacinths stood, ensuring that no ray of light would be wasted.
It was rather pathetic to see the once merry girl who used to be the life of the wood-parties now carefully lifting herself from the couch, and, leaning on her mother's strong arm, slowly take the half-dozen steps that made up her little expedition. But she was happy, and stood smiling out at old Bun skipping down the walk, the gold-edged clouds that drew apart so that a sunbeam might give her a good-night kiss as she gathered her long-cherished daisies, primroses, and hyacinths to fill the pretty basket in her hand.
It was pretty sad to see the once cheerful girl who used to bring life to the gatherings in the woods now carefully getting up from the couch, and, leaning on her mother's strong arm, slowly taking the few steps that made up her little adventure. But she was happy, standing there with a smile as she watched old Bun bouncing down the path, the golden-edged clouds parting just enough for a sunbeam to give her a good-night kiss while she gathered her beloved daisies, primroses, and hyacinths to fill the pretty basket in her hand.
“Who is it for, my dearie?” asked her mother, standing behind her as a prop, while the thin fingers did their work so willingly that not a flower was left.
“Who is it for, my dear?” asked her mother, standing behind her like a support, while the delicate fingers worked so eagerly that none of the flowers were left.
“For My Lady, of course. Who else would I give my posies to, when I love them so well?” answered Jill, who thought no name too fine for their best friend.
“For my lady, obviously. Who else would I give my flowers to, when I care for them so much?” answered Jill, who believed no name was too special for their best friend.
“I fancied it would be for Master Jack,” said her mother, wishing the excursion to be a cheerful one.
“I thought it would be for Master Jack,” said her mother, hoping the outing would be a happy one.
“I've another for him, but she must have the prettiest. He is going to hang it for me, and ring and run away, and she won't know who it's from till she sees this. She will remember it, for I've been turning and tending it ever so long, to make it bloom to-day. Isn't it a beauty?” and Jill held up her finest hyacinth, which seemed to ring its pale pink bells as if glad to carry its sweet message from a grateful little heart.
“I have another for him, but she has to have the prettiest. He's going to hang it for me, then ring the bell and run away, and she won't know who it's from until she sees this. She'll remember it because I've been nurturing it for a long time to make it bloom today. Isn't it beautiful?” And Jill held up her finest hyacinth, which seemed to chime its pale pink bells as if happy to deliver its sweet message from a thankful little heart.
“Indeed it is; and you are right to give your best to her. Come away now, you must not stand any longer. Come and rest while I fetch a dish to put the flowers in till you want them;” and Mrs. Pecq turned her round with her small Maying safely done.
“Definitely; and you’re right to do your best for her. Now come away, you shouldn’t stay any longer. Come and rest while I grab a dish to put the flowers in until you need them,” and Mrs. Pecq turned her around with her little Maying safely finished.
“I didn't think I'd ever be able to do even so much, and here I am walking and sitting up, and going to drive some day. Isn't it nice that I'm not to be a poor Lucinda after all?” and Jill drew a long sigh of relief that six months instead of twenty years would probably be the end of her captivity.
“I never thought I’d be able to do this much, and here I am walking and sitting up, and I’ll probably be able to drive someday. Isn’t it great that I’m not going to be a poor Lucinda after all?” Jill let out a long sigh of relief, knowing that six months instead of twenty years would likely be the end of her captivity.
“Yes, thank Heaven! I don't think I could have borne that;” and the mother took Jill in her arms as if she were a baby, holding her close for a minute, and laying her down with a tender kiss that made the arms cling about her neck as her little girl returned it heartily, for all sorts of new, sweet feelings seemed to be budding in both, born of great joy and thankfulness.
“Yes, thank goodness! I don't think I could have handled that;” and the mother picked up Jill as if she were a baby, holding her tight for a moment, then laying her down with a gentle kiss that made the little girl wrap her arms around her neck as she eagerly returned the gesture, as a rush of new, sweet emotions blossomed in both of them, filled with immense joy and gratitude.
Then Mrs. Pecq hurried away to see about tea for the hungry boys, and Jill watched the pleasant twilight deepen as she lay singing to herself one of the songs her friend taught her because it fitted her so well.
Then Mrs. Pecq quickly went off to prepare tea for the hungry boys, while Jill lay back, watching the nice twilight grow darker and singing to herself one of the songs her friend had taught her because it suited her perfectly.
“A little bird I am, Shut from the fields of air, And in my cage I sit and sing To Him who placed me there: Well pleased a prisoner to be, Because, my God, it pleases Thee! “Naught have I else to do; I sing the whole day long; And He whom most I love to please Doth listen to my song, He caught and bound my wandering wing, But still He bends to hear me sing.”
“I’m just a little bird, Locked away from the open skies, And in my cage, I sit and sing To the one who put me here: I’m happy to be a prisoner, Because, my God, it makes You happy! “I have nothing else to do; I sing all day long; And the one I love to please Listens to my song, He caught and held my wandering wing, But still, He leans in to hear me sing.”
“Now we are ready for you, so bring on your flowers,” said Molly to the boys, as she and Merry added their store of baskets to the gay show Jill had set forth on the long table ready for the evening's work.
“Now we’re ready for you, so bring on your flowers,” said Molly to the boys, as she and Merry added their collection of baskets to the colorful display Jill had set up on the long table, ready for the evening’s work.
“They wouldn't let me see one, but I guess they have had good luck, they look so jolly,” answered Jill, looking at Gus, Frank, and Jack, who stood laughing, each with a large basket in his hands.
“They wouldn't let me see one, but I guess they've had good luck; they look so happy,” replied Jill, glancing at Gus, Frank, and Jack, who were standing there laughing, each holding a big basket.
“Fair to middling. Just look in and see;” with which cheerful remark Gus tipped up his basket and displayed a few bits of green at the bottom.
“Fair to middling. Just take a look;” with that cheerful comment, Gus tipped up his basket and showed a few green bits at the bottom.
“I did better. Now, don't all scream at once over these beauties;” and Frank shook out some evergreen sprigs, half a dozen saxifrages, and two or three forlorn violets with hardly any stems.
“I did better. Now, don’t all shout at once over these beauties;” and Frank shook out some evergreen sprigs, half a dozen saxifrages, and two or three sad little violets with hardly any stems.
“I don't brag, but here's the best of all the three,” chuckled Jack, producing a bunch of feathery carrot-tops, with a few half-shut dandelions trying to look brave and gay.
“I don’t like to show off, but here’s the best of the three,” chuckled Jack, pulling out a bunch of fluffy carrot tops, with a few half-closed dandelions trying to look bold and cheerful.
“Oh, boys, is that all?”
“Oh, boys, is that it?”
“What shall we do?”
“What should we do?”
“We've only a few house-flowers, and all those baskets to fill,” cried the girls, in despair; for Merry's contribution had been small, and Molly had only a handful of artificial flowers “to fill up,” she said.
“We only have a few house flowers, and all those baskets to fill,” cried the girls in despair, because Merry's contribution had been small, and Molly only had a handful of artificial flowers "to fill in," she said.
“It isn't our fault: it is the late spring. We can't make flowers, can we?” asked Frank, in a tone of calm resignation.
“It’s not our fault; it’s just how late spring is. We can’t create flowers, can we?” Frank asked, his tone calm and resigned.
“Couldn't you buy some, then?” said Molly, smoothing her crumpled morning-glories, with a sigh.
“Couldn’t you just buy some, then?” Molly said, smoothing her wrinkled morning-glories, with a sigh.
“Who ever heard of a fellow having any money left the last day of the month?” demanded Gus, severely.
“Who has ever heard of someone having any money left on the last day of the month?” Gus asked sternly.
“Or girls either. I spent all mine in ribbon and paper for my baskets, and now they are of no use. It's a shame!” lamented Jill, while Merry began to thin out her full baskets to fill the empty ones.
“Or girls either. I spent all my money on ribbon and paper for my baskets, and now they’re useless. It’s such a shame!” Jill lamented, while Merry started to lighten her full baskets to fill the empty ones.
“Hold on!” cried Frank, relenting. “Now, Jack, make their minds easy before they begin to weep and wail.”
“Wait!” Frank shouted, giving in. “Now, Jack, put their minds at ease before they start to cry and complain.”
“Left the box outside. You tell while I go for it;” and Jack bolted, as if afraid the young ladies might be too demonstrative when the tale was told.
“Left the box outside. You tell while I go get it;” and Jack rushed off, as if afraid the young ladies might get too emotional when the story was shared.
“Tell away,” said Frank, modestly passing the story along to Gus, who made short work of it.
“Go ahead,” said Frank, modestly passing the story to Gus, who took care of it quickly.
“We rampaged all over the country, and got only that small mess of greens. Knew you'd be disgusted, and sat down to see what we could do. Then Jack piped up, and said he'd show us a place where we could get a plenty. 'Come on,' said we, and after leading us a nice tramp, he brought us out at Morse's greenhouse. So we got a few on tick, as we had but four cents among us, and there you are. Pretty clever of the little chap, wasn't it?”
“We ran all over the country and ended up with just that small bunch of greens. Knew you'd be grossed out, so we sat down to figure out what to do. Then Jack spoke up and said he’d show us a place where we could get a lot more. 'Come on,' we said, and after taking us on a nice hike, he led us to Morse's greenhouse. So we got a few on credit since we only had four cents among us, and there you have it. Pretty clever of the little guy, right?”
A chorus of delight greeted Jack as he popped his head in, was promptly seized by his elders and walked up to the table, where the box was opened, displaying gay posies enough to fill most of the baskets if distributed with great economy and much green.
A chorus of joy welcomed Jack as he peeked in, was quickly grabbed by his elders, and taken to the table, where the box was opened, revealing a colorful array of flowers enough to fill most of the baskets if distributed wisely with plenty of greenery.
“You are the dearest boy that ever was!” began Jill, with her nose luxuriously buried in the box, though the flowers were more remarkable for color than perfume.
“You are the sweetest boy ever!” Jill exclaimed, her nose delightfully buried in the box, even though the flowers were more striking for their color than their scent.
“No, I'm not; there's a much dearer one coming upstairs now, and he's got something that will make you howl for joy,” said Jack, ignoring his own prowess as Ed came in with a bigger box, looking as if he had done nothing but go a Maying all his days.
“No, I’m not; there’s a much more important one coming upstairs now, and he’s got something that will make you scream with joy,” said Jack, overlooking his own skills as Ed came in with a larger box, looking like he had spent his entire life just enjoying the spring.
“Don't believe it!” cried Jill, hugging her own treasure jealously. “It's only another joke. I won't look,” said Molly, still struggling to make her cambric roses bloom again.
“Don’t believe it!” yelled Jill, holding her own treasure tightly. “It’s just another joke. I won’t look,” said Molly, still trying to make her cambric roses bloom again.
“I know what it is! Oh, how sweet!” added Merry, sniffing, as Ed set the box before her, saying pleasantly,—
“I know what it is! Oh, how sweet!” added Merry, sniffing, as Ed set the box in front of her, saying cheerfully,—
“You shall see first, because you had faith.”
"You will see first because you believed."
Up went the cover, and a whiff of the freshest fragrance regaled the seven eager noses bent to inhale it, as a general murmur of pleasure greeted the nest of great, rosy mayflowers that lay before them.
Up went the cover, and a whiff of the freshest fragrance greeted the seven eager noses bent to inhale it, as a general murmur of pleasure welcomed the nest of great, rosy mayflowers that lay before them.
“The dear things, how lovely they are!” and Merry looked as if greeting her cousins, so blooming and sweet was her own face.
“The sweet things, how lovely they are!” and Merry looked like she was welcoming her cousins, her own face so bright and cheerful.
Molly pushed her dingy garlands away, ashamed of such poor attempts beside these perfect works of nature, and Jill stretched out her hand involuntarily, as she said, forgetting her exotics, “Give me just one to smell of, it is so woodsy and delicious.”
Molly pushed her shabby garlands aside, feeling embarrassed by her weak efforts compared to these flawless natural creations, and Jill instinctively reached out her hand as she said, forgetting her exotic arrangements, “Just give me one to smell; it’s so earthy and lovely.”
“Here you are, plenty for all. Real Pilgrim Fathers, right from Plymouth. One of our fellows lives there, and I told him to bring me a good lot; so he did, and you can do what you like with them,” explained Ed, passing round bunches and shaking the rest in a mossy pile upon the table.
“Here you go, enough for everyone. Genuine Pilgrim Fathers, straight from Plymouth. One of our guys lives there, and I asked him to bring me a good supply; so he did, and you can use them however you want,” Ed explained, handing out bunches and dumping the rest in a mossy pile on the table.
“Ed always gets ahead of us in doing the right thing at the right time. Hope you've got some first-class baskets ready for him,” said Gus, refreshing the Washingtonian nose with a pink blossom or two.
“Ed always gets ahead of us in doing the right thing at the right time. Hope you’ve got some great baskets ready for him,” said Gus, refreshing the Washingtonian nose with a pink blossom or two.
“Not much danger of his being forgotten,” answered Molly; and every one laughed, for Ed was much beloved by all the girls, and his door-steps always bloomed like a flower-bed on May eve.
“Not much chance of him being forgotten,” replied Molly; and everyone laughed, because Ed was really loved by all the girls, and his doorstep always looked like a flower bed on May Eve.
“Now we must fly round and fill up. Come, boys, sort out the green and hand us the flowers as we want them. Then we must direct them, and, by the time that is done, you can go and leave them,” said Jill, setting all to work.
“Now we need to fly around and gather everything. Come on, guys, sort out the green stuff and give us the flowers as we need them. After that, we have to arrange them, and by the time that's done, you can head out and leave them,” said Jill, getting everyone to work.
“Ed must choose his baskets first. These are ours; but any of those you can have;” and Molly pointed to a detachment of gay baskets, set apart from those already partly filled.
“Ed has to pick his baskets first. These are ours, but you can take any of those,” and Molly pointed to a group of colorful baskets set aside from the ones that were already partially filled.
Ed chose a blue one, and Merry filled it with the rosiest may-flowers, knowing that it was to hang on Mabel's door-handle.
Ed picked a blue one, and Merry filled it with the brightest may-flowers, knowing it was going to hang on Mabel's door-handle.
The others did the same, and the pretty work went on, with much fun, till all were filled, and ready for the names or notes.
The others joined in, and the fun continued as everyone enjoyed the beautiful work until they were all done and ready to add their names or notes.
“Let us have poetry, as we can't get wild flowers. That will be rather fine,” proposed Jill, who liked jingles.
“Let’s go for some poetry since we can’t find any wildflowers. That would be really nice,” suggested Jill, who loved catchy rhythms.
All had had some practice at the game parties, and pencils went briskly for a few minutes, while silence reigned, as the poets racked their brains for rhymes, and stared at the blooming array before them for inspiration.
Everyone had some experience with the game parties, and pencils moved quickly for a few minutes, while silence filled the room as the poets strained to find rhymes and gazed at the colorful display in front of them for inspiration.
“Oh, dear! I can't find a word to rhyme to 'geranium,'” sighed Molly, pulling her braid, as if to pump the well of her fancy dry.
“Oh no! I can't find a word that rhymes with 'geranium,'” sighed Molly, tugging at her braid, as if trying to squeeze out every last drop of her creativity.
“Cranium,” said Frank, who was getting on bravely with “Annette” and “violet.”
“Cranium,” said Frank, who was bravely working on “Annette” and “violet.”
“That is elegant!” and Molly scribbled away in great glee, for her poems were always funny ones.
“That is elegant!” Molly exclaimed as she happily scribbled away, because her poems were always humorous.
“How do you spell anemoly—the wild flower, I mean?” asked Jill, who was trying to compose a very appropriate piece for her best basket, and found it easier to feel love and gratitude than to put them into verse.
“How do you spell anemone—the wildflower, I mean?” asked Jill, who was trying to write a very fitting piece for her best basket and found it easier to feel love and gratitude than to express them in verse.
“Anemone; do spell it properly, or you'll get laughed at,” answered Gus, wildly struggling to make his lines express great ardor, without being “too spoony,” as he expressed it.
“Anemone; spell it right, or you’ll be made fun of,” replied Gus, wildly trying to convey deep passion in his lines without coming off as “too cheesy,” as he put it.
“No, I shouldn't. This person never laughs at other persons' mistakes, as some persons do,” replied Jill, with dignity.
“No, I shouldn't. This person never laughs at other people's mistakes, like some people do,” replied Jill, with dignity.
Jack was desperately chewing his pencil, for he could not get on at all; but Ed had evidently prepared his poem, for his paper was half full already, and Merry was smiling as she wrote a friendly line or two for Ralph's basket, as she feared he would be forgotten, and knew he loved kindness even more than he did beauty.
Jack was frantically chewing on his pencil because he was completely stuck; however, Ed had clearly come prepared with his poem, as his paper was already half filled. Merry was smiling while she wrote a friendly note or two for Ralph's basket, worried he might be overlooked, knowing he valued kindness more than beauty.
“Now let's read them,” proposed Molly, who loved to laugh even at herself.
“Now let's read them,” suggested Molly, who enjoyed laughing even at her own expense.
The boys politely declined, and scrambled their notes into the chosen baskets in great haste; but the girls were less bashful. Jill was invited to begin, and gave her little piece, with the pink hyacinth basket before her, to illustrate her poem.
The boys politely said no and quickly tossed their notes into the chosen baskets; but the girls were more confident. Jill was asked to go first and shared her piece, using the pink hyacinth basket in front of her to illustrate her poem.
“TO MY LADY “There are no flowers in the fields, No green leaves on the tree, No columbines, no violets, No sweet anemone. So I have gathered from my pots All that I have to fill The basket that I hang to-night, With heaps of love from Jill.”
“TO MY LADY “There are no flowers in the fields, No green leaves on the trees, No columbines, no violets, No sweet anemones. So I've gathered from my pots Everything I have to fill The basket I’m hanging tonight, With lots of love from Jill.”
“That's perfectly sweet! Mine isn't; but I meant it to be funny,” said Molly, as if there could be any doubt about the following ditty:—
“That's totally sweet! Mine isn't, but I intended it to be funny,” said Molly, as if there could be any doubt about the following ditty:—
“Dear Grif, Here is a whiff Of beautiful spring flowers; The big red rose Is for your nose, As toward the sky it towers. “Oh, do not frown Upon this crown Of green pinks and blue geranium But think of me When this you see, And put it on your cranium.”
“Dear Grif, Here’s a hint Of lovely spring flowers; The big red rose Is for your nose, As it reaches for the sky. “Oh, please don’t frown At this crown Of green pinks and blue geraniums But think of me When you see this, And wear it on your head.”
“O Molly, you will never hear the last of that if Grif gets it,” said Jill, as the applause subsided, for the boys pronounced it “tip-top.”
“O Molly, you'll never hear the end of that if Grif finds out,” said Jill, as the applause died down, because the boys called it “awesome.”
“Don't care, he gets the worst of it any way, for there is a pin in that rose, and if he goes to smell the mayflowers underneath he will find a thorn to pay for the tack he put in my rubber boot. I know he will play me some joke to-night, and I mean to be first if I can,” answered Molly, settling the artificial wreath round the orange-colored canoe which held her effusion.
“Don't worry, he ends up getting the worst of it anyway, because there’s a pin in that rose, and if he tries to smell the mayflowers underneath, he’ll find a thorn to pay for the tack he put in my rubber boot. I know he’s going to play a prank on me tonight, and I plan to get him first if I can,” replied Molly, adjusting the artificial wreath around the orange-colored canoe that held her creation.
“Now, Merry, read yours: you always have sweet poems;” and Jill folded her hands to listen with pleasure to something sentimental.
“Now, Merry, read yours: you always have nice poems;” and Jill clasped her hands to enjoy something sentimental.
“I can't read the poems in some of mine, because they are for you; but this little verse you can hear, if you like: I'm going to give that basket to Ralph. He said he should hang one for his grandmother, and I thought that was so nice of him, I'd love to surprise him with one all to himself. He's always so good to us;” and Merry looked so innocently earnest that no one smiled at her kind thought or the unconscious paraphrase she had made of a famous stanza in her own “little verse.”
“I can’t read some of my poems because they’re meant for you; but you can listen to this short verse if you want: I’m going to give that basket to Ralph. He mentioned he wanted to hang one for his grandmother, and I thought that was really sweet of him, so I’d love to surprise him with one just for him. He’s always so good to us;” and Merry looked so genuinely serious that no one smiled at her kind idea or the unintentional twist she had put on a well-known line in her own “little verse.”
“To one who teaches me The sweetness and the beauty Of doing faithfully And cheerfully my duty.”
“To someone who shows me The joy and the beauty Of doing my duty Honestly and happily.”
“He will like that, and know who sent it, for none of us have pretty pink paper but you, or write such an elegant hand,” said Molly, admiring the delicate white basket shaped like a lily, with the flowers inside and the note hidden among them, all daintily tied up with the palest blush-colored ribbon.
“He's going to love that and know who sent it because none of us have pretty pink paper like you do, or write in such an elegant style,” Molly said, admiring the delicate white basket shaped like a lily, with flowers inside and the note hidden among them, all beautifully tied with the softest blush-colored ribbon.
“Well, that's no harm. He likes pretty things as much as I do, and I made my basket like a flower because I gave him one of my callas, he admired the shape so much;” and Merry smiled as she remembered how pleased Ralph looked as he went away carrying the lovely thing.
“Well, that's not a big deal. He likes beautiful things just as much as I do, and I made my basket look like a flower because I gave him one of my callas, and he admired its shape so much;” and Merry smiled as she recalled how happy Ralph looked when he left with the lovely gift.
“I think it would be a good plan to hang some baskets on the doors of other people who don't expect or often have any. I'll do it if you can spare some of these, we have so many. Give me only one, and let the others go to old Mrs. Tucker, and the little Irish girl who has been sick so long, and lame Neddy, and Daddy Munson. It would please and surprise them so. Will we?” asked Ed, in that persuasive voice of his.
“I think it would be a great idea to hang some baskets on the doors of people who don’t usually get them. I’ll do it if you can spare a few; we have so many. Just give me one, and let the rest go to old Mrs. Tucker, the little Irish girl who’s been sick for so long, lame Neddy, and Daddy Munson. It would make them so happy and surprised. What do you think?” Ed asked, using his persuasive voice.
All agreed at once, and several people were made very happy by a bit of spring left at their doors by the May elves who haunted the town that night playing all sorts of pranks. Such a twanging of bells and rapping of knockers; such a scampering of feet in the dark; such droll collisions as boys came racing round corners, or girls ran into one another's arms as they crept up and down steps on the sly; such laughing, whistling, flying about of flowers and friendly feeling—it was almost a pity that May-day did not come oftener.
Everyone agreed immediately, and many people were thrilled to find a little spring left at their doors by the May elves who roamed the town that night, pulling all kinds of pranks. There were bells ringing and door knockers sounding; feet racing in the dark; humorous bumps as boys dashed around corners, or girls ran into each other’s arms while sneaking up and down the stairs; there was laughing, whistling, the fluttering of flowers, and a warm sense of camaraderie—it almost felt like a shame that May-day didn’t happen more often.
Molly got home late, and found that Grif had been before her, after all; for she stumbled over a market-basket at her door, and on taking it in found a mammoth nosegay of purple and white cabbages, her favorite vegetable. Even Miss Bat laughed at the funny sight, and Molly resolved to get Ralph to carve her a bouquet out of carrots, beets, and turnips for next time, as Grif would never think of that.
Molly got home late and discovered that Grif had been there before her; she tripped over a market basket at her door, and when she brought it inside, she found a huge bouquet of purple and white cabbages, her favorite vegetable. Even Miss Bat chuckled at the funny sight, and Molly decided to get Ralph to carve her a bouquet out of carrots, beets, and turnips for next time, since Grif would never think of that.
Merry ran up the garden-walk alone, for Frank left her at the gate, and was fumbling for the latch when she felt something hanging there. Opening the door carefully, she found it gay with offerings from her mates; and among them was one long quiver-shaped basket of birch bark, with something heavy under the green leaves that lay at the top. Lifting these, a slender bas-relief of a calla lily in plaster appeared, with this couplet slipped into the blue cord by which it was to hang:—
Merry ran up the garden path by herself because Frank left her at the gate and was trying to open the latch when she felt something hanging there. Carefully opening the door, she found it filled with gifts from her friends; among them was a long quiver-shaped basket made of birch bark, with something heavy hidden under the green leaves on top. When she lifted the leaves, a delicate plaster bas-relief of a calla lily showed up, with this couplet tucked into the blue cord it was meant to hang from:—
“That mercy you to others show That Mercy Grant to me.”
“The kindness you show to others Please grant that same kindness to me.”
“How lovely! and this one will never fade, but always be a pleasure hanging there. Now, I really have something beautiful all my own,” said Merry to herself as she ran up to hang the pretty thing on the dark wainscot of her room, where the graceful curve of its pointed leaves and the depth of its white cup would be a joy to her eyes as long as they lasted.
“How lovely! And this one will never fade, but will always be a delight hanging there. Now, I really have something beautiful that’s all mine,” said Merry to herself as she ran up to hang the pretty thing on the dark wood paneling of her room, where the graceful curve of its pointed leaves and the depth of its white cup would bring her joy for as long as they lasted.
“I wonder what that means,” and Merry read over the lines again, while a soft color came into her cheeks and a little smile of girlish pleasure began to dimple round her lips; for she was so romantic, this touch of sentiment showed her that her friendship was more valued than she dreamed. But she only said, “How glad I am I remembered him, and how surprised he will be to see mayflowers in return for the lily.”
“I wonder what that means,” Merry said as she read the lines again, a soft blush spreading across her cheeks and a small smile of girlish joy appearing on her lips. She was so romantic, and this hint of sentiment revealed to her that her friendship was valued more than she had realized. But all she said was, “I’m so glad I remembered him, and he’ll be so surprised to see mayflowers in return for the lily.”
He was, and worked away more happily and bravely for the thought of the little friend whose eyes would daily fall on the white flower which always reminded him of her.
He was, and worked away more happily and bravely because of the thought of the little friend whose eyes would see the white flower every day, which always reminded him of her.
Chapter XIX. Good Templars
“Hi there! Bell's rung! Get up, lazy-bones!” called Frank from his room as the clock struck six one bright morning, and a great creaking and stamping proclaimed that he was astir.
“Hey! The bell just rang! Get up, sleepyhead!” shouted Frank from his room as the clock hit six on a bright morning, and loud creaking and stomping announced that he was awake.
“All right, I'm coming,” responded a drowsy voice, and Jack turned over as if to obey; but there the effort ended, and he was off again, for growing lads are hard to rouse, as many a mother knows to her sorrow.
“All right, I’m coming,” replied a sleepy voice, and Jack rolled over as if he intended to get up; but that was as far as it went, and he drifted off again, because boys who are growing are tough to wake, as many mothers can sadly attest.
Frank made a beginning on his own toilet, and then took a look at his brother, for the stillness was suspicious.
Frank started getting ready and then glanced at his brother, as the silence was concerning.
“I thought so! He told me to wake him, and I guess this will do it;” and, filling his great sponge with water, Frank stalked into the next room and stood over the unconscious victim like a stern executioner, glad to unite business with pleasure in this agreeable manner.
“I knew it! He told me to wake him up, and I guess this will do the trick;” and, filling his big sponge with water, Frank walked into the next room and stood over the unconscious victim like a stern executioner, pleased to combine work with a bit of fun in this enjoyable way.
A woman would have relented and tried some milder means, for when his broad shoulders and stout limbs were hidden, Jack looked very young and innocent in his sleep. Even Frank paused a moment to look at the round, rosy face, the curly eyelashes, half-open mouth, and the peaceful expression of a dreaming baby. “I must do it, or he won't be ready for breakfast,” said the Spartan brother, and down came the sponge, cold, wet, and choky, as it was briskly rubbed to and fro regardless of every obstacle.
A woman would have given in and tried a softer approach, because when his broad shoulders and muscular limbs were covered up, Jack looked very young and innocent while he was sleeping. Even Frank took a moment to admire the round, rosy face, the curly eyelashes, the slightly open mouth, and the serene expression of a dreaming baby. “I have to do it, or he won't be ready for breakfast,” said the tough brother, and down came the sponge, cold, wet, and thick, as it was quickly rubbed back and forth without considering any obstacles.
“Come, I say! That's not fair! Leave me alone!” sputtered Jack, hitting out so vigorously that the sponge flew across the room, and Frank fell back to laugh at the indignant sufferer.
“Come on! That's not fair! Leave me alone!” Jack shouted, swinging so hard that the sponge flew across the room, and Frank stumbled back, laughing at the upset victim.
“I promised to wake you, and you believe in keeping promises, so I'm doing my best to get you up.”
“I said I would wake you, and you value keeping promises, so I'm doing everything I can to get you up.”
“Well, you needn't pour a quart of water down a fellow's neck, and rub his nose off, need you? I'm awake, so take your old sponge and go along,” growled Jack, with one eye open and a mighty gape.
"Well, you don't have to dump a quart of water on someone and scrub their nose off, do you? I'm awake, so just take your old sponge and go away," Jack grumbled, one eye open and yawning widely.
“See that you keep so, then, or I'll come and give you another sort of a rouser,” said Frank, retiring well-pleased with his success.
“Make sure you stay that way, or I’ll come and give you a different kind of wake-up call,” said Frank, leaving feeling quite satisfied with his success.
“I shall have one good stretch, if I like. It is strengthening to the muscles, and I'm as stiff as a board with all that football yesterday,” murmured Jack, lying down for one delicious moment. He shut the open eye to enjoy it thoroughly, and forgot the stretch altogether, for the bed was warm, the pillow soft, and a half-finished dream still hung about his drowsy brain. Who does not know the fatal charm of that stolen moment—for once yield to it, and one is lost.
“I can take a good stretch, if I want. It builds muscle, and I'm as stiff as a board after all that football yesterday,” murmured Jack, lying down for a blissful moment. He shut his open eye to really savor it and completely forgot about the stretch, because the bed was warm, the pillow soft, and a half-finished dream still lingered in his drowsy mind. Who doesn’t know the deadly allure of that stolen moment—give in just once, and you’re lost.
Jack was miles away “in the twinkling of a bedpost,” and the pleasing dream seemed about to return, when a ruthless hand tore off the clothes, swept him out of bed, and he really did awake to find himself standing in the middle of his bath-pan with both windows open, and Frank about to pour a pail of water over him.
Jack was lost in thought “in the blink of an eye,” and the nice dream was about to come back when a harsh hand ripped off the covers, yanked him out of bed, and he truly woke up to find himself standing in his washbasin with both windows wide open, and Frank was about to dump a bucket of water on him.
“Hold on! Yah, how cold the water is! Why, I thought I was up;” and, hopping out, Jack rubbed his eyes and looked about with such a genuine surprise that Frank put down the pail, feeling that the deluge would not be needed this time.
“Wait! Wow, the water is freezing! I thought I was awake;” and, jumping out, Jack rubbed his eyes and looked around with such real surprise that Frank set down the pail, sensing that the water wouldn't be necessary this time.
“You are now, and I'll see that you keep so,” he said, as he stripped the bed and carried off the pillows.
“You are now, and I’ll make sure you stay that way,” he said, as he changed the bed and took the pillows away.
“I don't care. What a jolly day!” and Jack took a little promenade to finish the rousing process.
"I don't care. What a fun day!" and Jack took a little walk to wrap up the exciting process.
“You'd better hurry up, or you won't get your chores done before breakfast. No time for a 'go as you please' now,” said Frank; and both boys laughed, for it was an old joke of theirs, and rather funny.
“You better hurry up, or you won’t get your chores done before breakfast. No time to just do whatever now,” said Frank; and both boys laughed, because it was an old joke of theirs and pretty funny.
Going up to bed one night expecting to find Jack asleep, Frank discovered him tramping round and round the room airily attired in a towel, and so dizzy with his brisk revolutions that as his brother looked he tumbled over and lay panting like a fallen gladiator.
Going to bed one night, expecting to find Jack asleep, Frank found him pacing around the room, cheerfully dressed only in a towel. Jack was so dizzy from his rapid spinning that, as Frank watched, he stumbled and collapsed, breathing heavily like a fallen gladiator.
“What on earth are you about?”
“What on earth are you doing?”
“Playing Rowell. Walking for the belt, and I've got it too,” laughed Jack, pointing to an old gilt chandelier chain hanging on the bedpost.
“Playing Rowell. Walking for the belt, and I've got it too,” Jack laughed, pointing to an old gold chandelier chain hanging on the bedpost.
“You little noodle, you'd better revolve into bed before you lose your head entirely. I never saw such a fellow for taking himself off his legs.”
“You little noodle, you’d better get to bed before you completely lose your mind. I’ve never seen someone so good at tripping over their own feet.”
“Well, if I didn't exercise, do you suppose I should be able to do that—or that?” cried Jack, turning a somersault and striking a fine attitude as he came up, flattering himself that he was the model of a youthful athlete.
“Well, if I didn't work out, do you think I'd be able to do that—or that?” Jack exclaimed, doing a somersault and landing in a striking pose as he came up, convinced he looked just like a young athlete.
“You look more like a clothes-pin than a Hercules,” was the crushing reply of this unsympathetic brother, and Jack meekly retired with a bad headache.
“You look more like a clothes pin than Hercules,” was the harsh response from his unsupportive brother, and Jack quietly left with a pounding headache.
“I don't do such silly things now: I'm as broad across the shoulders as you are, and twice as strong on my pins, thanks to my gymnastics. Bet you a cent I'll be dressed first, though you have got the start,” said Jack, knowing that Frank always had a protracted wrestle with his collar-buttons, which gave his adversary a great advantage over him.
“I don’t do silly things like that anymore: I’m as broad-shouldered as you are and twice as strong on my feet, thanks to my gymnastics. I’ll bet you a cent I’ll get dressed first, even though you have the head start,” said Jack, knowing that Frank always struggled with his collar-buttons, which gave him a big advantage.
“Done!” answered Frank, and at it they went. A wild scramble was heard in Jack's room, and a steady tramp in the other as Frank worked away at the stiff collar and the unaccommodating button till every finger ached. A clashing of boots followed, while Jack whistled “Polly Hopkins,” and Frank declaimed in his deepest voice,
“Done!” Frank replied, and they got to work. A chaotic scramble erupted in Jack's room, while a steady thumping echoed from the other as Frank struggled with the stiff collar and the stubborn button until every finger hurt. The sound of clashing boots followed, while Jack whistled “Polly Hopkins,” and Frank spoke in his deepest voice,
“Arma virumque cano, Trojae qui primus ab oris Italiam, fato profugus, Laviniaque venit litora.”
“I'm singing about arms and the man, who first came from the shores of Troy to Italy, fleeing by fate, and arrived at the Lavinian shores.”
Hair-brushes came next, and here Frank got ahead, for Jack's thick crop would stand straight up on the crown, and only a good wetting and a steady brush would make it lie down.
Hairbrushes came next, and here Frank took the lead because Jack's thick hair would stick straight up on the top, and only a thorough wetting and a firm brushing would make it lie flat.
“Play away, No. 2,” called out Frank as he put on his vest, while Jack was still at it with a pair of the stiffest brushes procurable for money.
“Play away, No. 2,” Frank shouted as he put on his vest, while Jack was still working with a pair of the stiffest brushes he could buy.
“Hold hard, No. 11, and don't forget your teeth,” answered Jack, who had done his.
“Wait a second, No. 11, and don't forget your teeth,” replied Jack, who had taken care of his.
Frank took a hasty rub and whisked on his coat, while Jack was picking up the various treasures which had flown out of his pockets as he caught up his roundabout.
Frank quickly wiped his hands and threw on his coat, while Jack gathered the various treasures that had spilled from his pockets as he grabbed his coat.
“Ready! I'll trouble you for a cent, sonny;” and Frank held out his hand as he appeared equipped for the day.
“Ready! I’ll need a penny from you, kid,” and Frank held out his hand as he got ready for the day.
“You haven't hung up your night-gown, nor aired the bed, nor opened the windows. That's part of the dressing; mother said so. I've got you there, for you did all that for me, except this,” and Jack threw his gown over a chair with a triumphant flourish as Frank turned back to leave his room in the order which they had been taught was one of the signs of a good bringing-up in boys as well as girls.
“You haven't hung up your nightgown, aired the bed, or opened the windows. That's part of getting ready; Mom said so. I've got you there because you did all that for me, except this,” and Jack tossed his gown over a chair with a triumphant flourish as Frank turned back to leave his room in the way they had been taught was one of the signs of good upbringing in both boys and girls.
“Ready! I'll trouble you for a cent, old man;” and Jack held out his hand, with a chuckle.
“Ready! Can I borrow a cent from you, old man?” Jack said, holding out his hand with a chuckle.
He got the money and a good clap beside; then they retired to the shed to black their boots, after which Frank filled the woodboxes and Jack split kindlings, till the daily allowance was ready. Both went at their lessons for half an hour, Jack scowling over his algebra in the sofa corner, while Frank, with his elbows on and his legs round the little stand which held his books, seemed to be having a wrestling-match with Herodotus.
He got the money and a good pat on the back; then they went to the shed to clean their boots, after which Frank filled the wood boxes and Jack split kindling until their daily tasks were done. They both worked on their lessons for half an hour, with Jack frowning over his algebra in the corner of the sofa, while Frank, leaning on the little table that held his books with his legs wrapped around it, seemed to be struggling with Herodotus.
When the bell rang they were glad to drop the lessons and fall upon their breakfast with the appetite of wolves, especially Jack, who sequestered oatmeal and milk with such rapidity that one would have thought he had a leathern bag hidden somewhere to slip it into, like his famous namesake when he breakfasted with the giant.
When the bell rang, they were happy to ditch their lessons and dive into breakfast with the appetite of wolves, especially Jack, who devoured oatmeal and milk so quickly that you would think he had a hidden bag to stash it in, like his famous namesake when he had breakfast with the giant.
“I declare I don't see what he does with it! He really ought not to 'gobble' so, mother,” said Frank, who was eating with great deliberation and propriety.
“I just don’t get what he does with it! He really shouldn’t ‘gobble’ like that, mom,” said Frank, who was eating very carefully and politely.
“Never you mind, old quiddle. I'm so hungry I could tuck away a bushel,” answered Jack, emptying a glass of milk and holding out his plate for more mush, regardless of his white moustache.
“Don't worry about it, you old fool. I'm so hungry I could eat a bushel,” replied Jack, downing a glass of milk and holding out his plate for more mush, not caring about his white moustache.
“Temperance in all things is wise, in speech as well as eating and drinking—remember that, boys,” said Mamma from behind the urn.
“Moderation in everything is smart, whether it's how you talk or what you eat and drink—keep that in mind, boys,” said Mom from behind the urn.
“That reminds me! We promised to do the 'Observer' this week, and here it is Tuesday and I haven't done a thing: have you?” asked Frank.
“That reminds me! We promised to do the 'Observer' this week, and it’s Tuesday and I haven't done anything: have you?” asked Frank.
“Never thought of it. We must look up some bits at noon instead of playing. Dare say Jill has got some: she always saves all she finds for me.”
“Never thought of that. We should look up some info at noon instead of playing. I bet Jill has some: she always keeps everything she finds for me.”
“I have one or two good items, and can do any copying there may be. But I think if you undertake the paper you should give some time and labor to make it good,” said Mamma, who was used to this state of affairs, and often edited the little sheet read every week at the Lodge. The boys seldom missed going, but the busy lady was often unable to be there, so helped with the paper as her share of the labor.
“I have a couple of good articles, and I can handle any copying that needs to be done. But I think if you’re going to take on the paper, you should dedicate some time and effort to make it quality,” said Mom, who was accustomed to this situation and often edited the little newsletter read every week at the Lodge. The boys rarely missed it, but the busy lady often couldn’t make it, so she contributed to the paper as her part of the work.
“Yes, we ought, but somehow we don't seem to get up much steam about it lately. If more people belonged, and we could have a grand time now and then, it would be jolly;” and Jack sighed at the lack of interest felt by outsiders in the loyal little Lodge which went on year after year kept up by the faithful few.
“Yes, we should, but it seems like we haven't been getting very excited about it lately. If more people joined, and we could have a great time every now and then, it would be fun;” and Jack sighed at the lack of interest shown by outsiders in the dedicated little Lodge that continued on year after year, supported by the loyal few.
“I remember when in this very town we used to have a Cold Water Army, and in the summer turn out with processions, banners, and bands of music to march about, and end with a picnic, songs, and speeches in some grove or hall. Nearly all the children belonged to it, and the parents also, and we had fine times here twenty-five or thirty years ago.”
“I remember when we used to have a Cold Water Army in this very town, and in the summer we would organize processions with banners and live music to march around, wrapping up with a picnic, songs, and speeches in a grove or hall. Almost all the kids and their parents were involved, and we had a great time here twenty-five or thirty years ago.”
“It didn't do much good, seems to me, for people still drink, and we haven't a decent hotel in the place,” said Frank, as his mother sat looking out of the window as if she saw again the pleasant sight of old and young working together against the great enemy of home peace and safety.
“It doesn't seem to help much because people still drink, and we don’t have a decent hotel around here,” Frank said, while his mother sat looking out the window, as if she were seeing again the nice view of old and young working together against the major threat to home peace and safety.
“Oh yes, it did, my dear; for to this day many of those children are true to their pledge. One little girl was, I am sure, and now has two big boys to fight for the reform she has upheld all her life. The town is better than it was in those days, and if we each do our part faithfully, it will improve yet more. Every boy and girl who joins is one gained, perhaps, and your example is the best temperance lecture you can give. Hold fast, and don't mind if it isn't 'jolly': it is right, and that should be enough for us.”
“Oh yes, it did, my dear; even now, many of those kids are sticking to their promise. One little girl definitely is, and now she has two big boys to fight for the cause she's supported her whole life. The town is better than it was back then, and if we each do our part wholeheartedly, it will get even better. Every boy and girl who joins is a win, maybe, and your example is the best lesson in staying sober you can give. Stay strong, and don’t worry if it isn’t ‘fun’: it is right, and that should be enough for us.”
Mamma spoke warmly, for she heartily believed in young people's guarding against this dangerous vice before it became a temptation, and hoped her boys would never break the pledge they had taken; for, young as they were, they were old enough to see its worth, feel its wisdom, and pride themselves on the promise which was fast growing into a principle. Jack's face brightened as he listened, and Frank said, with the steady look which made his face manly,—
Mamma spoke with warmth because she genuinely believed that young people should protect themselves from this harmful habit before it became a temptation. She hoped her boys would never go back on the pledge they had made, because even though they were young, they were mature enough to understand its value, appreciate its wisdom, and take pride in a promise that was quickly turning into a principle. Jack's face lit up as he listened, and Frank replied with the determined expression that gave his face a manly look—
“It shall be. Now I'll tell you what I was going to keep as a surprise till to-night, for I wanted to have my secret as well as other folks. Ed and I went up to see Bob, Sunday, and he said he'd join the Lodge, if they'd have him. I'm going to propose him to-night.”
“It’s going to happen. Now I’ll share what I was planning to keep as a surprise until tonight because I wanted to have my secret just like everyone else. Ed and I went to see Bob on Sunday, and he said he’d join the Lodge if they’d accept him. I’m going to propose him tonight.”
“Good! good!” cried Jack, joyfully, and Mrs. Minot clapped her hands, for every new member was rejoiced over by the good people, who were not discouraged by ridicule, indifference, or opposition.
“Great! Great!” shouted Jack excitedly, and Mrs. Minot clapped her hands, as every new member was celebrated by the kind people, who weren’t disheartened by mockery, indifference, or resistance.
“We've got him now, for no one will object, and it is just the thing for him. He wants to belong somewhere, he says, and he'll enjoy the fun, and the good things will help him, and we will look after him. The Captain was so pleased, and you ought to have seen Ed's face when Bob said, 'I'm ready, if you'll have me.'”
“We've got him now, and no one will complain, and this is perfect for him. He says he wants to belong somewhere, and he's going to love the fun. The good things will support him, and we’ll take care of him. The Captain was really happy, and you should have seen Ed's face when Bob said, 'I'm ready, if you'll have me.'”
Frank's own face was beaming, and Jack forgot to “gobble,” he was so interested in the new convert, while Mamma said, as she threw down her napkin and took up the newspaper,—
Frank's face was shining, and Jack forgot to "gobble," so fascinated was he by the new convert, while Mom said, as she tossed down her napkin and picked up the newspaper,—
“We must not forget our 'Observer,' but have a good one tonight in honor of the occasion. There may be something here. Come home early at noon, and I'll help you get your paper ready.”
“We shouldn't forget about our 'Observer,' but let's enjoy a good one tonight to celebrate the occasion. There might be something interesting in it. Come home early around noon, and I'll help you prepare your paper.”
“I'll be here, but if you want Frank, you'd better tell him not to dawdle over Annette's gate half an hour,” began Jack, who could not resist teasing his dignified brother about one of the few foolish things he was fond of doing.
“I'll be here, but if you want Frank, you should probably tell him not to waste time at Annette's place for half an hour,” Jack started, unable to resist teasing his serious brother about one of the few silly things he liked to do.
“Do you want your nose pulled?” demanded Frank, who never would stand joking on that tender point from his brother.
“Do you want me to pull your nose?” Frank asked, who never tolerated jokes about that sensitive issue from his brother.
“No, I don't; and if I did, you couldn't do it;” with which taunt he was off and Frank after him, having made a futile dive at the impertinent little nose which was turned up at him and his sweetheart.
“No, I don't; and even if I did, you couldn't do it;” with that taunt, he took off, and Frank went after him, having made a pointless lunge at the annoying little nose that was turned up at him and his girlfriend.
“Boys, boys, not through the parlor!” implored Mamma, resigned to skirmishes, but trembling for her piano legs as the four stout boots pranced about the table and then went thundering down the hall, through the kitchen where the fat cook cheered them on, and Mary, the maid, tried to head off Frank as Jack rushed out into the garden. But the pursuer ducked under her arm and gave chase with all speed. Then there was a glorious race all over the place; for both were good runners, and, being as full of spring vigor as frisky calves, they did astonishing things in the way of leaping fences, dodging round corners, and making good time down the wide walks.
“Boys, boys, not through the parlor!” Mom pleaded, accepting the chaotic energy but worried for her piano legs as the four heavy boots danced around the table and then thundered down the hallway, through the kitchen where the chubby cook cheered them on, and Mary, the maid, tried to block Frank as Jack dashed out into the garden. But the pursuer ducked under her arm and took off in pursuit with full speed. Then there was an exciting race everywhere; both were great runners and, filled with youthful energy like playful calves, they did remarkable things like leaping over fences, dodging around corners, and moving quickly down the wide paths.
But Jack's leg was not quite strong yet, and he felt that his round nose was in danger of a vengeful tweak as his breath began to give out and Frank's long arms drew nearer and nearer to the threatened feature. Just when he was about to give up and meet his fate like a man, old Bunny, who had been much excited by the race, came scampering across the path with such a droll skip into the air and shake of the hind legs that Frank had to dodge to avoid stepping on him, and to laugh in spite of himself. This momentary check gave Jack a chance to bolt up the back stairs and take refuge in the Bird Room, from the window of which Jill had been watching the race with great interest.
But Jack's leg wasn't strong enough yet, and he felt that his round nose was at risk of a playful tweak as he struggled to catch his breath while Frank's long arms moved closer and closer to his vulnerable face. Just when he was about to give up and accept his fate like a champ, old Bunny, who had been really excited by the race, came rushing across the path with a hilarious jump and a shake of his hind legs, forcing Frank to dodge to avoid stepping on him, making him laugh despite himself. This brief pause gave Jack the chance to sprint up the back stairs and take cover in the Bird Room, from where Jill had been watching the race with a lot of interest.
No romping was allowed there, so a truce was made by locking little fingers, and both sat down to get their breath.
No playing around was allowed there, so they made a peace agreement by locking their little fingers together, and both sat down to catch their breath.
“I am to go on the piazza, for an hour, by and by, Doctor said. Would you mind carrying me down before you go to school, you do it so nicely, I'm not a bit afraid,” said Jill, as eager for the little change as if it had been a long and varied journey.
“I’m going to the porch for an hour later,” the doctor said. “Would you mind taking me down before you go to school? You do it so well; I’m not worried at all,” said Jill, just as excited for the small change as if it were a long and adventurous trip.
“Yes, indeed! Come on, Princess,” answered Jack, glad to see her so well and happy.
"Yes, of course! Come on, Princess," Jack replied, happy to see her looking so well and cheerful.
The boys made an arm-chair, and away she went, for a pleasant day downstairs. She thanked Frank with a posy for his buttonhole, well knowing that it would soon pass into other hands, and he departed to join Annette. Having told Jill about Bob, and set her to work on the “Observer,” Jack kissed his mother, and went whistling down the street, a gay little bachelor, with a nod and smile for all he met, and no turned-up hat or jaunty turban bobbing along beside him to delay his steps or trouble his peace of mind.
The boys made an armchair, and she went off for a lovely day downstairs. She gave Frank a bouquet for his buttonhole, well aware that it would soon end up in someone else's hands, and he left to join Annette. After telling Jill about Bob and getting her started on the “Observer,” Jack kissed his mom and walked whistling down the street, a cheerful little bachelor, nodding and smiling at everyone he passed, with no tipped hat or stylish turban bouncing along beside him to slow him down or disturb his peace of mind.
At noon they worked on their paper, which was a collection of items, cut from other papers, concerning temperance, a few anecdotes, a bit of poetry, a story, and, if possible, an original article by the editor. Many hands make light work, and nothing remained but a little copying, which Jill promised to do before night. So the boys had time for a game of football after school in the afternoon, which they much enjoyed. As they sat resting on the posts, Gus said,—
At noon, they worked on their paper, which was a collection of items cut from other papers about temperance, a few anecdotes, some poetry, a story, and, if possible, an original article by the editor. Many hands make light work, and all that was left was a bit of copying, which Jill promised to finish before night. So the boys had time for a game of football after school in the afternoon, which they really enjoyed. As they sat resting on the posts, Gus said,—
“Uncle Fred says he will give us a hay-cart ride to-night, as it is moony, and after it you are all to come to our house and have games.
“Uncle Fred says he will take us for a hay-cart ride tonight since it’s a full moon, and after that, you all are invited to our house for games.”
“Can't do it,” answered Frank, sadly.
“Can't do it,” Frank replied, sadly.
“Lodge,” groaned Jack, for both considered a drive in the cart, where they all sat in a merry bunch among the hay, one of the joys of life, and much regretted that a prior engagement would prevent their sharing in it.
“Lodge,” Jack groaned, as both he and the others thought of a ride in the cart, where they all sat together happily amongst the hay, one of life's simple pleasures, and they both regretted that a prior commitment would keep them from enjoying it.
“That's a pity! I forgot it was Tuesday, and can't put it off, as I've asked all the rest. Give up your old Lodge and come along,” said Gus, who had not joined yet.
"That's too bad! I forgot it was Tuesday and can't postpone it, as I've already asked everyone else. Give up your old Lodge and come along," said Gus, who hadn't joined yet.
“We might for once, perhaps, but I don't like to”—began Jack, hesitating.
“We might for once, maybe, but I don’t want to,” Jack started, hesitating.
“I won't. Who's to propose Bob if we don't? I want to go awfully; but I wouldn't disappoint Bob for a good deal, now he is willing to come.” And Frank sprang off his post as if anxious to flee temptation, for it was very pleasant to go singing, up hill and down dale, in the spring moonlight, with—well, the fellows of his set.
I won’t. Who’s going to suggest Bob if we don’t? I really want to go; but I wouldn’t want to let Bob down for anything, especially now that he wants to join us.” And Frank jumped off his spot as if eager to escape temptation, because it was really nice to go singing, up hill and down dale, in the spring moonlight, with—well, the guys in his group.
“Nor Ed, I forgot that. No, we can't go. We want to be Good Templars, and we mustn't shirk,” added Jack, following his brother.
“Nor Ed, I forgot that. No, we can't go. We want to be Good Templars, and we can't back down,” added Jack, following his brother.
“Better come. Can't put it off. Lots of fun,” called Gus, disappointed at losing two of his favorite mates.
“Better come. Can't put it off. It's going to be a lot of fun,” called Gus, disappointed about losing two of his favorite friends.
But the boys did not turn back, and as they went steadily away they felt that they were doing their little part in the good work, and making their small sacrifices, like faithful members.
But the boys didn’t turn back, and as they kept moving away, they felt that they were doing their part in the good work and making their small sacrifices, like loyal members.
They got their reward, however, for at home they found Mr. Chauncey, a good and great man, from England, who had known their grandfather, and was an honored friend of the family. The boys loved to hear him talk, and all tea-time listened with interest to the conversation, for Mr. Chauncey was a reformer as well as a famous clergyman, and it was like inspiring music to hear him tell about the world's work, and the brave men and women who were carrying it on. Eager to show that they had, at least, begun, the boys told him about their Lodge, and were immensely pleased when their guest took from his pocket-book a worn paper, proving that he too was a Good Templar, and belonged to the same army as they did. Nor was that all, for when they reluctantly excused themselves, Mr. Chauncey gave each a hearty “grip,” and said, holding their hands in his, as he smiled at the young faces looking up at him with so much love and honor in them,—
They got their reward, though, because at home they found Mr. Chauncey, a wonderful and respected man from England who had known their grandfather and was a cherished friend of the family. The boys loved listening to him talk, and during tea time, they eagerly absorbed the conversation. Mr. Chauncey was not only a famous clergyman but also a reformer, and hearing him speak about the world's work and the brave men and women behind it felt like inspiring music. Wanting to show that they had at least started on their own journey, the boys talked to him about their Lodge and were thrilled when their guest pulled a worn piece of paper from his wallet, proving he was also a Good Templar and part of the same movement they were in. That wasn't all, though; when they reluctantly said they had to leave, Mr. Chauncey gave each of them a big handshake and said, holding their hands in his and smiling at the young faces looking up at him with so much love and admiration—
“Tell the brothers and sisters that if I can serve them in any way while here, to command me. I will give them a lecture at their Lodge or in public, whichever they like; and I wish you God-speed, dear boys.”
“Tell the brothers and sisters that if I can help them in any way while I'm here, just let me know. I’ll give them a talk at their Lodge or in public, whichever they prefer; and I wish you all the best, dear guys.”
Two prouder lads never walked the streets than Frank and Jack as they hurried away, nearly forgetting the poor little paper in their haste to tell the good news; for it was seldom that such an offer was made the Lodge, and they felt the honor done them as bearers of it.
Two prouder guys never walked the streets than Frank and Jack as they rushed away, almost forgetting the poor little paper in their excitement to share the good news; because it was rare for the Lodge to receive such an offer, and they felt honored to be the ones delivering it.
As the secrets of the association cannot be divulged to the uninitiated, we can only say that there was great rejoicing over the new member, for Bob was unanimously welcomed, and much gratitude both felt and expressed for Mr. Chauncey's interest in this small division of the grand army; for these good folk met with little sympathy from the great people of the town, and it was very cheering to have a well-known and much-beloved man say a word for them. All agreed that the lecture should be public, that others might share the pleasure with them, and perhaps be converted by a higher eloquence than any they possessed.
As the secrets of the group can't be shared with outsiders, we can only say that everyone was really excited about the new member. Bob was welcomed with open arms, and there was a lot of gratitude felt and expressed for Mr. Chauncey's support of this small part of the larger organization. These good people didn't get much understanding from the prominent folks in town, so it was really uplifting to have a well-known and beloved person speak up for them. Everyone agreed that the lecture should be open to the public so that others could enjoy it too and maybe be inspired by a greater eloquence than what they had.
So the services that night were unusually full of spirit and good cheer; for all felt the influence of a friendly word, the beauty of a fine example. The paper was much applauded, the songs were very hearty, and when Frank, whose turn it was to be chaplain, read the closing prayer, every one felt that they had much to give thanks for, since one more had joined them, and the work was slowly getting on with unexpected helpers sent to lend a hand. The lights shone out from the little hall across the street, the music reached the ears of passers-by, and the busy hum of voices up there told how faithfully some, at least, of the villagers tried to make the town a safer place for their boys to grow up in, though the tavern still had its private bar and the saloon-door stood open to invite them in.
That night, the services were filled with an unusual sense of joy and positivity; everyone felt the impact of a kind word and the inspiration of a great example. The paper received a lot of praise, the songs were sung loudly, and when Frank, who was in charge of the prayer that evening, read the closing prayer, everyone felt grateful for one more person joining them, and the work was gradually progressing with unexpected helpers arriving to assist. The lights illuminated the small hall across the street, the music could be heard by those passing by, and the lively chatter up there showed how some of the villagers were genuinely trying to make the town a safer place for their boys to grow up, even though the tavern still had its private bar and the saloon door remained open to invite them in.
There are many such quiet lodges, and in them many young people learning as these lads were learning something of the duty they owed their neighbors as well as themselves, and being fitted to become good men and sober citizens by practising and preaching the law and gospel of temperance.
There are many quiet lodges like this, where many young people are learning, just like these guys, about the responsibilities they have to their neighbors and themselves. They're being prepared to become good people and responsible citizens by practicing and promoting the principles of moderation.
The next night Mr. Chauncey lectured, and the town turned out to hear the distinguished man, who not only told them of the crime and misery produced by this terrible vice which afflicted both England and America, but of the great crusade against it going on everywhere, and the need of courage, patience, hard work, and much faith, that in time it might be overcome. Strong and cheerful words that all liked to hear and many heartily believed, especially the young Templars, whose boyish fancies were won by the idea of fighting as knights of old did in the famous crusades they read about in their splendid new young folks' edition of Froissart.
The next night, Mr. Chauncey gave a lecture, and the town showed up to listen to the notable man, who spoke not only about the crime and suffering caused by this terrible issue that affected both England and America, but also about the great movement against it happening everywhere, and the need for courage, patience, hard work, and a lot of faith so that, in time, it could be overcome. His strong and uplifting words were well-received, and many truly believed, especially the young Templars, whose youthful imaginations were captured by the idea of fighting like the knights of old in the famous crusades they read about in their amazing new edition of Froissart for young people.
“We can't pitch into people as the Red Cross fellows did, but we can smash rum-jugs when we get the chance, and stand by our flag as our men did in the war,” said Frank, with sparkling eyes, as they went home in the moonlight arm in arm, keeping step behind Mr. Chauncey, who led the way with their mother on his arm, a martial figure though a minister, and a good captain to follow, as the boys felt after hearing his stirring words.
“We can't jump into action like the Red Cross folks did, but we can break open rum jugs when we get the chance and stand by our flag like our guys did in the war,” said Frank, his eyes shining, as they walked home in the moonlight, arm in arm, keeping pace behind Mr. Chauncey, who was leading the way with their mom on his arm, looking strong and commanding even as a minister, and a great leader to follow, as the boys felt after hearing his inspiring words.
“Let's try and get up a company of boys like those mother told us about, and show people that we mean what we say. I'll be color-bearer, and you may drill us as much as you like. A real Cold Water Army, with flags flying, and drums, and all sorts of larks,” said Jack, much excited, and taking a dramatic view of the matter.
“Let’s try to get a group of boys like the ones mom told us about, and show everyone that we mean what we say. I’ll be the color-bearer, and you can train us as much as you want. A real Cold Water Army, with flags flying, drums, and all kinds of fun,” said Jack, feeling very excited and taking a dramatic perspective on the situation.
“We'll see about it. Something ought to be done, and perhaps we shall be the men to do it when the time comes,” answered Frank, feeling ready to shoulder a musket or be a minute-man in good earnest.
“We'll see about that. Something needs to be done, and maybe we’ll be the ones to do it when the time comes,” replied Frank, feeling prepared to take up a rifle or be a minute-man for real.
Boyish talk and enthusiasm, but it was of the right sort; and when time and training had fitted them to bear arms, these young knights would be worthy to put on the red cross and ride away to help right the wrongs and slay the dragons that afflict the world.
Boyish chatter and excitement, but it was the good kind; and when the time came and they were trained to bear arms, these young knights would be ready to wear the red cross and set out to right wrongs and defeat the dragons that plague the world.
Chapter XX. A Sweet Memory
Now the lovely June days had come, everything began to look really summer-like; school would soon be over, and the young people were joyfully preparing for the long vacation.
Now the beautiful June days had arrived, and everything started to feel truly summery; school would soon be out, and the young people were happily getting ready for the long break.
“We are all going up to Bethlehem. We take the seashore one year and the mountains the next. Better come along,” said Gus, as the boys lay on the grass after beating the Lincolns at one of the first matches of the season.
“We're all going up to Bethlehem. We do the seashore one year and the mountains the next. You should come with us,” Gus said, as the boys lay on the grass after beating the Lincolns in one of the first matches of the season.
“Can't; we are off to Pebbly Beach the second week in July. Our invalids need sea air. That one looks delicate, doesn't he?” asked Frank, giving Jack a slight rap with his bat as that young gentleman lay in his usual attitude admiring the blue hose and russet shoes which adorned his sturdy limbs.
“Can't; we’re heading to Pebbly Beach the second week in July. Our sick friends need some sea air. That one looks frail, doesn’t he?” Frank asked, giving Jack a light tap with his bat as Jack lounged in his usual position, admiring the blue socks and brown shoes that decorated his strong legs.
“Stop that, Captain! You needn't talk about invalids, when you know mother says you are not to look at a book for a month because you have studied yourself thin and headachy. I'm all right;” and Jack gave himself a sounding slap on the chest, where shone the white star of the H.B.B.C.
“Stop that, Captain! You don’t need to talk about sick people when you know Mom says you shouldn’t look at a book for a month because you’ve studied yourself into being thin and getting headaches. I’m fine;” and Jack gave himself a loud slap on the chest, where the white star of the H.B.B.C. gleamed.
“Hear the little cockerel crow! you just wait till you get into the college class, and see if you don't have to study like fun,” said Gus, with unruffled composure, for he was going to Harvard next year, and felt himself already a Senior.
“Hear the little rooster crow! Just wait until you get into college classes and see if you don't have to study hard,” said Gus, with calm confidence, since he was heading to Harvard next year and already felt like a Senior.
“Never shall; I don't want any of your old colleges. I'm going into business as soon as I can. Ed says I may be his book-keeper, if I am ready when he starts for himself. That is much jollier than grinding away for four years, and then having to grind ever so many more at a profession,” said Jack, examining with interest the various knocks and bruises with which much ball-playing had adorned his hands.
“Never! I don’t want any of your old schools. I’m going into business as soon as I can. Ed says I might be his bookkeeper if I’m ready when he starts out on his own. That sounds way more fun than slogging away for four years, then grinding even more at a profession,” said Jack, looking with interest at the various cuts and bruises that all the ball-playing had left on his hands.
“Much you know about it. Just as well you don't mean to try, for it would take a mighty long pull and strong pull to get you in. Business would suit you better, and you and Ed would make a capital partnership. Devlin, Minot, & Co. sounds well, hey, Gus?”
“Yeah, you know a lot about it. Good thing you don’t plan on trying, because it would take a really strong effort to get you in. Business would be a better fit for you, and you and Ed would make a great team. Devlin, Minot, & Co. has a nice ring to it, right, Gus?”
“Very, but they are such good-natured chaps, they'd never get rich. By the way, Ed came home at noon to-day sick. I met him, and he looked regularly knocked up,” answered Gus, in a sober tone.
“Yeah, but they’re such good-natured guys, they’d never get rich. By the way, Ed came home sick at noon today. I saw him, and he looked completely exhausted,” answered Gus, in a serious tone.
“I told him he'd better not go down Monday, for he wasn't well Saturday, and couldn't come to sing Sunday evening, you remember. I must go right round and see what the matter is;” and Jack jumped up, with an anxious face.
“I told him he better not go down on Monday because he wasn't feeling well on Saturday and couldn't come to sing on Sunday evening, you remember. I need to go over and see what’s going on;” and Jack jumped up with a worried look on his face.
“Let him alone till to-morrow. He won't want any one fussing over him now. We are going for a pull; come along and steer,” said Frank, for the sunset promised to be fine, and the boys liked a brisk row in their newly painted boat, the “Rhodora.”
“Leave him alone until tomorrow. He doesn’t want anyone fussing over him right now. We’re going for a row; come along and steer,” said Frank, because the sunset looked like it was going to be beautiful, and the boys enjoyed a lively row in their newly painted boat, the “Rhodora.”
“Go ahead and get ready, I'll just cut round and ask at the door. It will seem kind, and I must know how Ed is. Won't be long;” and Jack was off at his best pace.
“Go ahead and get ready, I'll just go around and ask at the door. It will seem nice, and I need to check on how Ed is. I won’t be long;” and Jack was off at his fastest pace.
The others were waiting impatiently when he came back with slower steps and a more anxious face.
The others were waiting anxiously when he returned, moving more slowly and looking more worried.
“How is the old fellow?” called Frank from the boat, while Gus stood leaning on an oar in a nautical attitude.
“How's the old guy?” called Frank from the boat, while Gus stood leaning on an oar in a casual nautical pose.
“Pretty sick. Had the doctor. May have a fever. I didn't go in, but Ed sent his love, and wanted to know who beat,” answered Jack, stepping to his place, glad to rest and cool himself.
“Feeling pretty bad. I had the doctor. I might have a fever. I didn't go in, but Ed sent his love and wanted to know who won,” Jack replied, stepping into his spot, relieved to rest and cool off.
“Guess he'll be all right in a day or two;” and Gus pushed off, leaving all care behind.
“Guess he'll be fine in a day or two,” and Gus pushed off, leaving all worries behind.
“Hope he won't have typhoid—that's no joke, I tell you,” said Frank, who knew all about it, and did not care to repeat the experience.
“Hope he won't get typhoid—that's serious, I'm telling you,” said Frank, who knew all about it and didn’t want to go through that again.
“He's worked too hard. He's so faithful he does more than his share, and gets tired out. Mother asked him to come down and see us when he has his vacation; we are going to have high old times fishing and boating. Up or down?” asked Jack, as they glided out into the river.
"He's worked too hard. He's so dependable that he takes on more than his share and ends up worn out. Mom asked him to come down and visit us during his vacation; we're going to have a great time fishing and boating. Upstream or downstream?" Jack asked as they glided out into the river.
Gus looked both ways, and seeing another boat with a glimpse of red in it just going round the bend, answered, with decision, “Up, of course. Don't we always pull to the bridge?”
Gus looked both ways and saw another boat with a hint of red in it just rounding the bend. He replied confidently, “Up, of course. Don’t we always head to the bridge?”
“Not when the girls are going down,” laughed Jack, who had recognized Juliet's scarlet boating-suit as he glanced over his shoulder.
“Not when the girls are coming down,” laughed Jack, who had spotted Juliet's bright red boating suit as he looked back.
“Mind what you are about, and don't gabble,” commanded Captain Frank, as the crew bent to their oars and the slender boat cut through the water leaving a long furrow trembling behind.
“Pay attention to what you’re doing, and don’t chatter,” ordered Captain Frank, as the crew focused on their oars and the slim boat sliced through the water, leaving a long, rippling trail behind.
“Oh, ah! I see! There is a blue jacket as well as a red one, so it's all right.
“Oh, I see! There’s a blue jacket and a red one, so it’s all good.
“Lady Queen Anne, she sits in the sun, As white as a lily, as brown as a bun,”
“Lady Queen Anne, she sits in the sun, As white as a lily, as brown as a bun,”
sung Jack, recovering his spirits, and wishing Jill was there too.
sung Jack, feeling better and wishing Jill was there too.
“Do you want a ducking?” sternly demanded Gus, anxious to preserve discipline.
“Do you want a timeout?” Gus asked sternly, eager to maintain discipline.
“Shouldn't mind, its so warm.”
"Shouldn't mind, it's so warm."
But Jack said no more, and soon the “Rhodora” was alongside the “Water Witch,” exchanging greetings in the most amiable manner.
But Jack didn't say anything else, and soon the “Rhodora” was next to the “Water Witch,” exchanging friendly greetings.
“Pity this boat won't hold four. We'd put Jack in yours, and take you girls a nice spin up to the Hemlocks,” said Frank, whose idea of bliss was floating down the river with Annette as coxswain.
“Too bad this boat can't fit four. We’d put Jack in yours and take you girls for a nice ride up to the Hemlocks,” said Frank, whose idea of happiness was drifting down the river with Annette as the captain.
“You'd better come in here, this will hold four, and we are tired of rowing,” returned the “Water Witch,” so invitingly that Gus could not resist.
“You should come in here; this can fit four people, and we’re tired of rowing,” replied the “Water Witch” so invitingly that Gus couldn’t resist.
“I don't think it is safe to put four in there. You'd better change places with Annette, Gus, and then we shall be ship-shape,” said Frank, answering a telegram from the eyes that matched the blue jacket.
“I don’t think it’s safe to put four in there. You’d better switch places with Annette, Gus, and then we’ll be all set,” said Frank, responding to a message from the eyes that matched the blue jacket.
“Wouldn't it be more ship-shape still if you put me ashore at Grif's landing? I can take his boat, or wait till you come back. Don't care what I do,” said Jack, feeling himself sadly in the way.
“Wouldn't it be better if you dropped me off at Grif's landing? I can take his boat or just wait for you to return. I don't mind either way,” said Jack, feeling like he was in the way.
The good-natured offer being accepted with thanks, the changes were made, and, leaving him behind, the two boats went gayly up the river. He really did not care what he did, so sat in Grif's boat awhile watching the red sky, the shining stream, and the low green meadows, where the blackbirds were singing as if they too had met their little sweethearts and were happy.
The friendly offer was accepted with gratitude, the adjustments were made, and, leaving him behind, the two boats happily went up the river. He really didn’t mind what he did, so he sat in Grif’s boat for a while, watching the red sky, the sparkling water, and the lush green meadows, where the blackbirds were singing as if they had also found their sweethearts and were joyful.
Jack remembered that quiet half-hour long afterward, because what followed seemed to impress it on his memory. As he sat enjoying the scene, he very naturally thought about Ed; for the face of the sister whom he saw was very anxious, and the word “fever” recalled the hard times when Frank was ill, particularly the night it was thought the boy would not live till dawn, and Jack cried himself to sleep, wondering how he ever could get on without his brother. Ed was almost as dear to him, and the thought that he was suffering destroyed Jack's pleasure for a little while. But, fortunately, young people do not know how to be anxious very long, so our boy soon cheered up, thinking about the late match between the Stars and the Lincolns, and after a good rest went whistling home, with a handful of mint for Mrs. Pecq, and played games with Jill as merrily as if there was no such thing as care in the world.
Jack remembered that quiet half-hour afterward because what followed really stuck in his mind. As he sat enjoying the scene, he naturally thought about Ed; the worried look on his sister's face and the mention of "fever" reminded him of the tough times when Frank was sick, especially that night when everyone thought the boy wouldn't make it to dawn, and Jack cried himself to sleep, wondering how he could manage without his brother. Ed meant just as much to him, and the thought of him suffering dampened Jack's enjoyment for a bit. But luckily, young people don't stay anxious for long, so he soon brightened up, thinking about the recent game between the Stars and the Lincolns. After a good rest, he whistled his way home, carrying a handful of mint for Mrs. Pecq, and played games with Jill just as happily as if there were no worries in the world.
Next day Ed was worse, and for a week the answer was the same, when Jack crept to the back door with his eager question.
Next day, Ed was feeling worse, and for a week, the answer remained the same when Jack quietly approached the back door with his eager question.
Others came also, for the dear boy lying upstairs had friends everywhere, and older neighbors thought of him even more anxiously and tenderly than his mates. It was not fever, but some swifter trouble, for when Saturday night came, Ed had gone home to a longer and more peaceful Sabbath than any he had ever known in this world.
Others came too, because the dear boy upstairs had friends everywhere, and older neighbors cared about him even more anxiously and lovingly than his peers did. It wasn’t fever, but something more urgent, because by Saturday night, Ed had gone home to a longer and more peaceful Sabbath than any he had ever experienced in this world.
Jack had been there in the afternoon, and a kind message had come down to him that his friend was not suffering so much, and he had gone away, hoping, in his boyish ignorance, that all danger was over. An hour later he was reading in the parlor, having no heart for play, when Frank came in with a look upon his face which would have prepared Jack for the news if he had seen it. But he did not look up, and Frank found it so hard to speak, that he lingered a moment at the piano, as he often did when he came home. It stood open, and on the rack was the “Jolly Brothers' Galop,” which he had been learning to play with Ed. Big boy as he was, the sudden thought that never again would they sit shoulder to shoulder, thundering the marches or singing the songs both liked so well, made his eyes fill as he laid away the music, and shut the instrument, feeling as if he never wanted to touch it again. Then he went and sat down beside Jack with an arm round his neck, trying to steady his voice by a natural question before he told the heavy news.
Jack had been there in the afternoon, and a kind message had come down to him that his friend wasn’t suffering so much, so he had left, hoping, in his youthful ignorance, that all danger was over. An hour later, he was reading in the living room, not in the mood to play, when Frank came in with an expression on his face that would have prepared Jack for the news if he had seen it. But he didn’t look up, and Frank struggled to speak, lingering for a moment by the piano, as he often did when he got home. It stood open, and on the rack was the “Jolly Brothers' Galop,” which he had been learning to play with Ed. Big boy though he was, the sudden realization that they would never again sit side by side, thundering out marches or singing the songs they both loved, brought tears to his eyes as he put away the music and closed the instrument, feeling like he never wanted to touch it again. Then he sat down beside Jack with an arm around his neck, trying to steady his voice with a casual question before he broke the heavy news.
“What are you reading, Jacky?”
“What are you reading, Jacky?”
The unusual caress, the very gentle tone, made Jack look up, and the minute he saw Frank's face he knew the truth.
The unusual touch and the soft tone made Jack look up, and the moment he saw Frank's face, he knew the truth.
“Is Ed——?” he could not say the hard word, and Frank could only answer by a nod as he winked fast, for the tears would come. Jack said no more, but as the book dropped from his knee he hid his face in the sofa-pillow and lay quite still, not crying, but trying to make it seem true that his dear Ed had gone away for ever. He could not do it, and presently turned his head a little to say, in a despairing tone,—
“Is Ed——?” he couldn’t bring himself to say the harsh word, and Frank could only nod quickly, winking to hold back the tears. Jack didn’t say anything else, but when the book slipped from his lap, he buried his face in the sofa pillow and lay completely still, not crying, but trying to convince himself that his beloved Ed had truly gone away forever. He couldn’t manage it, and after a moment, he turned his head slightly to say, in a hopeless tone,—
“I don't see what I shall do without him!”
“I don't see what I'm going to do without him!”
“I know it's hard for you. It is for all of us.”
“I know it’s tough for you. It is for all of us.”
“You've got Gus, but now I haven't anybody. Ed was always so good to me!” and with the name so many tender recollections came, that poor Jack broke down in spite of his manful attempts to smother the sobs in the red pillow.
“You’ve got Gus, but now I don’t have anyone. Ed was always so good to me!” and with that name came so many sweet memories that poor Jack broke down in spite of his tough efforts to hold back the sobs into the red pillow.
There was an unconscious reproach in the words, Frank thought; for he was not as gentle as Ed, and he did not wonder that Jack loved and mourned for the lost friend like a brother.
There was an unspoken criticism in the words, Frank thought; he wasn’t as kind as Ed, and he understood why Jack loved and grieved for the lost friend like a brother.
“You've got me. I'll be good to you; cry if you want to, I don't mind.”
"You've got me. I'll treat you well; cry if you need to, I don't care."
There was such a sympathetic choke in Frank's voice that Jack felt comforted at once, and when he had had his cry out, which was very soon, he let Frank pull him up with a bear-like but affectionate hug, and sat leaning on him as they talked about their loss, both feeling that there might have been a greater one, and resolving to love one another very much hereafter.
There was such a heartfelt catch in Frank's voice that Jack felt comforted right away, and when he had finished crying, which was pretty quick, he let Frank lift him up in a strong but caring hug, and sat leaning on him as they talked about their loss, both sensing that it could have been worse, and deciding to love each other a lot more from now on.
Mrs. Minot often called Frank the “father-boy,” because he was now the head of the house, and a sober, reliable fellow for his years. Usually he did not show much affection except to her, for, as he once said, “I shall never be too old to kiss my mother,” and she often wished that he had a little sister, to bring out the softer side of his character. He domineered over Jack and laughed at his affectionate little ways, but now when trouble came, he was as kind and patient as a girl; and when Mamma came in, having heard the news, she found her “father-boy” comforting his brother so well that she slipped away without a word, leaving them to learn one of the sweet lessons sorrow teaches—to lean on one another, and let each trial bring them closer together.
Mrs. Minot often called Frank the “father-boy” because he was now the head of the household and a sensible, dependable guy for his age. Usually, he didn’t show much affection except for her, as he once said, “I’ll never be too old to kiss my mother.” She often wished he had a little sister to bring out the softer side of his personality. He was bossy with Jack and laughed at his affectionate little ways, but now, when trouble hit, he was as kind and patient as a girl. When Mom came in after hearing the news, she found her “father-boy” comforting his brother so well that she quietly slipped away, leaving them to learn one of the sweet lessons sorrow teaches—to rely on one another and let every challenge bring them closer together.
It is often said that there should be no death or grief in children's stories. It is not wise to dwell on the dark and sad side of these things; but they have also a bright and lovely side, and since even the youngest, dearest, and most guarded child cannot escape some knowledge of the great mystery, is it not well to teach them in simple, cheerful ways that affection sweetens sorrow, and a lovely life can make death beautiful? I think so, therefore try to tell the last scene in the history of a boy who really lived and really left behind him a memory so precious that it will not be soon forgotten by those who knew and loved him. For the influence of this short life was felt by many, and even this brief record of it may do for other children what the reality did for those who still lay flowers on his grave, and try to be “as good as Eddy.”
People often say that children's stories shouldn't include death or sadness. It's not smart to focus on the dark side of things; however, there's also a bright and beautiful side. Since even the youngest and most protected child can't avoid some understanding of life's big mysteries, isn't it better to teach them in simple, joyful ways that love can ease sorrow, and a beautiful life can make death seem less frightening? I believe so, and so I want to share the final chapter in the life of a boy who really lived and left behind such a precious memory that those who loved him won't forget him anytime soon. The impact of his short life touched many, and even this brief account might do for other children what his life did for those who still lay flowers on his grave and aspire to be “as good as Eddy.”
Few would have thought that the death of a quiet lad of seventeen would have been so widely felt, so sincerely mourned; but virtue, like sunshine, works its own sweet miracles, and when it was known that never again would the bright face be seen in the village streets, the cheery voice heard, the loving heart felt in any of the little acts which so endeared Ed Devlin to those about him, it seemed as if young and old grieved alike for so much promise cut off in its spring-time. This was proved at the funeral, for, though it took place at the busy hour of a busy day, men left their affairs, women their households, young people their studies and their play, and gave an hour to show their affection, respect, and sympathy for those who had lost so much.
Few would have imagined that the death of a quiet 17-year-old would be felt so deeply and mourned so genuinely; but goodness, like sunshine, creates its own special magic, and when it became clear that the cheerful face would no longer be seen in the village streets, the friendly voice would no longer be heard, and the loving heart would no longer be felt in all those little gestures that endeared Ed Devlin to everyone around him, it seemed that both young and old mourned together for so much potential lost too soon. This was evident at the funeral, for, even though it took place during a busy time on a busy day, men paused their work, women stepped away from their homes, and young people set aside their studies and play to spend an hour showing their love, respect, and sympathy for those who had suffered such a great loss.
The girls had trimmed the church with all the sweetest flowers they could find, and garlands of lilies of the valley robbed the casket of its mournful look. The boys had brought fresh boughs to make the grave a green bed for their comrade's last sleep. Now they were all gathered together, and it was a touching sight to see the rows of young faces sobered and saddened by their first look at sorrow. The girls sobbed, and the boys set their lips tightly as their glances fell upon the lilies under which the familiar face lay full of solemn peace. Tears dimmed older eyes when the hymn the dead boy loved was sung, and the pastor told with how much pride and pleasure he had watched the gracious growth of this young parishioner since he first met the lad of twelve and was attracted by the shining face, the pleasant manners. Dutiful and loving; ready to help; patient to bear and forbear; eager to excel; faithful to the smallest task, yet full of high ambitions; and, better still, possessing the childlike piety that can trust and believe, wait and hope. Good and happy—the two things we all long for and so few of us truly are. This he was, and this single fact was the best eulogy his pastor could pronounce over the beloved youth gone to a nobler manhood whose promise left so sweet a memory behind.
The girls had decorated the church with all the prettiest flowers they could find, and garlands of lilies of the valley gave the casket a softer look. The boys had brought fresh branches to create a green resting place for their friend's final sleep. Now they were all gathered together, and it was a touching sight to see the rows of young faces sobered and saddened by their first experience with grief. The girls sniffled, and the boys clenched their lips tightly as their eyes fell on the lilies under which the familiar face lay in peaceful repose. Tears blurred older eyes when the hymn the deceased boy loved was sung, and the pastor shared how proud and pleased he had been to witness this young parishioner's gracious growth since he first met the twelve-year-old boy, who had captured his attention with his bright face and pleasant demeanor. Dutiful and loving, always ready to help, patient to endure, eager to excel, committed to even the smallest task, yet full of grand ambitions and, better yet, possessing a childlike faith that could trust, believe, wait, and hope. Good and happy—two things we all long for and so few of us truly are. This is who he was, and this simple fact was the best tribute his pastor could offer for the beloved young man who had moved on to a nobler adulthood, leaving behind such sweet memories.
As the young people looked, listened, and took in the scene, they felt as if some mysterious power had changed their playmate from a creature like themselves into a sort of saint or hero for them to look up to, and imitate if they could. “What has he done, to be so loved, praised, and mourned?” they thought, with a tender sort of wonder; and the answer seemed to come to them as never before, for never had they been brought so near the solemn truth of life and death. “It was not what he did but what he was that made him so beloved. All that was sweet and noble in him still lives; for goodness is the only thing we can take with us when we die, the only thing that can comfort those we leave behind, and help us to meet again hereafter.”
As the young people watched, listened, and absorbed the scene, they felt like some mysterious force had transformed their friend from someone like them into a kind of saint or hero for them to admire and try to emulate. “What did he do to be so loved, praised, and mourned?” they wondered, filled with a gentle sense of awe; and the answer seemed clearer than ever, as they were brought closer to the profound reality of life and death. “It wasn’t what he did, but who he was that made him so cherished. All the sweet and noble parts of him still live on; because goodness is the only thing we can take with us when we die, the only thing that can comfort those we leave behind, and help us meet again later.”
This feeling was in many hearts when they went away to lay him, with prayer and music, under the budding oak that leaned over his grave, a fit emblem of the young life just beginning its new spring. As the children did their part, the beauty of the summer day soothed their sorrow, and something of the soft brightness of the June sunshine seemed to gild their thoughts, as it gilded the flower-strewn mound they left behind. The true and touching words spoken cheered as well as impressed them, and made them feel that their friend was not lost but gone on into a higher class of the great school whose Master is eternal love and wisdom. So the tears soon dried, and the young faces looked up like flowers after rain. But the heaven-sent shower sank into the earth, and they were the stronger, sweeter for it, more eager to make life brave and beautiful, because death had gently shown them what it should be.
This feeling was in many hearts as they went to lay him to rest, with prayer and music, beneath the budding oak that leaned over his grave—a fitting symbol of the young life just beginning its new spring. As the kids did their part, the beauty of the summer day eased their sorrow, and something about the soft brightness of the June sunshine seemed to brighten their thoughts, just as it brightened the flower-covered mound they left behind. The sincere and heartfelt words spoken lifted their spirits and impressed them, making them feel that their friend was not lost but had moved on to a higher level in the great school whose Master is eternal love and wisdom. So the tears soon dried, and the young faces looked up like flowers after rain. But the heaven-sent shower sank into the earth, and they became stronger and sweeter for it, more determined to make life brave and beautiful because death had gently shown them what it should be.
When the boys came home they found their mother already returned, and Jill upon the parlor sofa listening to her account of the funeral with the same quiet, hopeful look which their own faces wore; for somehow the sadness seemed to have gone, and a sort of Sunday peace remained.
When the boys got home, they found their mom already there, and Jill on the living room sofa listening to her recount the funeral with the same calm, hopeful expression that was on their own faces; somehow, the sadness seemed to have disappeared, leaving behind a kind of Sunday peace.
“I'm glad it was all so sweet and pleasant. Come and rest, you look so tired;” and Jill held out her hands to greet them—a crumpled handkerchief in one and a little bunch of fading lilies in the other.
“I'm happy everything turned out so nice and enjoyable. Come and take a break, you look really tired;” and Jill extended her hands to welcome them—a wrinkled handkerchief in one and a small bunch of wilting lilies in the other.
Jack sat down in the low chair beside her and leaned his head against the arm of the sofa, for he was tired. But Frank walked slowly up and down the long rooms with a serious yet serene look on his face, for he felt as if he had learned something that day, and would always be the better for it. Presently he said, stopping before his mother, who leaned in the easy-chair looking up at the picture of her boys' father,—
Jack sat down in the low chair next to her and rested his head against the arm of the sofa because he was tired. But Frank walked slowly back and forth in the long room with a serious yet calm expression on his face, feeling like he had learned something that day that would always benefit him. After a while, he stopped in front of his mother, who was leaning in the easy chair, looking up at the picture of her boys' father,—
“I should like to have just such things said about me when I die.”
“I want to have exactly those kinds of things said about me when I die.”
“So should I, if I deserved them as Ed did!” cried Jack, earnestly.
“So should I, if I deserved them like Ed did!” Jack exclaimed passionately.
“You may if you try. I should be proud to hear them, and if they were true, they would comfort me more than anything else. I am glad you see the lovely side of sorrow, and are learning the lesson such losses teach us,” answered their mother, who believed in teaching young people to face trouble bravely, and find the silver lining in the clouds that come to all of us.
"You can if you put your mind to it. I would be happy to hear them, and if they were true, they would comfort me more than anything else. I'm glad you see the beautiful side of sadness and are learning the lessons that such losses teach us," replied their mother, who believed in teaching young people to face challenges bravely and find the silver lining in the clouds that come to all of us.
“I never thought much about it before, but now dying doesn't seem dreadful at all—only solemn and beautiful. Somehow everybody seems to love everybody else more for it, and try to be kind and good and pious. I can't say what I mean, but you know, mother;” and Frank went pacing on again with the bright look his eyes always wore when he listened to music or read of some noble action.
“I never thought much about it before, but now dying doesn’t seem terrible at all—just serious and beautiful. Somehow, it feels like everyone loves each other more because of it, and they try to be kind and good and virtuous. I can’t quite put it into words, but you know what I mean, mom;” and Frank continued to walk back and forth, his eyes shining bright like they always did when he listened to music or read about something heroic.
“That's what Merry said when she and Molly came in on their way home. But Molly felt dreadfully, and so did Mabel. She brought me these flowers to press, for we are all going to keep some to remember dear Ed by,” said Jill, carefully smoothing out the little bells as she laid the lilies in her hymn-book, for she too had had a thoughtful hour while she lay alone, imagining all that went on in the church, and shedding a few tender tears over the friend who was always so kind to her.
“That's what Merry said when she and Molly came in on their way home. But Molly felt terrible, and so did Mabel. She brought me these flowers to press because we're all going to keep some to remember dear Ed by,” said Jill, gently smoothing out the little bells as she placed the lilies in her hymn book, as she too had a reflective hour while lying alone, thinking about everything that happened in the church, and shedding a few heartfelt tears for the friend who was always so kind to her.
“I don't want anything to remember him by. I was so fond of him, I couldn't forget if I tried. I know I ought not to say it, but I don't see why God let him die,” said Jack, with a quiver in his voice, for his loving heart could not help aching still.
“I don’t want anything to remember him by. I was so fond of him, I couldn’t forget even if I wanted to. I know I shouldn’t say it, but I don’t understand why God allowed him to die,” said Jack, his voice trembling, as his loving heart still ached.
“No, dear, we cannot see or know many things that grieve us very much, but we can trust that it is right, and try to believe that all is meant for our good. That is what faith means, and without it we are miserable. When you were little, you were afraid of the dark, but if I spoke or touched you, then you were sure all was well, and fell asleep holding my hand. God is wiser and stronger than any father or mother, so hold fast to Him, and you will have no doubt or fear, however dark it seems.”
“No, sweetheart, we can’t see or know many things that upset us a lot, but we can trust that it’s all okay and try to believe that everything is for our good. That’s what faith is about, and without it, we feel miserable. When you were little, you were scared of the dark, but if I spoke to you or touched you, you knew everything was alright and fell asleep holding my hand. God is wiser and stronger than any parent, so cling to Him, and you won’t have any doubt or fear, no matter how dark it feels.”
“As you do,” said Jack, going to sit on the arm of Mamma's chair, with his cheek to hers, willing to trust as she bade him, but glad to hold fast the living hand that had led and comforted him all his life.
“As you do,” said Jack, sitting on the arm of Mamma's chair, his cheek against hers, eager to trust as she urged him to, but happy to hold onto the living hand that had guided and comforted him throughout his life.
“Ed used to say to me when I fretted about getting well, and thought nobody cared for me, which was very naughty, 'Don't be troubled, God won't forget you; and if you must be lame, He will make you able to bear it,'” said Jill, softly, her quick little mind all alive with new thoughts and feelings.
“Ed used to tell me when I worried about getting better and felt like nobody cared for me, which was pretty unfair, 'Don't worry, God won't forget you; and if you have to be lame, He will help you cope with it,'” said Jill softly, her active mind buzzing with new thoughts and emotions.
“He believed it, and that's why he liked that hymn so much. I'm glad they sung it to-day,” said Frank, bringing his heavy dictionary to lay on the book where the flowers were pressing.
“He believed it, and that's why he liked that hymn so much. I'm glad they sang it today,” said Frank, placing his heavy dictionary on the book where the flowers were pressing.
“Oh, thank you! Could you play that tune for me? I didn't hear it, and I'd love to, if you are willing,” asked Jill.
“Oh, thank you! Could you play that song for me? I didn't catch it, and I'd love to hear it if you're up for it,” asked Jill.
“I didn't think I ever should want to play again, but I do. Will you sing it for her, mother? I'm afraid I shall break down if I try alone.”
“I never thought I would want to play again, but I do. Will you sing it for her, mom? I'm afraid I'll break down if I try alone.”
“We will all sing, music is good for us now,” said Mamma; and in rather broken voices they did sing Ed's favorite words:—
“We will all sing, music is good for us now,” said Mom; and in somewhat shaky voices, they sang Ed's favorite words:—
“Not a sparrow falleth but its God doth know, Just as when his mandate lays a monarch low; Not a leaflet moveth, but its God doth see, Think not, then, O mortal, God forgetteth thee. Far more precious surely than the birds that fly Is a Father's image to a Father's eye. E'en thy hairs are numbered; trust Him full and free, Cast thy cares before Him, He will comfort thee; For the God that planted in thy breast a soul, On his sacred tables doth thy name enroll. Cheer thine heart, then, mortal, never faithless be, He that marks the sparrows will remember thee.”
“Not a sparrow falls without God knowing, Just like when His command brings down a king; Not a leaf stirs, but God sees it, So don’t think, mortal, that God forgets you. You are far more valuable than the birds that fly, To a Father’s eye, you hold a greater place. Even your hairs are counted; trust Him completely, Lay your worries at His feet, and He will comfort you; For the God who placed a soul in your heart, Has your name written in His sacred records. So lift your spirits, mortal, and never lose faith, He who watches over sparrows will remember you.”
Chapter XXI. Pebbly Beach
“Now, Mr. Jack, it is a moral impossibility to get all those things into one trunk, and you mustn't ask it of me,” said Mrs. Pecq, in a tone of despair, as she surveyed the heap of treasures she was expected to pack for the boys.
“Now, Mr. Jack, it’s just not possible to fit all those things into one trunk, and you can’t expect me to do it,” said Mrs. Pecq, sounding desperate as she looked at the pile of treasures she was supposed to pack for the boys.
“Never mind the clothes, we only want a boating-suit apiece. Mamma can put a few collars in her trunk for us; but these necessary things must go,” answered Jack, adding his target and air-pistol to the pile of bats, fishing-tackle, games, and a choice collection of shabby balls.
“Forget about the clothes; we just need a boating suit each. Mom can pack a few collars in her trunk for us, but these essential items have to go,” replied Jack, added his target and air pistol to the pile of bats, fishing tackle, games, and a selection of worn-out balls.
“Those are the necessaries and clothes the luxuries, are they? Why don't you add a velocipede, wheelbarrow, and printing-press, my dear?” asked Mrs. Pecq, while Jill turned up her nose at “boys' rubbish.”
“Those are the essentials and the clothes are the luxuries, right? Why not throw in a bicycle, a wheelbarrow, and a printing press, my dear?” asked Mrs. Pecq, while Jill wrinkled her nose at “boys' junk.”
“Wish I could. Dare say we shall want them. Women don't know what fellows need, and always must put in a lot of stiff shirts and clean handkerchiefs and clothes-brushes and pots of cold cream. We are going to rough it, and don't want any fuss and feathers,” said Jack, beginning to pack the precious balls in his rubber boots, and strap them up with the umbrellas, rods, and bats, seeing that there was no hope of a place in the trunk.
“Wish I could. I bet we’ll need them. Women don’t understand what guys really need, and they always throw in a bunch of stiff shirts and clean handkerchiefs and clothes brushes and jars of cold cream. We’re going to be roughing it and don’t want any frills,” said Jack, starting to pack the important balls in his rubber boots and strapping them up with the umbrellas, rods, and bats since there was no chance of fitting them in the trunk.
Here Frank came in with two big books, saying calmly, “Just slip these in somewhere, we shall need them.”
Here Frank came in with two big books, saying calmly, “Just put these away somewhere; we'll need them.”
“But you are not to study at all, so you won't want those great dictionaries,” cried Jill, busily packing her new travelling-basket with all sorts of little rolls, bags, and boxes.
"But you don't need to study at all, so you won't want those huge dictionaries," yelled Jill, busy packing her new travel basket with all kinds of little rolls, bags, and boxes.
“They are not dics, but my Encyclopedia. We shall want to know heaps of things, and this tells about everything. With those books, and a microscope and a telescope, you could travel round the world, and learn all you wanted to. Can't possibly get on without them,” said Frank, fondly patting his favorite work.
“They're not just books; they're my encyclopedia. We’re going to want to know so many things, and this covers everything. With these books, along with a microscope and a telescope, you could explore the world and learn everything you want to. You can't get by without them,” said Frank, affectionately patting his favorite book.
“My patience! What queer cattle boys are!” exclaimed Mrs. Pecq, while they all laughed. “It can't be done, Mr. Frank; all the boxes are brim full, and you'll have to leave those fat books behind, for there's no place anywhere.”
“My patience! What strange boys they are!” exclaimed Mrs. Pecq, while they all laughed. “It can't be done, Mr. Frank; all the boxes are completely full, and you’ll have to leave those thick books behind because there's no room anywhere.”
“Then I'll carry them myself;” and Frank tucked one under each arm, with a determined air, which settled the matter.
“Then I'll carry them myself,” Frank said, tucking one under each arm with a determined look that ended the discussion.
“I suppose you'll study cockleology instead of boating, and read up on polywogs while we play tennis, or go poking round with your old spy-glass instead of having a jolly good time,” said Jack, hauling away on the strap till all was taut and ship-shape with the bundle.
“I guess you’ll be studying cockleology instead of boating, and reading about polywogs while we play tennis, or wandering around with your old spyglass instead of having a great time,” said Jack, pulling on the strap until everything was tight and organized with the bundle.
“Tadpoles don't live in salt water, my son, and if you mean conchology, you'd better say so. I shall play as much as I wish, and when I want to know about any new or curious thing, I shall consult my Cyclo, instead of bothering other people with questions, or giving it up like a dunce;” with which crushing reply Frank departed, leaving Jill to pack and unpack her treasures a dozen times, and Jack to dance jigs on the lids of the trunks till they would shut.
“Tadpoles don’t live in saltwater, my son, and if you’re talking about conchology, you should just say that. I’ll play as much as I want, and when I want to learn about something new or interesting, I’ll check my Cyclo instead of pestering others with questions or giving up like an idiot.” With that blunt response, Frank left, leaving Jill to pack and unpack her treasures a dozen times, and Jack to dance on the trunks until they would close.
A very happy party set off the next day, leaving Mrs. Pecq waving her apron on the steps. Mrs. Minot carried the lunch, Jack his precious bundle with trifles dropping out by the way, and Jill felt very elegant bearing her new basket with red worsted cherries bobbing on the outside. Frank actually did take the Encyclopedia, done up in the roll of shawls, and whenever the others wondered about anything—tides, lighthouses, towns, or natural productions—he brought forth one of the books and triumphantly read therefrom, to the great merriment, if not edification, of his party.
A cheerful group set off the next day, with Mrs. Pecq waving her apron from the steps. Mrs. Minot carried the lunch, Jack had his precious bundle that kept dropping little things along the way, and Jill felt very stylish carrying her new basket with red yarn cherries bobbing on the outside. Frank actually brought the Encyclopedia, wrapped up in a shawl, and whenever the others were curious about something—like tides, lighthouses, towns, or natural wonders—he would pull out one of the books and proudly read from it, much to the amusement, if not the enlightenment, of his friends.
A very short trip by rail and the rest of the journey by boat, to Jill's great contentment, for she hated to be shut up; and while the lads roved here and there she sat under the awning, too happy to talk. But Mrs. Minot watched with real satisfaction how the fresh wind blew the color back into the pale cheeks, how the eyes shone and the heart filled with delight at seeing the lovely world again, and being able to take a share in its active pleasures.
A quick train ride followed by a boat trip made Jill really happy because she couldn't stand being cooped up. While the guys wandered around, she relaxed under the awning, too content to chat. Mrs. Minot, however, was genuinely pleased to see the fresh wind bring color back to Jill's pale cheeks, how her eyes sparkled, and how her heart filled with joy at the sight of the beautiful world again and the chance to enjoy its lively pleasures.
The Willows was a long, low house close to the beach, and as full as a beehive of pleasant people, all intent on having a good time. A great many children were swarming about, and Jill found it impossible to sleep after her journey, there was such a lively clatter of tongues on the piazzas, and so many feet going to and fro in the halls. She lay down obediently while Mrs. Minot settled matters in the two airy rooms and gave her some dinner, but she kept popping up her head to look out of the window to see what she could see. Just opposite stood an artist's cottage and studio, with all manner of charming galleries, towers, steps, and even a sort of drawbridge to pull up when the painter wished to be left in peace. He was absent now, and the visitors took possession of this fine play-place. Children were racing up and down the galleries, ladies sitting in the tower, boys disporting themselves on the roof, and young gentlemen preparing for theatricals in the large studio.
The Willows was a long, low house near the beach, buzzing with cheerful people, all focused on having a good time. A ton of kids were running around, and Jill found it impossible to sleep after her journey, as there was such a lively chatter on the porches and so many feet moving up and down the halls. She lay down obediently while Mrs. Minot worked out things in the two airy rooms and gave her some dinner, but she kept popping her head up to look out the window to see what was happening. Right across from her was an artist's cottage and studio, featuring all kinds of charming galleries, towers, steps, and even a kind of drawbridge that could be pulled up when the painter wanted some peace. He was away at the moment, and the visitors took over this lovely play area. Kids were racing up and down the galleries, ladies were sitting in the tower, boys were having fun on the roof, and young men were getting ready for performances in the big studio.
“What fun I'll have over there,” thought Jill, watching the merry scene with intense interest, and wondering if the little girls she saw were as nice as Molly and Merry.
“What fun I'm going to have over there,” thought Jill, watching the cheerful scene with great interest and wondering if the little girls she saw were as nice as Molly and Merry.
Then there were glimpses of the sea beyond the green bank where a path wound along to the beach, whence came the cool dash of waves, and now and then the glimmer of a passing sail.
Then there were glimpses of the sea beyond the green bank where a path wound down to the beach, from where the cool splash of waves came, and now and then the shine of a passing sail.
“Oh, when can I go out? It looks so lovely, I can't wait long,” she said, looking as eager as a little gull shut up in a cage and pining for its home on the wide ocean.
“Oh, when can I go out? It looks so nice, I can’t wait much longer,” she said, looking as eager as a little seagull trapped in a cage and longing for its freedom on the open ocean.
“As soon as it is a little cooler, dear, I'm getting ready for our trip, but we must be careful and not do too much at once. 'Slow and sure' is our motto,” answered Mrs. Minot, busily collecting the camp-stools, the shawls, the air-cushions, and the big parasols.
“As soon as it cools down a bit, dear, I’m getting ready for our trip, but we need to be careful and not rush things. 'Slow and steady' is our motto,” replied Mrs. Minot, busily gathering the camp chairs, shawls, cushions, and large umbrellas.
“I'll be good, only do let me have my sailor-hat to wear, and my new suit. I'm not a bit tired, and I do want to be like other folks right off,” said Jill, who had been improving rapidly of late, and felt much elated at being able to drive out nearly every day, to walk a little, and sit up some hours without any pain or fatigue.
“I'll be good, just let me have my sailor hat to wear and my new suit. I'm not tired at all, and I really want to be like everyone else right away,” said Jill, who had been getting better quickly lately and felt really happy about being able to go out almost every day, walk a bit, and sit up for a few hours without any pain or exhaustion.
To gratify her, the blue flannel suit with its white trimming was put on, and Mamma was just buttoning the stout boots when Jack thundered at the door, and burst in with all sorts of glorious news.
To make her happy, the blue flannel suit with its white trim was put on, and Mom was just buttoning the sturdy boots when Jack pounded on the door and rushed in with all kinds of exciting news.
“Do come out, mother, it's perfectly splendid on the beach! I've found a nice place for Jill to sit, and it's only a step. Lots of capital fellows here; one has a bicycle, and is going to teach us to ride. No end of fun up at the hotel, and every one seems glad to see us. Two ladies asked about Jill, and one of the girls has got some shells all ready for her, Gerty Somebody, and her mother is so pretty and jolly, I like her ever so much. They sit at our table, and Wally is the boy, younger than I am, but very pleasant. Bacon is the fellow in knickerbockers; just wish you could see what stout legs he's got! Cox is the chap for me, though: we are going fishing to-morrow. He's got a sweet-looking mother, and a sister for you, Jill. Now, then, do come on, I'll take the traps.”
“Come on out, Mom, the beach is amazing! I found a great spot for Jill to sit, and it’s just a short walk. There are tons of great guys here; one has a bike and is going to teach us how to ride. There's so much fun happening at the hotel, and everyone seems really happy to see us. Two ladies asked about Jill, and one of the girls has some shells ready for her, Gerty Somebody, and her mom is really pretty and cheerful; I like her a lot. They sit at our table, and Wally is the boy, younger than I am but really nice. Bacon is the guy in knickerbockers; you’d laugh at how stout his legs are! Cox is the guy I like, though; we’re going fishing tomorrow. He has a lovely mom and a sister for you, Jill. Now, come on, I’ll grab the gear.”
Off they went, and Jill thought that very short walk to the shore the most delightful she ever took; for people smiled at the little invalid as she went slowly by leaning on Mrs. Minot's arm, while Jack pranced in front, doing the honors, as if he owned the whole Atlantic. A new world opened to her eyes as they came out upon the pebbly beach full of people enjoying their afternoon promenade. Jill save one rapturous “Oh!” and then sat on her stool, forgetting everything but the beautiful blue ocean rolling away to meet the sky, with nothing to break the wide expanse but a sail here and there, a point of rocks on one hand, the little pier on the other, and white gulls skimming by on their wide wings.
Off they went, and Jill thought that short walk to the shore was the most delightful one she had ever taken; people smiled at the little invalid as she slowly passed, leaning on Mrs. Minot's arm, while Jack pranced ahead, acting like he owned the whole Atlantic. A new world opened up to her as they stepped onto the pebbly beach filled with people enjoying their afternoon stroll. Jill let out one rapturous “Oh!” and then sat on her stool, forgetting everything except the beautiful blue ocean stretching out to meet the sky, with nothing to interrupt the vastness except for an occasional sail, a point of rocks to one side, the little pier on the other, and white gulls gliding by on their wide wings.
While she sat enjoying herself, Jack showed his mother the place he had found, and a very nice one it was. Just under the green bank lay an old boat propped up with some big stones. A willow drooped over it, the tide rippled up within a few yards of it, and a fine view of the waves could be seen as they dashed over the rocks at the point.
While she sat having a good time, Jack showed his mom the spot he had discovered, and it was a really nice one. Just beneath the green bank lay an old boat supported by some large stones. A willow drooped over it, the tide rippled within a few yards of it, and you could see a great view of the waves crashing over the rocks at the point.
“Isn't it a good cubby-house? Ben Cox and I fixed it for Jill, and she can have it for hers. Put her cushions and things there on the sand the children have thrown in—that will make it soft; then these seats will do for tables; and up in the bow I'm going to have that old rusty tin boiler full of salt-water, so she can put seaweed and crabs and all sorts of chaps in it for an aquarium, you know,” explained Jack, greatly interested in establishing his family comfortably before he left them.
“Isn't this a great playhouse? Ben Cox and I built it for Jill, and now it's hers. She can put her cushions and stuff in there on the sand the kids have tossed in—that'll make it cozy; then these seats can serve as tables; and up in the front, I'm going to put that old rusty tin boiler filled with salt water, so she can collect seaweed and crabs and all kinds of little creatures for an aquarium, you know,” Jack explained, really excited about setting up a nice spot for his family before he headed off.
“There couldn't be a nicer place, and it is very kind of you to get it ready. Spread the shawls and settle Jill, then you needn't think of us any more, but go and scramble with Frank. I see him over there with his spy-glass and some pleasant-looking boys,” said Mamma, bustling about in great spirits.
“There couldn’t be a nicer place, and it’s really sweet of you to set it up. Spread out the shawls and help Jill get comfortable, then you don’t have to worry about us anymore; just go and have fun with Frank. I see him over there with his binoculars and some nice-looking boys,” said Mom, bustling around in high spirits.
So the red cushions were placed, the plaids laid, and the little work-basket set upon the seat, all ready for Jill, who was charmed with her nest, and cuddled down under the big parasol, declaring she would keep house there every day.
So the red cushions were arranged, the blankets spread out, and the little sewing basket set on the seat, all ready for Jill, who was delighted with her cozy spot, snuggling under the big umbrella and saying she would run her household there every day.
Even the old boiler pleased her, and Jack raced over the beach to begin his search for inhabitants for the new aquarium, leaving Jill to make friends with some pretty babies digging in the sand, while Mamma sat on the camp-stool and talked with a friend from Harmony Village.
Even the old boiler made her happy, and Jack ran across the beach to start looking for creatures for the new aquarium, leaving Jill to make friends with some cute kids playing in the sand, while Mom sat on the camp stool and chatted with a friend from Harmony Village.
It seemed as if there could not be anything more delightful than to lie there lulled by the sound of the sea, watching the sunset and listening to the pleasant babble of little voices close by. But when they went to tea in the great hall, with six tables full of merry people, and half a dozen maids flying about, Jill thought that was even better, because it was so new to her. Gerty and Wally nodded to her, and their pretty mamma was so kind and so gay, that Jill could not feel bashful after the first few minutes, and soon looked about her, sure of seeing friendly faces everywhere. Frank and Jack ate as if the salt air had already improved their appetites, and talked about Bacon and Cox as if they had been bosom friends for years. Mamma was as happy as they, for her friend, Mrs. Hammond, sat close by; and this rosy lady, who had been a physician, cheered her up by predicting that Jill would soon be running about as well as ever.
It felt like nothing could be more enjoyable than lying there, lulled by the sound of the ocean, watching the sunset, and listening to the cheerful chatter of little voices nearby. But when they went to tea in the grand hall, filled with six tables of cheerful people and a handful of maids bustling about, Jill thought that was even better because it was so new to her. Gerty and Wally waved at her, and their lovely mom was so kind and cheerful that Jill couldn't feel shy after the first few minutes. She soon looked around, confident she would see friendly faces everywhere. Frank and Jack ate like the salty air had already whetted their appetites and chatted about Bacon and Cox as if they had been best friends for years. Mom was as happy as they were because her friend, Mrs. Hammond, sat nearby; this rosy-cheeked lady, who had been a doctor, lifted her spirits by predicting that Jill would soon be running around just as well as ever.
But the best of all was in the evening, when the elder people gathered in the parlors and played Twenty Questions, while the children looked on for an hour before going to bed, much amused at the sight of grown people laughing, squabbling, dodging, and joking as if they had all become young again; for, as every one knows, it is impossible to help lively skirmishes when that game is played. Jill lay in the sofa corner enjoying it all immensely; for she never saw anything so droll, and found it capital fun to help guess the thing, or try to puzzle the opposite side. Her quick wits and bright face attracted people, and in the pauses of the sport she held quite a levee, for everybody was interested in the little invalid. The girls shyly made friends in their own way, the mammas told thrilling tales of the accidents their darlings had survived, several gentlemen kindly offered their boats, and the boys, with the best intentions in life, suggested strolls of two or three miles to Rafe's Chasm and Norman's Woe, or invited her to tennis and archery, as if violent exercise was the cure for all human ills. She was very grateful, and reluctantly went away to bed, declaring, when she got upstairs, that these new friends were the dearest people she ever met, and the Willows the most delightful place in the whole world.
But the best part was in the evening when the adults gathered in the living room to play Twenty Questions, while the kids watched for an hour before bedtime, highly entertained by seeing grownups laughing, bickering, dodging, and joking as if they were young again; because, as everyone knows, lively debates are inevitable when that game is played. Jill lay in the corner of the sofa, enjoying it all immensely; she had never seen anything so funny and found it great fun to help guess the answer or try to stump the other side. Her quick mind and bright face drew people in, and during breaks in the game, she had quite a little gathering of admirers, as everyone was interested in the little invalid. The girls shyly made friends in their own way, the moms shared thrilling stories of the accidents their children had survived, several guys kindly offered their boats, and the boys, with the best intentions in the world, suggested walks of two or three miles to Rafe's Chasm and Norman's Woe, or invited her to play tennis and archery, as if vigorous exercise was the cure for all problems. She was very grateful and reluctantly went to bed, declaring when she got upstairs that these new friends were the sweetest people she had ever met, and the Willows was the most delightful place in the world.
Next day a new life began for the young folks—a very healthy, happy life; and all threw themselves into it so heartily, that it was impossible to help getting great good from it, for these summer weeks, if well spent, work miracles in tired bodies and souls. Frank took a fancy to the bicycle boy, and, being able to hire one of the breakneck articles, soon learned to ride it; and the two might be seen wildly working their long legs on certain smooth stretches of road, or getting up their muscle rowing about the bay till they were almost as brown and nautical in appearance and language as the fishermen who lived in nooks and corners along the shore.
The next day marked the start of a new life for the young people—a healthy, happy life; and everyone threw themselves into it so enthusiastically that it was impossible not to benefit greatly from it. These summer weeks, if enjoyed properly, work wonders for tired bodies and souls. Frank took a liking to the bike-riding boy, and after managing to rent one of those risky bikes, he quickly learned how to ride it. The two could be seen energetically pedaling their long legs on certain smooth stretches of road or building their muscles while rowing around the bay until they became almost as tan and casual in their speech as the fishermen who lived in the nooks and crannies along the shore.
Jack struck up a great friendship with the sturdy Bacon and the agreeable Cox: the latter, being about his own age, was his especial favorite; and they soon were called Box and Cox by the other fellows, which did not annoy them a bit, as both had played parts in that immortal farce. They had capital times fishing, scrambling over the rocks, playing ball and tennis, and rainy days they took possession of the studio opposite, drew up the portcullis, and gallantly defended the castle, which some of the others besieged with old umbrellas for shields, bats for battering-rams, and bunches of burrs for cannon-balls. Great larks went on over there, while the girls applauded from the piazza or chamber-windows, and made a gay flag for the victors to display from the tower when the fight was over.
Jack formed a strong friendship with the tough Bacon and the easy-going Cox. Since Cox was about his age, he quickly became Jack's favorite. The other kids started calling them Box and Cox, which didn’t bother them at all since both had played roles in that famous farce. They had a blast fishing, climbing over rocks, playing ball and tennis, and when it rained, they took over the studio across the way, pulled up the portcullis, and bravely defended the castle. Some of the other kids attacked with old umbrellas for shields, bats for battering rams, and bunches of burrs for cannonballs. A lot of fun was had over there while the girls cheered from the porch or their windows, making a colorful flag for the winners to show off from the tower when the battle was done.
But Jill had the best time of all, for each day brought increasing strength and spirits, and she improved so fast it was hard to believe that she was the same girl who lay so long almost helpless in the Bird Room at home. Such lively letters as she sent her mother, all about her new friends, her fine sails, drives, and little walks; the good times she had in the evening, the lovely things people gave her, and she was learning to make with shells and sea-weed, and what splendid fun it was to keep house in a boat.
But Jill had the best time of all, as each day brought her more strength and better spirits. She improved so quickly it was hard to believe she was the same girl who lay almost helpless in the Bird Room at home for so long. She sent such lively letters to her mother about her new friends, her great sailing trips, drives, and little walks; the fun she had in the evenings, the lovely things people gave her, and what she was learning to create with shells and seaweed. It was such a blast to keep house on a boat.
This last amusement soon grew quite absorbing, and her “cubby,” as she called it, rapidly became a pretty grotto, where she lived like a little mermaid, daily loving more and more the beauty of the wonderful sea. Finding the boat too sunny at times, the boys cut long willow boughs and arched them over the seats, laying hemlock branches across till a green roof made it cool and shady inside. There Jill sat or lay among her cushions reading, trying to sketch, sorting shells, drying gay sea-weeds, or watching her crabs, jelly-fish, and anemones in the old boiler, now buried in sand and edged about with moss from the woods.
This last activity quickly became quite engaging, and her “cubby,” as she called it, turned into a lovely little hideout where she lived like a little mermaid, increasingly enchanted by the beauty of the amazing sea. When the boat got too sunny at times, the boys cut long willow branches and arched them over the seats, laying hemlock branches across until a green roof created a cool and shady spot inside. There, Jill sat or lay among her cushions, reading, trying to sketch, sorting shells, drying colorful seaweeds, or watching her crabs, jellyfish, and anemones in the old boiler, which was now buried in sand and surrounded by moss from the woods.
Nobody disturbed her treasures, but kindly added to them, and often when she went to her nest she found fruit or flowers, books or bon-bons, laid ready for her. Every one pitied and liked the bright little girl who could not run and frisk with the rest, who was so patient and cheerful after her long confinement, ready to help others, and so grateful for any small favor. She found now that the weary months had not been wasted, and was very happy to discover in herself a new sort of strength and sweetness that was not only a comfort to her, but made those about her love and trust her. The songs she had learned attracted the babies, who would leave their play to peep at her and listen when she sung over her work. Passers-by paused to hear the blithe voice of the bird in the green cage, and other invalids, strolling on the beach, would take heart when they saw the child so happy in spite of her great trial.
Nobody disturbed her treasures but kindly added to them. Often when she returned to her nest, she found fruit or flowers, books or treats, all laid out for her. Everyone felt sorry for and liked the bright little girl who couldn’t run and play like the others. She was so patient and cheerful after her long confinement, always ready to help others and grateful for any small favor. She realized that the weary months hadn’t been wasted and was very happy to discover a new kind of strength and sweetness in herself that not only comforted her but also made those around her love and trust her. The songs she had learned attracted the babies, who would leave their play to peek at her and listen while she sang over her work. Passers-by paused to hear the cheerful voice of the bird in the green cage, and other invalids strolling on the beach felt uplifted when they saw the child so happy despite her great challenge.
The boys kept all their marine curiosities for her, and were always ready to take her a row or a sail, as the bay was safe and that sort of travelling suited her better than driving. But the girls had capital times together, and it did Jill good to see another sort from those she knew at home. She had been so much petted of late, that she was getting rather vain of her small accomplishments, and being with strangers richer, better bred and educated than herself, made her more humble in some things, while it showed her the worth of such virtues as she could honestly claim. Mamie Cox took her to drive in the fine carriage of her mamma, and Jill was much impressed by the fact that Mamie was not a bit proud about it, and did not put on any airs, though she had a maid to take care of her. Gerty wore pretty costumes, and came down with pink and blue ribbons in her hair that Jill envied very much; yet Gerty liked her curls, and longed to have some, while her mother, “the lady from Philadelphia,” as they called her, was so kind and gay that Jill quite adored her, and always felt as if sunshine had come into the room when she entered. Two little sisters were very interesting to her, and made her long for one of her own when she saw them going about together and heard them talk of their pleasant home, where the great silk factories were. But they invited her to come and see the wonderful cocoons, and taught her to knot pretty gray fringe on a cushion, which delighted her, being so new and easy. There were several other nice little lasses, and they all gathered about Jill with the sweet sympathy children are so quick to show toward those in pain or misfortune. She thought they would not care for a poor little girl like herself, yet here she was the queen of the troupe, and this discovery touched and pleased her very much.
The boys saved all their marine finds for her and were always excited to take her rowing or sailing since the bay was safe and that kind of travel suited her more than driving. Meanwhile, the girls had a fantastic time together, and it did Jill good to meet a different crowd than the ones she knew at home. She had been pampered lately, which was making her a bit vain about her minor talents. Being with strangers who were wealthier, better-bred, and more educated than her made her more humble about some things while also helping her appreciate the worth of the qualities she could genuinely claim. Mamie Cox took her for a ride in her mom’s fancy carriage, and Jill was really impressed that Mamie wasn’t at all stuck up about it and didn’t act superior, even though she had a maid. Gerty wore pretty outfits and came down adorned with pink and blue ribbons in her hair that Jill envied a lot; yet Gerty admired Jill’s curls and wished she could have some, while her mother, “the lady from Philadelphia,” as they referred to her, was so kind and cheerful that Jill absolutely adored her. She always felt like sunshine filled the room when her mother walked in. The two little sisters fascinated her and made her wish for a sister of her own when she saw them together and heard them talk about their lovely home near the big silk factories. They invited her to come see the amazing cocoons and taught her how to knot pretty gray fringe on a cushion, which thrilled her since it was so new and easy. There were several other nice little girls, and they all gathered around Jill with the sweet understanding that kids naturally show to those who are hurting. She thought they wouldn't care for a poor girl like her, yet here she was, the queen of the group, and this realization really touched and pleased her.
In the morning they camped round the boat on the stones with books, gay work, and merry chatter, till bathing-time. Then the beach was full of life and fun, for every one looked so droll in the flannel suits, it was hard to believe that the neat ladies and respectable gentlemen who went into the little houses could be the same persons as the queer, short-skirted women with old hats tied down, and bareheaded, barefooted men in old suits, who came skipping over the sand to disport themselves in the sea in the most undignified ways. The boys raced about, looking like circus-tumblers, and the babies were regular little cupids, running away from the waves that tried to kiss their flying feet.
In the morning, they set up camp around the boat on the stones with books, fun activities, and cheerful chatter until it was time to swim. Then the beach was lively and entertaining, as everyone looked so funny in their flannel suits. It was hard to believe that the well-dressed ladies and respectable gentlemen who went into the little houses were the same ones as the quirky, short-skirted women with old hats tied down, and the bareheaded, barefoot men in worn suits, who dashed across the sand to play in the sea in the most undignified ways. The boys raced around, looking like circus performers, and the babies were like little cupids, running away from the waves that tried to splash their tiny feet.
Some of the young ladies and girls were famous swimmers, and looked very pretty in their bright red and blue costumes, with loose hair and gay stockings, as they danced into the water and floated away as fearlessly as real mermaidens. Jill had her quiet dip and good rubbing each fine day, and then lay upon the warm sand watching the pranks of the others, and longing to run and dive and shout and tumble with the rest. Now that she was among the well and active, it seemed harder to be patient than when shut up and unable to stir. She felt so much better, and had so little pain to remind her of past troubles, it was almost impossible to help forgetting the poor back and letting her recovered spirits run away with her. If Mrs. Minot had not kept good watch, she would have been off more than once, so eager was she to be “like other girls” again, so difficult was it to keep the restless feet quietly folded among the red cushions.
Some of the young women and girls were well-known swimmers, looking lovely in their bright red and blue swimsuits, with loose hair and colorful stockings, as they danced into the water and floated away like real mermaids. Jill enjoyed her daily swim and a good scrub, then lay on the warm sand watching the antics of the others, wishing she could run, dive, shout, and tumble with them. Now that she was surrounded by the healthy and active, it felt harder to be patient than when she was stuck and unable to move. She felt so much better and had so little pain to remind her of her past troubles that it was almost impossible not to forget about her sore back and let her spirits get the best of her. If Mrs. Minot hadn't kept a close eye on her, she would have taken off more than once, so eager was she to be “like other girls” again, and so hard was it to keep her restless feet still among the red cushions.
One day she did yield to temptation, and took a little voyage which might have been her last, owing to the carelessness of those whom she trusted. It was a good lesson, and made her as meek as a lamb during the rest of her stay. Mrs. Minot drove to Gloucester one afternoon, leaving Jill safely established after her nap in the boat, with Gerty and Mamie making lace beside her.
One day she gave in to temptation and went on a little trip that could have been her last, due to the negligence of those she trusted. It was a valuable lesson and made her as gentle as a lamb for the rest of her time there. Mrs. Minot drove to Gloucester one afternoon, leaving Jill comfortably settled after her nap in the boat, with Gerty and Mamie making lace beside her.
“Don't try to walk or run about, my dear. Sit on the piazza if you get tired of this, and amuse yourself quietly till I come back. I'll not forget the worsted and the canvas,” said Mamma, peeping over the bank for a last word as she waited for the omnibus to come along.
“Don’t try to walk or run around, my dear. Just sit on the porch if you get tired of this, and keep yourself entertained quietly until I come back. I won't forget the yarn and the canvas,” said Mom, glancing over the bank for one last word as she waited for the bus to arrive.
“Oh, don't forget the Gibraltars!” cried Jill, popping her head out of the green roof.
“Oh, don't forget the Gibraltars!” yelled Jill, poking her head out of the green roof.
“Nor the bananas, please!” added Gerty, looking round one end.
“Definitely not the bananas, please!” Gerty added, glancing around one end.
“Nor the pink and blue ribbon to tie our shell-baskets,” called Mamie, nearly tumbling into the aquarium at the other end.
“Nor the pink and blue ribbon to tie our shell-baskets,” called Mamie, nearly falling into the aquarium at the other end.
Mrs. Minot laughed, and promised, and rumbled away, leaving Jill to an experience which she never forgot.
Mrs. Minot laughed, made a promise, and drove off, leaving Jill with an experience she would never forget.
For half an hour the little girls worked busily, then the boys came for Gerty and Mamie to go to the Chasm with a party of friends who were to leave next day. Off they went, and Jill felt very lonely as the gay voices died away. Every one had gone somewhere, and only little Harry Hammond and his maid were on the beach. Two or three sand-pipers ran about among the pebbles, and Jill envied them their nimble legs so much, that she could not resist getting up to take a few steps. She longed to run straight away over the firm, smooth sand, and feel again the delight of swift motion; but she dared not try it, and stood leaning on her tall parasol with her book in her hand, when Frank, Jack, and the bicycle boy came rowing lazily along and hailed her.
For half an hour, the little girls worked busily, then the boys came to get Gerty and Mamie to join a group of friends going to the Chasm the next day. They all left, and Jill felt really lonely as the cheerful voices faded away. Everyone had gone somewhere, and only little Harry Hammond and his maid were left on the beach. A few sandpipers scurried around among the pebbles, and Jill envied their quick little legs so much that she couldn't help getting up to take a few steps. She longed to run across the firm, smooth sand and feel the thrill of moving fast again; but she didn’t dare to try it and stood there leaning on her tall parasol with her book in hand when Frank, Jack, and the bicycle boy came rowing lazily by and called out to her.
“Come for a sail, Jill? Take you anywhere you like,” called Jack, touched by the lonely figure on the beach.
“Wanna go for a sail, Jill? I can take you anywhere you want,” shouted Jack, moved by the lonely figure on the beach.
“I'd love to go, if you will row. Mamma made me promise not to go sailing without a man to take care of me. Would it spoil your fun to have me?” answered Jill, eagerly.
“I'd love to go, if you'll row. Mom made me promise not to go sailing without a guy to look after me. Would it ruin your fun to have me along?” answered Jill, eagerly.
“Not a bit; come out on the big stones and we'll take you aboard,” said Frank, as they steered to the place where she could embark the easiest.
“Not at all; come out on the big rocks and we'll help you get on board,” said Frank, as they navigated to the spot where she could board the easiest.
“All the rest are gone to the Chasm. I wanted to go, because I've never seen it; but, of course, I had to give it up, as I do most of the fun;” and Jill sat down with an impatient sigh.
“All the others went to the Chasm. I wanted to go because I've never seen it, but of course, I had to skip it, like I do with most of the fun,” and Jill sat down with an impatient sigh.
“We'll row you round there. Can't land, but you can see the place and shout to the others, if that will be any comfort to you,” proposed Frank, as they pulled away round the pier.
“We'll row you over there. We can't land, but you can see the place and shout to the others if that makes you feel any better,” suggested Frank as they rowed away from the pier.
“Oh, yes, that would be lovely!” and Jill smiled at Jack, who was steering, for she found it impossible to be dismal now with the fresh wind blowing in her face, the blue waves slapping against the boat, and three good-natured lads ready to gratify her wishes.
“Oh, yes, that would be great!” and Jill smiled at Jack, who was steering, because she couldn’t feel down with the fresh wind in her face, the blue waves hitting the boat, and three good-natured guys ready to make her happy.
Away they went, laughing and talking gayly till they came to Goodwin's Rocks, where an unusual number of people were to be seen though the tide was going out, and no white spray was dashing high into the air to make a sight worth seeing.
Away they went, laughing and chatting happily until they reached Goodwin's Rocks, where an unexpected number of people were gathered even though the tide was going out, and no white spray was shooting high into the air to create a spectacular view.
“What do you suppose they are about? Never saw such a lot of folks at this time. Shouldn't wonder if something had happened. I say, put me ashore, and I'll cut up and see,” said the bicycle boy, who was of an inquiring turn.
“What do you think they’re about? I’ve never seen so many people at this time. I wouldn’t be surprised if something happened. I say, drop me off, and I’ll go check it out,” said the bicycle boy, who was naturally curious.
“I'll go with you,” said Frank; “it won't take but a minute, and I'd like to discover what it is. May be something we ought to know about.”
“I'll go with you,” Frank said. “It'll just take a minute, and I want to see what it is. It could be something we need to know about.”
So the boys pulled round into a quiet nook, and the two elder ones scrambled up the rocks, to disappear in the crowd. Five, ten, fifteen minutes passed, and they did not return. Jack grew impatient, so did Jill, and bade him run up and bring them back. Glad to know what kept them, Jack departed, to be swallowed up in his turn, for not a sign of a boy did she see after that; and, having vainly strained her eyes to discover the attraction which held them, she gave it up, lay down on their jackets, and began to read.
So the boys wandered into a quiet spot, and the two older ones climbed up the rocks, disappearing into the crowd. Five, ten, fifteen minutes went by, and they didn’t come back. Jack got impatient, and so did Jill, and told him to go up and bring them back. Happy to find out what was keeping them, Jack left, only to vanish himself, as there were no signs of a boy after that; and, having tried in vain to see what was holding them, she gave up, lay down on their jackets, and started to read.
Then the treacherous tide, as it ebbed lower and lower down the beach, began to lure the boat away; for it was not fastened, and when lightened of its load was an easy prize to the hungry sea, always ready to steal all it can. Jill knew nothing of this, for her story was dull, the gentle motion proved soothing, and before she knew it she was asleep. Little by little the runaway boat slid farther from the shore, and presently was floating out to sea with its drowsy freight, while the careless boys, unconscious of the time they were wasting, lingered to see group after group photographed by the enterprising man who had trundled his camera to the rocks.
Then the sneaky tide, as it went lower and lower down the beach, started to pull the boat away; it wasn't tied down, and when it was lightened of its load, it became an easy target for the hungry sea, always ready to take whatever it can. Jill didn’t realize any of this, as her story was boring, the gentle rocking felt soothing, and before she knew it, she was asleep. Bit by bit, the drifting boat slid further from the shore and soon was floating out to sea with its sleepy passenger, while the careless boys, unaware of the time they were wasting, hung around to watch group after group get photographed by the eager man who had rolled his camera over to the rocks.
In the midst of a dream about home, Jill was roused by a loud shout, and, starting up so suddenly that the sun-umbrella went overboard, she found herself sailing off alone, while the distracted lads roared and beckoned vainly from the cove. The oars lay at their feet, where they left them; and the poor child was quite helpless, for she could not manage the sail, and even the parasol, with which she might have paddled a little, had gone down with all sail set. For a minute, Jill was so frightened that she could only look about her with a scared face, and wonder if drowning was a very disagreeable thing. Then the sight of the bicycle boy struggling with Jack, who seemed inclined to swim after her, and Frank shouting wildly, “Hold on! Come back!” made her laugh in spite of her fear, it was so comical, and their distress so much greater than hers, since it was their own carelessness which caused the trouble.
In the middle of a dream about home, Jill was startled awake by a loud shout, and, jumping up so suddenly that the sun-umbrella went overboard, she found herself sailing off alone while the panicked guys yelled and waved helplessly from the cove. The oars were at their feet, where they had left them; and the poor girl was completely helpless, as she couldn't handle the sail, and even the parasol, which she could have used to paddle a little, had gone down with everything set. For a moment, Jill was so scared that she could only look around with a frightened expression, wondering if drowning was really as awful as everyone said. Then, seeing the bicycle guy struggling with Jack, who seemed ready to swim after her, and Frank shouting frantically, “Hold on! Come back!” made her laugh despite her fear; it was just so funny, and their panic was so much worse than hers since it was their own carelessness that got them into this mess.
“I can't come back! There's nothing to hold on to! You didn't fasten me, and now I don't know where I'm going!” cried Jill, looking from the shore to the treacherous sea that was gently carrying her away.
“I can't come back! There's nothing to hold on to! You didn't secure me, and now I don't know where I'm going!” cried Jill, looking from the shore to the dangerous sea that was softly drifting her away.
“Keep cool! We'll get a boat and come after you,” roared Frank, before he followed Jack, who had collected his wits and was tearing up the rocks like a chamois hunter.
“Stay calm! We'll grab a boat and come for you,” yelled Frank, before he followed Jack, who had collected himself and was racing up the rocks like a chamois hunter.
The bicycle boy calmly sat down to keep his eye on the runaway, calling out from time to time such cheering remarks as “All aboard for Liverpool! Give my love to Victoria! Luff and bear away when you come to Halifax! If you are hard up for provisions, you'll find an apple and some bait in my coat-pocket,” and other directions for a comfortable voyage, till his voice was lost in the distance as a stronger current bore her swiftly away and the big waves began to tumble and splash.
The bicycle boy calmly sat down to keep an eye on the runaway, occasionally shouting cheerful comments like, “All aboard for Liverpool! Send my love to Victoria! Adjust your sails when you reach Halifax! If you're short on food, you'll find an apple and some bait in my coat pocket,” along with other tips for a smooth journey, until his voice faded into the distance as a stronger current carried her swiftly away and the big waves started to crash and splash.
At first Jill had laughed at his efforts to keep up her spirits, but when the boat floated round a point of rock that shut in the cove, she felt all alone, and sat quite still, wondering what would become of her. She turned her back to the sea and looked at the dear, safe land, which never had seemed so green and beautiful before. Up on the hill rustled the wood through which the happy party were wandering to the Chasm. On the rocks she still saw the crowd all busy with their own affairs, unconscious of her danger. Here and there artists were sketching in picturesque spots, and in one place an old gentleman sat fishing peacefully. Jill called and waved her handkerchief, but he never looked up, and an ugly little dog barked at her in what seemed to her a most cruel way.
At first, Jill laughed at his attempts to cheer her up, but when the boat rounded a rocky point that closed off the cove, she felt completely alone and sat still, wondering what would happen to her. She turned away from the sea and looked at the familiar, safe land, which had never seemed so green and beautiful before. Up on the hill, the trees rustled as the happy group wandered toward the Chasm. On the rocks, she still saw the crowd caught up in their own activities, unaware of her danger. Here and there, artists were sketching in scenic spots, and in one corner, an old man sat fishing peacefully. Jill called out and waved her handkerchief, but he never looked up, and a little dog barked at her in what she thought was a really cruel way.
“Nobody sees or hears or cares, and those horrid boys will never catch up!” she cried in despair, as the boat began to rock more and more, and the loud swash of water dashing in and out of the Chasm drew nearer and nearer. Holding on now with both hands she turned and looked straight before her, pale and shivering, while her eyes tried to see some sign of hope among the steep cliffs that rose up on the left. No one was there, though usually at this hour they were full of visitors, and it was time for the walkers to have arrived.
"Nobody sees, hears, or cares, and those awful boys will never catch up!” she exclaimed in despair as the boat started to rock more and more, and the loud sound of water crashing in and out of the Chasm grew closer and closer. Gripping with both hands, she turned to look straight ahead, pale and shivering, while her eyes searched for any sign of hope among the steep cliffs that rose to her left. There was no one there, even though this time usually saw plenty of visitors, and it was supposed to be when the walkers had arrived."
“I wonder if Gerty and Mamie will be sorry if I'm drowned,” thought Jill, remembering the poor girl who had been lost in the Chasm not long ago. Her lively fancy pictured the grief of her friends at her loss; but that did not help or comfort her now, and as her anxious gaze wandered along the shore, she said aloud, in a pensive tone,—
“I wonder if Gerty and Mamie will be sad if I drown,” thought Jill, remembering the poor girl who had been lost in the Chasm not long ago. Her vivid imagination pictured the sorrow of her friends at her loss; but that didn’t help or comfort her now, and as her worried gaze wandered along the shore, she said aloud, in a thoughtful tone,—
“Perhaps I shall be wrecked on Norman's Woe, and somebody will make poetry about me. It would be pretty to read, but I don't want to die that way. Oh, why did I come! Why didn't I stay safe and comfortable in my own boat?”
“Maybe I’ll end up stranded on Norman’s Woe, and someone will write poetry about me. It would be nice to read, but I don’t want to die like that. Oh, why did I come! Why didn’t I stay safe and comfortable in my own boat?”
At the thought a sob rose, and poor Jill laid her head down on her lap to cry with all her heart, feeling very helpless, small, and forsaken alone there on the great sea. In the midst of her tears came the thought, “When people are in danger, they ask God to save them;” and, slipping down upon her knees, she said her prayer as she had never said it before, for when human help seems gone we turn to Him as naturally as lost children cry to their father, and feel sure that he will hear and answer them.
At the thought, a sob rose up, and poor Jill laid her head on her lap to cry with all her heart, feeling very helpless, small, and abandoned out there on the vast sea. Amid her tears, she thought, “When people are in danger, they ask God to save them;” and, getting down on her knees, she prayed like never before, because when human help seems absent, we turn to Him just as lost children cry out to their father, feeling confident that He will hear and respond.
After that she felt better, and wiped away the drops that blinded her, to look out again like a shipwrecked mariner watching for a sail. And there it was! Close by, coming swiftly on with a man behind it, a sturdy brown fisher, busy with his lobster-pots, and quite unconscious how like an angel he looked to the helpless little girl in the rudderless boat.
After that, she felt better and wiped away the tears that were blinding her, to look out again like a shipwrecked sailor scanning for a rescue boat. And there it was! Right nearby, coming quickly toward her with a man behind it, a strong brown fisherman working with his lobster traps, completely unaware of how much like an angel he appeared to the helpless little girl in the aimless boat.
“Hi! hi! Oh, please do stop and get me! I'm lost, no oars, nobody to fix the sail! Oh, oh! please come!” screamed Jill, waving her hat frantically as the other boat skimmed by and the man stared at her as if she really was a mermaid with a fishy tail.
“Hi! Hi! Oh, please stop and get me! I'm lost, no oars, and nobody to fix the sail! Oh, please come!” screamed Jill, waving her hat frantically as the other boat passed by and the man stared at her as if she were really a mermaid with a fishy tail.
“Keep still! I'll come about and fetch you!” he called out; and Jill obeyed, sitting like a little image of faith, till with a good deal of shifting and flapping of the sail, the other boat came alongside and took her in tow.
“Stay still! I'll turn around and get you!” he shouted; and Jill listened, sitting like a little statue of hope, until with a lot of movement and flapping of the sail, the other boat came alongside and took her in tow.
A few words told the story, and in five minutes she was sitting snugly tucked up watching an unpleasant mass of lobsters flap about dangerously near her toes, while the boat bounded over the waves with a delightful motion, and every instant brought her nearer home. She did not say much, but felt a good deal; and when they met two boats coming to meet her, manned by very anxious crews of men and boys, she was so pale and quiet that Jack was quite bowed down with remorse, and Frank nearly pitched the bicycle boy overboard because he gayly asked Jill how she left her friends in England. There was great rejoicing over her, for the people on the rocks had heard of her loss, and ran about like ants when their hill is disturbed. Of course half a dozen amiable souls posted off to the Willows to tell the family that the little girl was drowned, so that when the rescuers appeared quite a crowd was assembled on the beach to welcome her. But Jill felt so used up with her own share of the excitement that she was glad to be carried to the house by Frank and Jack, and laid upon her bed, where Mrs. Hammond soon restored her with sugar-coated pills, and words even sweeter and more soothing.
A few words told the story, and in five minutes she was sitting comfortably, watching a bunch of lobsters flail around dangerously close to her toes, while the boat bounced over the waves in a delightful way, bringing her closer to home with every instant. She didn’t say much, but felt a lot; and when they encountered two boats coming to meet her, crewed by very worried men and boys, she looked so pale and quiet that Jack was filled with guilt, and Frank almost tossed the bike boy overboard for cheerfully asking Jill how she said goodbye to her friends in England. There was a lot of celebrating for her, as the people on the rocks had heard about her near miss and were bustling around like ants when their hill gets disturbed. Naturally, a few kind folks rushed off to the Willows to inform the family that the little girl was drowned, so by the time the rescuers arrived, a crowd had gathered on the beach to welcome her. But Jill felt so drained from her own adventure that she was relieved when Frank and Jack carried her to the house and laid her on her bed, where Mrs. Hammond quickly revived her with sugar-coated pills and even sweeter, soothing words.
Other people, busied with their own pleasures, forgot all about it by the next day; but Jill remembered that hour long afterward, both awake and asleep, for her dreams were troubled, and she often started up imploring someone to save her. Then she would recall the moment when, feeling most helpless, she had asked for help, and it had come as quickly as if that tearful little cry had been heard and answered, though her voice had been drowned by the dash of the waves that seemed ready to devour her. This made a deep impression on her, and a sense of childlike faith in the Father of all began to grow up within her; for in that lonely voyage, short as it was, she had found a very precious treasure to keep for ever, to lean on, and to love during the longer voyage which all must take before we reach our home.
Other people, caught up in their own fun, forgot all about it by the next day; but Jill remembered that moment long afterward, both when she was awake and asleep, because her dreams were disturbed, and she often woke up begging someone to save her. Then she would think back to the moment when, feeling most helpless, she had asked for help, and it had come as quickly as if that tearful cry had been heard and answered, even though her voice was drowned out by the crashing waves that seemed ready to swallow her whole. This left a strong impression on her, and a childlike faith in the Father of all began to grow within her; for in that lonely journey, brief as it was, she had discovered a very precious treasure to hold onto, and to love during the longer journey that everyone must take before we reach our home.
Chapter XXII. A Happy Day
“Oh dear! Only a week more, and then we must go back. Don't you hate the thoughts of it?” said Jack, as he was giving Jill her early walk on the beach one August morning.
“Oh no! Just one more week, and then we have to go back. Don't you dread the thought of it?” said Jack, as he took Jill for her early walk on the beach one August morning.
“Yes, it will be dreadful to leave Gerty and Mamie and all the nice people. But I'm so much better I won't have to be shut up again, even if I don't go to school. How I long to see Merry and Molly. Dear things, if it wasn't for them I should hate going home more than you do,” answered Jill, stepping along quite briskly, and finding it very hard to resist breaking into a skip or a run, she felt so well and gay.
“Yes, leaving Gerty and Mamie and all the nice people will be awful. But I’m feeling so much better that I won’t have to be cooped up again, even if I don’t go to school. I really want to see Merry and Molly. I love them so much; if it weren't for them, I would hate going home even more than you do,” replied Jill, walking along quite energetically and finding it really hard to resist breaking into a skip or a run because she felt so good and cheerful.
“Wish they could be here to-day to see the fun,” said Jack, for it was the anniversary of the founding of the place, and the people celebrated it by all sorts of festivity.
“Wish they could be here today to see the fun,” said Jack, because it was the anniversary of the founding of the place, and the people were celebrating it with all sorts of festivities.
“I did want to ask Molly, but your mother is so good to me I couldn't find courage to do it. Mammy told me not to ask for a thing, and I'm sure I don't get a chance. I feel just as if I was your truly born sister, Jack.”
“I wanted to ask Molly, but your mom is so kind to me that I couldn't bring myself to do it. Mom told me not to ask for anything, and I’m sure I don’t get the chance. I feel just like I’m your real sister, Jack.”
“That's all right, I'm glad you do,” answered Jack, comfortably, though his mind seemed a little absent and his eyes twinkled when she spoke of Molly. “Now, you sit in the cubby-house, and keep quiet till the boat comes in. Then the fun will begin, and you must be fresh and ready to enjoy it. Don't run off, now, I shall want to know where to find you by and by.”
“That's cool, I'm glad you do,” replied Jack, comfortably, although he seemed a bit distracted and his eyes sparkled when she mentioned Molly. “Now, you sit in the playhouse and stay quiet until the boat arrives. Then the fun will start, and you need to be fresh and ready to enjoy it. Don’t wander off, okay? I’ll need to know where to find you later.”
“No more running off, thank you. I'll stay here till you come, and finish this box for Molly; she has a birthday this week, and I've written to ask what day, so I can send it right up and surprise her.”
“No more running away, thanks. I’ll stay here until you get back, and finish this box for Molly; she has a birthday this week, and I’ve written to ask what day it is so I can send it right over and surprise her.”
Jack's eyes twinkled more than ever as he helped Jill settle herself in the boat, and then with a whoop he tore over the beach, as if practising for the race which was to come off in the afternoon.
Jack's eyes sparkled brighter than ever as he helped Jill get comfortable in the boat, and then with a shout, he sprinted across the beach, as if training for the race happening later that afternoon.
Jill was so busy with her work that time went quickly, and the early boat came in just as the last pink shell was stuck in its place. Putting the box in the sun to dry, she leaned out of her nook to watch the gay parties land, and go streaming up the pier along the road that went behind the bank that sheltered her. Flocks of children were running about on the sand, and presently strangers appeared, eager to see and enjoy all the delights of this gala-day.
Jill was so caught up in her work that time flew by, and the early boat arrived just as she was finishing up with the last pink shell. She placed the box in the sun to dry and leaned out of her little corner to watch the lively crowds land, making their way up the pier along the road behind the bank that sheltered her. Groups of children were playing on the sand, and soon enough, visitors showed up, excited to experience all the fun of this festive day.
“There's a fat little boy who looks ever so much like Boo,” said Jill to herself, watching the people and hoping they would not come and find her, since she had promised to stay till Jack returned.
“There's a chubby little boy who really looks a lot like Boo,” Jill said to herself, watching the people and hoping they wouldn’t come to find her, since she had promised to wait until Jack came back.
The fat little boy was staring about him in a blissful sort of maze, holding a wooden shovel in one hand and the skirts of a young girl with the other. Her back was turned to Jill, but something in the long brown braid with a fly-away blue bow hanging down her back looked very familiar to Jill. So did the gray suit and the Japanese umbrella; but the hat was strange, and while she was thinking how natural the boots looked, the girl turned round.
The chubby little boy was looking around him in a happy daze, holding a wooden shovel in one hand and the dress of a young girl with the other. Her back was to Jill, but something about the long brown braid with a messy blue bow hanging down her back seemed very familiar to Jill. So did the gray suit and the Japanese umbrella; but the hat was unusual, and while she was pondering how natural the boots looked, the girl turned around.
“Why, how much she looks like Molly! It can't be—yes, it might, I do believe it is!” cried Jill, starting up and hardly daring to trust her own eyes.
“Wow, she looks just like Molly! It can't be—wait, maybe it is; I really think it is!” exclaimed Jill, jumping up and barely believing what she saw.
As she came out of her nest and showed herself, there could be no doubt about the other girl, for she gave one shout and came racing over the beach with both arms out, while her hat blew off unheeded, and the gay umbrella flew away, to the great delight of all the little people except Boo, who was upset by his sister's impetuous rush, and lay upon his back howling. Molly did not do all the running, though, and Jill got her wish, for, never stopping to think of herself, she was off at once, and met her friend half-way with an answering cry. It was a pretty sight to see them run into one another's arms and hug and kiss and talk and skip in such a state of girlish joy they never cared who saw or laughed at their innocent raptures.
As she came out of her nest and revealed herself, there was no doubt about the other girl, as she shouted and raced across the beach with her arms wide open, while her hat flew off without her noticing, and the colorful umbrella blew away, much to the delight of all the little ones except Boo, who was disturbed by his sister's sudden dash and lay on his back crying. Molly didn't do all the running, though, and Jill got her wish because, without thinking of herself, she immediately took off and met her friend halfway with a joyful shout. It was a lovely sight to watch them run into each other’s arms, hugging, kissing, chatting, and skipping in such a state of girlish happiness that they didn’t care who watched or laughed at their innocent joy.
“You darling dear! where did you come from?” cried Jill, holding Molly by both shoulders, and shaking her a little to be sure she was real.
“You darling! Where did you come from?” cried Jill, holding Molly by both shoulders and shaking her a bit to make sure she was real.
“Mrs. Minot sent for us to spend a week. You look so well, I can't believe my eyes!” answered Molly, patting Jill's cheeks and kissing them over and over, as if to make sure the bright color would not come off.
“Mrs. Minot invited us to spend a week with her. You look amazing, I can’t believe it!” replied Molly, patting Jill's cheeks and kissing them repeatedly, as if to make sure the rosy color wouldn’t fade away.
“A week? How splendid! Oh, I've such heaps to tell and show you; come right over to my cubby and see how lovely it is,” said Jill, forgetting everybody else in her delight at getting Molly.
“A week? How awesome! Oh, I have so much to tell and show you; come on over to my little place and see how beautiful it is,” said Jill, forgetting everyone else in her excitement about having Molly.
“I must get poor Boo, and my hat and umbrella, I left them all behind me when I saw you,” laughed Molly, looking back.
"I have to grab poor Boo, along with my hat and umbrella; I left them all behind when I saw you," Molly laughed as she looked back.
But Mrs. Minot and Jack had consoled Boo and collected the scattered property, so the girls went on arm in arm, and had a fine time before any one had the heart to disturb them. Molly was charmed with the boat, and Jill very glad the box was done in season. Both had so much to tell and hear and plan, that they would have sat there for ever if bathing-time had not come, and the beach suddenly looked like a bed of red and yellow tulips, for every one took a dip, and the strangers added much to the fun.
But Mrs. Minot and Jack had comforted Boo and gathered up the scattered belongings, so the girls continued on arm in arm, enjoying themselves until someone finally had the heart to interrupt them. Molly was delighted with the boat, and Jill was really happy the box was finished on time. They had so much to share, listen to, and plan that they could have stayed there forever if it hadn't been time to swim, and the beach suddenly looked like a bed of red and yellow tulips, as everyone took a dip, and the newcomers added a lot to the fun.
Molly could swim like a duck, and quite covered herself with glory by diving off the pier. Jack undertook to teach Boo, who was a promising pupil, being so plump that he could not sink if he tried. Jill was soon through, and lay on the sand enjoying the antics of the bathers till she was so faint with laughter she was glad to hear the dinner-horn and do the honors of the Willows to Molly, whose room was next hers.
Molly could swim like a pro and really impressed everyone by diving off the pier. Jack decided to teach Boo, who was a great student since he was so chubby that he couldn't sink even if he wanted to. Jill finished up quickly and lay on the sand, enjoying the antics of the swimmers until she laughed so hard that she was relieved to hear the dinner bell and welcomed Molly, whose room was next to hers.
Boat-races came first in the afternoon, and the girls watched them, sitting luxuriously in the nest, with the ladies and children close by. The sailing-matches were very pretty to see; but Molly and Jill were more interested in the rowing, for Frank and the bicycle boy pulled one boat, and the friends felt that this one must win. It did, though the race was not very exciting nor the prize of great worth; but the boys and girls were satisfied, and Jack was much exalted, for he always told Frank he could do great things if he would only drop books and “go in on his muscle.”
The boat races kicked off the afternoon, and the girls watched from their comfy spot, with the ladies and kids nearby. The sailing matches were nice to look at, but Molly and Jill were more interested in the rowing since Frank and the bike guy were in one of the boats, and everyone felt that their boat had to win. It did, even though the race wasn’t that thrilling and the prize wasn’t much to speak of; still, the boys and girls were happy, and Jack was really pumped because he always told Frank he could achieve great things if he just focused less on studying and relied more on his physical strength.
Foot-races followed, and, burning to distinguish himself also, Jack insisted on trying, though his mother warned him that the weak leg might be harmed, and he had his own doubts about it, as he was all out of practice. However, he took his place with a handkerchief tied round his head, red shirt and stockings, and his sleeves rolled up as if he meant business. Jill and Molly could not sit still during this race, and stood on the bank quite trembling with excitement as the half-dozen runners stood in a line at the starting-post waiting for the word “Go!”
Foot races followed, and eager to make a name for himself too, Jack insisted on joining in, even though his mom warned him that his weak leg might get injured, and he had his own doubts since he was out of practice. Still, he took his spot with a handkerchief tied around his head, wearing a red shirt and stockings, and his sleeves rolled up as if he was serious about it. Jill and Molly couldn't sit still during this race; they stood on the bank, shaking with excitement as the six runners lined up at the starting line, waiting for the word “Go!”
Off they went at last over the smooth beach to the pole with the flag at the further end, and every one watched them with mingled interest and merriment, for they were a droll set, and the running not at all scientific with most of them. One young fisherman with big boots over his trousers started off at a great pace, pounding along in the most dogged way, while a little chap in a tight bathing-suit with very thin legs skimmed by him, looking so like a sand-piper it was impossible to help laughing at both. Jack's former training stood him in good stead now; for he went to work in professional style, and kept a steady trot till the flagpole had been passed, then he put on his speed and shot ahead of all the rest, several of whom broke down and gave up. But Cox and Bacon held on gallantly; and soon it was evident that the sturdy legs in the knickerbockers were gaining fast, for Jack gave his ankle an ugly wrench on a round pebble, and the weak knee began to fail. He did his best, however, and quite a breeze of enthusiasm stirred the spectators as the three boys came down the course like mettlesome horses, panting, pale, or purple, but each bound to win at any cost.
Finally, they set off across the smooth beach towards the flagpole at the far end, and everyone watched them with a mix of curiosity and amusement, as they were quite the quirky bunch, and their running certainly wasn’t very scientific. One young fisherman, wearing big boots over his pants, took off at a fast pace, plodding along in a stubborn way, while a little kid in a snug swimsuit with very thin legs zipped past him, looking so much like a sandpiper that it was impossible not to laugh at both. Jack’s previous training came in handy now; he approached it like a pro and maintained a steady jog until he passed the flagpole, then he kicked it into high gear and surged ahead of everyone else, several of whom eventually fell behind and quit. But Cox and Bacon persevered bravely; soon it became clear that the sturdy legs in the knickerbockers were closing in fast, as Jack twisted his ankle badly on a round pebble, and his weak knee started to give out. He gave it his all, though, and the crowd erupted with excitement as the three boys came charging down the course like spirited horses, panting, pale, or flushed, but each determined to win at any cost.
“Now, Bacon!” “Go it, Minot!” “Hit him up, Cox!” “Jack's ahead!” “No, he isn't!” “Here they come!” “Bacon's done it!” shouted the other boys, and they were right; Bacon had won, for the gray legs came in just half a yard ahead of the red ones, and Minot tumbled into his brother's arms with hardly breath enough left to gasp out, good-humoredly, “All right, I'm glad he beat!”
“Come on, Bacon!” “Go for it, Minot!” “Hit him, Cox!” “Jack's in the lead!” “No, he isn’t!” “They’re coming!” “Bacon did it!” yelled the other boys, and they were right; Bacon had won, as the gray legs finished just half a yard ahead of the red ones, and Minot fell into his brother's arms, hardly having enough breath left to laugh and say, “All right, I’m glad he won!”
Then the victor was congratulated and borne off by his friends to refresh himself, while the lookers-on scattered to see a game of tennis and the shooting of the Archery Club up at the hotel. Jack was soon rested, and, making light of his defeat, insisted on taking the girls to see the fun. So they drove up in the old omnibus, and enjoyed the pretty sight very much; for the young ladies were in uniform, and the broad green ribbons over the white dresses, the gay quivers, long bows, and big targets, made a lively scene. The shooting was good; a handsome damsel got the prize of a dozen arrows, and every one clapped in the most enthusiastic manner.
Then the winner was congratulated and carried off by his friends to relax, while the onlookers dispersed to check out a game of tennis and the Archery Club's shooting at the hotel. Jack soon recovered and, brushing off his loss, insisted on taking the girls to see the excitement. So, they rode up in the old bus and enjoyed the beautiful sight immensely; the young ladies were in uniform, and the bright green ribbons over their white dresses, the colorful quivers, long bows, and large targets created a lively scene. The shooting was impressive; a lovely young woman won the prize of a dozen arrows, and everyone clapped in the most enthusiastic way.
Molly and Jill did not care about tennis, so they went home to rest and dress for the evening, because to their minds the dancing, the illumination, and the fireworks were the best fun of all. Jill's white bunting with cherry ribbons was very becoming, and the lively feet in the new slippers patted the floor impatiently as the sound of dance music came down to the Willows after tea, and the other girls waltzed on the wide piazza because they could not keep still.
Molly and Jill weren’t into tennis, so they headed home to relax and get ready for the evening. They thought the dancing, the lights, and the fireworks were the most fun of all. Jill’s white dress with cherry ribbons looked great, and her new slippers tapped eagerly on the floor as the sound of dance music floated down to the Willows after tea. The other girls waltzed on the spacious porch because they couldn’t sit still.
“No dancing for me, but Molly must have a good time. You'll see that she does, won't you, boys?” said Jill, who knew that her share of the fun would be lying on a settee and watching the rest enjoy her favorite pastime.
“No dancing for me, but Molly has to enjoy herself. You’ll make sure she does, right, guys?” said Jill, who knew her idea of fun would be lounging on a couch and watching everyone else indulge in her favorite activity.
Frank and Jack promised, and kept their word handsomely; for there was plenty of room in the great dancing-hall at the hotel, and the band in the pavilion played such inspiring music that, as the bicycle boy said, “Every one who had a leg couldn't help shaking it.” Molly was twirled about to her heart's content, and flew hither and thither like a blue butterfly; for all the lads liked her, and she kept running up to tell Jill the funny things they said and did.
Frank and Jack made a promise and delivered on it impressively; there was more than enough space in the hotel’s big dance hall, and the band in the pavilion played such lively music that, as the bike boy put it, “Anyone with legs couldn't help but move them.” Molly was twirled around to her heart's delight, darting here and there like a blue butterfly; all the guys adored her, and she kept rushing over to share the funny things they said and did with Jill.
As night darkened from all the houses in the valley, on the cliffs and along the shore lights shone and sparkled; for every one decorated with gay lanterns, and several yachts in the bay strung colored lamps about the little vessels, making a pretty picture on the quiet sea. Jill thought she had never seen anything so like fairy-land, and felt very like one in a dream as she drove slowly up and down with Mamie, Gerty, Molly, and Mrs. Cox in the carriage, so that she might see it all without too much fatigue. It was very lovely; and when rockets began to whizz, filling the air with golden rain, a shower of colored stars, fiery dragons, or glittering wheels, the girls could only shriek with delight, and beg to stay a little longer each time the prudent lady proposed going home.
As night fell over the houses in the valley, lights twinkled on the cliffs and along the shore; everyone had decorated with vibrant lanterns, and several yachts in the bay adorned their little vessels with colored lights, creating a beautiful scene on the calm sea. Jill felt like she had stepped into a fairy tale and was lost in a dream as she rode slowly up and down with Mamie, Gerty, Molly, and Mrs. Cox in the carriage, allowing her to take it all in without getting too tired. It was simply stunning; and when fireworks started to soar, filling the air with golden sparks, showers of colorful stars, fiery dragons, or shimmering wheels, the girls could only scream with excitement, pleading to stay a little longer each time the sensible lady suggested going home.
It had to be at last; but Molly and Jill comforted themselves by a long talk in bed, for it was impossible to sleep with glares of light coming every few minutes, flocks of people talking and tramping by in the road, and bursts of music floating down to them as the older but not wiser revellers kept up the merriment till a late hour. They dropped off at last; but Jill had the nightmare, and Molly was waked up by a violent jerking of her braid as Jill tried to tow her along, dreaming she was a boat.
It had to happen eventually; but Molly and Jill comforted themselves with a long chat in bed, since it was impossible to sleep with flashes of light coming every few minutes, crowds of people talking and walking by on the road, and bursts of music drifting down to them as the older, yet not wiser, partygoers kept the celebration going late into the night. They finally fell asleep; however, Jill had a nightmare, and Molly was woken up by a rough tug on her braid as Jill tried to pull her along, dreaming that she was a boat.
They were too sleepy to laugh much then, but next morning they made merry over it, and went to breakfast with such happy faces that all the young folks pronounced Jill's friend a most delightful girl. What a good time Molly did have that week! Other people were going to leave also, and therefore much picnicking, boating, and driving was crowded into the last days. Clambakes on the shore, charades in the studio, sewing-parties at the boat, evening frolics in the big dining-room, farewell calls, gifts, and invitations, all sorts of plans for next summer, and vows of eternal friendship exchanged between people who would soon forget each other. It was very pleasant, till poor Boo innocently added to the excitement by poisoning a few of his neighbors with a bad lobster.
They were too tired to laugh much at the time, but the next morning they joked about it and went to breakfast with such happy faces that everyone agreed Jill's friend was a delightful girl. Molly had an amazing time that week! Others were leaving too, so they packed in a lot of picnicking, boating, and driving in the last few days. They had clambakes on the shore, charades in the studio, sewing parties on the boat, evening fun in the big dining room, farewell visits, gifts, and plans for next summer, along with promises of lifelong friendship exchanged between people who would soon forget each other. It was all very enjoyable, until poor Boo accidentally added to the chaos by making a few of his neighbors sick with a bad lobster.
The ambitious little soul pined to catch one of these mysterious but lovely red creatures, and spent days fishing on the beach, investigating holes and corners, and tagging after the old man who supplied the house. One day after a high wind he found several “lobs” washed up on the beach, and, though disappointed at their color, he picked out a big one, and set off to show his prize to Molly. Half-way home he met the old man on his way with a basket of fish, and being tired of lugging his contribution laid it with the others, meaning to explain later. No one saw him do it, as the old man was busy with his pipe; and Boo ran back to get more dear lobs, leaving his treasure to go into the kettle and appear at supper, by which time he had forgotten all about it.
The eager little soul longed to catch one of those mysterious yet beautiful red creatures. He spent days fishing on the beach, checking out holes and nooks, and following the old man who supplied the house. One day, after a strong wind, he found several “lobs” washed up on the shore. Although he was disappointed by their color, he picked a big one and headed off to show his find to Molly. Halfway home, he ran into the old man who was carrying a basket of fish. Tired of hauling his catch, he set his lobster down with the others, planning to explain later. No one noticed him do it since the old man was busy with his pipe, and Boo ran back to get more precious lobs, forgetting all about his treasure by the time supper rolled around when it ended up in the kettle.
Fortunately none of the children ate any, but several older people were made ill, and quite a panic prevailed that night as one after the other called up the doctor, who was boarding close by; and good Mrs. Grey, the hostess, ran about with hot flannels, bottles of medicine, and distracted messages from room to room. All were comfortable by morning, but the friends of the sufferers lay in wait for the old fisherman, and gave him a good scolding for his carelessness. The poor man was protesting his innocence when Boo, who was passing by, looked into the basket, and asked what had become of his lob. A few questions brought the truth to light, and a general laugh put every one in good humor, when poor Boo mildly said, by way of explanation,—
Fortunately, none of the kids ate any, but several older adults got sick, and there was quite a panic that night as one after another called the doctor, who was staying nearby. Good Mrs. Grey, the hostess, ran around with hot towels, bottles of medicine, and frantic messages from room to room. Everyone was fine by morning, but the friends of those who got sick were waiting for the old fisherman and gave him a stern talking-to for his carelessness. The poor man was insisting he was innocent when Boo, who was passing by, looked into the basket and asked what happened to his lob. A few questions brought the truth to light, and a general laugh lifted everyone's spirits when poor Boo gently explained—
“I fought I was helpin' Mrs. Dray, and I did want to see the dreen lob come out all red when she boiled him. But I fordot, and I don't fink I'll ever find such a nice big one any more.”
"I thought I was helping Mrs. Dray, and I really wanted to see the frog come out all red when she boiled it. But I forgot, and I don't think I'll ever find such a nice big one again."
“For our sakes, I hope you won't, my dear,” said Mrs. Hammond, who had been nursing one of the sufferers.
“For our sake, I hope you won't, my dear,” said Mrs. Hammond, who had been taking care of one of the patients.
“It's lucky we are going home to-morrow, or that child would be the death of himself and everybody else. He is perfectly crazy about fish, and I've pulled him out of that old lobster-pot on the beach a dozen times,” groaned Molly, much afflicted by the mishaps of her young charge.
“It's a good thing we're going home tomorrow, or that kid would be the end of himself and everyone else. He's completely obsessed with fish, and I've pulled him out of that old lobster pot on the beach a dozen times,” groaned Molly, clearly frustrated by the troubles of her young responsibility.
There was a great breaking up next day, and the old omnibus went off to the station with Bacon hanging on behind, the bicycle boy and his iron whirligig atop, and heads popping out of all the windows for last good-byes. Our party and the Hammonds were going by boat, and were all ready to start for the pier when Boo and little Harry were missing. Molly, the maid, and both boys ran different ways to find them; and all sorts of dreadful suggestions were being made when shouts of laughter were heard from the beach, and the truants appeared, proudly dragging in Harry's little wagon a dead devil-fish, as the natives call that ugly thing which looks like a magnified tadpole—all head and no body.
The next day was a big farewell, and the old bus left for the station with Bacon hanging on the back, the bike kid and his metal toy on top, and heads popping out of all the windows for last goodbyes. Our group and the Hammonds were taking a boat and were all set to head to the pier when Boo and little Harry went missing. Molly, the maid, and both boys ran in different directions to find them; all sorts of terrible ideas were being tossed around when bursts of laughter were heard from the beach, and the lost ones showed up, proudly dragging Harry's little wagon with a dead devil-fish, as the locals call that ugly thing that looks like a giant tadpole—all head and no body.
“We've dot him!” called the innocents, tugging up their prize with such solemn satisfaction it was impossible to help laughing.
“We got him!” called the kids, pulling up their catch with such serious satisfaction that it was impossible not to laugh.
“I always wanted to tatch a whale, and this is a baby one, I fink. A boy said, when they wanted to die they comed on the sand and did it, and we saw this one go dead just now. Ain't he pretty?” asked Boo, displaying the immense mouth with fond pride, while his friend flapped the tail.
“I always wanted to catch a whale, and I think this is a baby one. A boy said that when they want to die, they come onto the sand and do it, and we just saw this one die. Isn’t he pretty?” asked Boo, showing off the huge mouth with fond pride, while his friend flapped the tail.
“What are you going to do with him?” said Mrs. Hammond, regarding her infant as if she often asked herself the same question about her boy.
“What are you going to do with him?” Mrs. Hammond asked, looking at her baby as if she often questioned herself about her son.
“Wap him up in a paper and tate him home to pay wid,” answered Harry, with such confidence in his big blue eyes that it was very hard to disappoint his hopes and tell him the treasure must be left behind.
“Wrap him up in paper and take him home to pay with,” replied Harry, with such confidence in his bright blue eyes that it was really difficult to crush his hopes and tell him the treasure had to be left behind.
Wails of despair burst from both children as the hard-hearted boys tipped out the little whale, and hustled the indignant fishermen on board the boat, which had been whistling for them impatiently. Boo recovered his spirits first, and gulping down a sob that nearly shook his hat off, consoled his companion in affliction and convulsed his friends by taking from his pocket several little crabs, the remains of a jelly-fish, and such a collection of pebbles that Frank understood why he found the fat boy such a burden when he shouldered him, kicking and howling, in the late run to the boat. These delicate toys healed the wounds of Boo and Harry, and they were soon happily walking the little “trabs” about inside a stone wall of their own building, while the others rested after their exertions, and laid plans for coming to the Willows another year, as people usually did who had once tasted the wholesome delights and cordial hospitality of this charming place.
Wails of despair erupted from both children as the heartless boys dumped the little whale out and forced the angry fishermen onto the boat, which had been whistling for them impatiently. Boo was the first to recover, and after swallowing a sob that nearly knocked his hat off, he comforted his friend in distress and amused his buddies by pulling out several little crabs, the remnants of a jellyfish, and a bunch of pebbles from his pocket. Frank understood why he found the chubby boy such a burden when he had to carry him, kicking and screaming, during the mad dash to the boat. These little treasures cheered Boo and Harry up, and soon they were happily strolling their little "trabs" around inside a stone fort they built, while the others took a break and made plans to return to the Willows the next year, as people often did after experiencing the wonderful pleasures and warm hospitality of this lovely spot.
Chapter XXIII. Cattle Show
The children were not the only ones who had learned something at Pebbly Beach. Mrs. Minot had talked a good deal with some very superior persons, and received light upon various subjects which had much interested or perplexed her. While the ladies worked or walked together, they naturally spoke oftenest and most earnestly about their children, and each contributed her experience. Mrs. Hammond, who had been a physician for many years, was wise in the care of healthy little bodies, and the cure of sick ones. Mrs. Channing, who had read, travelled, and observed much in the cause of education, had many useful hints about the training of young minds and hearts. Several teachers reported their trials, and all the mothers were eager to know how to bring up their boys and girls to be healthy, happy, useful men and women.
The kids weren't the only ones who learned something at Pebbly Beach. Mrs. Minot had chatted quite a bit with some very knowledgeable people and gained insights on various topics that had intrigued or puzzled her. While the women worked or strolled together, they naturally talked the most and most passionately about their kids, each sharing her own experiences. Mrs. Hammond, who had been a doctor for many years, was knowledgeable about taking care of healthy little bodies and treating sick ones. Mrs. Channing, who had read extensively, traveled, and observed a lot in the field of education, had many valuable tips on guiding young minds and hearts. Several teachers shared their challenges, and all the mothers were eager to learn how to raise their boys and girls to become healthy, happy, and productive adults.
As young people do not care for such discussions, we will not describe them, but as the impression they made upon one of the mammas affected our hero and heroine, we must mention the changes which took place in their life when they all got home again.
As young people aren't interested in such conversations, we won't go into detail about them. However, since the impact they had on one of the mothers influenced our hero and heroine, we need to mention the changes that occurred in their lives when they returned home.
“School begins to-morrow. Oh, dear!” sighed Jack, as he looked up his books in the Bird Room, a day or two after their return.
“School starts tomorrow. Oh, no!” sighed Jack, as he sorted through his books in the Bird Room, a day or two after they returned.
“Don't you want to go? I long to, but don't believe I shall. I saw our mothers talking to the doctor last night, but I haven't dared to ask what they decided,” said Jill, affectionately eying the long-unused books in her little library.
“Don't you want to go? I really want to, but I don't think I will. I saw our moms talking to the doctor last night, but I haven't had the courage to ask what they decided,” said Jill, fondly looking at the long-unused books in her small library.
“I've had such a jolly good time, that I hate to be shut up all day worse than ever. Don't you, Frank?” asked Jack, with a vengeful slap at the arithmetic which was the torment of his life.
“I've had such a great time that I really hate being cooped up all day more than ever. Don’t you, Frank?” asked Jack, giving a frustrated slap at the arithmetic, which was the bane of his existence.
“Well, I confess I don't hanker for school as much as I expected. I'd rather take a spin on the old bicycle. Our roads are so good, it is a great temptation to hire a machine, and astonish the natives. That's what comes of idleness. So brace up, my boy, and go to work, for vacation is over,” answered Frank, gravely regarding the tall pile of books before him, as if trying to welcome his old friends, or tyrants, rather, for they ruled him with a rod of iron when he once gave himself up to them.
"Well, I admit I don't miss school as much as I thought I would. I'd rather take a ride on my old bike. Our roads are so nice, it's really tempting to rent a bike and impress the locals. That's what happens when you have too much free time. So come on, my friend, and get to work, because vacation is over," replied Frank, seriously looking at the tall pile of books in front of him, as if trying to greet his old friends, or rather, his tyrants, since they controlled him completely when he surrendered to them.
“Ah, but vacation is not over, my dears,” said Mrs. Minot, hearing the last words as she came in prepared to surprise her family.
“Ah, but vacation isn’t over yet, my dears,” said Mrs. Minot, catching the last words as she walked in, ready to surprise her family.
“Glad of it. How much longer is it to be?” asked Jack, hoping for a week at least.
“Glad to hear it. How much longer will it be?” asked Jack, hoping for at least a week.
“Two or three years for some of you.”
“Two or three years for some of you.”
“What?” cried all three, in utter astonishment, as they stared at Mamma, who could not help smiling, though she was very much in earnest.
“What?” cried all three, completely shocked, as they stared at Mom, who couldn’t help smiling, even though she was being very serious.
“For the next two or three years I intend to cultivate my boys' bodies, and let their minds rest a good deal, from books at least. There is plenty to learn outside of school-houses, and I don't mean to shut you up just when you most need all the air and exercise you can get. Good health, good principles, and a good education are the three blessings I ask for you, and I am going to make sure of the first, as a firm foundation for the other two.”
“For the next two or three years, I plan to focus on building my boys' physical strength and give their minds a break, especially from books. There's a lot to learn outside of classrooms, and I don’t want to keep you cooped up when you really need fresh air and exercise. Good health, strong values, and a solid education are the three things I wish for you, and I’m going to prioritize the first as a solid foundation for the other two.”
“But, mother, what becomes of college?” asked Frank, rather disturbed at this change of base.
“But, Mom, what happens to college?” Frank asked, feeling a bit unsettled by this shift in plans.
“Put it off for a year, and see if you are not better fitted for it then than now.”
“Wait a year and see if you’re not better suited for it then than you are now.”
“But I am already fitted: I've worked like a tiger all this year, and I'm sure I shall pass.”
“But I’m ready: I've worked really hard all year, and I'm confident I'll pass.”
“Ready in one way, but not in another. That hard work is no preparation for four years of still harder study. It has cost you these round shoulders, many a headache, and consumed hours when you had far better have been on the river or in the fields. I cannot have you break down, as so many boys do, or pull through at the cost of ill-health afterward. Eighteen is young enough to begin the steady grind, if you have a strong constitution to keep pace with the eager mind. Sixteen is too young to send even my good boy out into the world, just when he most needs his mother's care to help him be the man she hopes to see him.”
“Ready in one way, but not in another. All that hard work hasn’t really prepared you for four years of even tougher studying. It has given you these rounded shoulders, caused you many headaches, and wasted hours when you would have been better off enjoying the river or the fields. I can’t let you break down like so many boys do, or get through it only to suffer health issues later. Eighteen is young enough to start the steady grind, but only if you have a strong body to keep up with your eager mind. Sixteen is definitely too young to send my good boy out into the world, especially when he needs his mother’s support to help him become the man she envisions.”
Mrs. Minot laid her hand on his shoulder as she spoke, looking so fond and proud that it was impossible to rebel, though some of his most cherished plans were spoilt.
Mrs. Minot placed her hand on his shoulder as she spoke, looking so affectionate and proud that it was impossible to resist, even though some of his most cherished plans were ruined.
“Other fellows go at my age, and I was rather pleased to be ready at sixteen,” he began. But she added, quickly,—
“Other guys my age are leaving, and I was pretty happy to be ready at sixteen,” he started. But she quickly added,—
“They go, but how do they come out? Many lose health of body, and many what is more precious still, moral strength, because too young and ignorant to withstand temptations of all sorts. The best part of education does not come from books, and the good principles I value more than either of the other things are to be carefully watched over till firmly fixed; then you may face the world, and come to no real harm. Trust me, dear, I do it for your sake; so bear the disappointment bravely, and in the end I think you will say I'm right.”
“They leave, but how do they come back? Many lose their physical health, and even more importantly, their moral strength, because they are too young and inexperienced to resist all kinds of temptations. The best part of education doesn’t come from books, and the good principles I value even more than other things need to be carefully protected until they are firmly established; then you can face the world and not come to any real harm. Trust me, dear, I'm doing this for your benefit; so handle the disappointment with courage, and in the end, I believe you’ll agree with me.”
“I'll do my best; but I don't see what is to become of us if we don't go to school. You will get tired of it first,” said Frank, trying to set a good example to the others, who were looking much impressed and interested.
“I'll do my best, but I don't see what will happen to us if we don't go to school. You'll get tired of it first,” said Frank, trying to set a good example for the others, who looked really impressed and interested.
“No danger of that, for I never sent my children to school to get rid of them, and now that they are old enough to be companions, I want them at home more than ever. There are to be some lessons, however, for busy minds must be fed, but not crammed; so you boys will go and recite at certain hours such things as seem most important. But there is to be no studying at night, no shutting up all the best hours of the day, no hurry and fret of getting on fast, or skimming over the surface of many studies without learning any thoroughly.”
“No worry about that, because I never sent my kids to school to be rid of them, and now that they're old enough to hang out with me, I want them at home more than ever. There will be some lessons, though, because busy minds need to be engaged, but not overloaded; so you boys will go and recite important things at certain times. But no studying at night, no locking away the best parts of the day, no rushing to get ahead, or glancing over many subjects without really learning any of them well.”
“So I say!” cried Jack, pleased with the new idea, for he never did love books. “I do hate to be driven so I don't half understand, because there is no time to have things explained. School is good fun as far as play goes; but I don't see the sense of making a fellow learn eighty questions in geography one day, and forget them the next.
“So I say!” cried Jack, thrilled with the new idea, because he never really liked books. “I can’t stand being rushed when I don’t fully grasp things, since there’s no time for explanations. School is fun when it comes to play; but I don’t get the point of making someone learn eighty geography questions one day and then forget them the next.”
“What is to become of me, please?” asked Jill, meekly.
"What's going to happen to me, please?" asked Jill, quietly.
“You and Molly are to have lessons here. I was a teacher when I was young, you know, and liked it, so I shall be school-ma'am, and leave my house-keeping in better hands than mine. I always thought that mothers should teach their girls during these years, and vary their studies to suit the growing creatures as only mothers can.
“You and Molly will have lessons here. I used to be a teacher when I was younger, you know, and I enjoyed it, so I'll be the schoolteacher and let someone else handle the housekeeping better than I can. I always believed that mothers should teach their daughters during these years and adapt their studies to fit the needs of their growing kids in a way only mothers can.”
“That will be splendid! Will Molly's father let her come?” cried Jill, feeling quite reconciled to staying at home, if her friend was to be with her.
"That will be awesome! Is Molly's dad going to let her come?" shouted Jill, feeling totally okay with staying home if her friend would be there with her.
“He likes the plan very much, for Molly is growing fast, and needs a sort of care that Miss Dawes cannot give her. I am not a hard mistress, and I hope you will find my school a pleasant one.”
“He really likes the plan, because Molly is growing quickly and needs a kind of care that Miss Dawes can’t provide. I’m not a strict teacher, and I hope you’ll find my school to be a nice place.”
“I know I shall; and I'm not disappointed, because I was pretty sure I couldn't go to the old school again, when I heard the doctor say I must be very careful for a long time. I thought he meant months; but if it must be years, I can bear it, for I've been happy this last one though I was sick,” said Jill, glad to show that it had not been wasted time by being cheerful and patient now.
“I know I will; and I'm not disappointed because I figured I wouldn't be able to go back to the old school once I heard the doctor say I have to be really careful for a long time. I thought he meant months; but if it has to be years, I can handle it, because I've been happy this last year even though I was sick,” said Jill, pleased to show that her time hadn’t been wasted by being cheerful and patient now.
“That's my good girl!” and Mrs. Minot stroked the curly black head as if it was her own little daughter's. “You have done so well, I want you to go on improving, for care now will save you pain and disappointment by and by. You all have got a capital start during these six weeks, so it is a good time to begin my experiment. If it does not work well, we will go back to school and college next spring.”
“That's my good girl!” Mrs. Minot said, stroking the curly black head like it was her own little daughter’s. “You've done so well, and I want you to keep improving, because taking care now will save you pain and disappointment later on. You all have made great progress over these six weeks, so it’s a good time to start my experiment. If it doesn’t go well, we can return to school and college next spring.”
“Hurrah for Mamma and the long vacation!” cried Jack, catching up two big books and whirling them round like clubs, as if to get his muscles in order at once.
“Yay for Mom and the long break!” shouted Jack, grabbing two big books and swinging them around like clubs, as if to get his muscles in shape right away.
“Now I shall have time to go to the Gymnasium and straighten out my back,” said Frank, who was growing so tall he needed more breadth to make his height symmetrical.
“Now I’ll have time to go to the gym and fix my posture,” said Frank, who was getting so tall that he needed more width to make his height look balanced.
“And to ride horseback. I am going to hire old Jane and get out the little phaeton, so we can all enjoy the fine weather while it lasts. Molly and I can drive Jill, and you can take turns in the saddle when you are tired of ball and boating. Exercise of all sorts is one of the lessons we are to learn,” said Mrs. Minot, suggesting all the pleasant things she could to sweeten the pill for her pupils, two of whom did love their books, not being old enough to know that even an excellent thing may be overdone.
“And to go horseback riding. I’m going to hire old Jane and get out the little phaeton, so we can all enjoy the nice weather while it lasts. Molly and I can drive Jill, and you can take turns riding when you get tired of the ball games and boating. Exercise of all kinds is one of the lessons we need to learn,” said Mrs. Minot, suggesting all the fun things she could to make the experience better for her students, two of whom loved their books, not yet old enough to realize that even something great can be too much.
“Won't that be gay? I'll get down the saddle to-day, so we can begin right off. Lem rides, and we can go together. Hope old Jane will like it as well as I shall,” said Jack, who had found a new friend in a pleasant lad lately come to town.
“Won't that be fun? I'll take down the saddle today, so we can start right away. Lem rides, and we can go together. I hope old Jane enjoys it as much as I will,” said Jack, who had made a new friend in a nice guy who had just moved to town.
“You must see that she does, for you boys are to take care of her. We will put the barn in order, and you can decide which shall be hostler and which gardener, for I don't intend to hire labor on the place any more. Our estate is not a large one, and it will be excellent work for you, my men.”
“You need to make sure she does, because you boys are responsible for her. We’ll tidy up the barn, and you can choose who will be in charge of the horses and who will be the gardener, because I don’t plan to hire any outside help anymore. Our property isn’t that big, and it’ll be great work for you, my guys.”
“All right! I'll see to Jane. I love horses,” said Jack, well pleased with the prospect.
“All right! I'll take care of Jane. I love horses,” said Jack, excited about the idea.
“My horse won't need much care. I prefer a bicycle to a beast, so I'll get in the squashes, pick the apples, and cover the strawberry bed when it is time,” added Frank, who had enjoyed the free life at Pebbly Beach so much that he was willing to prolong it.
“My horse doesn’t require much attention. I’d rather ride a bike than a horse, so I’ll go gather the squash, pick the apples, and cover the strawberry patch when the time comes,” Frank said, having enjoyed the laid-back life at Pebbly Beach so much that he was eager to keep it going.
“You may put me in a hen-coop, and keep me there a year, if you like. I won't fret, for I'm sure you know what is best for me,” said Jill, gayly, as she looked up at the good friend who had done so much for her.
“You can put me in a chicken coop and keep me there for a year if you want. I won't complain because I know you always know what's best for me,” Jill said cheerfully as she looked up at the kind friend who had done so much for her.
“I'm not sure that I won't put you in a pretty cage and send you to Cattle Show, as a sample of what we can do in the way of taming a wild bird till it is nearly as meek as a dove,” answered Mrs. Minot, much gratified at the amiability of her flock.
“I'm not sure I won't put you in a nice cage and send you to the Cattle Show as a showcase of what we can achieve with taming a wild bird until it’s almost as gentle as a dove,” replied Mrs. Minot, feeling quite pleased with the friendliness of her group.
“I don't see why there should not be an exhibition of children, and prizes for the good and pretty ones, as well as for fat pigs, fine horses, or handsome fruit and flowers—I don't mean a baby show, but boys and girls, so people can see what the prospect is of a good crop for the next generation,” said Frank, glancing toward the tower of the building where the yearly Agricultural Fair was soon to be held.
“I don't understand why there can't be an exhibition of children, with prizes for the good-looking ones, just like there are for fat pigs, fine horses, or beautiful fruit and flowers—I’m not talking about a baby show, but rather boys and girls, so people can get a glimpse of the next generation's potential,” Frank said, looking toward the tower of the building where the annual Agricultural Fair would soon take place.
“Years ago, there was a pretty custom here of collecting all the schools together in the spring, and having a festival at the Town Hall. Each school showed its best pupils, and the parents looked on at the blooming flower show. It was a pity it was ever given up, for the schools have never been so good as then, nor the interest in them so great;” and Mrs. Minot wondered, as many people do, why farmers seem to care more for their cattle and crops than for their children, willingly spending large sums on big barns and costly experiments, while the school-houses are shabby and inconvenient, and the cheapest teachers preferred.
“Years ago, there was a nice tradition of bringing all the schools together in the spring for a festival at the Town Hall. Each school showcased its best students, and the parents watched the beautiful display. It’s a shame it was ever discontinued, since the schools have never been as good as they were back then, nor has the interest in them been as strong;” and Mrs. Minot wondered, like many people do, why farmers seem to care more about their livestock and crops than their children, easily spending a lot of money on large barns and expensive experiments, while the school buildings are run-down and inconvenient, and the least expensive teachers are chosen.
“Ralph is going to send my bust. He asked if he might, and mother said Yes. Mr. German thinks it very good, and I hope other people will,” said Jill, nodding toward the little plaster head that smiled down from its bracket with her own merry look.
“Ralph is going to send my bust. He asked if he could, and mom said Yes. Mr. German thinks it's really good, and I hope other people will too,” said Jill, nodding toward the little plaster head that smiled down from its bracket with her own cheerful expression.
“I could send my model; it is nearly done. Ralph told me it was a clever piece of work, and he knows,” added Frank, quite taken with the idea of exhibiting his skill in mechanics.
“I could send my model; it’s almost finished. Ralph said it was a clever piece of work, and he knows,” added Frank, really excited about the idea of showing off his mechanical skills.
“And I could send my star bedquilt! They always have things of that kind at Cattle Show;” and Jill began to rummage in the closet for the pride of her heart, burning to display it to an admiring world.
“And I could send my star quilt! They always have things like that at the Cattle Show;” and Jill started digging through the closet for her pride and joy, eager to show it off to an admiring audience.
“I haven't got anything. Can't sew rags together; or make baby engines, and I have no live-stock—yes, I have too! There's old Bun. I'll send him, for the fun of it; he really is a curiosity, for he is the biggest one I ever saw, and hopping into the lime has made his fur such a queer color, he looks like a new sort of rabbit. I'll catch and shut him up before he gets wild again;” and off rushed Jack to lure unsuspecting old Bun, who had grown tame during their absence, into the cage which he detested.
“I don’t have anything. I can’t sew rags together or make toy engines, and I don’t have any livestock—wait, I do! There’s old Bun. I’ll send him just for fun; he’s really a curiosity since he’s the biggest one I’ve ever seen, and hopping into the lime has made his fur such a weird color, he looks like a new kind of rabbit. I’ll catch him and lock him up before he gets wild again;” and off rushed Jack to lure unsuspecting old Bun, who had become tame during their absence, into the cage that he hated.
They all laughed at his ardor, but the fancy pleased them; and as Mamma saw no reason why their little works of art should not be sent, Frank fell to work on his model, and Jill resolved to finish her quilt at once, while Mrs. Minot went off to see Mr. Acton about the hours and studies for the boys.
They all laughed at his enthusiasm, but they liked the idea; and since Mom saw no reason not to send their little creations, Frank got to work on his model, and Jill decided to finish her quilt right away, while Mrs. Minot went to talk to Mr. Acton about the boys' schedules and studies.
In a week or two, the young people were almost resigned to the loss of school, for they found themselves delightfully fresh for the few lessons they did have, and not weary of play, since it took many useful forms. Old Jane not only carried them all to ride, but gave Jack plenty of work keeping her premises in nice order. Frank mourned privately over the delay of college, but found a solace in his whirligig and the Gymnasium, where he set himself to developing a chest to match the big head above, which head no longer ached with eight or ten hours of study. Harvesting beans and raking up leaves seemed to have a soothing effect upon his nerves, for now he fell asleep at once instead of thumping his pillow with vexation because his brain would go on working at difficult problems and passages when he wanted it to stop.
In a week or two, the young people were pretty much used to being out of school, as they were feeling surprisingly refreshed for the few lessons they did have and weren’t tired of playing, since it took many useful forms. Old Jane not only took them all out riding, but also kept Jack busy with plenty of work to keep her place in good shape. Frank privately mourned the delay in starting college, but found comfort in his whirligig and the Gymnasium, where he focused on building a chest to match his big head, which no longer ached from eight or ten hours of studying. Harvesting beans and raking leaves seemed to calm his nerves, as he now fell asleep right away instead of pounding his pillow in frustration because his mind wouldn’t stop working on tough problems and passages when he wanted it to take a break.
Jill and Molly drove away in the little phaeton every fair morning over the sunny hills and through the changing woods, filling their hands with asters and golden-rod, their lungs with the pure, invigorating air, and their heads with all manner of sweet and happy fancies and feelings born of the wholesome influences about them. People shook their heads, and said it was wasting time; but the rosy-faced girls were content to trust those wiser than themselves, and found their new school very pleasant. They read aloud a good deal, rapidly acquiring one of the rarest and most beautiful accomplishments; for they could stop and ask questions as they went along, so that they understood what they read, which is half the secret. A thousand things came up as they sewed together in the afternoon, and the eager minds received much general information in an easy and well-ordered way. Physiology was one of the favorite studies, and Mrs. Hammond often came in to give them a little lecture, teaching them to understand the wonders of their own systems, and how to keep them in order—a lesson of far more importance just then than Greek or Latin, for girls are the future mothers, nurses, teachers, of the race, and should feel how much depends on them. Merry could not resist the attractions of the friendly circle, and soon persuaded her mother to let her do as they did; so she got more exercise and less study, which was just what the delicate girl needed.
Jill and Molly drove away in the little carriage every sunny morning over the hills and through the changing woods, gathering asters and goldenrod, breathing in the fresh, invigorating air, and filling their minds with all kinds of sweet and happy thoughts and feelings inspired by their surroundings. People shook their heads and said it was a waste of time, but the rosy-faced girls were happy to trust those who knew better and found their new school very enjoyable. They read aloud a lot, quickly picking up one of the rarest and most beautiful skills; they could pause and ask questions as they went along, so they actually understood what they were reading, which is half the trick. A thousand topics came up as they sewed together in the afternoon, and their eager minds absorbed a lot of general knowledge in an easy and organized way. Physiology was one of their favorite subjects, and Mrs. Hammond often came in to give them little lectures, teaching them to understand the wonders of their own bodies and how to keep them healthy—lessons that were far more important at that time than Greek or Latin, since girls are the future mothers, nurses, and teachers of the race, and should realize how much depends on them. Merry couldn't resist the lure of the friendly group and soon convinced her mother to let her join in; so she got more exercise and less studying, which was exactly what the delicate girl needed.
The first of the new ideas seemed to prosper, and the second, though suggested in joke, was carried out in earnest, for the other young people were seized with a strong desire to send something to the Fair. In fact, all sorts of queer articles were proposed, and much fun prevailed, especially among the boys, who ransacked their gardens for mammoth vegetables, sighed for five-legged calves, blue roses, or any other natural curiosity by means of which they might distinguish themselves. Ralph was the only one who had anything really worth sending; for though Frank's model seemed quite perfect, it obstinately refused to go, and at the last moment blew up with a report like a pop-gun. So it was laid away for repairs, and its disappointed maker devoted his energies to helping Jack keep Bun in order; for that indomitable animal got out of every prison they put him in, and led Jack a dreadful life during that last week. At all hours of the day and night that distracted boy would start up, crying, “There he is again!” and dart out to give chase and capture the villain now grown too fat to run as he once did.
The first of the new ideas seemed to thrive, and the second, although suggested as a joke, was taken seriously because the other young people felt a strong urge to send something to the Fair. In fact, all kinds of odd items were proposed, and there was a lot of laughter, especially among the boys, who searched their gardens for giant vegetables and hoped for five-legged calves, blue roses, or any other natural curiosities that could make them stand out. Ralph was the only one with anything truly worth sending; even though Frank's model seemed perfect, it stubbornly refused to work and, at the last moment, exploded with a sound like a pop-gun. So, it was put away for repairs, and its disappointed creator focused on helping Jack keep Bun under control; that relentless animal escaped from every enclosure they put him in and drove Jack crazy during that last week. At all hours of the day and night, that frantic boy would jump up, shouting, “There he is again!” and run out to chase and catch the now too plump villain who could no longer run like he used to.
The very night before the Fair, Frank was wakened by a chilly draught, and, getting up to see where it came from, found Jack's door open and bed empty, while the vision of a white ghost flitting about the garden suggested a midnight rush after old Bun. Frank watched laughingly, till poor Jack came toward the house with the gentleman in gray kicking lustily in his arms, and then whispered in a sepulchral tone,—
The night before the Fair, Frank was jolted awake by a cold draft. He got up to find out where it was coming from and saw that Jack's door was open and his bed was empty. The sight of a white figure moving around the garden made him think of a late-night chase after old Bun. Frank watched amusedly until Jack came back toward the house with the guy in gray kicking hard in his arms, and then he whispered in a ghostly tone,—
“Put him in the old refrigerator, he can't get out of that.”
“Put him in the old fridge; he can't get out of that.”
Blessing him for the suggestion, the exhausted hunter shut up his victim in the new cell, and found it a safe one, for Bun could not burrow through a sheet of zinc, or climb up the smooth walls.
Thanking him for the idea, the tired hunter locked up his catch in the new cell and found it secure, since Bun couldn't dig through a sheet of zinc or climb the smooth walls.
Jill's quilt was a very elaborate piece of work, being bright blue with little white stars all over it; this she finished nicely, and felt sure no patient old lady could outdo it. Merry decided to send butter, for she had been helping her mother in the dairy that summer, and rather liked the light part of the labor. She knew it would please her very much if she chose that instead of wild flowers, so she practised moulding the yellow pats into pretty shapes, that it might please both eye and taste.
Jill's quilt was a really intricate creation, bright blue with little white stars all over it; she finished it beautifully and was confident that no elderly lady could top it. Merry decided to send butter since she had been helping her mom in the dairy that summer and enjoyed the lighter side of the work. She knew it would make her happy if she chose that instead of wildflowers, so she practiced shaping the yellow pats into pretty designs to please both the eye and the palate.
Molly declared she would have a little pen, and put Boo in it, as the prize fat boy—a threat which so alarmed the innocent that he ran away, and was found two or three miles from home, asleep under the wall, with two seed-cakes and a pair of socks done up in a bundle. Being with difficulty convinced that it was a joke, he consented to return to his family, but was evidently suspicious, till Molly decided to send her cats, and set about preparing them for exhibition. The Minots' deserted Bunny-house was rather large; but as cats cannot be packed as closely as much-enduring sheep, Molly borrowed this desirable family mansion, and put her darlings into it, where they soon settled down, and appeared to enjoy their new residence. It had been scrubbed up and painted red, cushions and plates put in, and two American flags adorned the roof. Being barred all round, a fine view of the Happy Family could be had, now twelve in number, as Molasses had lately added three white kits to the varied collection.
Molly announced that she would have a little pen and put Boo in it, as the prize for the chubby kid—a threat that scared him so much that he ran away, only to be found two or three miles from home, asleep under a wall, with two seed cakes and a pair of socks bundled up. After some convincing that it was just a joke, he agreed to go back to his family but was clearly still suspicious, until Molly decided to send her cats and began preparing them for the show. The Minots' abandoned Bunny-house was quite big; however, since cats can't be packed as tightly as tough sheep, Molly borrowed this spacious family home and placed her beloved cats in it, where they quickly settled in and seemed to enjoy their new place. It had been cleaned up and painted red, with cushions and plates added, and two American flags on the roof. Being enclosed all around, it offered a great view of the Happy Family, which was now twelve in total, as Molasses had recently added three white kittens to the diverse mix.
The girls thought this would be the most interesting spectacle of all, and Grif proposed to give some of the cats extra tails, to increase their charms, especially poor Mortification, who would appreciate the honor of two, after having none for so long. But Molly declined, and Grif looked about him for some attractive animal to exhibit, so that he too might go in free and come to honor, perhaps.
The girls believed this would be the most exciting show ever, and Grif suggested giving some of the cats extra tails to make them more appealing, especially poor Mortification, who would love the novelty of having two tails after having none for so long. But Molly said no, so Grif started looking around for another interesting animal to showcase, hoping he could also get in for free and gain some recognition, maybe.
A young lady in the town owned a donkey, a small, gray beast, who insisted on tripping along the sidewalks and bumping her rider against the walls as she paused to browse at her own sweet will, regardless of blows or cries, till ready to move on. Expressing great admiration for this rare animal, Grif obtained leave to display the charms of Graciosa at the Fair. Little did she guess the dark designs entertained against her dignity, and happily she was not as sensitive to ridicule as a less humble-minded animal, so she went willingly with her new friend, and enjoyed the combing and trimming up which she received at his hands, while he prepared for the great occasion.
A young woman in the town owned a donkey, a small gray creature, who loved to stroll along the sidewalks and knock her rider against the walls while she stopped to look around at her leisure, ignoring any hits or shouts, until she was ready to move again. Grif, who was very impressed by this unique animal, got permission to showcase Graciosa at the Fair. She had no idea of the devious plans against her pride, but fortunately, she wasn't as sensitive to mockery as a less modest animal, so she happily went along with her new friend and enjoyed the grooming and styling she received from him as he got ready for the big event.
When the morning of September 28th arrived, the town was all astir, and the Fair ground a lively scene. The air was full of the lowing of cattle, the tramp of horses, squealing of indignant pigs, and clatter of tongues, as people and animals streamed in at the great gate and found their proper places. Our young folks were in a high state of excitement, as they rumbled away with their treasures in a hay-cart. The Bunny-house might have been a cage of tigers, so rampant were the cats at this new move. Old Bun, in a small box, brooded over the insult of the refrigerator, and looked as fierce as a rabbit could. Gus had a coop of rare fowls, who clucked wildly all the way, while Ralph, with the bust in his arms, stood up in front, and Jill and Molly bore the precious bedquilt, as they sat behind.
When the morning of September 28th came, the town was buzzing, and the fairgrounds were bustling with life. The air was filled with the sounds of cattle lowing, horses trotting, pigs squealing in protest, and people chatting excitedly as they and their animals entered through the main gate and settled in. Our young people were extremely excited as they rode away with their treasures in a hay cart. The Bunny-house might as well have been a cage of tigers, given how wild the cats were with this new development. Old Bun, stuck in a small box, fumed over the refrigerator's offense and looked as fierce as a rabbit could. Gus had a coop of rare birds that clucked frantically the entire way, while Ralph stood in front, holding the bust in his arms, and Jill and Molly sat behind, carrying the precious bed quilt.
These objects of interest were soon arranged, and the girls went to admire Merry's golden butter cups among the green leaves, under which lay the ice that kept the pretty flowers fresh. The boys were down below, where the cackling was very loud, but not loud enough to drown the sonorous bray which suddenly startled them as much as it did the horses outside. A shout of laughter followed, and away went the lads, to see what the fun was, while the girls ran out on the balcony, as someone said, “It's that rogue of a Grif with some new joke.”
These interesting objects were soon set up, and the girls went to admire Merry's golden buttercups among the green leaves, beneath which lay the ice that kept the pretty flowers fresh. The boys were down below, where the cackling was really loud, but not loud enough to drown out the deep bray that suddenly startled them as much as it did the horses outside. A shout of laughter followed, and off went the boys to see what the commotion was, while the girls ran out onto the balcony, as someone said, “It’s that trickster Grif with some new joke.”
It certainly was, and, to judge from the peals of merriment, the joke was a good one. In at the gate came a two-headed donkey, ridden by Grif, in great spirits at his success, for the gate-keeper laughed so he never thought to ask for toll. A train of boys followed him across the ground, lost in admiration of the animal and the cleverness of her rider. Among the stage properties of the Dramatic Club was the old ass's head once used in some tableaux from “Midsummer Night's Dream.” This Grif had mended up, and fastened by means of straps and a collar to poor Graciosa's neck, hiding his work with a red cloth over her back. One eye was gone, but the other still opened and shut, and the long ears wagged by means of strings, which he slyly managed with the bridle, so the artificial head looked almost as natural as the real one. The funniest thing of all was the innocent air of Graciosa, and the mildly inquiring expression with which she now and then turned to look at or to smell of the new ornament as if she recognized a friend's face, yet was perplexed by its want of animation. She vented her feelings in a bray, which Grif imitated, convulsing all hearers by the sound as well as by the wink the one eye gave, and the droll waggle of one erect ear, while the other pointed straight forward.
It really was, and judging by the bursts of laughter, the joke was a good one. Through the gate came a two-headed donkey, ridden by Grif, who was in high spirits over his success, since the gatekeeper laughed so hard he forgot to ask for a toll. A line of boys followed him across the field, totally in awe of the animal and the skill of her rider. Among the stage props of the Dramatic Club was an old donkey's head that had been used in some scenes from “A Midsummer Night's Dream.” Grif had fixed it up and attached it with straps and a collar around poor Graciosa's neck, covering his work with a red cloth over her back. One eye was missing, but the other could still open and close, and the long ears moved thanks to some strings that he cleverly managed with the bridle, making the fake head look almost as natural as a real one. The funniest part was Graciosa's innocent expression and the curious way she occasionally turned to look at or sniff the new ornament, as if she recognized a friend's face but was confused by its lack of life. She expressed her feelings with a bray, which Grif imitated, causing everyone to burst into laughter not only from the sound but also from the wink of the one eye and the silly wiggle of one upright ear, while the other pointed straight ahead.
The girls laughed so at the ridiculous sight that they nearly fell over the railing, and the boys were in ecstasies, especially when Grif, emboldened by his success, trotted briskly round the race-course, followed by the cheers of the crowd. Excited by the noise, Graciosa did her best, till the false head, loosened by the rapid motion, slipped round under her nose, causing her to stop so suddenly that Grif flew off, alighting on his own head with a violence which would have killed any other boy. Sobered by his downfall, he declined to mount again, but led his steed to repose in a shed, while he rejoined his friends, who were waiting impatiently to congratulate him on his latest and best prank.
The girls laughed so hard at the ridiculous sight that they almost fell over the railing, and the boys were thrilled, especially when Grif, encouraged by his success, trotted around the racecourse, cheered on by the crowd. Excited by the noise, Graciosa did her best until the fake head, loosened by the quick movement, slipped around under her nose, causing her to stop so abruptly that Grif flew off, landing on his own head with a force that would have seriously injured any other kid. Sobering from his fall, he decided not to get back up but instead led his horse to a shed to rest while he rejoined his friends, who were eagerly waiting to congratulate him on his latest and greatest prank.
The Committee went their rounds soon after, and, when the doors were again opened, every one hurried to see if their articles had received a premium. A card lay on the butter cups, and Mrs. Grant was full of pride because her butter always took a prize, and this proved that Merry was walking in her mother's steps, in this direction at least. Another card swung from the blue quilt, for the kindly judges knew who made it, and were glad to please the little girl, though several others as curious but not so pretty hung near by. The cats were admired, but, as they were not among the animals usually exhibited, there was no prize awarded. Gus hoped his hens would get one; but somebody else outdid him, to the great indignation of Laura and Lotty, who had fed the white biddies faithfully for months. Jack was sure his rabbit was the biggest there, and went eagerly to look for his premium. But neither card nor Bun were to be seen, for the old rascal had escaped for the last time, and was never seen again; which was a great comfort to Jack, who was heartily tired of him.
The Committee did their rounds soon after, and when the doors were opened again, everyone rushed to see if their items had won a prize. A card was on the butter cups, and Mrs. Grant was filled with pride because her butter always won a prize, proving that Merry was following in her mother's footsteps, at least in that area. Another card hung from the blue quilt, as the judges knew who made it and were happy to reward the little girl, even though several other entries, which were just as curious but not as pretty, were nearby. The cats were admired, but since they weren't among the typical animals on display, there was no prize given. Gus hoped his hens would win something, but someone else outperformed him, much to the annoyance of Laura and Lotty, who had taken care of the white biddies for months. Jack was confident that his rabbit was the biggest there and went eagerly to check for his prize. But neither the card nor Bun could be found because the old rascal had escaped for the last time and was never seen again; this was a huge relief for Jack, who was thoroughly tired of him.
Ralph's bust was the best of all, for not only did it get a prize, and was much admired, but a lady, who found Jill and Merry rejoicing over it, was so pleased with the truth and grace of the little head, that she asked about the artist, and whether he would do one of her own child, who was so delicate she feared he might not live long.
Ralph's bust was the best of all, as it not only won a prize and was highly admired, but a lady who saw Jill and Merry celebrating it was so taken with the truth and beauty of the little head that she inquired about the artist and whether he would make one of her own child, who was so fragile she worried he might not live long.
Merry gladly told the story of her ambitious friend, and went to find him, that he might secure the order. While she was gone, Jill took up the tale, gratefully telling how kind he had been to her, how patiently he worked and waited, and how much he longed to go abroad. Fortunately the lady was rich and generous, as well as fond of art, and being pleased with the bust, and interested in the young sculptor, gave him the order when he came, and filled his soul with joy by adding, that, if it suited her when done, it should be put into marble. She lived in the city, and Ralph soon arranged his work so that he could give up his noon hour, and go to model the child; for every penny he could earn or save now was very precious, as he still hoped to go abroad.
Merry happily told the story of her ambitious friend and went to find him so he could secure the order. While she was gone, Jill picked up the story, gratefully explaining how kind he had been to her, how patiently he worked and waited, and how much he wanted to go abroad. Luckily, the lady was wealthy and generous, as well as an art lover. She was pleased with the bust and interested in the young sculptor, giving him the order when he arrived and filling his heart with joy by adding that, if it met her approval once completed, it would be carved in marble. She lived in the city, and Ralph soon arranged his work schedule so he could take his lunch hour to model the child, as every penny he could earn or save now was very valuable since he still hoped to go abroad.
The girls were so delighted with this good fortune, that they did not stay for the races, but went home to tell the happy news, leaving the boys to care for the cats, and enjoy the various matches to come off that day.
The girls were so thrilled with this good luck that they didn’t stick around for the races, but went home to share the exciting news, leaving the boys to take care of the cats and enjoy the different matches happening that day.
“I'm so glad I tried to look pleasant when I was lying on the board while Ralph did my head, for the pleasantness got into the clay face, and that made the lady like it,” said Jill, as she lay resting on the sofa.
“I'm so glad I tried to look nice when I was lying on the board while Ralph was working on my head, because that nice expression got into the clay face, and that made the lady like it,” said Jill, as she lay resting on the sofa.
“I always thought it was a dear, bright little face, but now I love and admire it more than ever,” cried Merry, kissing it gratefully, as she remembered the help and pleasure it had given Ralph.
“I always thought it was a sweet, bright little face, but now I love and admire it more than ever,” cried Merry, kissing it gratefully, as she remembered the help and joy it had brought Ralph.
Chapter XXIV. Down the River
A fortnight later, the boys were picking apples one golden October afternoon, and the girls were hurrying to finish their work, that they might go and help the harvesters. It was six weeks now since the new school began, and they had learned to like it very much, though they found that it was not all play, by any means. But lessons, exercise, and various sorts of housework made an agreeable change, and they felt that they were learning things which would be useful to them all their lives. They had been making underclothes for themselves, and each had several neatly finished garments cut, fitted, and sewed by herself, and trimmed with the pretty tatting Jill made in such quantities while she lay on her sofa.
Two weeks later, the boys were picking apples on a sunny October afternoon, while the girls rushed to finish their tasks so they could help the harvesters. It had been six weeks since the new school started, and they had come to enjoy it a lot, even though they realized it wasn't just fun and games. But lessons, exercise, and various kinds of housework provided a nice change, and they felt they were learning skills that would be useful for their entire lives. They had been making their own underwear, and each had several neatly finished pieces that they had cut, fitted, and sewn by themselves, decorated with the lovely lace Jill made in such abundance while lying on her sofa.
Now they were completing new dressing sacks, and had enjoyed this job very much, as each chose her own material, and suited her own taste in the making. Jill's was white, with tiny scarlet leaves all over it, trimmed with red braid and buttons so like checkerberries she was tempted to eat them. Molly's was gay, with bouquets of every sort of flower, scalloped all round, and adorned with six buttons, each of a different color, which she thought the last touch of elegance. Merry's, though the simplest, was the daintiest of the three, being pale blue, trimmed with delicate edging, and beautifully made.
Now they were finishing up new dressing sacks and had really enjoyed this task since each of them picked their own fabric and made it according to their style. Jill's was white, covered in tiny red leaves, trimmed with red braid and buttons that looked so much like checkerberries she was tempted to eat them. Molly's was bright, featuring bunches of every kind of flower, scalloped all around, and decorated with six buttons, each a different color, which she thought was the final touch of elegance. Merry's, while the simplest, was the prettiest of the three, being pale blue, trimmed with delicate edging, and beautifully crafted.
Mrs. Minot had been reading from Miss Strickland's “Queens of England” while the girls worked, and an illustrated Shakspeare lay open on the table, as well as several fine photographs of historical places for them to look at as they went along. The hour was over now, the teacher gone, and the pupils setting the last stitches as they talked over the lesson, which had interested them exceedingly.
Mrs. Minot had been reading from Miss Strickland's “Queens of England” while the girls worked, and an illustrated Shakespeare was open on the table, along with several nice photographs of historic places for them to look at as they went along. The hour was over now, the teacher had left, and the students were finishing their last stitches while discussing the lesson, which had greatly intrigued them.
“I really believe I have got Henry's six wives into my head right at last. Two Annes, three Katherines, and one Jane. Now I've seen where they lived and heard their stories, I quite feel as if I knew them,” said Merry, shaking the threads off her work before she folded it up to carry home.
“I really believe I’ve finally got Henry’s six wives straight in my head. Two Annes, three Katherines, and one Jane. Now that I’ve seen where they lived and heard their stories, I feel like I actually know them,” said Merry, shaking the threads off her work before folding it up to take home.
“'King Henry the Eighth to six spouses was wedded, One died, one survived, two divorced, two beheaded,'
“'King Henry the Eighth had six wives, One died, one lived, two got divorced, two were beheaded,'
was all I knew about them before. Poor things, what a bad time they did have,” added Jill, patting down the red braid, which would pucker a bit at the corners.
"That was all I knew about them before. Poor things, they really had a rough time," added Jill, smoothing down the red braid, which would pucker a bit at the corners.
“Katherine Parr had the best of it, because she outlived the old tyrant and so kept her head on,” said Molly, winding the thread round her last button, as if bound to fasten it on so firmly that nothing should decapitate that.
“Katherine Parr had it good because she lived longer than the old tyrant and kept her head,” said Molly, wrapping the thread around her last button, as if determined to secure it so tightly that nothing would be able to take it off.
“I used to think I'd like to be a queen or a great lady, and wear velvet and jewels, and live in a palace, but now I don't care much for that sort of splendor. I like to make things pretty at home, and know that they all depend on me, and love me very much. Queens are not happy, and I am,” said Merry, pausing to look at Anne Hathaway's cottage as she put up the picture, and to wonder if it was very pleasant to have a famous man for one's husband.
“I used to think I’d want to be a queen or a fancy lady, wearing velvet and jewels and living in a palace, but now I don’t really care about that kind of luxury. I enjoy making things nice at home, knowing that everyone depends on me and loves me a lot. Queens aren’t happy, but I am,” said Merry, stopping to look at Anne Hathaway’s cottage as she hung up the picture, and wondering if it’s really nice to have a famous man as a husband.
“I guess your missionarying has done you good; mine has, and I'm getting to have things my own way more and more every day. Miss Bat is so amiable, I hardly know her, and father tells her to ask Miss Molly when she goes to him for orders. Isn't that fun?” laughed Molly, in high glee, at the agreeable change. “I like it ever so much, but I don't want to stay so all my days. I mean to travel, and just as soon as I can I shall take Boo and go all round the world, and see everything,” she added, waving her gay sack, as if it were the flag she was about to nail to the masthead of her ship.
“I guess your missionary work has done you good; mine has too, and I'm starting to get my way more and more every day. Miss Bat is so nice that I hardly recognize her, and my dad tells her to ask Miss Molly when she comes to him for instructions. Isn’t that fun?” laughed Molly, feeling excited about the positive change. “I really like it a lot, but I don’t want to stay like this forever. I plan to travel, and as soon as I can, I’ll take Boo and go all around the world to see everything,” she added, waving her colorful bag like it was the flag she was about to raise on the mast of her ship.
“Well, I should like to be famous in some way, and have people admire me very much. I'd like to act, or dance, or sing, or be what I heard the ladies at Pebbly Beach call a 'queen of society.' But I don't expect to be anything, and I'm not going to worry I shall not be a Lucinda, so I ought to be contented and happy all my life,” said Jill, who was very ambitious in spite of the newly acquired meekness, which was all the more becoming because her natural liveliness often broke out like sunshine through a veil of light clouds.
“Well, I really want to be famous in some way and have people admire me a lot. I'd love to act, dance, sing, or be what I heard the ladies at Pebbly Beach call a 'queen of society.' But I don't expect to be anything, and I'm not going to stress about not being a Lucinda, so I should be content and happy my whole life,” said Jill, who was very ambitious despite her new sense of meekness, which was even more charming because her natural liveliness often shone through like sunshine breaking through light clouds.
If the three girls could have looked forward ten years they would have been surprised to see how different a fate was theirs from the one each had chosen, and how happy each was in the place she was called to fill. Merry was not making the old farmhouse pretty, but living in Italy, with a young sculptor for her husband, and beauty such as she never dreamed of all about her. Molly was not travelling round the world, but contentedly keeping house for her father and still watching over Boo, who was becoming her pride and joy as well as care. Neither was Jill a famous woman, but a very happy and useful one, with the two mothers leaning on her as they grew old, the young men better for her influence over them, many friends to love and honor her, and a charming home, where she was queen by right of her cheery spirit, grateful heart, and unfailing devotion to those who had made her what she was.
If the three girls could have looked ahead ten years, they would have been surprised to see how different their lives turned out compared to what each had envisioned, and how happy each was in the role she was meant to play. Merry wasn’t busy making the old farmhouse beautiful; she was living in Italy with a young sculptor as her husband, surrounded by beauty she had never dreamed of. Molly wasn’t traveling the world, but she was happily taking care of her father and still looking after Boo, who was becoming her pride and joy as well as her responsibility. Jill wasn’t a famous woman, but she was very happy and fulfilled, with the two mothers relying on her as they aged, the young men improving thanks to her influence, many friends who loved and respected her, and a lovely home where she ruled with her cheerful spirit, grateful heart, and unwavering devotion to those who had helped shape her into who she was.
If any curious reader, not content with this peep into futurity, asks, “Did Molly and Jill ever marry?” we must reply, for the sake of peace—Molly remained a merry spinster all her days, one of the independent, brave, and busy creatures of whom there is such need in the world to help take care of other peoples' wives and children, and do the many useful jobs that the married folk have no time for. Jill certainly did wear a white veil on the day she was twenty-five and called her husband Jack. Further than that we cannot go, except to say that this leap did not end in a catastrophe, like the first one they took together.
If any curious reader, not satisfied with this glimpse into the future, asks, “Did Molly and Jill ever get married?” we must reply, for the sake of peace—Molly remained a cheerful single woman her entire life, one of those independent, brave, and busy people that the world needs to help care for other people's spouses and children, and to do the many useful tasks that married folks don’t have time for. Jill definitely wore a white veil on her twenty-fifth birthday and called her husband Jack. Beyond that, we can't say much, except that this leap didn’t result in a disaster, like the first one they took together.
That day, however, they never dreamed of what was in store for them, but chattered away as they cleared up the room, and then ran off ready for play, feeling that they had earned it by work well done. They found the lads just finishing, with Boo to help by picking up the windfalls for the cider-heap, after he had amused himself by putting about a bushel down the various holes old Bun had left behind him. Jack was risking his neck climbing in the most dangerous places, while Frank, with a long-handled apple-picker, nipped off the finest fruit with care, both enjoying the pleasant task and feeling proud of the handsome red and yellow piles all about the little orchard. Merry and Molly caught up baskets and fell to work with all their might, leaving Jill to sit upon a stool and sort the early apples ready to use at once, looking up now and then to nod and smile at her mother who watched her from the window, rejoicing to see her lass so well and happy.
That day, however, they had no idea what was coming, but they chatted as they cleaned up the room and then dashed off, eager to play, feeling like they deserved it after their hard work. They found the boys just finishing up, with Boo helping by gathering the fallen apples for the cider pile after he had entertained himself by tossing a bushel into the various holes old Bun had left behind. Jack was taking risks climbing in the most dangerous spots, while Frank, using a long-handled apple picker, carefully snipped off the best fruit, both of them enjoying the fun task and feeling proud of the beautiful red and yellow piles scattered around the little orchard. Merry and Molly grabbed baskets and worked with all their might, leaving Jill to sit on a stool and sort the early apples for immediate use, occasionally looking up to nod and smile at her mother, who watched her from the window, happy to see her daughter so well and cheerful.
It was such a lovely day, they all felt its cheerful influence; for the sun shone bright and warm, the air was full of an invigorating freshness which soon made the girls' faces look like rosy apples, and their spirits as gay as if they had been stealing sips of new cider through a straw. Jack whistled like a blackbird as he swung and bumped about, Frank orated and joked, Merry and Molly ran races to see who would fill and empty fastest, and Jill sung to Boo, who reposed in a barrel, exhausted with his labors.
It was such a beautiful day; everyone could feel its positive vibe. The sun was shining brightly and warmly, the air was filled with a refreshing energy that soon made the girls' faces glow like rosy apples, and their spirits were as light as if they had been sneaking sips of fresh cider through a straw. Jack whistled like a blackbird as he swung and bumped around, Frank was giving speeches and cracking jokes, Merry and Molly raced to see who could fill and empty the fastest, and Jill sang to Boo, who was resting in a barrel, worn out from his efforts.
“These are the last of the pleasant days, and we ought to make the most of them. Let's have one more picnic before the frost spoils the leaves,” said Merry, resting a minute at the gate to look down the street, which was a glorified sort of avenue, with brilliant maples lining the way and carpeting the ground with crimson and gold.
“These are the last of the nice days, and we should make the most of them. Let's have one more picnic before the frost ruins the leaves,” said Merry, pausing for a moment at the gate to look down the street, which was a beautiful avenue, with vibrant maples lining the path and covering the ground with red and gold.
“Oh, yes! Go down the river once more and have supper on the Island. I couldn't go to some of your picnics, and I do long for a last good time before winter shuts me up again,” cried Jill, eager to harvest all the sunshine she could, for she was not yet quite her old self again.
“Oh, yes! Let's go down the river again and have dinner on the Island. I couldn't make it to some of your picnics, and I really want one last good time before winter keeps me indoors again,” Jill exclaimed, eager to soak up all the sunshine she could, since she still wasn't quite her old self again.
“I'm your man, if the other fellows agree. We can't barrel these up for a while, so to-morrow will be a holiday for us. Better make sure of the day while you can, this weather can't last long;” and Frank shook his head like one on intimate terms with Old Prob.
“I'm your guy, if the others are on board. We can't hold these off for long, so tomorrow will be a day off for us. Better confirm the day while you still can; this weather won’t stick around for long,” and Frank shook his head like someone who knew Old Prob well.
“Don't worry about those high ones, Jack. Give a shake and come down and plan about the party,” called Molly, throwing up a big Baldwin with what seemed a remarkably good aim, for a shower of apples followed, and a boy came tumbling earthward to catch on the lowest bough and swing down like a caterpillar, exclaiming, as he landed,—
“Don’t worry about those high ones, Jack. Just give them a shake and come down to plan the party,” called Molly, throwing up a big Baldwin with surprisingly good aim, as a shower of apples followed, and a boy came tumbling down to catch himself on the lowest branch and swing down like a caterpillar, exclaiming as he landed,—
“I'm glad that job is done! I've rasped every knuckle I've got and worn out the knees of my pants. Nice little crop though, isn't it?”
“I'm glad that job is finished! I've scraped up every knuckle I have and worn out the knees of my pants. Nice little harvest though, right?”
“It will be nicer if this young man does not bite every apple he touches. Hi there! Stop it, Boo,” commanded Frank, as he caught his young assistant putting his small teeth into the best ones, to see if they were sweet or sour.
“It would be better if this young man didn’t bite every apple he touches. Hey! Cut it out, Boo,” Frank said, catching his young assistant tasting the best ones to check if they were sweet or sour.
Molly set the barrel up on end, and that took the boy out of the reach of mischief, so he retired from view and peeped through a crack as he ate his fifth pearmain, regardless of consequences.
Molly stood the barrel upright, which kept the boy out of trouble, so he slipped out of sight and peeked through a crack while munching on his fifth pearmain, not caring about the consequences.
“Gus will be at home to-morrow. He always comes up early on Saturday, you know. We can't get on without him,” said Frank, who missed his mate very much, for Gus had entered college, and so far did not like it as much as he had expected.
“Gus will be home tomorrow. He always comes home early on Saturdays, you know. We can’t manage without him,” said Frank, who really missed his friend, since Gus had started college and so far didn’t enjoy it as much as he had hoped.
“Or Ralph; he is very busy every spare minute on the little boy's bust, which is getting on nicely, he says; but he will be able to come home in time for supper, I think,” added Merry, remembering the absent, as usual.
“Or Ralph; he’s really busy every spare moment working on the little boy's bust, which he says is coming along nicely; but I think he’ll be able to come home in time for dinner,” added Merry, recalling the usual absence.
“I'll ask the girls on my way home, and all meet at two o'clock for a good row while it's warm. What shall I bring?” asked Molly, wondering if Miss Bat's amiability would extend to making goodies in the midst of her usual Saturday's baking.
“I'll ask the girls on my way home, and we’ll all meet at two o'clock for a nice row while it's warm. What should I bring?” asked Molly, curious if Miss Bat's kindness would include making treats during her usual Saturday baking.
“You bring coffee and the big pot and some buttered crackers. I'll see to the pie and cake, and the other girls can have anything else they like,” answered Merry, glad and proud that she could provide the party with her own inviting handiwork.
“You bring coffee, the big pot, and some buttered crackers. I’ll take care of the pie and cake, and the other girls can have whatever else they want,” replied Merry, happy and proud that she could contribute her own delicious creations to the party.
“I'll take my zither, so we can have music as we sail, and Grif will bring his violin, and Ralph can imitate a banjo so that you'd be sure he had one. I do hope it will be fine, it is so splendid to go round like other folks and enjoy myself,” cried Jill, with a little bounce of satisfaction at the prospect of a row and ramble.
"I'll bring my zither, so we can have music while we sail, and Grif will bring his violin, and Ralph can make banjo sounds so you'll believe he has one. I really hope the weather is nice; it feels so great to go out like everyone else and have some fun," exclaimed Jill, bouncing a little with excitement about the idea of a row and a walk.
“Come along, then, and make sure of the girls,” said Merry, catching up her roll of work, for the harvesting was done.
“Come on, then, and check on the girls,” said Merry, grabbing her bundle of work, since the harvesting was finished.
Molly put her sack on as the easiest way of carrying it, and, extricating Boo, they went off, accompanied by the boys, “to make sure of the fellows” also, leaving Jill to sit among the apples, singing and sorting like a thrifty little housewife.
Molly slung her bag over her shoulder for convenience, and after getting Boo out, they set off with the boys “to check on the guys,” leaving Jill to sit among the apples, singing and sorting like a resourceful little housewife.
Next day eleven young people met at the appointed place, basket in hand. Ralph could not come till later, for he was working now as he never worked before. They were a merry flock, for the mellow autumn day was even brighter and clearer than yesterday, and the river looked its loveliest, winding away under the sombre hemlocks, or through the fairyland the gay woods made on either side. Two large boats and two small ones held them all, and away they went, first up through the three bridges and round the bend, then, turning, they floated down to the green island, where a grove of oaks rustled their sere leaves and the squirrels were still gathering acorns. Here they often met to keep their summer revels, and here they now spread their feast on the flat rock which needed no cloth beside its own gray lichens. The girls trimmed each dish with bright leaves, and made the supper look like a banquet for the elves, while the boys built a fire in the nook where ashes and blackened stones told of many a rustic meal. The big tin coffee-pot was not so romantic, but more successful than a kettle slung on three sticks, gypsy fashion; so they did not risk a downfall, but set the water boiling, and soon filled the air with the agreeable perfume associated in their minds with picnics, as most of them never tasted the fascinating stuff at any other time, being the worst children can drink.
The next day, eleven young people gathered at the meeting spot, basket in hand. Ralph couldn't join them until later because he was working harder than ever before. They were a cheerful group, as the bright autumn day was even clearer and sunnier than the day before, and the river looked stunning, winding beneath the dark hemlocks and through the enchanting woods on either side. Two large boats and two small ones carried them all, and off they went, first passing through the three bridges and around the bend, then turning to float down to the green island, where a grove of oaks rustled their dry leaves and squirrels were busy gathering acorns. This was a favorite spot for their summer gatherings, and now they set up their feast on the flat rock that needed no tablecloth but its own gray lichens. The girls decorated each dish with colorful leaves, turning supper into a feast fit for elves, while the boys made a fire in the nook where ashes and charred stones indicated many rustic meals before. The big tin coffee pot wasn't very romantic but was more effective than a kettle hung on three sticks, gypsy style; so they avoided any mishaps and got the water boiling, soon filling the air with the pleasant scent associated with picnics, as most of them had only tasted that delightful drink during these outings, being the worst kinds of children to drink anything else.
Frank was cook, Gus helped cut bread and cake, Jack and Grif brought wood, while Bob Walker took Joe's place and made himself generally useful, as the other gentleman never did, and so was quite out of favor lately.
Frank was the cook, Gus helped slice the bread and cake, Jack and Grif gathered firewood, while Bob Walker stepped in for Joe and made himself helpful, unlike the other guy who had recently fallen out of favor.
All was ready at last, and they were just deciding to sit down without Ralph, when a shout told them he was coming, and down the river skimmed a wherry at such a rate the boys wondered whom he had been racing with.
All was ready at last, and they were just about to sit down without Ralph when a shout signaled that he was coming, and a boat sped down the river so fast that the boys wondered who he had been racing against.
“Something has happened, and he is coming to tell us,” said Jill, who sat where she could see his eager face.
“Something has happened, and he’s coming to tell us,” said Jill, who sat where she could see his excited face.
“Nothing bad, or he wouldn't smile so. He is glad of a good row and a little fun after working so hard all the week;” and Merry shook a red napkin as a welcoming signal.
“Nothing wrong, or he wouldn't be smiling like that. He’s happy to have a good time and some fun after working hard all week;” and Merry waved a red napkin as a welcoming signal.
Something certainly had happened, and a very happy something it must be, they all thought, as Ralph came on with flashing oars, and leaping out as the boat touched the shore, ran up the slope, waving his hat, and calling in a glad voice, sure of sympathy in his delight,—
Something had definitely happened, and it had to be something really great, they all thought, as Ralph approached with shining oars. He jumped out as the boat reached the shore, ran up the slope, waved his hat, and called out in a cheerful voice, confident that others would share in his excitement,—
“Good news! good news! Hurrah for Rome, next month!”
"Great news! Great news! Hooray for Rome, next month!"
The young folks forgot their supper for a moment, to congratulate him on his happy prospect, and hear all about it, while the leaves rustled as if echoing the kind words, and the squirrels sat up aloft, wondering what all the pleasant clamor was about.
The young people momentarily forgot about their dinner to congratulate him on his good fortune and to hear all about it, while the leaves rustled as if echoing their kind words, and the squirrels perched high up, curious about the cheerful noise.
“Yes, I'm really going in November. German asked me to go with him to-day, and if there is any little hitch in my getting off, he'll lend a hand, and I—I'll black his boots, wet his clay, and run his errands the rest of my life to pay for this!” cried Ralph, in a burst of gratitude; for, independent as he was, the kindness of this successful friend to a deserving comrade touched and won his heart.
“Yes, I'm definitely going in November. German asked me to go with him today, and if there's any problem with me getting away, he'll help out, and I—I'll clean his boots, prepare his clay, and run his errands for the rest of my life to repay him for this!” Ralph exclaimed, filled with gratitude; because, no matter how independent he was, the generosity of this successful friend towards a deserving buddy moved and won him over.
“I call that a handsome thing to do!” said Frank, warmly, for noble actions always pleased him. “I heard my mother say that making good or useful men was the best sort of sculpture, so I think David German may be proud of this piece of work, whether the big statue succeeds or not.”
“I think that’s a great thing to do!” said Frank, enthusiastically, because he always appreciated noble actions. “I heard my mom say that creating good or helpful people is the best type of art, so I believe David German can be proud of this work, regardless of whether the big statue succeeds or not.”
“I'm very glad, old fellow. When I run over for my trip four years from now, I'll look you up, and see how you are getting on,” said Gus, with a hearty shake of the hand; and the younger lads grinned cheerfully, even while they wondered where the fun was in shaping clay and chipping marble.
“I'm really glad, man. When I come by for my trip four years from now, I'll check in on you to see how you're doing,” said Gus, giving a warm handshake; and the younger guys smiled cheerfully, even as they wondered what was so enjoyable about shaping clay and chipping marble.
“Shall you stay four years?” asked Merry's soft voice, while a wistful look came into her happy eyes.
“Are you going to stay for four years?” asked Merry's gentle voice, as a sentimental look appeared in her cheerful eyes.
“Ten, if I can,” answered Ralph, decidedly, feeling as if a long lifetime would be all too short for the immortal work he meant to do. “I've got so much to learn, that I shall do whatever David thinks best for me at first, and when I can go alone, I shall just shut myself up and forget that there is any world outside my den.”
“Ten, if I can,” Ralph replied firmly, feeling like a long lifetime would be too short for the timeless work he intended to accomplish. “I have so much to learn that I’ll follow whatever David thinks is best for me at first, and when I can go on my own, I’ll just isolate myself and forget that there’s a world outside my space.”
“Do write and tell us how you get on now and then; I like to hear about other people's good times while I'm waiting for my own,” said Molly, too much interested to observe that Grif was sticking burrs up and down her braids.
“Please write and let us know how things are going every now and then; I enjoy hearing about other people's good times while I’m waiting for my own,” said Molly, too intrigued to notice that Grif was sticking burrs throughout her braids.
“Of course I shall write to some of you, but you mustn't expect any great things for years yet. People don't grow famous in a hurry, and it takes a deal of hard work even to earn your bread and butter, as you'll find if you ever try it,” answered Ralph, sobering down a little as he remembered the long and steady effort it had taken to get even so far.
“Of course I'll write to some of you, but don’t expect anything too impressive for a few years. People don’t become famous overnight, and it takes a lot of hard work just to make a living, as you’ll see if you ever try it,” Ralph replied, becoming a bit more serious as he thought about the long and steady effort it had taken to get this far.
“Speaking of bread and butter reminds me that we'd better eat ours before the coffee gets quite cold,” said Annette, for Merry seemed to have forgotten that she had been chosen to play matron, as she was the oldest.
“Speaking of bread and butter reminds me that we should eat ours before the coffee gets too cold,” said Annette, since Merry seemed to have forgotten that she was picked to be the matron because she was the oldest.
The boys seconded the motion, and for a few minutes supper was the all-absorbing topic, as the cups went round and the goodies vanished rapidly, accompanied by the usual mishaps which make picnic meals such fun. Ralph's health was drunk with all sorts of good wishes; and such splendid prophecies were made, that he would have far surpassed Michael Angelo, if they could have come true. Grif gave him an order on the spot for a full-length statue of himself, and stood up to show the imposing attitude in which he wished to be taken, but unfortunately slipped and fell forward with one hand in the custard pie, the other clutching wildly at the coffee-pot, which inhospitably burnt his fingers.
The boys supported the idea, and for a few minutes, dinner was the main topic of conversation as the cups were passed around and the snacks disappeared quickly, accompanied by the usual mishaps that make picnic meals so enjoyable. Ralph’s health was toasted with all kinds of good wishes, and such lofty predictions were made that he would have easily outshone Michelangelo if they had come true. Grif even put in a request right then for a full-length statue of himself and stood up to demonstrate the impressive pose he wanted, but unfortunately, he slipped and fell forward, landing one hand in the custard pie and the other grasping wildly at the coffee pot, which unkindly burned his fingers.
“I think I grasp the idea, and will be sure to remember not to make your hair blow one way and the tails of your coat another, as a certain sculptor made those of a famous man,” laughed Ralph, as the fallen hero scrambled up, amidst general merriment.
“I think I get the idea and will definitely keep in mind not to have your hair blowing one way and the tails of your coat the other, like a certain sculptor did with a famous guy,” laughed Ralph as the fallen hero got back up, surrounded by laughter.
“Will the little bust be done before you go?” asked Jill, anxiously, feeling a personal interest in the success of that order.
“Will the little bust be finished before you go?” Jill asked anxiously, feeling personally invested in the success of that order.
“Yes: I've been hard at it every spare minute I could get, and have a fortnight more. It suits Mrs. Lennox, and she will pay well for it, so I shall have something to start with, though I haven't been able to save much. I'm to thank you for that, and I shall send you the first pretty thing I get hold of,” answered Ralph, looking gratefully at the bright face, which grew still brighter as Jill exclaimed,—
“Yes: I've been working hard every chance I get, and I have another two weeks to go. It works for Mrs. Lennox, and she will pay well for it, so I’ll have something to kickstart myself, even though I haven’t been able to save much. I'm grateful to you for that, and I’ll send you the first nice thing I come across,” replied Ralph, looking appreciatively at the cheerful face, which became even brighter as Jill exclaimed,—
“I do feel so proud to know a real artist, and have my bust done by him. I only wish I could pay for it as Mrs. Lennox does; but I haven't any money, and you don't need the sort of things I can make,” she added, shaking her head, as she thought over knit slippers, wall-pockets, and crochet in all its forms, as offerings to her departing friend.
“I feel so proud to know a real artist and to have my bust created by him. I just wish I could afford it like Mrs. Lennox does; but I don‘t have any money, and you wouldn’t want the kind of things I can make,” she said, shaking her head as she considered knit slippers, wall pockets, and all kinds of crochet as gifts for her departing friend.
“You can write often, and tell me all about everybody, for I shall want to know, and people will soon forget me when I'm gone,” said Ralph, looking at Merry, who was making a garland of yellow leaves for Juliet's black hair.
“You can write to me anytime and keep me updated on everyone, because I really want to know, and people will forget about me quickly once I’m gone,” Ralph said, watching Merry as she made a garland of yellow leaves for Juliet's dark hair.
Jill promised, and kept her word; but the longest letters went from the farm-house on the hill, though no one knew the fact till long afterward. Merry said nothing now, but she smiled, with a pretty color in her cheeks, and was very much absorbed in her work, while the talk went on.
Jill promised and followed through; however, the longest letters came from the farmhouse on the hill, though nobody realized that until much later. Merry didn’t say anything now, but she smiled, her cheeks flushed with color, and was deeply focused on her work while the conversation continued.
“I wish I was twenty, and going to seek my fortune, as you are,” said Jack; and the other boys agreed with him, for something in Ralph's new plans and purposes roused the manly spirit in all of them, reminding them that playtime would soon be over, and the great world before them, where to choose.
“I wish I were twenty and going to seek my fortune like you are,” said Jack, and the other boys nodded in agreement. Something about Ralph's new plans and goals inspired a sense of manliness in all of them, reminding them that playtime would soon end and the vast world ahead was theirs to choose from.
“It is easy enough to say what you'd like; but the trouble is, you have to take what you can get, and make the best of it,” said Gus, whose own views were rather vague as yet.
“It’s pretty simple to talk about what you want; but the problem is, you have to accept what you can get and make the most of it,” said Gus, whose own opinions were still quite unclear.
“No you don't, always; you can make things go as you want them, if you only try hard enough, and walk right over whatever stands in the way. I don't mean to give up my plans for any man; but, if I live, I'll carry them out—you see if I don't;” and Frank gave the rock where he lay a blow with his fist, that sent the acorns flying all about.
“No, you don't always have to. You can make things happen the way you want if you just try hard enough and push through whatever gets in your way. I have no intention of giving up my plans for any guy; but I'll see them through if I live—you'll see if I don't;” and Frank struck the rock where he lay with his fist, sending acorns flying everywhere.
One of them hit Jack, and he said, sorrowfully, as he held it in his hand so carefully it was evident he had some association with it,—
One of them hit Jack, and he said sadly, as he held it in his hand so carefully that it was clear he had some connection to it,—
“Ed used to say that, and he had some splendid plans, but they didn't come to anything.”
“Ed used to say that, and he had some great plans, but they didn't lead to anything.”
“Perhaps they did; who can tell? Do your best while you live, and I don't believe anything good is lost, whether we have it a long or a short time,” said Ralph, who knew what a help and comfort high hopes were, and how they led to better things, if worthily cherished.
“Maybe they did; who knows? Do your best while you’re alive, and I don’t think anything good is wasted, whether we have it for a long time or a short time,” said Ralph, who understood how helpful and comforting high hopes could be, and how they could lead to better things if they were valued properly.
“A great many acorns are wasted, I suppose; but some of them sprout and grow, and make splendid trees,” added Merry, feeling more than she knew how to express, as she looked up at the oaks overhead.
“A lot of acorns go to waste, I guess; but some of them sprout and grow into amazing trees,” added Merry, feeling more than she could express as she looked up at the oaks above her.
Only seven of the party were sitting on the knoll now, for the rest had gone to wash the dishes and pack the baskets down by the boats. Jack and Jill, with the three elder boys, were in a little group, and as Merry spoke, Gus said to Frank,—
Only seven of the group were sitting on the hill now, since the others had gone to do the dishes and pack the baskets by the boats. Jack and Jill, along with the three older boys, were gathered together, and as Merry spoke, Gus said to Frank,—
“Did you plant yours?”
“Did you plant yours yet?”
“Yes, on the lawn, and I mean it shall come up if I can make it,” answered Frank, gravely.
“Yes, on the lawn, and I mean it will happen if I can make it,” Frank replied seriously.
“I put mine where I can see it from the window, and not forget to water and take care of it,” added Jack, still turning the pretty brown acorn to and fro as if he loved it.
“I put mine where I can see it from the window, so I don’t forget to water and take care of it,” Jack added, still turning the pretty brown acorn back and forth as if he loved it.
“What do they mean?” whispered Merry to Jill, who was leaning against her knee to rest.
“What do they mean?” Merry whispered to Jill, who was resting against her knee.
“The boys were walking in the Cemetery last Sunday, as they often do, and when they came to Ed's grave, the place was all covered with little acorns from the tree that grows on the bank. They each took up some as they stood talking, and Jack said he should plant his, for he loved Ed very much, you know. The others said they would, too; and I hope the trees will grow, though we don't need anything to remember him by,” answered Jill, in a low tone, thinking of the pressed flowers the girls kept for his sake.
“The boys were walking in the cemetery last Sunday, as they often do, and when they reached Ed's grave, the area was covered with little acorns from the tree that grows on the bank. They each picked some up while they talked, and Jack said he wanted to plant his, because he loved Ed a lot, you know. The others agreed they would, too; and I hope the trees grow, even though we don't need anything to remember him by,” Jill replied quietly, thinking about the pressed flowers the girls kept in his memory.
The boys heard her, but no one spoke for a moment as they sat looking across the river toward the hill where the pines whispered their lullabies and pointed heavenward, steadfast and green, all the year round. None of them could express the thought that was in their minds as Jill told the little story; but the act and the feeling that prompted it were perhaps as beautiful an assurance as could have been given that the dear dead boy's example had not been wasted, for the planting of the acorns was a symbol of the desire budding in those young hearts to be what he might have been, and to make their lives nobler for the knowledge and the love of him.
The boys heard her, but nobody said anything for a moment as they sat looking across the river at the hill where the pines whispered their lullabies and pointed up to the sky, steady and green all year round. None of them could put into words what they were thinking as Jill told the little story; however, the action and the feeling behind it were perhaps as beautiful a reassurance as could be given that the beloved deceased boy's example hadn't been in vain. The planting of the acorns symbolized the longing growing in those young hearts to be what he could have been and to make their lives better through the knowledge and love of him.
“It seems as if a great deal had happened this year,” said Merry, in a pensive tone, for this quiet talk just suited her mood.
“It feels like a lot has happened this year,” said Merry, in a thoughtful tone, as this calm conversation matched her mood perfectly.
“So I say, for there's been a Declaration of Independence and a Revolution in our house, and I'm commander-in-chief now; and don't I like it!” cried Molly, complacently surveying the neat new uniform she wore of her own choosing.
“So I say, because there’s been a Declaration of Independence and a Revolution in our house, and I’m the commander-in-chief now; and don’t I love it!” cried Molly, happily looking at the neat new uniform she picked out for herself.
“I feel as if I never learned so much in my life as I have since last December, and yet I never did so little,” added Jill, wondering why the months of weariness and pain did not seem more dreadful to her.
“I feel like I’ve never learned so much in my life as I have since last December, and yet I’ve never done so little,” added Jill, wondering why the months of exhaustion and pain didn’t seem more terrible to her.
“Well, pitching on my head seems to have given me a good shaking up, somehow, and I mean to do great things next year in better ways than breaking my bones coasting,” said Jack, with a manly air.
“Well, falling on my head seems to have really shaken me up somehow, and I plan to do amazing things next year in smarter ways than getting hurt while coasting,” said Jack, confidently.
“I feel like a Siamese twin without his mate now you are gone, but I'm under orders for a while, and mean to do my best. Guess it won't be lost time;” and Frank nodded at Gus, who nodded back with the slightly superior expression all Freshmen wear.
“I feel like a Siamese twin without his other half now that you’re gone, but I’m on a mission for a while and plan to give it my all. I guess it won't be wasted time;” and Frank nodded at Gus, who nodded back with the subtly condescending look that all Freshmen have.
“Hope you won't find it so. My work is all cut out for me, and I intend to go in and win, though it is more of a grind than you fellows know.”
“Hope you don’t find it any different. I have my work cut out for me, and I plan to dive in and succeed, even though it’s tougher than you guys realize.”
“I'm sure I have everything to be grateful for. It won't be plain sailing—I don't expect it; but, if I live, I'll do something to be proud of,” said Ralph, squaring his shoulders as if to meet and conquer all obstacles as he looked into the glowing west, which was not fairer than his ambitious dreams.
“I'm sure I have a lot to be grateful for. It won't be easy—I don't expect that; but if I live, I'll do something to be proud of,” said Ralph, straightening his shoulders as if to face and overcome all challenges while he gazed into the glowing west, which was no more beautiful than his ambitious dreams.
Here we will say good-by to these girls and boys of ours as they sit together in the sunshine talking over a year that was to be for ever memorable to them, not because of any very remarkable events, but because they were just beginning to look about them as they stepped out of childhood into youth, and some of the experiences of the past months had set them to thinking, taught them to see the use and beauty of the small duties, joys, and sorrows which make up our lives, and inspired them to resolve that the coming year should be braver and brighter than the last.
Here, we say goodbye to these boys and girls as they sit together in the sunshine, reflecting on a year that will always be memorable for them—not because of any extraordinary events, but because they are starting to look around as they transition from childhood to youth. Some of the experiences from the past months have made them think, helping them recognize the value and beauty in the small duties, joys, and sorrows that fill our lives. They've resolved that the coming year will be braver and brighter than the last.
There are many such boys and girls, full of high hopes, lovely possibilities, and earnest plans, pausing a moment before they push their little boats from the safe shore. Let those who launch them see to it that they have good health to man the oars, good education for ballast, and good principles as pilots to guide them as they voyage down an ever-widening river to the sea.
There are many boys and girls like this, filled with big dreams, exciting opportunities, and serious plans, taking a moment before they set their little boats out from the safety of the shore. Those who send them off should make sure they have good health to row, a solid education for support, and strong principles as guides to help them as they travel down an ever-expanding river to the ocean.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!